Skip to main content

Full text of "Lives and letters of the Devereux, earls of Essex, in the reigns of Elizabeth, James I., and Charles I., 1540-1646"

See other formats


,SEC<QNB> 

&O1. 


1AEL  « 


. 


LIVES    AND    LETTERS 


OF    THE 


DEVEREUX,   EARLS   OF  ESSEX, 

IN   THE    REIGNS    OF 

ELIZABETH,   JAMES  L,   AND  CHAELES  I. 
1540—1646. 


BY  THE  HONORABLE 

WALTER  BOURCHIER  DEVEREUX, 

CAPTAIN    IN    THE    ROYAL   NAVY. 


IN  TWO  VOLUMES.— VOL.  II. 


LONDON: 
JOHN  MURRAY,   ALBEMAELE  STREET. 


1853. 


Dfl 


v.l 


LONDON  : 

SPOTTISWOODES  and  SIIAVV, 
New-street-Squarc. 


CONTENTS 


THE     SECOND    VOLUME. 


CHAPTER  I. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX Continued. 

Difficulty  about  the  appointment  of  a  Lord  Lieutenant.  Bacon's 
advice  to  Essex,  to  interest  himself  in  Irish  matters.  Dislike  of 
Essex  to  the  service.  His  appointment.  Instructions.  Com- 
mission. Departure.  His  detention  at  Helbry.  His  arrival  at 
Dublin.  Council  advise  delay.  Minister  and  Leinster  journey. 
His  letters.  He  advances  to  Askeaton,  and  returns  by  Water- 
ford.  His  able  letter  to  the  Queen  on  the  state  of  Ireland,  and 
mode  of  managing  an  Irish  war  -  Page  1 

CHAPTER  II. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX  —  Continued. 

Displeasure  of  the  Queen  at  Southampton's  appointment.  His 
discharge.  Queen  expresses  strong  disapprobation  of  Essex's 
proceedings,  while  Cecyll,  in  letters  to  Sir  H.  Neville,  approves. 
On  the  alarm  of  a  Spanish  invasion,  and  preparation  of  arma- 
ment, Essex  ordered  not  to  quit  Ireland.  Trial  of  Sir  H.  Har- 
rington's men.  Defeat  and  death  of  Sir  Conyers  Clifford.  Royal 
letter  of  reproof.  Essex  proceeds  to  Ulster  to  make  a  recon- 
noissance.  The  Council  protest  against  an  attack  on  Tyrone. 
Skirmish.  Parley.  Truce.  Another  letter  of  disapprobation 
from  the  Queen  42 

A    2 


iv  CONTENTS. 

CHAPTER  III. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX continued. 

Arrival  of  Essex  at  Nonsuch,  on  the  morning  of  Michaelmas-eve. 
His  reception  by  the  Queen.  He  is  committed  to  the  Lord 
Keeper's  custody  at  York  House.  The  Queen  exasperated. 
His  submissive  letters.  He  falls  ill.  Lady  Essex's  grief.  Popu- 
lar feeling  in  his  favour.  The  Queen  orders  a  consultation  of 
physicians.  She  visits  him,  but  refuses  his  new  year's  gift.  He 
is  removed  to  Essex  House.  Lady  Essex  allowed  to  visit  him 
in  the  day.  His  occupations.  He  is  sent  before  an  irregular 
court  at  York  House.  Proceedings  there.  His  behaviour.  The 
censure.  He  is  released,  but  ordered  not  to  approach  the  pre- 
sence -  -  Page  76 

CHAPTER  IV. 

LIFE    OF   ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX Continued. 

Francis  Bacon  endeavours  to  explain  his  conduct.  Essex's  reply. 
Vain  endeavours  to  obtain  access.  Consideration  of  his  conduct 
in  Ireland.  Renewal  of  his  lease  of  sweet  wines  refused.  His 
last  letter,  threatening  to  enter  the  royal  presence  in  armour. 
Essex  House  thrown  open.  Daily  preachings.  His  friends 
hold  meetings  at  Drury  House.  Immediate  cause  of  the  insur- 
rection. The  Lord  Keeper  goes  to  Essex  House.  Vain  attempt 
to  raise  the  City.  Essex  House  is  invested.  Essex  surrenders, 
and  with  his  principal  friends  is  sent  to  the  Tower  -  117 

CHAPTER  V. 

LIFE   OF    ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX Continued. 

Westminster  Hall  at  the  trial  of  Essex  and  Southampton.  Their 
arraignment.  Confessions  of  their  companions.  Bacon's  speech 
and  behaviour.  Essex's  speech,  and  condemnation.  Mr.  Ashton 
obtains  a  confession.  Chamberlain's  account.  Lady  Essex's 
letter  to  Cecyll,  who  relents.  Ralegh's  letter,  urging  the  death 
of  Essex.  The  story  of  the  ring  considered,  with  the  subsequent 
regret  of  Elizabeth.  The  Queen's  indecision.  Order  of  execu- 
tion sent.  Last  hours  and  death  of  Essex  -  149 


CONTENTS.  V 

CHAPTER  VI. 

LIFE   OF    ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX concluded. 

Character  of  Essex.  His  writings.  Liberality.  Children.  Fate 
of  Essex's  companions.  Popular  feeling  respecting  Essex. 
Bacon's  "  Declaration  of  the  Treasons  of  the  late  Earl  of  Essex." 
Anthony  Bacon  defends  Essex  to  the  last.  Elizabeth's  melan- 
choly, grief  for  Essex's  loss,  and  death.  Favour  shown  by 
James  I.  to  Essex's  friends.  Attainder  of  Ralegh,  Grey,  and 
Cobham.  Northumberland  arraigned.  Mountjoy  returns  from 
Ireland,  marries  Lady  Rich.  His  disgrace  and  death.  Descrip- 
tion by  Moryson  -  -  Page  192 

CHAPTER  VII. 

LIFE    OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX. 

Contrast  between  Elizabeth  and  James  I.  Robert  Devereux,  at 
Eton  and  Oxford.  The  attainder  of  Essex  and  Southampton 
reversed.  Quarrel  between  the  Prince  of  Wales  and  Essex. 
Marriage  of  Essex  and  Lady  Frances  Howard,  and  festivities  at 
Court.  Dissolute  state  of  the  Court.  Essex  goes  abroad.  His 
letters  from  France.  His  correspondence  with  the  Prince  of 
Wales  -  -  218 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX Continued. 

Rise  of  Carr  to  be  favourite.  Lady  Essex  becomes  attached  to 
him.  She  refuses  to  live  with  her  husband.  Her  letters  to 
Mrs.  Turner  and  Dr.  Forman,  from  Chartley.  The  connection 
of  Lady  Essex  and  Rochester  becomes  notorious.  A  commis- 
sion appointed  to  inquire  into  the  petition  of  Lady  Essex  for 
dissolution  of  the  marriage.  Its  proceedings.  Essex  challenges 
Mr.  Henry  Howard  -  -  238 

CHAPTER  IX. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX continued. 

Further  proceedings  of  the  commission,  and  sentence  annulling  the 
marriage  of  Essex.  Rochester  created  Earl  of  Somerset,  mar- 


i  CONTENTS. 

ries  Lady  Essex.  Festivities  and  presents  on  the  occasion. 
Rochester  guided  by  Overbury.  They  quarrel.  Overbury  is 
sent  to  the  Tower,  and  there  poisoned.  Somerset  and  his  wife 
arrested.  They  are  tried  and  convicted  of  the  murder  of  Sir 
Thomas  Overbury.  The  uneasiness  of  James.  Lord  and  Lady 
Somerset  are  pardoned  -  -  Page  254 


CHAPTER  X. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX Continued. 

The  Elector  Palatine  marries  the  Princess  Elizabeth.  Their 
friendship  for  Essex.  Essex  retires  to  Chartley.  Arthur  Wil- 
son is  taken  into  his  service.  Sir  William  Seymour  marries 
Lady  Frances  Devereux.  Origin  of  the  Thirty  Years'  War. 
The  Elector  Palatine  chosen  King  of  Bohemia.  Essex  serves  in 
the  Palatinate  -  -  270 

CHAPTER  XL 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX continued. 

Parliament  of  1621.  Essex  goes  to  Holland.  Parliament  of  1624 
votes  supplies  for  the  Palatinate.  Essex  commands  a  regiment. 
He  is  recalled  on  the  death  of  King  James.  Attends  the  Par- 
liament at  Oxford.  He  is  appointed  Vice- Admiral  of  the  fleet 
under  Viscount  Wimbledon.  Expedition  to  Cadiz,  1625  287 


CHAPTER  XII. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX continued. 

Parliament  of  1628.  Earl  of  Essex  marries  Miss  Elizabeth  Paulet. 
Army  sent  against  the  Scots  Covenanters,  1639,  of  which  Essex 
is  Lieutenant-General.  His  proceedings.  He  is  unceremo- 
niously dismissed  after  the  treaty.  Parliament  called  in  1640. 
The  Scottish  Covenanters  invade  England  in  1641.  Essex  and 
others  petition  the  King  for  a  Parliament.  Council  of  Peers  at 
York.  Commissioners  meet  at  Ripon  -  -  303 


CONTENTS.  Vll 

CHAPTER  XIII. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF    ESSEX  —  continued. 

The  Long  Parliament.  Earl  of  Strafford's  trial.  Essex  is  appointed 
Lord  Lieutenant  of  Yorkshire  and  Lord  Chamberlain.  The 
King  goes  to  Scotland,  leaving  Essex  Lieutenant-General  of  the 
kingdom,  south  of  the  Trent.  Return  of  the  King.  Impeach- 
ment of  the  five  members.  Charles  leaves  London.  The  Lord 
Chamberlain  refuses  to  attend  him.  His  dismissal.  Ordinance 
concerning  the  militia.  Essex  Lord- Lieutenant  of  Yorkshire, 
Staffordshire,  Montgomeryshire,  Salop,  and  Herefordshire.  His 
position  at  this  juncture  -  -  Page  323 

CHAPTER  XIV. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF    ESSEX continued. 

Progress  of  events.  Essex  appointed  Captain-General  by  the  Par- 
liament. He  is  proclaimed  a  rebel  by  the  King.  The  standard 
raised  by  the  King.  Parliament  army  assembles  at  Northamp- 
ton. Essex  marches  to  Worcester.  His  speech  to  the  army. 
Battle  of  Edgehill.  Subsequent  proceedings.  Attempt  to 
negotiate.  Action  at  Brentford.  King  Charles  returns  to 
Oatlands,  and  Oxford.  Essex  establishes  head-quarters  at 
Windsor  -  340 

CHAPTER  XV. 

LIFE    OF   ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX  —  continued. 

The  campaign  of  1643.  10,000/.  a-year  voted  to  Essex.  His 
letters  recommending  peace  and  demanding  money.  Debate 
on  their  being  read.  Situation  of  the  royalists.  Sir  William 
Waller's  expedition  and  defeat.  Jealousy  between  Essex  and 
Waller.  Proceedings  in  Parliament.  The  King  besieges 
Gloucester,  which  place  is  relieved  by  Essex.  Cirencester  sur- 
prised. Battle  of  Newbury.  Essex  receives  the  thanks  of  Par- 
liament. He  desires  leave  to  resign  his  commission.  Solemn 
league  and  covenant  -  -  366 


Vlii  CONTENTS. 

CHAPTER  XVI. 

LIFE   OP   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF    ESSEX  —  continued. 

The  King  calls  a  Parliament  at  Oxford,  in  January,  1644.  An 
attempt  to  negotiate  fails.  Neglected  state  of  the  army.  Open- 
ing of  the  campaign.  Essex  and  Waller  advance  on  Oxford. 
The  King  retreats,  and  is  pursued  by  Waller.  Essex  marches 
into  the  West.  His  letters,  detailing  his  proceedings.  His 
dissatisfaction.  He  is  reprimanded  in  a  letter  from  the 
Speakers  -  -  Page  389 

CHAPTER  XVII. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF    ESSEX  —  continued. 

Good  conduct  and  discipline  of  Essex's  army  compared  with  others. 
The  Queen  leaves  Exeter.  Letters  reporting  the  advance  into 
Devonshire.  The  Council  of  War  determines  to  go  into  Corn- 
wall. Essex  is  pursued  by  the  King.  Movements  in  support 
of  Essex.  The  King  writes  to  Essex.  Blockade  of  the  rebel 
army  in  Lestwithiel  and  Fowey.  Capitulation  -  -  412 

CHAPTER  XVIH. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX concluded. 

Movements  of  the  royal  army.  Proceedings  of  Lord  Essex.  His 
illness.  Second  battle  of  Newbury.  Consultation  at  Essex 
House  concerning  Cromwell.  Self-denying  Ordinance.  Essex 
resigns  his  commission.  His  conduct  as  General.  Sequestrated 
lands  assigned  to  him.  Proposal  to  make  Essex  and  others 
Dukes.  His  illness  and  death.  Lord  Clarendon's  character  of 
Lord  Essex.  His  funeral.  Litigation  about  his  will  -  441 

APPENDIX  ______      477 


ERRATA  IN  VOL.   II. 

Page  32.  line  25.  for  "from  whence,"  read  "  and  thence." 
33.  line  22.  "  from  whence,"  dele  "  from." 
69.  line  7.  "from  whence,"  dele  ''from." 
128.  last  line  for  "vengeful  woman," read  "vindictive  woman.' 


LIVES  AND  LETTERS 


OF    THE 


DEVEREUX,    EARLS    OF    ESSEX, 


CHAPTER  I. 

LIFE    OF   EGBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX  —  Continued. 

DIFFICULTY  ABOUT  THE  APPOINTMENT  OF  A  LORD  LIEUTENANT. 

BACON'S  ADVICE  TO  ESSEX,  TO  INTEREST  HIMSELF  IN  IRISH  MAT- 
TERS.  DISLIKE  OF  ESSEX  TO  THE  SERVICE. —  HIS  APPOINTMENT. 

INSTRUCTIONS. COMMISSION. DEPARTURE. HIS  DETENTION 

AT  HELBRY. — HIS  ARRIVAL  AT  DUBLIN. —  COUNCIL  ADVISE  DELAY. 
MUNSTER  AND  LEINSTER  JOURNEY.  —  HIS  LETTERS HE  AD- 
VANCES TO  ASKEATON,  AND  RETURNS  BY  WATERFORD. HIS  ABLE 

LETTER  TO  THE  QUEEN  ON  THE  STATE  OF  IRELAND,  AND  MODE 
OF  MANAGING  AN  IRISH  WAR. 

THE  defeat  of  the  royal  forces  under  Sir  H.  Bagenall, 
by  the  rebels  led  by  the  Earl  of 'Tyrone,  near  the 
Blackwater,  has  been  mentioned.  In  order  to  crush 
this  rebellion,  rendered  doubly  formidable  by  such 
unwonted  success,  it  was  resolved  to  send  to  Ireland 
a  greater  force  than  had  ever  yet  been  engaged  in 

VOL.  II.  B 


2  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

that  country.  A  difficulty  arose  in  the  nomination 
of  a  commander. 

Camden,  whose  authority  has  been  received  un- 
questioned by  every  subsequent  writer,  has  stated 
that  Lord  Mountjoy  was  nominated ;  that  his  ap- 
pointment was  opposed  by  Essex,  on  the  ground  that 
he  was  not  sufficiently  experienced  in  the  conduct  of 
warlike  affairs ;  that  his  fortune  and  connections 
were  not  sufficiently  great ;  and  that  he  was  too  much 
devoted  to  study ;  that  every  body  perceived  Essex 
meant  to  point  at  himself  as  the  only  fit  person :  and 
upon  his  enemies  becoming  aware  of  this,  they  con- 
spired with  alacrity  to  obtain  his  appointment ;  thus, 
while  they  gratified  his  ambition,  obtaining  for  them- 
selves a  clear  field  at  court. 

Francis  Bacon,  whose  intimate  friendship  with  the 
Earl  had  decayed  since  the  summer  of  1597,  when 
Essex  had  made  ineffectual  efforts  to  further  the 
interests  of  Bacon  in  his  suit  to  the  rich  widow, 
Lady  Hatton,  and  who  probably  had  contemplated, 
and  was  prepared  to  execute,  when  occasion  should 
offer,  that  base  desertion  of  his  generous  and  unsus- 
pecting friend,  which  has  cast  a  shade  of  infamy  on 
his  memory,  that  not  all  the  reverence  felt  for 
his  splendid  intellect,  nor  all  his  great  services  to 
mankind,  have  ever  been  able  to  remove:  in  an 
apology  for  his  conduct  which  he  thought  it  neces- 
sary to  write  in  the  following  reign  to  the  Earl  of 
Devonshire,  declares,  that  he  did  not  only  dissuade, 
but  most  vehemently  protest  against,  the  Earl's  going 
to  Ireland,  foreseeing  his  overthrow  in  that  journey  ; 


CHAP.  I.  •     ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX. 

but  that  though  the  ear  of  Essex  was  open,  his  heart 
was  shut  against  advice. 

Now,  presumptuous  as  it  may  seem,  I  not  only 
mean  to  attempt  to  show,  that  neither  of  these  great 
authorities  is  to  be  trusted  in  this  case,  but  I 
believe  that  I  shall  be  able  to  prove  my  assertion, 
that  the  Earl  of  Essex  had,  from  the  first,  a  very 
strong  aversion  to  the  service,  and  accepted  the  office 
of  Deputy  most  unwillingly.  It  must  be  recollected 
that  Bacon  wrote  as  his  own  advocate,  in  a  cause 
which  the  general  detestation  of  his  conduct  even 
then  shown,  required  him  to  explain  if  possible,  and 
that  his  letters  to  Essex,  by  means  of  which  we  intend 
to  refute  him,  were  not  published  to  the  world. 

With  respect  to  Camden,  I  shall  produce  a  series 
of  letters  from  Essex  to  various  persons,  both  pre- 
vious to  his  going  over,  and  from  Ireland,  all  demon- 
strative of  the  most  marked  dislike  to  his  employment. 
That  he  may  have  objected  to  the  nomination  of 
Mountjoy  is  highly  probable,  for  the  same  reason 
that  he  had  before  opposed  that  of  Sir  William 
Knollys,  that  he  was  one  of  his  very  few  true  friends, 
who  had  access  and  influence  at  Court :  there  was 
another  possible  influence,  the  unwillingness  of  Lady 
Rich  to  part  with  her  lover. 

I  will  first  dispose  of  Francis  Bacon.  While  Sir 
Robert  Cecyll  was  in  France,  he  had  written  to  the 
Earl  of  Essex  urging  his  attention  to  Irish  matters, 
as  "  one  of  the  aptest  particulars  that  can  come  upon 
"  the  stage,  for  your  Lordship  to  purchase  honor 

B    2 


LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

"  upon," x  and  for  three  reasons ;  that  it  was  in- 
generate  in  his  house  in  consequence  of  his  noble 
father's  attempts ;  that  of  all  state  affairs,  that  was 
at  present  the  most  important;  and  that  he  would 
induce  a  comparison  between  those  who  set  it  out  of 
frame,  and  those  who  bring  it  into  frame,  greatly 
to  the  honour  of  the  last.  There  were  two  ways  by 
which  he  could  obtain  that  honour ;  employing  persons 
named  by  himself,  or  himself  undertaking  the  care 
of  the  matter.  He  ends  by  urging  him  to  seize  the 
advantage  of  the  time  of  Mr.  Secretary's  absence,  to 
put  his  sickle  to  other  men's  harvests. 

It  might  have  suited  the  principles  of  Mr.  Francis 
Bacon  to  think  lightly  of  the  promise  given  by  Essex 
to  do  nothing  during  the  absence  of  Cecyll  damag- 
ing to  his  interests ;  not  so  with  the  Earl ;  we  need 
scarcely  say  this  advice  was  not  followed. 

After  Essex  was  appointed,  or  at  least  nominated, 
for  the  government  of  Ireland,  Francis  Bacon  wrote 
him  another  letter.     He  says,    «  Your  Lordship  is 
"  designed   to  a  service   of  great   merit  and  great 
I' peril;   and   as   the   greatness   of  the   merit  must 
'  needs  include   no   small   consequence  of  peril,   if 
"  it  be  not  temperately  governed;  so  all  immoderate 
1  success  extinguished  merit,  and  stirreth  up  dis- 
taste and  envy,  the  assured  forerunner  of  whole 
"  changes  of  peril.     But  I  am  at  the  last  point  first, 
some  good  spirit  leading  my  pen  to  presage  your 
Lordship's  success."     Again,  «  You  embrace  that 

1  Bacon's  works,  xii.  15. 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  5 

"  condition  which  many  noble  spirits  have  accepted 
"  for  advantage,  which  is,  that  you  go  upon  the 
"  greater  peril  of  your  fortune,  and  the  loss  of  your 
"  reputation ;  and  so  the  honor  counter vaileth  the 
"  adventure ;  of  which  honor  your  Lordship  is  in 
"  no  small  possession,  when  that  Her  Majesty,  known 
"  to  be  one  of  the  most  judicious  princes  in  discerning 
"  of  spirits,  that  ever  governed,  hath  made  choice  of 
"  you  merely  out  of  her  royal  judgment,  her  affection 
"  inclining  rather  to  continue  your  attendance,  into 
"  whose  hands  and  trust  to  put  the  commandment 
"  and  conduct  of  so  great  charge,  the  execution  of 
"  so  many  counsels,  the  redeeming  the  faults  of  so 
"  many  former  governors,  and  the  clearing  the  glory 
"of  so  many  years  happy  reign,  only  in  this  part 
"  excepted."  He  then  reminds  the  Earl  that  "  merit 
"  is  worthier  than  fame,  obedience  is  better  than 
"  sacrifice.  For  designing  to  fame  and  glory  may 
"  make  your  Lordship,  in  the  adventure  of  your 
"  person,  to  be  valiant  as  a  private  soldier,  rather 
"  than  as  a  general ;  it  may  make  you  in  your 
"  commandments  rather  to  be  gracious  than  disci- 
"  plinary ;  it  may  make  you  press  action,  in  respect 
"  of  the  great  expectations  conceived,  rather  hastily 
"  than  seasonably  and  safely ;  it  may  make  you  seek 
"  rather  to  achieve  the  war  by  force,  than  by  mixture 
44  of  practice  ;  it  may  make  you,  if  God  shall  send 
<fc  you  prosperous  beginnings,  rather  seek  the  fruition 
"  of  the  honor,  than  the  perfection  of  the  work  in 
"hand."1 

1  Bacon's  works,  xii.  20. 
B  3 


6  LIVES    OF    THE   EABLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

So  far  from  vehement  protestation  against  the 
service  in  Ireland,  it  appears  that  the  whole  scope  of 
Bacon's  letters  was  to  induce  the  unwilling  Essex  to 
take  a  more  favourable  view  of  it,  and,  in  all  respects, 
an  encouragement  to  turn  his  mind  that  way.  The 
probable  solution  is,  that  the  adverse  party  in  the 
Queen's  Council,  who  could  always  command  a  ma- 
jority against  Essex,  took  hold  of  his  incautious  objec- 
tions to  the  persons  named  to  force  upon  him  the  office 
of  Deputy,  and  persuaded  the  Queen  to  sanction  it. 
During  each  of  his  absences  in  the  Cadiz  and  Island 
voyages,  they  had  been  enabled  to  loosen  his  hold  on 
the  Queen's  affections:  a  bitter  quarrel,  followed  by 
a  cold  reconciliation,  gave  them  reason  now  to  hope 
that,  during  another  absence,  especially  if  he  did  not 
succeed,  as  no  man  had  yet,  in  pacifying  unhappy 
Ireland,  they  might  succeed  in  completely  unseat- 
ing him. 

We  must  now  refer  to  our  good  gossip,  Mr.  Cham- 
berlain, whose  letters  will  place  us  completely  au 
courant  of  events  at  Court. 

20th  October,  1598.  —  No  Lord  Treasurer  is  appointed,  the 
voice  ran  all  this  week  Sir  John  Fortescue  was  to  have 
it ;  now  Lord  Buckhurst  is  come  about  again.  The  next 
new  councillors,  it  is  thought,  shall  be  Lord  Mountjoy  and 
Lord  Chief  Justice,  who  hath  played  vex  of  late  among 
whores  and  bawds,  and  persecutes  poor  pretty  wenches  out 
of  all  pity  and  mercy.  The  Court  of  Wards  sits  not  for 
want  of  a  Master,  and  though  the  Earl  of  Essex  be  alone  in 
election,  there  is  still  some  rub  in  his  way.  Some  say  the 
Queen  means  to  dissolve  that  Court,  and,  instead  thereof,  to 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  7 

raise  yearly  contributions  out  of  all  lands  in  capite,  or  knight's 
service,  which  would  be  more  for  her  profit,  and  less  griev- 
ance to  the  subject;  but  this  is  too  good  to  be  true  :  others 
say  he  may  have  it  if  he  will ;  but  because  there  is  a  course 
spoken  of,  somewhat  to  geld  and  curtail  it,  he  refuseth  to 
accept  it  unless  he  may  have  it  whole  and  unmaimed ;  and 
others  say  he  finds  some  scruple  in  the  strictness  of  the  oath, 
and  wonders  how  the  late  Lord  Treasurer  could  dispense  so 
easily  and  so  largely  with  it  and  his  conscience ;  but  this 
were  somewhat  too  pure  and  maidenlike,  or  rather  inutilis 
verecundia.  The  state  of  Ireland  grows  deeply  di  mal  in 
peggio.  Some  think  the  Lord  Mountjoy  shall  be  sent  thither 
Deputy ;  others  say  the  Earl  of  JBssex  means  to  take  it  upon 
him,  and  hopes  by  his  countenance  to  quiet  that  country. 
Marry !  he  would  have  it  under  the  broad  seal  of  England, 
that  after  a  year  he  might  return  when  he  will. 

This  demand  of  unusual  conditions  which  is  as- 
scribed  to  Essex,  and  probably  with  truth,  tends  to 
corroborate  the  opinion  of  his  disinclination  to  go  to 
Ireland,  for  had  the  objections  lain  on  the  other  side 
he  never  would  have  thrown  such  difficulties  in  the 
way. 

8th  November.  —  It  is  generally  held  that  the  Earl  of 
Essex  shall  go  to  Ireland  towards  the  spring,  and  Lord 
Mountjoy  as  his  Deputy,  with  divers  other  young  lords  and 
noblemen,  and  that  he  shall  be  accompanied  with  the  most 
part  of  those  knights  that  be  his  creatures ;  for  it  is  thought 
fit  that  they  should  not  come  so  easily  by  their  honour,  but 
that  in  this  case,  as  in  many  others,  it  should  be  granted  for 
service  done  and  to  be  done. 

8th  December.  —  The  Earl  of  Essex's  journey  to  Ireland  is 
neither  fast  nor  loose,  but  holds  still  in  suspense  by  reason 
the  proportions  are  daily  dipt  and  diminished.  For  eight  or 

B  4 


8  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

ten  days  the  soldiers  flocked  about  him,  and  every  man 
hoped  to  be  a  colonel  at  the  least.  The  Lord  Buckhurst  KJ 
full  cry  to  be  Lord  Treasurer;  some  say  the  Queen  will 
give  it  to  some  mean  man,  who  shall  execute  the  place  to 
her  best  advantage.  Some  say  the  Earl  should  have  60007. 
yearly  out  of  it;  others,  that  he  should  have  20,0007.  to  help 
pay  his  debts,  and  so  loose  his  hold,  but  we  see  neither  come 
on  very  fast.  He  kept  a  kind  of  Marshal's  Court  to  hear 
arguments  on  the  title  of  Nevile  to  be  Lord  of  Aberga- 
venny,  and  Sir  Henry  Leonard  to  be  Lord  Dacre  of  the 
South. 

20th  December.  —  The  matters  of  Ireland  stand  at  a  stay, 
or  rather  go  backward ;  for  the  Earl  of  Essex's  journey  that 
was  in  suspense  is  now,  they  say,  quite  dashed.  From 
Friday  15th  to  Sunday  17th  it  held  fast  and  firm  that  the 
Earl  of  Essex  was  to  go,  and  all  things  were  accordingly 
settled  and  set  down;  but  a  sudden  alteration  came  on 
Sunday  night,  the  reason  whereof  is  yet  kept  secret ;  some 
say  the  Queen  had  promised  to  forgive  him  12,0007.  debt 
due  by  his  father,  and  20,0007.  he  owed  her  himself  for 
cochenilla  since  his  last  journey,  which  belike  was  mistaken ; 
for  the  Queen  says  she  meant  but  the  forbearing  of  it,  and 
that  it  should  not  be  called  for  in  his  absence ;  but  whether 
it  were  this  or  some  other  matter,  all  is  turned  upside  down, 
and  he  and  Mr.  Secretary  have  so  good  leisure  that  they  ply 
the  tables  hard  in  the  presence-chamber,  and  play  so  round  a 
game  as  if  Ireland  were  to  be  recovered  at  Irish. 

3rd  January,  1599.  —  The  wind  is  come  about  again  for 
Ireland,  and  the  disgust  that  made  stay  of  the  Earl's  going 
for  awhile,  is  sweetened  and  removed. 

17  th  January.  —  The  Queen  on  Twelfth-day,  to  close  up 
the  holidays,  and  do  the  Danish  ambassador  honor,  danced 
with  the  Earl  of  Essex,  very  richly  and  freshly  attired. 
Since  then  fell  out  great  unkindness  betwixt  the  Earl  and 
the  Lord  Admiral,  about  Sir  Wm.  Woodhouse.  The  Earl's 


CIIAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX. 

going  to  Ireland  deferred  from  February  to  March.  He 
shall  carry  a  great  troop  of  gallants  with  him,  if  all  go  that 
are  spoken  of,  as  the  Earls  of  Derby  *,  Rutland,  Southamp- 
ton, Lords  Windsor,  Grey,  Audley,  and  Cromwell,  who 
stands  to  be  Lord  Marshal ;  besides  knights  sans  number, 
whereof  Sir  Ferdinando  Gorges  is  named  to  be  Serjeant 
Major,  Sir  Henry  Davers2  the  leading  of  300  horse,  Sir 
Chas.  Davers,  Sir  Chas.  Blunt,  Sir  Thos.  Egerton,  Sir 
Thos.  Germaine,  Sir  Alex.  Ratcliffe,  and  I  know  not  how 
many  more  to  be  colonels ;  and  yet  Sir  Christopher  Blount, 
Sir  Edward  Wingfield,  and  ten  or  twelve  others  of  that 
standing,  look  to  be  served  too.  Many  that  wish  well  to  the 
journey  have  no  great  conceit  of  it,  so  many  raw  youths 
press  for  the  greatest  charges. 

1.9*  March.  —  My  Lord  of  Essex,  much  crossed,  does  not 
succeed ;  new  difficulties  arise  daily  about  his  commission, 
as  touching  the  time  of  his  abode,  his  entertainment,  and 
disposing  of  offices;  his  Lordship  so  dissatisfied,  that  it  is 
doubtful  whether  he  will  go ;  the  treatise  of  Henry  IV.3  is 

1  William  Stanley,  sixth  Earl,  born,  1562  ;  K.  G. ;  died,  1594. 

2  Sir  H.  Davers  or  Danvers,  second  son  of  Sir  J.  D.  of  Dantsey,  Wilts  ; 
by  a  daughter  of  Neville,  Lord  Latimer,  created  by  Charles  I.  Earl  of 
Danby,  K.  G. ;  ob.  s.  p.   at  Cornbury,   1643.     Sir  Charles,  who  was 
executed  for  his  share  in  the  Essex  insurrection,  was  the  elder  brother  of 
Sir  Henry. 

3  This  refers  to  a  book  written  by  one  Hayward,  which  containing  a 
history  of  the  deposition  of  Richard  II.,  gave  great  offence  :  it  was  dedi- 
cated to  the  Earl  of  Essex,  with  expressions  of  esteem  and  respect.     Hay- 
ward  was  imprisoned.     Elizabeth  consulted  Francis  Bacon  whether  the 
offence  did  not  constitute  treason.     This  was  rather  too  much  even  for  his 
pliant  spirit :  he  said,  he  could  not  discover  treason,  but  could  prove  the 
author  to  have  been  guilty  of  felony.  "  How  ?"  asked  Elizabeth.  "Madam, 
I  can  shew  that  he  has  stolen  very  many  texts  from  other  authors,  and 
transplanted  them  into  his  book  as  his  own."     She  then  doubted  whether 
Hayward  was  the  author,  and  proposed  to  put  him  to  the  torture  to  force 
him  to  reveal.     "  Nay,  Madam,"  said  Bacon,  "  he  is  a  doctor ;"  never  rack 
his  person,  but  rack  his  style ;  let  him  have  pens,  ink,  and  paper,  with  help 
of  books,  and  continue  the  story  where  it  breaketh  off;  I  will  undertake, 
by  collating  the  styles,  to  judge  whether  he  be  the  author  or  not." 


10  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

reasonably  well  written,  the  author  a  young  man  of  Cam- 
bridge, toward  the  civil  law,  —  much  descanting  about  it, 
why  such  a  story  should  come  out  at  this  time,  —  many  ex- 
ceptions taken  to  the  epistle,  which  is  a  short  thing  in  Latin 
dedicated  to  the  Earl  of  Essex,  and  objected  to  him  in  good 
earnest ;  whereon  it  was  ordered  to  be  cut  out.  I  have  got 
you  a  transcript  that  you  may  pick  out  the  offence  if  you 
can ;  for  my  part,  I  can  pick  out  no  such  buggeswords,  but 
that  every  thing  is  as  it  is  taken. 

Thus  it  would  appear  that  Essex  threw  all  sorts  of 
difficulties  in  the  way  of  his  going  to  Ireland ;  yet, 
so  anxious  were  his  enemies,  and  perhaps  the  Queen, 
to  be  relieved  from  his  presence  at  Court,  that  ulti- 
mately all  were  smoothed  with  a  great  show  of 
liberality  to  him,  in  pardoning  his  father's  debt  and 
his  own  to  the  Crown. 

The  copy  of  the  letters  passed  under  the  great 
seal1,  shows  us  that  this  vaunted  liberality  did  not 
much  exceed  the  sum  of  300£. 

6th  March,  1599,  XLI  Eliz. 

Letters  passed  under  the  Great  Seal,  pardoning  the  Earl  of 
Essex,  Debts  due  to  Her  Majesty  by  his  Father,  the  late 
Earl  Walter,  and  himself. 

First  owing  by  the  said  Earl  Robert  to  Sir  Horatio  Palla- 
vicino,  by  three  several  obligations  ;  all  which  H.  M. 
undertook  to  pay,  and  thereof  acquitted  him  -  -  1000  0  0 

•One  bond  of  600Z.,  dated  14th  May,  anno 
xviii.,  acknowledged  by  Walter,  late  Earl, 
for  payment  of  -  -  500  0  0 

One  other  bond  of  the  like  penalty  and  date       500       0     0 


Debts  of  his 
father  in 
Ireland. 


Five  other  bonds  of  the  same  date,  every  of 
them,  1200?.  to  a  piece,  for  the  payment 
of  1000Z.  in  each  of  them,  all  acknow- 
ledged  '  -  5000  0  0 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP,  I.  EGBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  11 


Debts  of  his 
father  in 
Ireland. 


Also  by  the  same  Earl,  owing  for  munition 

hadoutofH.  M.  Tower  -       195     16     8 

Also,  owing  by  the  said  late  Earl,  on  the 

account  of  Sir  Henry  Wallop,  of  the  wars 


in  Ireland,  ended  A.D.  1591         -             -     1013       7     7 
Also,  owing  by  him  for  a  subsidy  granted 
,     anno  xviii.,  taxed  at  53       6     8 
Timber.    Also  owing  by  the  now  Earl,  for  timber  by  him 
taken  upon  the  land  of  the  late  Francis  Englefield,  Knt., 
attainted  of  treason,  as  by  certificate  made  8th  Nov. 
anno  xxx.  appeareth    -----       838       6     8 
Rent  of  fee  farms.     Also  by  him  for  rent  of  the  fee  farms 
of  the  manor  of  Ross-foreign  in  Com.  Hereford,  taken 
at  28/.  6*.  2d.  per  annum,  due  by  seven  years  -            -       172     19     7 
Court  of  wards.     Three  obligations  of  200Z.  a  piece,  ac- 
knowledged by  him  and  others,  for  the  payment  of , 

dated  24th  Oct.  anno  xxix.       -  -       300       0     0 

Timber.     One  obligation  of  3000Z.,  dated  28th  Jan.  anno 

xxxvii.  for  certain  timber  afterwards  valued  at  -      406     13     4 

9980     10    6 
From  Her  Highness.     Surplusage  due  to  the  late  Earl, 

upon  account  finished  of  the  affairs  of  Ireland  -  -     9621     16     4 

£358     14     2 

If  Her  Majesty's  liberality  did  not  shine  brightly 
in  a  pecuniary  light,  she  made  up  for  it  by  the  ample 
powers  given  to  Essex  in  his  instructions,  of  which 
we  give  a  precise  abstract,  because  we  shall  hereafter 
find  great  blame  laid  upon  him  for  having  exercised 
the  authority  given  him. 

"  Instructions  for  our  right  trusty  and  right  well 
11  beloved  cousin  and  councillor,  Robert  Earl  of  Essex, 
"  Lord  Marshal  of  England,  Lieutenant  and  Governor 
"  General  of  Ireland.  Given  at  Richmond,  the  26th 
"  day  of  March,  1599."1 

His  dislike  to  the  service  -is  almost  acknowledged 
in  the  preamble,  which  runs :  "  Whosoever  we  shall 

i  S.  P.  o. 


12  LIVES  'OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

"  chuse  thereunto,  if  he  shall  rightly  descend  into 
"  the  true  consideration  of  our  election,  cannot  but 
"  have  that  great  sense  and  feeling  which  so  great 
"  an  honor  and  trust  deserveth,  and  both  resolve  to 
"  undergo  the  charge  with  comfort,  and  study  by  all 
"  effects  of  diligence,  faith,  and  wisdom  to  yield  us 
"  and  our  state  timely  fruits;"  and  then  says  that, 
"  having  cast  her  eyes  on  all  her  servants,  she  had 
"  chosen  him  before  all  others,  out  of  former  ex- 
"  perience  of  his  faith,  valor,  and  wisdom,  and  extra- 
"  ordinary  merit." 

As  soon  as  he  has  taken  the  oaths,  he  is  to  assemble 
the  Council,  and  require  from  them  a  report  of  the 
state  of  Ireland.  He  is  directed, 

By  his  example  and  endeavor,  that  the  army  and 
people  be  instructed  in  the  true  exercise  of  religion, 
and  service  of  God,  from  which  they  have  grievously 
fallen  away ;  the  infection  of  popery  is  so  spread  over 
the  kingdom,  that  many  of  the  parishes  within  the 
English  Pale  have  neither  incumbent  nor  teacher, 
and  in  the  great  towns  even  massing  and  idolatry 
are  winked  at  and  tolerated. 

To  countenance  and  assist  the  judges. 

To  reform  abuses  in  the  army,  of  false  certificates 
of  numbers,  and  filling  vacancies  with  Irishry. 

To  take  order  about  the  stores  of  provisions,  and 
not  to  allow  private  settlers  to  forestal  the  public 
victualler. 

To  have  the  same  care  of  ordnance,  powder,  and 
munition. 

Having  settled  the  establishment  of  16,000  foot 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  13 

and  1300  horse,  to  issue  his  warrant  from  time  to 
time  to  the  treasurer  at  war  for  the  payment  of  the 
entertainment  due  to  such  establishment  of  numbers, 
and  no  more — all  defalcations  being  first  deducted. 

To  issue  his  warrant  to  the  treasurer  to  pay  such 
governors  of  provinces,  castles,  and  forts,  pensioners, 
almsmen,  &c.,  as  are  not  included  in  the  establish- 
ment, not  to  exceed  15,000£.  per  annum. 

"  And  where  we  have  been  pleased  heretofore  in 
"  divers  commissions  to  give  power  and  authority  to 
"  bestow  the  order  of  knighthood  on  such  persons  as 
"  should  deserve  the  same ;  and  there  hath  been  so 
"  little  moderation  used  in  it,  as  many  men  have  had 
"  that  honor  done  to  them,  who  neither  for  birth  nor 
"  living  were  capable  of  it,  nor  for  any  extraordinary 
"  service  done  by  them  in  particular ;  a  matter  that 
"  is  no  small  grief  and  discountenance  to  divers  of 
"  our  good  servants,  gentlemen  of  blood  and  value, 
"  who  are  placed  beneath  them ;  we  do  require  you 
"  to  use  this  power  and  authority  in  that  point  with 
"  that  discretion  which  you  think  we  shall  allow  of; 
"  and  that  you  confer  that  title  upon  none  that  shall 
"  not  deserve  it  by  some  notorious  service,  or  have 
"  not  in  possession  or  reversion  sufficient  living  to 
"  maintain  their  degree  and  calling." 

In  using  his  power  of  granting  pardons,  he  is  not  to 
forget  the  Queen's  profits,  and  to  impose  fines,  or  re- 
serve beeves,  or  a  rising  out  of  horse  and  foot ;  to  bind 
them  to  keep  open  the  dangerous  passes  ;  to  use  the 
English  language  and  habits :  he  has  power  to  grant 
the  lands  of  the  rebels  ;  but,  as  she  has  reason  to 


1 4  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

think  O'Doherty  and  Sir  Arthur  O'Neale  are  rebels 
of  necessity  rather  than  out  of  disloyalty,  not  to 
grant  their  possessions  till  Her  Majesty's  pleasure 
be  known. 

To  reduce  the  large  numbers  of  16,000  foot  and 
1300  horse,  to  which  she  had  yielded  to  make  a 
speedy  end  of  the  war,  as  soon  as  the  service  will 
permit. 

It  is  not  unlikely  that  capital  traitor  Tyrone  may, 
on  his  arrival,  profess  to  him,  as  he  did  to  the  Earl  of 
Ormonde,  his  desire  to  be  received  and  to  live  as  a 
good  subject ;  and  because  he  has  "  vilely  abused  our 
"  mercy,"  she  is  in  no  way  disposed  to  receive  him 
as  yet :  he  is  only  to  receive  him  on  "  simple  sub- 
"  mission  to  our  mercy."  Yet,  if  that  drive  him  to 
despair,  Essex  may  grant  him  pardon  for  his  life, 
provided  he  submit  in  all  lowly  and  reverent  form  : 
but  he  is  not  to  be  allowed  to  depart  without  due 
security  given  that  he  will  not  return  to  his  dis- 
loyalty ;  with  this  addition,  for  the  "  better  pre- 
"  venting  of  sending  to  and  fro,  by  which  opportunity 
"  may  be  lost,  whensoever  you  shall  fall  into  treaty 
"  of  speech  with  him,  and  shall  perceive  that  either 
"  his  pride  or  his  disposition  is  such  as  he  cannot  be 
"  brought  to  such  conditions,  and  you  shall  discover 
"  some  prejudice  likely  to  follow  without  the  en- 
•'  larging  of  the  measure  of  our  grace  towards  him, 
"  we  give  you  full  power  and  authority  to  take  him 
"  in  on  such  conditions  as  you  shall  find  good." 

The  commission  appointing  him  Lieut enant-General 
and  Governor-General  of  Ireland,  authorised  him  to 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  15 

pardon  all  treasons  without  exception  ;  to  restore 
traitors  and  rebels  to  their  dignities  and  lands ;  to 
grant  lands  in  certain  parts  of  the  country  specially 
named ;  to  displace  martial  officers  not  having  patents ; 
to  sequester  such  as  have  patents  ;  to  make  knights ; 
to  have  the  command  of  all  ships  on  service  in  Ire- 
land ;  to  dispose  of  the  treasure  with  the  advice  of 
the  Council,  but  not  to  exceed  the  establishment,  and 
not  to  grant  any  new  pensions. 

He  had  also  a  commission  authorising  him  to  carry 
over  a  body  of  his  friends,  tenants,  and  farmers  with 
him,  who,  during  their  absence,  were  to  be  free  from 
any  musters  or  contributions ;  and  his  lands  in  Eng- 
land and  Wales,  in  consideration  of  the  store  of 
victuals  he  took  from  them,  were  to  be  exempted 
from  all  purveyors  and  takers.1 

Essex  appointed  Edward  Eeynolds  to  be  his  agent 
at  the  Court  during  his  absence,  who  writes  to  him : 
"  There  are  but  three  of  the  Council  whose  affection 
"  I  hold  to  be  settled  on  you :  the  most  just  Lord 
"  Keeper2,  the  most  reverend  Archbishop3,  and  your 
"  Lordship's  worthy  uncle,  Mr.  Comptroller4 ;  the 
"  rest  are  either  declared  opposite  or  neuter."  Rey- 
nolds gives  it  as  his  opinion,  that  unless  he  gets  a 
strong  party  in  the  Council,  to  weaken  the  power  of 
his  opponents  with  Her  Majesty,  whose  ears  are  too 
open  to  suggesting  tongues,  and  to  provide  him  sup- 
plies from  time  to  time  of  men  and  money,  he  will 
find  it  impossible  to  go  through  the  great  service  he 
has  undertaken. 

1  From  a  docket  in  S.  P.  O.  *  Egerton. 

^  3  John  Whitgift,  1585—1604.  *  Sir  William  Knollys. 


1 6  LIVES    OF    THE    EAI^LS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP,  I. 

We  shall  have  occasion  to  remark  on  these  instruc- 
tions. 

"  On  the  27th  of  March,  about  2  o'clock  in  the 
"  afternoon,  Kobert  Earl  of  Essex,  Viceregent  of 
"  Ireland,  &c.  took  horse  in  Seething  Lane1,  and 
"  from  thence,  accompanied  with  divers  noblemen 
"  and  many  others,  himself  very  plainly  attired, 
"  rode  through  Grace  Street,  Cornhill,  Cheapside, 
"  and  other  high  streets,  in  all  which  places  and  in 
"  the  fields  the  people  pressed  exceedingly  to  behold 
"  him,  especially  in  the  highways,  for  more  than 
"  four  miles  space,  crying  out,  saying,  '  God  bless 
"  your  Lordship ! '  '  God  preserve  your  Honour ! ' 
"  &c. ;  and  some  followed  him  till  the  evening. 
"  When  he  and  his  company  came  forth  of  London, 
"  the  sky  was  very  calm  and  clear ;  but  before  he 
"  could  get  past  Iseldon2  there  arose  a  great  black 
"  cloud  in  the  N.E.,  and  suddenly  came  thunder  and 
"  lightning,  with  a  great  shower  of  hail  and  rain, 
"  which  some  held  an  ominous  prodigy." 3 

On  the  1st  of  April  he  wrote  two  letters  to  the 
Council  from  Bromley.  He  says  in  the  first,  that  "  he 
"  hears  how  miserable  the  army  is  in  Ireland,  and 
"  therefore  what  he  must  crave  from  their  LL.  is 
"  their  favourable  censure,  if  at  his  coming  he  studies 
"  to  cherish  it,  and  bring  it  to  some  strength  again, 
"  rather  than  to  put  it  to  those  travails  by  which  it 

1  Originally  Sidon  Lane,  runs  from  Great  Tower  Street  into  Crutched 
Friars.  Sir  Francis  Walsingham's  house  was  here,  where  Essex  occa- 
sionally lodged.  —  See  Handbook  of  London. 

*  Islington. 

3  Nicholl's  Progresses  of  Queen  Elizabeth. 


CHAP.  T.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  17 

"  would  be  utterly  overwhelmed."     The  other  letter  is 
as  follows. 

No.  I.* 

Essex  to  the  Council. 

My  very  good  Lords, —  As  your  LL.  by  my  other  letter, 
sent  by  Sir  Calisthenes  Brooke,  shall  see  how  weak  Her 
Majesty's  army  is  like  to  be  at  my  coming  into  Ireland,  so  by 
that  kind  of  governing  and  directing  a  matter  of  that  weight, 
you  may  judge  of  the  strength  of  Her  Majesty's  Council 
there ;  and  how  it  will  be  supplied  by  any  that  goes  with  me, 
the  audit  is  quickly  made.  I  did  only  move  Her  Majesty 
for  her  service  to  give  me  one  strong  assistant,  but  it  is  not 
her  will.  What  my  body  and  mind  will  suffice  to,  I  will  by 
God's  grace  discharge  with  industry  and  faith.  But  neither 
can  a  rheumatic  body  promise  itself  that  health  in  a  moist 
rotten  country,  nor  a  sad  mind,  vigor  and  quickness  in  a  dis- 
comfortable  voyage.  But  I  sit  down  and  waste  my  suit,  now 
I  know  Her  Majesty's  resolute  pleasure ;  only  I  must  desire 
to  be  freed  from  all  imputation,  if  the  body  of  the  army  prove 
unwieldy,  that  it  is  so  ill  furnished,  or  so  unfurnished  of 
joints ;  or  of  any  maim  in  the  service,  when  I  am  sent  out 
maimed  before  hand.  I  have  returned  Sir  Christopher 
Blount,  whom  I  hoped  to  have  carried  over,  for  I  shall  have 
no  such  necessary  use  of  his  hands,  as,  being  barred  the  use  of 
his  head,  I  would  carry  him  to  his  own  disadvantage,  and  the 
disgrace  of  the  place  he  should  serve  in.  Hereof  I  thought 
it  fit  to  advertise  your  LL.,  that  you  might  rather  pity  me 
than  expect  extraordinary  successes  from  me.  I  rest,  &c. 
Bromley,  this  Sunday  morning,  the  1st  April.  ESSEX. 

No  great  symptoms  here  of  the  content  and  satis- 
faction of  the  man  who  has  just  started  for  the  com- 

1  S.  P.  O. 

VOL.  II.  C 


18  LIVES   OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

mand  he  had  been  struggling  for  months  to  obtain,  but 
rather  the  letter  of  one  proceeding  upon  a  service  he 
dislikes,  with  most  unwilling  steps.  We  shall  see,  by 
his  progress  too,  so  different  from  those  rapid  rides 
between  London  and  Plymouth,  that  his  heart  was 
not  in  it.  The  parish  register  of  Tamworth  contains 
a  notice  that,  on  the  3rd  of  April,  Eobert,  Earl  of 
Essex,  went  from  Drayton  Bassett  towards  Ireland. 
On  the  fifth  he  writes  to  announce  his  arrival  at 
Helbry,  a  small  island  in  the  estuary  of  the  river 
Dee.  Thus  he  had  taken  eight  days  to  perform 
a  far  shorter  journey  than  that  to  Plymouth,  which 
he  accomplished  between  Thursday  night  and  Satur- 
day morning.  Here  was  a  lagging  will,  rather  en- 
deavouring to  retard  his  progress  towards  Ireland, 
than  to  reach  the  scene  of  action. 

Why  Sir  Christopher  Blount  had  been  objected  to 
does  not  appear  ;  but  when  Essex,  who  had  intended 
to  make  him  Marshal  of  the  army,  sent  him  back,  he 
was  found  fault  with.  Writing  from  Helbry  he  says, 
"  As  for  Sir  Christopher  Blount's  ill  success,  or  rather 
"  mine  for  him,  I  fear  it  will  be  semble  to  all  my 
"  speed  when  I  sue  or  move  for  anything.  I  sued  to 
"  Her  Majesty  to  grant  it  out  of  favor,  but  I  spake  a 
"  language  that  was  not  understood,  or  to  a  goddess 
"  not  at  leisure  to  hear  prayers.  I  since,  not  for  my 
"  sake,  but  for  her  service  sake,  desired  to  have  it 
"  granted ;  but  I  see,  let  me  plead  in  any  form,  it  is  in 
"  vain.  I  must  save  myself  by  protestation,  that  it  is 
"  not  Tyrone  and  the  Irish  rebellion  that  amazeth 
"  me,  but  to  see  myself  sent  of  such  an  errand,  at  such 


CHAP.  I.  -  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  19 

"  a  time,  with  so  little  comfort  or  ability  from  the 
"  Court  of  England  to  effect  that  I  go  about.  But 
"  video,  taceo.  I  will  commit  you  to  God,  and  rest 
"  ready  to  requite  all  good  offices  that  are  done  me. 
"  From  aboard  the  Popinjay,  thwart  of  Helbry. 
"  Essex." 

Sir  Christopher  Blount,  although  an  intriguing  and 
turbulent  character,  was  an  experienced  soldier,  well 
fitted  for  the  post  Essex  had  intended  him  to  fill ; 
and  we  do  not  see  why,  unless  to  produce  dissatisfac- 
tion, he  was  refused  by  the  Queen. 

The  next  letters  are  reports  to  the  Council  of  his 
arrival  at  Helbry  and  the  cause  of  his  delay  there, 
with  a  strong  remonstrance  in  favour  of  Sir  Christo- 
pher ;  and  of  his  having,  in  consequence  of  the  foul 
winds,  thick  fog,  and  wet  weather,  sent  the  vessels  to 
Beaumaris,  himself  going  post.  The  ride  over 
Penman  Mawr,  in  those  days,  must  have  been  any- 
thing but  easy  under  favourable  circumstances;  by 
night,  in  wet  weather,  I  can  well  imagine  it  to  be 
the  worst  way  that  he  had  ever  travelled. 

He  was  not  detained  much  longer.  On  what  day 
he  sailed  from  Beaumaris,  I  do  not  know ;  he  arrived 
at  Dublin  the  15th  April. 

No.  II.  * 
Essex  to  the  Council. 

My  very  good  Lords, — Being  here  at  Helbry,  I  received 
a  letter  by  Orme,  my  servant,  signed  by  your  LL.,  my  Lord 
Chamberlain,  my  Lord  North,  and  by  Mr.  Secretary,  wherein 

1  S.  P.  O. 
c  2 


20  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  T. 

you  signify  Her  Maj.  mislike  of  my  sending  back  Sir  Chris- 
topher Blount,  since  I  find  so  great  lack  of  one  in  his  room ; 
and  that  Her  Maj.  hath  heretofore  signified  how  much  she 
thought  him  to  blame  to  forget  her  favor  for  thinking  him 
fit  to  be  Marshal  of  her  army.  First,  for  mine  own  excuse, 
I  did  find  a  lack,  and  so  shall,  of  going  to  manage  a  difficult 
war,  and  to  govern  an  undisciplined  dissolute  army,  and  to 
consult  with  a  Council  to  whom  Her  Majesty  imputeth  the 
loss  almost  of  a  kingdom.  I  have  not  one  able  assistant ;  I 
do  not  say  to  execute  my  directions,  for  that  I  shall  find 
many  able  for,  but  to  consult  with  what  is  to  be  directed  ;  to 
debate  and  dispute  the  doubtful  and  knotty  questions,  how 
the  war  is  to  be  managed,  and  to  command  where  I  am  not ; 
and,  lastly,  to  keep  all  things  in  order  whiles  I  repose  myself, 
which  all  men  must  of  necessity  do.  In  all  which,  under 
correction,  he  can  be  no  strong  assistant  to  me,  being  ex- 
cluded from  the  Council ;  for  how  can  I  have  power  to  confer 
privately  with  him,  or  relate  to  him  what  passeth  in  council, 
when  all  the  day,  though  I  allow  myself  never  so  little  time 
to  eat  and  sleep,  will  be  too  short  to  hear  the  multitude  of 
those  that  will  come  for  direction,  and  to  satisfy  them  as  the 
service  will  require ;  or,  had  I  time,  what  will  it  avail  me  to 
hear  him  speak  privately,  when,  if  he  concur  with  the  rest, 
his  opinion  is  needless ;  if  he  dissent,  it  is  bootless  ?  For 
I  must  rather  trust  a  sworn  councillor  of  Her  Maj.  than  any 
other  that  wanteth  both  that  grace  and  her  favor  also.  As 
for  his  ability  to  command,  chiefly  with  that  respect  of  the 
army  which  is  due  to  a  Marshal,  there  is  no  hope  of  it ;  for, 
first,  the  whole  army  will  take  notice  that  he  wanteth  that 
grace  which  all  his  predecessors  have  had ;  and  next,  those 
which  are  now  councillors,  and  yet,  in  the  army,  are  to  be 
commanded  by  the  Marshal,  will  not  so  submit  themselves  to 
his  commandment  as  they  ought  to  do.  For  these  reasons,  I 
thought  to  have  taken  upon  me  both  offices,  whiles  I  could 


CHAP.  1.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  21 

have  lasted,  though  I  moved  him  by  whose  hand  I  received 
Her  Maj.  denial  of  my  humble  motion,  to  solicit  Her  Maj. 
and  your  LL.,  that  my  successor  might  quickly  be  sent  after 
me  ;  for  he  that  shall  do  two  such  offices,  and  discharge  them 
as  he  ought,  should  not  value  his  life  at  many  months 
purchase.  These  were  my  reasons,  which  moved  me  to 
return  Sir  Christopher  Blount,  whom  I  must  free  from  any 
knowledge  of  Her  Maj.  will  to  have  him  go  in  any  sort ;  for, 
as  Her  Maj.  may  remember,  I  did  protest  to  herself  that  I 
was  not  only  unable  to  carry  him  on  my  own  credit,  but  tied 
by  my  word  and  protestation  not  to  urge  or  move  him  to  go; 
So  that,  until  this  despatch  came  by  my  servant,  I  never 
brake  with  him,  but,  as  all  men  that  were  with  me  know,  I 
made  full  account  that  he  went  not ;  only  the  want  of  shipping 
at  Chester  for  my  horsemen,  and  the  resolution  to  take  the 
first  opportunity  for  mine  own  passing  over,  made  me  entreat 
him  to  lie  three  or  four  days  at  Chester  after  me,  to  see  the 
troops  orderly  governed,  whiles  they  stayed,  and  speedily  sent 
after  me.  But  now,  upon  this  letter  which  yesterday  I  re- 
ceived, I  sent  for  him  hither,  and  imparted  to  him  your  LL. 
letter ;  upon  sight  whereof  he  resolves  to  go,  though  utterly 
unprovided  of  all  things  necessary  for  such  a  journey,  which 
obedience  he  humbly  tenders,  and  protesteth,  that  had  I 
sooner  signified  unto  him  the  least  implying  of  Her  Maj. 
pleasure,  he  would  sooner  have  offered  himself.  But,  my 
LL.,  it  must  be  all  our  devout  prayers  to  God,  and  our 
humble  suit  to  Her  Maj.,  that  she  will  be  as  well  served  by 
her  vassals  as  obeyed  ;  and  that  when  He  grants  not  the 
ability,  she  will  not  expect  nor  exact  great  performance.  For 
myself,  if  things  succeed  ill  in  my  charge,  I  am  like  to  be  a 
martyr  for  her ;  but  as  your  LL.  have  many  times  heard  me 
say,  it  had  been  far  better  for  her  service  to  have  sent  a  man 
favored  by  her,  who  should  not  have  had  these  crosses  and 
discouragements  which  I  shall  ever  suffer  of  your  LL.  I  do 

c  3 


22  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

entreat  that  you  will  forget  my  person,  and  the  circumstances 
of  it,  but  remember  that  I  am  Her  Maj.  minister  in  the 
greatest  cause  that  ever  she  had;  that  though  to  keep  myself 
from  scorn  and  misery  it  shall  be  in  mine  own  power,  yet  to 
enable  me  to  reduce  that  rebellious  kingdom  of  Ireland  to 
obedience  lies  in  Her  Maj.;  for  if  I  have  not  inward  comfort, 
and  outward  demonstration  of  Her  Maj.  favor,  I  am  defeated 
in  England;  and  so  I  commit  your  LL.  to  God's  best  protec- 
tion, and  rest,  &c. 

Helbry,  the  5th  April,  1599.  ESSEX. 

No.  III.1 
Essex  to  the  Council. 

My  very  good  Lords, — My  last  was  written  from  Mostyn, 
over  against  Helbry,  in  which  place  I  rested  all  Easter  Sun- 
day ;  not  that  I  would  not  have  thought  it  a  sabbath  day's 
work  to  have  plied  towards  Ireland,  but  that  the  wind  was 
so  contrary,  and  the  mists  so  great,  that  all  the  pilots  of 
Christendom  could  not  tell  how  to  carry  a  ship  out  of  the 
river.  On  Monday  I,  seeing  the  wind  still  hang  contrary, 
agreed  with  the  captains  of  Her  Maj.  pinnaces  that  they 
should,  if  it  did  not  overblow,  tide  up  to  Beaumaris,  and  that 
myself  would  meet  them  there.  To  which  resolution  I  was 
forced,  because  we  were  so  pestered  aboard,  that  lying  still 
at  sea,  with  a  contrary  wind  and  wet  weather,  would  have 
cast  us  all  down.  At  Aberconway  I  was  by  sunset,  when 
the  wind  came  fair,  so  that  I  feared  lest  the  ships  should  have 
been  before  me,  and  in  regard  thereof  took  post-horses,  and 
came  over  the  mountains,  the  worst  way  and  in  the  extremest 
wet  that  I  have  endured.  I  arrived  in  this  town  in  the  dead 
of  the  night,  but  the  ships  came  not  till  this  morning  at  ten 
of  the  clock. 

All  this  day  the  wind  continues  at  north  and  to  the  west- 
1  S.  P,  O. 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  23 

ward,  with  which  wind  we  cannot  seize  Dublin.  I  will, 
to-morrow  morning  at  full  sea,  ply  towards  Ireland  if  the 
weather  will  permit,  for  by  two  despatches  which  I  have 
received,  I  find  it  more  than  time  I  were  there.  The  one  of 
them  shews  the  misery  of  the  army,  which  is  to  be  sustained 
for  this  week  only  with  all  the  means  they  have  or  can  think 
on.  The  other  is  the  drawing  of  the  troops  into  idle,  mise- 
rable journies,  whereby  I  shall  find  them  weak  and  unservice- 
able when  I  come.  The  soldiers  there  already  fall  sick,  and 
if  they  be  not  fully  supplied  with  all  things  necessary,  Her 
Maj.  must  make  account  that  all  those  great  preparations  will 
vanish  into  smoke,  and  the  charge  thereof  be  utterly  lost. 


o? 


After  some  remarks  respecting  the  victualling, 
paying,  and  recruiting  the  army,  he  concludes, 

Your  LL.  will  yourselves  pardon  me,  and  in  your  honor- 
able justice  be  my  advocates  with  Her  Maj.,  if  I  still  write 
in  this  kind  of  style.  It  is  natural  to  my  office  to  have  cause 
to  speak  this  language.  I  had  a  natural  antipathy  against 
this  service,  because  I  foresaw  those  necessities,  and  knew 
how  unpl easing  they  would  be,  not  only  to  me  the  pro- 
pounder,  but  much  more  to  Her  Maj.  the  hearer  of  them. 
But  jacta  est  alia ;  I  have  the  best  warrant  that  ever  man 
had,  and  I  go  in  the  best  cause.  Compassion  I  myself  shall 
not  greatly  need,  for  whatsoever  the  success  may  be,  yet  I 
shall  be  sure  of  a  fair  destiny.  Only  Her  Maj.  and  your  LL. 
must  and  will,  I  doubt  not,  pity  Ireland,  and  pity  the  army 
under  my  charge,  lest  if  you  suffer  your  men  in  an  out 
ravelin  to  be  lost,  you  be  hardly  afterwards  able  to  defend 
the  rampier. 

I  must  again  crave  pardon  for  this  free  kind  of  style,  which 
duty  and  zeal  hath  drawn  from  me.  And  to  God's  best  pro- 
tection I  commit  your  LL.,  and  rest,  &c. 

From  Beauraaris,  llth  April,  1599. 

c  4 


24  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

The  Earl  of  Essex  arrived  at  Dublin  on  the  15th 
April,  "  after  as  rough  and  dangerous  a  passage  as 
"  had  been  known  at  that  time  of  the  year."  The 
same  day  he  was  sworn  in,  and  received  the  sword  : 
and  immediately  called  on  the  Council  to  report  to  him 
the  state  of  the  country.  On  the  28th  April1,  a  letter 
was  written  to  the  Privy  Council,  signed  by  the  Lord 
Lieutenant  and  his  Council,  in  which  it  is  stated  that 
Essex  was  desirous  to  march  against  the  rebels,  but 
was  detained  by  the  advice  of  the  Council,  whose 
reasons  for  giving  such  advice  are  detailed. 

The  Privy  Council,  in  their  reply,  dated  the  8th 
May,  express  their  approval  of  these  reasons  for  de- 
ferring operations  in  the  field. 

This  very  delay  was  subsequently  made  the  ground 
for  one  of  the  gravest  charges  against  the  Earl  of 
Essex:  some  extracts  are  therefore  given  from  the 
above  letter,  which  will  afford  a  contrast  to  one 
written  by  the  same  Council,  and  signed  by  a  majority 
of  the  same  members  in  November,  denying  that  they 
had  so  advised  Essex.  "  We  have  had  frequent  con- 
"  sultations  in  what  sort  Her,  Majesty's  army  might 
"  be  best  employed  against  those  overgrown  rebels  ; 
"  whereon,  upon  a  proposition  made  by  me,  the  Lieu- 
;'  tenant,  to  have  the  archtraitor  Tyrone  presently  set 
"  upon  in  Ulster,  and  many  difficulties  and  impedi- 
"  merits  thoroughly  debated  to  forbear  that  expedition 
"  for  a  time,  it  was  at  last  resolved,  that  albeit  those 
"  monstrous  treasons  took  their  first  root  there,  and 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  I.  EGBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  25 

u  from  thence  have  poisoned  all  the  other  provinces 
"  of  the  realm,  and  therefore  requisite  to  have  a  main 
"  blow  stricken  at  this  root,  the  sooner  to  shake  and 
"  scourge  all  the  branches  that  are  grown  out  of  it ; 
"  yet  for  the  difficulties,  or  rather  impossibilities,  oc- 
"  curring  in  the  deliberation  of  this  point,  we  of  the 
"  Council  having  delivered  our  reasons  and  observa- 
"  tions,  and  weighing  the  inconveniences  and  dangers 
"  that  might  ensue,  if  the  Lieutenant's  proposition 
"  should  be  presently  performed,  did  advise  his  Lord- 
"  ship  that  it  was  more  expedient  for  Her  Majesty's 
"  service,  that  the  invasion  of  Ulster  should  be  for  a 
"  time  respited,  and  a  present  prosecution  put  on 
"  first  in  Leinster,  being  the  heart  of  the  whole 
"  kingdom." 

The  reasons  given  why  it  was  not  possible  at  that 
time  to  go  into  Ulster  were,  that  there  was  no  grass 
or  forage,  nor  would  there  be  any  until  the  summer 
was  further  advanced ;  that  a  sufficient  number  of 
beeves  could  not  be  procured,  and  those  few  that 
might  be  obtained  at  that  season  were  so  lean  and 
weak,  that  they  could  not  be  driven,  and  were  hardly 
fit  for  food ;  that  not  half  the  number  of  draught 
horses,  necessary  to  carry  dry  provisions  for  the  army 
could  be  obtained  in  the  country,  and  the  proportion 
to  be  sent  from  England  had  not  arrived;  and  it 
would  not  be  possible  to  raise  the  number  of  garrons 
before  the  time  of  the  general  hosting.  That,  con- 
sidering all  these  difficulties,  it  was  thought  good, 
"  by  universal  consent  in  council,"  to  forbear  for  a 
while  the  Ulster  enterprize.  This  letter  is  signed 


26  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.!. 

by  Essex,  Ad.  Dublin,  Cane.;  Thomas  Midensis1, 
George  Carew,  Robert  Gardener,  Nicholas  Walshe, 
Conyers  Clifford,  George  Bourchier,  Henry  Harring- 
ton, Warhain  St.  Leger,  Geff.  Fenton. 

On  Wednesday  the  10th  May,  the  Lord  Lieutenant 
set  out  from  Dublin,  want  of  carriages  for  his  provi- 
sions having  delayed  his  departure  till  that  time. 
The  troops  appointed  for  this  expedition,  consisting 
of  3000  foot,  and  300  horse,  rendezvoused  in  the  plain 
between  the  town  and  bridge  of  Kilkullin,  about  five 
miles  from  Naas,  where  his  Lordship  joined  them. 
The  next  day  they  marched  to  Tallacoury,  where  the 
Earl  of  Ormonde  joined  with  700  foot,  and  well  nigh 
200  Irish  horse.  The  Lords  Mountgarret  and  Cahir 
accompanying  him  to  make  their  submission  and  ask 
pardon,  were  committed  to  the  custody  of  the  Provost 
Marshal.  Continuing  their  march,  the  van-guard 
took  that  part  of  Athy  which  lies  on  the  south 
bank  of  the  Barrow,  while  the  main  body  forded 
the  river  a  mile  below,  in  order  to  attack  the  castle 
on  both  sides  at  once :  but  as  soon  as  the  passage  of 
the  river  was  effected,  James  Fitz  Pierce,  who  held 
the  castle,  delivered  it  and  himself  into  the  Queen's 
hands. 

Essex  remained  at  Athy  the  13th  and  14th  to  re- 
pair the  bridge,  and  enable  the  provisions  and  ammu- 
nition left  at  Naas  to  come  up.  Leaving  a  garrison 
of  100  men  in  Athy,  four  days'  provisions  were  issued 
to  every  man  to  carry  on  his  back ;  and  350  men 

1  Bishop  of  Meath. 


CHAP,  I.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  27 

being  detached  to  Carlo w,  and  750  under  Sir  Edward 
Herbert  to  Ophaly,  on  the  15th  Essex  with  the  main 
body  marched  to  Stradbally,  through  the  pass  of 
Blackford,  which  had  been  entrenched  by  the  rebels, 
but  which  they  deserted  at  the  approach  of  the  army. 
The  next  day,  victualling  and  reinforcing  the  garrison 
of  Maryborough,  he  proceeded  by  Ballyknockan  and 
the  park  of  Cashel,  where  he  had  a  slight  skirmish 
with  the  rebels,  to  Rosconnel,  and  from  thence  to 
Ballyraggett,  the  chief  seat  of  Mountgarrett,  which 
he  found  so  strong  that  he  placed  a  garrison  there. 

From  that  place  the  army  marched  to  Clonmel, 
while  he  himself,  accompanied  by  the  Earl  of  Or- 
monde, went  to  Kilkenny;  whence  he  sent  for  the 
President  of  Munster,  Sir  Thomas  Norreys,  to  confer 
with  him,  and  made  arrangements  for  the  supply  of 
cattle  and  ammunition  to  the  army. 

His  letter  to  the  Council  from  this  place  shows  the 
guerilla  tactics  of  the  rebels,  and  the  impossibility  of 
making  any  impression  on  them  in  the  field  with 
regular  troops. 

No.  IV.1 
Essex  to  the  Council. 

My  very  good  Lords, — By  this  journal,  which  herewith  I 
send,  Her  Maj.  and  your  LL.  may  judge  how,  since  my 
coming  from  Dublin,  I  have  spent  my  time.  All  that  I 
hope  for  is,  that  I  shall  approve  myself  to  be  no  loiterer,  but 
that  I  put  myself  to  as  much  as  I  can  any  way  suffice  unto ; 
and  when  God  sends  me  greater  ability,  Her  Maj.  may 

1  S.  T.  O. 


28         LIVES  OF  THE  EAKLS  OF  ESSEX.     CHAP.]. 

promise  herself  greater  service.  All  that  I  can  comment 
upon  this  plain  narration  is,  that  this  war  is  like  to  exercise 
both  our  faculties  that  do  manage  it,  and  Her  Maj.  patience 
that  must  maintain  it ;  for  this  people  against  whom  we  fight 
hath  able  bodies,  good  use  of  the  arms  they  carry,  boldness 
enough  to  attempt  and  quickness  in  apprehending  any  ad- 
vantage they  see  offered  them ;  whereas  our  new  and  common 
sort  of  men  have  neither  bodies,  spirits,  nor  practice  of  arms 
like  the  others.  The  advantage  we  have  is  in  our  horse, 
which  will  command  all  champaigns :  in  our  order  which  those 
savages  have  not :  and  in  the  extraordinary  courage  and  spirit 
of  our  men  of  quality.  But  to  meet  with  these  our  helps, 
the  rebels  fight  in  woods  and  bogs  where  horse  are  utterly 
unserviceable ;  they  use  the  advantage  of  lightness  and  swift- 
ness in  going  off  when  they  find  our  order  too  strong  for 
them  to  encounter :  and  as  for  the  least  advantage,  I  protest 
to  your  LL.  it  doth  as  much  trouble  me  as  help  me,  for  my 
remembering  how  unequal  a  wager  it  is  to  adventure  the 
lives  of  noblemen  and  gentlemen  against  rogues  and  naked 
beggars,  makes  me  take  more  care  to  contain  our  best  men, 
than  to  use  their  courage  against  the  rebels.  And  had  I  not 
in  the  last  day's  fight  tethered  them,  and  assigned  them  not 
only  their  places,  but  their  very  limits  of  going  on,  doubtless 
many  of  them  would  have  been  too  far  engaged,  for  I  as- 
sure your  LL.  greater  forwardness  and  contempt  of  danger 
could  not  have  been  shewed  by  any  men,  than  was  by  the 
Lords  and  other  principal  men  of  quality  in  the  army,  which 
proved  them  to  be  such  a  treasure  to  Her  Maj.  as  I  must 
husband  them  with  all  the  care  and  industry  I  have. 

I  have  here  met  with  the  President  of  Munster,  who,  in 
conference  with  myself,  with  my  L.  of  Ormonde,  and  the  rest 
of  the  Council  here,  hath  persuaded  us  for  a  few  days  to  look 
into  his  government,  where  the  rebels  are  strong  and  proud, 
and  where  some  places  of  good  importance  are  newly  fortified, 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  29 

which,  if  they  were  gotten,  would  greatly  both  weaken  them 
and  advance  Her  Maj.  service;  and  himself  professeth  his 
own  inability  to  attempt  them,  as  having  too  strong  a  force 
to  make  head  against  him,  besides  the  strength  of  the  places 
themselves.  By  this  journey  I  hope  to  change  the  affairs  of 
Munster  and  Leinster,  that  against  my  return  to  Dublin, 
finding  means  sent  out  of  England  for  my  northern  journey, 
I  may  with  more  strength  and  less  distraction  of  mind  follow 
that  main  service. 

And  so  hoping  that  Her  Maj.  and  your  LL.  will  allow  of 
my  poor  endeavours,  which  shall  ever  prcestare  innocentiam, 
si  non  meritam,  I  rest,  humbly  at  your  good  LL.  command- 
ment, 

Kilkenny,  this  20th  May,  1599.  ESSEX. 

(Recd.  at  Greenwich,  1st  June.) 

His  next  was  from  Clonmel,  where  he  rejoined  his 
army  on  the  21st  of  May,  on  the  state  of  the  country, 
from  which  I  give  some  extracts. 

No.  V.1 
Essex  to  the  Council. 

May  it  please  your  good  Lordships,  —  After  the  writing  of 
my  other  letters,  the  same  day  that  I  ended  them,  here  ar- 
rived my  servant  H.  Tracy  with  your  LL.  (letter)  of  the 
14th  of  this  present.  To  the  which  I  would  have  made 
present  answer,  but  that  some  indisposition  stayed  on  me, 
and  continued  with  me  by  reason  of  the  extremity  of  the 
weather,  and  my  two  nights'  ill-lodging,  till  I  came  to  this 
town.  Hither  I  came  yesternight,  and  continue  here  all  this 
day,  both  for  the  refreshing  of  the  troops  after  their  foul 
marches,  and  because  I  expect  the  coming  of  some  victual, 

1  S.  P.  O. 


30  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

artillery,  and  munition,  together  with  eight  companies  which 
I  have  sent  for  from  Waterford. 

Now  for  answer  to  your  LL.  letters.  I  do  humbly  pray 
your  LL.  to  believe,  that  as  I  did  ever  conceive  reverently  of 
your  LL.  affections  to  further  this  great  service,  so  I  take 
great  comfort  in  your  LL.  assurance  of  Her  Maj.  sending  us 
timely  and  liberal  supplies,  for  without  them  all  my  industry, 
care,  and  hazard  will  be  fruitless ;  and  with  them,  by  God's 
mercy,  and  Her  Maj.  gracious  favor,  I  shall  either  yield  Her 
Maj.  a  good  account  of  my  charge,  or  pay  my  ill  success  with 
the  price  of  my  life.  I  will  as  faithfully  and  carefully 
husband  Her  Maj.  stores  here  as  possibly  I  can,  for  proof 
whereof  I  protest  before  God,  I  issue  of  mine  own  poor 
means,  an  hundred  pounds  at  a  time,  for  the  winning  and 
enabling  of  fit  instruments  for  Her  Maj.  service  here ;  with- 
out which  course  I  find  it  impossible  to  effect  any  great 
matter  in  this  kingdom.  News,  I  can  send  your  LL.  none 
but  that  the  pretended  Earl  of  Desmond,  and  all  the  force  of 
the  rebels  of  Munster  are  now  within  three  miles  of  me,  and 
vow  and  swear  to  fight.  I  hear  they  are  some  4000  men, 
though  they  give  themselves  out  to  be  of  greater  numbers. 
I  have  with  me  near  2000  foot,  and  at  least  200  serviceable 
horse,  and  Sir  Henry  Norreys  will  reinforce  me  this  night 
with  1000  foot  more.  So  that  to-morrow,  if  they  make  good 
their  ford  where  they  are,  it  shall  be  tried  whether  we  be 
better  at  forcing  of  a  passage,  or  they  at  defending  it.  They 
have  consulted  how  to  keep  the  castle  of  Cahir  against  me, 
notwithstanding  that  Cahir  himself  is  in  my  hands.  But 
I  assure  myself  they  dare  not  dispute  it,  since  they  know 
I  have  the  cannon  here.  Yet  it  is  accounted  the  strongest 
place  in  Ireland;  and  Cahir's  wife  and  his  brethren  have 
been  consulting  with  Desmond  and  the  White  Knight  how 
to  defend  it ;  and  the  news  of  my  putting  garrison  into 
Ballyraggett  and  all  the  strong  places  which  are  yielded  to 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  31 

Her  Maj.  doth  so  trouble  them  that  they  will  do  what  they 
dare.  Your  LL.  will  pardon  this  hasty  confused  manner  of 
writing,  it  being  incident  to  one  that  hath  many  interruptions 
and  distracted  thoughts.  I  humbly  commend  your  LL.  to 
God's  best  protection,  and  rest,  &c. 

Clonmell,  the  24th  May,  1599.  ESSEX.1 

Having  received  the  cannon  and  ammunition  from 
Waterford,  he  next  proceeded  to  attack  the  castle  of 
Cahir.  This  was  considered  a  place  of  great  impor- 
tance, as  commanding  the  passes  into  Tipperary,  the 
White  Knight's  country,  Clanwilliam,  and  Muskerry. 
It  was  the  chief  stronghold  of  the  rebels  in  those  parts, 
situated  on  an  island  in  the  river  Suir,  whose  banks 
were  rocky,  and  was  besides  made  strong  by  art. 
Although  the  Lord  Cahir  was  in  the  hands  of  the 
Lord  Lieutenant,  his  castle  was  obstinately  defended. 
The  artillery  of  the  army,  consisting  of  one  cannon 
and  one  culverin,  which,  for  want  of  draught  horses, 
had  been  dragged  by  men  from  Clonmel,  being 
brought  up,  "a  trench  was  cast  up  within  fifty  paces 
"  of  the  castle,  a  platform  made  for  the  cannon,  and 
"  gabions  set  up  and  filled  to  cover  the  gunners. 
"  The  culverin  was  placed  somewhat  farther  off,  where 
"  it  might  see  more  of  the  flanks  of  the  castle,  and  so 
"  beat  down  their  sights.  The  next  day,  in  the 
"  morning,  as  soon  as  the  watch  was  discharged,  the 
"  cannon  and  culverin  began  to  play  ;  but  the  carriage 


1  This  letter  is  endorsed,  "Received  at  Greenwich  1st  June;  his  L. 
had  now  received  a  letter  of  the  14th,  which  was  to  revoke  the  Earl  of 
Rutland,  and  another  of  the  16th  May,  which  was  the  main  despatch." 
Neither  of  these  letters  is  in  the  S.  P.  O. 


32  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

"  of  the  former  broke  at  the  second  shot,  and  could 
"  not  be  repaired  in  a  day  and  a  half.  The  culverin 
"  was  for  some  time  clogged  up  with  a  bullet ;  but 
"  being  cleared,  it  shot  that  day  some  fifty  shots,  so 
"  that  the  rebels  scarce  durst  keep  in  any  tower,  or  fight 
"  on  that  side."  Having,  on  the  20th  May,  passed  a 
body  of  men  into  an  orchard  in  the  island  on  which 
the  castle  stood,  and  also  cut  off  the  garrison  from 
the  opposite  shore,  the  cannonade  was  continued  until 
two  breaches  were  opened.  Arrangements  were  made 
for  carrying  the  castle  by  storm  the  same  night ;  but 
the  garrison,  considering  the  place  untenable,  and 
finding  that  no  terms  would  be  given  by  the  Lord 
Lieutenant,  attempted  to  make  their  escape  by  a 
sally,  but  being  immediately  discovered,  were  all,  ex- 
cepting a  very  few  who  escaped  by  swimming,  put  to 
the  sword.  The  walls  being  repaired,  the  artillery 
mounted,  and  the  castles  garrisoned  with  100  men, 
the  Earl  proceeded  on  his  march. 

On  the  last  day  of  May,  the  army  encamped  near 
the  abbey  of  Cashel,  while  the  bridge  of  Colam  was 
repaired,  when  it  advanced  to  Tipperary,  and  on  the 
4th  June  arrived  at  Limerick.  Hearing  that  the 
Queen's  castle  of  Askeaton  was  in  distress,  Essex 
proceeded  to  Adare,  from  whence,  in  his  march  to 
Askeaton,  he  had  a  skirmish  with  the  rebels  under 
the  Earl  of  Desmond,  in  which  the  latter  were  de- 
feated, leaving  100  men  on  the  field,  while  the  loss 
on  the  English  side  was  but  six  men  killed  and 
twenty  wounded.  The  next  day,  while  convoying 
the  waggons  of  provisions  to  Askeaton,  the  troops  were 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  33 

again  harassed  by  the  fire  of  the  rebels  from  a  great 
wood  on  their  flank.  The  Lord  Lieutenant,  who  now 
understood  the  nature  of  Irish  warfare,  met  them 
with  skirmishers  only  until  the  convoy  had  gone  by, 
when,  calling  in  his  men,  he  made  a  feint  of  with- 
drawing, in  order  to  bring  the  rebels  out  of  cover ; 
his  ruse  succeeded,  and  the  rebels  coming  on  with  a 
great  cry,  he  ordered  a  general  charge  in  front,  while 
the  horse  were  directed  to  charge  along  the  skirt  of 
the  wood  from  both  flanks,  and  having  driven  back 
the  rebels  with  loss,  he  continued  his  march  without 
farther  annoyance. 

On  the  llth  June  they  reached  Kilmallock,  where 
a  council  was  held  as  to  the  best  course  to  be  pur- 
sued. The  choice  lay  between  three  routes :  by  Tip- 
perary,  over  the  Colam  bridge,  the  road  by  which 
they  had  entered  the  county ;  or  through  the  White 
Knight's  country,  called  Clangibbon,  thence  to  Aher- 
low  and  Clonmel ;  or  through  the  country  of  Lord 
Roche,  and  so  by  Conneigh,  the  pretended  Earl  of 
Desmond's  castle,  to  Lismore,  from  whence  they 
might  either  go  over  the  mountains  to  Clonmel,  or 
by  Dungarvon  to  Waterford. 

The  Lord  Lieutenant  chose  the  last,  and  the  army 
marched  to  Fermoy,  while  he  went  to  the  house  of 
the  President  at  Mallow,  and  sent  over  to  Cork  for  a 
supply  of  ammunition. 

Having  rejoined  the  main  body,  he  dislodged  from 
Fermoy  on  the  16th  June,  and  proceeded  to  Conneigh, 
where  he  intended  to  encamp,  having  some  skirmish- 
ing on  the  way.  Receiving  a  convoy  at  Castle 

VOL.  II.  D 


34  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSFX.  CHAP.!. 

Lyons,  the  army  forded  the  Blackwater  about  seven 
miles  from  Dungarvon,  on  the  18th  and  19th.  The 
President  of  Munster  here  took  his  leave,  having 
his  force  strengthened  by  the  addition  of  900  foot 
and  100  horse,  which  the  Lord  Lieutenant  left  with 
him. 

On  the  21st  June,  Essex  was  encamped  three  miles 
from  Waterford.  Being  ferried  across  from  Passage, 
they  proceeded  towards  Enniscorthy,  between  Water- 
ford  and  which  place  not  a  rebel  was  to  be  seen. 
Thence  to  Arklow,  on  approaching  which  place  they 
had  a  sharp  brush  with  the  rebel  forces  of  the  Cava- 
naghs,  Byrnes,  O'Tooles,  and  Mores  of  Leix ;  these 
were  the  same  who  had  shortly  before  defeated  Sir 
Henry  Harrington  near  Wicklow,  which  had  so  en- 
couraged them,  that  they  engaged  on  the  open  ground. 

It  is  to  this  defeat  that  Essex  refers  in  his  letter 
written  from  Waterford,  and  of  which  we  shall  hear 
more  on  his  arrival  at  Dublin.  Some  of  the  new 
levies  were  seized  with  panic  even  under  his  own  eye, 
and  he  had  the  greatest  difficulty  in  getting  them 
"  to  stand  firm,  to  keep  order,  to  forbear  noises  and 
"  speeches  of  fear  and  amazement." 

No.  VI.1 

Essex  to  the  Council. 

May  it  please  your  Lordships, —  As  in  my  former  des- 
patch, sent  by  Sir  Francis  Darcy,  I  shewed  the  causes  of 
my  looking  into  Munster,  so  by  this  your  LL.  shall  be  able 
to  inform  both  Her  Maj,  and  yourselves  of  all  my  courses 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  35 

and  successes  in  this  province.  I  am  now  hastening  back  to 
Dublin,  but  will  pass  through  the  county  of  Wexford  and 
the  Ranelagh,  both  to  give  order  for  those  parts,  and  to  seek 
some  revenge  on  those  rogues  who,  in  my  absence,  had  the 
killing  of  our  base,  cowardly,  and  ill-guided  clowns.  Of 
which  defeat,  because  I  know  your  LL.  are  already  particu- 
larly informed  from  the  Council  at  Dublin,  I  do  spare  to 
write ;  but  at  my  return  I  purpose,  by  God's  grace,  to  do 
such  justice  as  shall  be  for  Her  Maj.  honor ;  and  make  other 
men  hereafter  know  that  the  justice  of  a  Marshal's  court  is 
no  less  terrible  than  the  fury  of  all  the  rebels  in  this 
kingdom.  And  in  my  passage,  if  the  rebels  by  this  our 
disaster  be  so  much  puffed  up  as  I  hear  they  are,  I  hope,  by 
God's  favour,  your  LL.  shall  soon  hear  that  their  pride  is 
but  a  purgation  to  their  greater  ruin.  I  am  advertised  that 
they  have  drawn  to  them,  besides  the  forces  of  Donnell 
Spaniaghe,  and  the  Cavanaghs,  and  Feagh  M'Hugh's 
sons,  and  the  mountain  Galloglass,  all  the  force  of  the 
Moores  and  Conners,  and  of  Tyrell  with  his  bonnaughtes  : 
howbeit,  though  the  companies  here  with  me  be  both  fewer 
in  number  and  weaker  in  strength  than  any  time  since  I 
went  out,  yet  I  assure  your  LL.  I  will  neither  be  sought 
by  them,  nor  go  out  of  my  way  to  seek  the  champaign,  but 
take  my  course  as  it  lies  through  the  midst  of  their  coun- 
tries ;  for  surely  this  blow  cannot  so  much  appal  our  base 
new  men,  as  it  doth  inflame  the  hearts  of  our  commanders 
and  gentlemen  of  quality,  whose  forwardness  I  shall  have  no 
less  labour  to  restrain,  than  to  encourage  and  bring  on  the 
meaner  sort.  And  so  hoping  that  -at  my  return  to  Dublin,  I 
shall  find  such  liberal  supplies  of  men,  money,  and  victuals, 
that  I  shall  soon  be  provided  for  my  journey  into  the  North, 
I  commend  your  good  LL.  to  God's  merciful  protection,  and 
rest  your  LL.  humbly  at  command, 

Waterford,  the  22nd  June.  ESSEX. 

D    2 


36  LIVES   OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  I. 

On  the  25th  June,  the  Lord  Lieutenant  wrote  a 
letter  to  the  Queen  on  the  state  of  the  country ;  the 
prospects  and  the  mode  of  reducing  it  to  subordina- 
tion. I  may  here  remark,  that  the  plan  shadowed 
forth  in  this  very  able  document  was  that  by  which 
Lord  Mountjoy  was  enabled  to  reduce  all  the  rebels 
of  Ireland  to  subjection. 

No.  VII.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

When  this  shall  come  to  your  Majesty's  hands  I  know 
not ;  but  whensoever  it  hath  that  honor,  give  it  leave,  I 
humbly  beseech  your  Majesty,  to  tell  you,  that  having  now 
passed  through  the  provinces  of  Leinster  and  Munster,  and 
been  upon  the  frontiers  of  Connaught,  where  the  governor 
and  the  chief  of  the  province  were  with  me,  I  dare  begin  to 
give  your  Maj.  some  advertisement  of  the  state  of  this 
kingdom ;  not  as  before  by  hearsay,  but  as  I  beheld  it  with 
mine  own  eyes. 

The  people  in  general  have  able  bodies  by  nature,  and 
gotten  by  custom  ready  use  of  arms  ;  and,  by  their  late 
successes,  boldness  to  fight  with  your  Majesty's  troops.  In 
their  pride  they  value  no  men  but  themselves;  in  their 
affection  they  love  nothing  but  idleness  and  licentiousness ; 
in  their  rebellion  they  have  no  other  end  but  to  shake  off 
the  yoke  of  obedience  to  your  Majesty,  and  to  root  out  all 
remembrance  of  the  English  nation  in  this  kingdom.  I  say 
this  of  the  people  in  general ;  for  I  find  not  only  the  greater 
part  thus  affected,  but  that  it  is  a  general  quarrel  of  the 
Irish ;  and  they  who  do  not  profess  it  are  either  so  few  or 
so  false,  that  there  is  no  account  to  be  made  of  them.  The 
Irish  nobility  and  lords  of  countries  do  not  only  in  their 

1  Birch,  ii.  415. 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  37 

i 

hearts  affect  this  plausible  quarrel,  and  are  divided  from  us  in 
religion,  but  have  an  especial  quarrel  to  the  English  govern- 
ment, because  it  limiteth  and  tieth  them,  who  ever  have  been, 
and  ever  would  be,  as  absolute  tyrants  as  any  are  under  the 
sun.  The  towns  being  inhabited  by  men  of  the  same  religion 
and  birth  as  the  rest,  are  so  carried  away  with  the  love  of 
gain,  that  for  it  they  will  furnish  the  rebels  with  all  things 
that  may  arm  them  or  enable  them,  against  the  state  or 
against  themselves. 

The  wealth  of  the  kingdom,  which  consisteth  in  cattle, 
oatmeal,  and  other  victuals,  is  almost  all  in  the  rebels'  hands, 
who  in  every  province  till  my  coming  have  been  masters  of 
the  field.  The  expectation  of  all  these  rebels  is  very  present 
and  very  confident,  that  Spain  will  either  so  invade  your 
Majesty,  that  you  shall  have  no  leisure  to  prosecute  them 
here  ;  or  so  succor  them,  that  they  will  get  most  of  the  towns 
into  their  hands,  ere  your  Majesty  shall  relieve  and  reinforce 
your  army.  So  that  now,  if  your  Majesty  resolve  to  subdue 
these  rebels  by  force,  they  are  so  many,  and  so  framed  to  be 
soldiers,  that  the  war  of  force  will  be  great,  costly,  and  long. 

If  your  Majesty  will  seek  to  break  them  by  factions  among 
themselves,  they  are  covetous  and  mercenary,  and  must  be 
purchased ;  and  their  Jesuits  and  practising  priests  must  be 
hunted  out  and  taken  from  them,  which  now  do  solder  them 
so  fast  and  so  close  together.  If  your  Majesty  will  have  a 
strong  party  in  the  Irish  nobility,  and  make  use  of  them,  you 
must  hide  from  them  all  purpose  of  establishing  English 
government,  till  the  strength  of  the  Irish  be  so  broken,  that 
they  shall  see  no  safety  but  in  your  Majesty's  protection.  If 
your  Majesty  will  be  assured  of  the  possession  of  the  towns, 
and  keep  them  from  supplying  the  wants  of  the  rebels,  you 
must  have  garrisons  brought  into  them,  able  to  command 
them ;  and  make  it  a  capital  offence  for  any  merchant  in 
Ireland  to  trade  with  the  rebels,  or  buy  or  sell  any  arms  or 

D    3 


38  LIVES   OF    THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.!. 

munition  whatever.  For  your  good  subjects  may  have  for 
their  money  out  of  your  Majesty's  store,  that  which  shall  be 
appointed  by  order,  and  may  serve  for  their  necessary  defence  ; 
whereas,  if  once  they  be  tradeable,  the  rebels  will  give  such 
extreme  and  excessive  prices,  that  they  can  never  be  kept 
from  them. 

If  your  Majesty  will  secure  this  your  realm  from  danger 
of  invasion,  as  soon  as  those  which  direct  and  manage  your 
Majesty's  intelligences  give  notice  of  the  preparations  and 
readiness  of  the  enemy,  you  must  be  as  well  armed,  and 
provided  for  your  defence ;  which  provision  consists  in  having 
forces  upon  the  coast  enrolled  and  trained,  in  having  maga- 
zines of  victual  in  your  Majesty's  west  and  northern  ports 
ready  to  be  transported,  and  in  having  ships  both  of  war 
and  transportation,  which  may  carry  and  waft  them  both 
upon  the  first  alarm  of  a  descent.  The  enrolling  and 
training  of  your  subjects  is  no  charge  to  your  Majesty's 
own  coffers.  The  providing  of  magazines  will  never  be  any 
loss ;  for,  in  using  them,  you  may  save  a  kingdom ;  and,  if  you 
use  them  not,  you  may  have  your  old  store  sold ;  and,  if  it  be 
well  handled,  to  your  Majesty's  profit.  The  arming  of  your 
Majesty's  ships,  when  you  hear  your  enemy  arms  to  the  sea, 
is  agreeable  to  your  own  provident  and  princely  courses, 
and  to  the  policy  of  all  princes  and  states  of  the  world. 

But  to  return  to  Ireland  again,  as  I  have  showed  your 
Majesty  the  dangers  and  disadvantages  which  your  servants 
and  ministers  here  shall  and  do  meet  withal  in  this  great 
work  of  reducing  this  kingdom ;  so  I  will  now,  as  well  as  I 
can,  represent  to  your  Majesty  your  strengths  and  ad- 
vantages. 

First,  these  rebels  are  neither  able  to  force  any  walled 
town,  castle,  nor  house  of  strength,  nor  to  keep  any  that 
they  get ;  so  that,  while  your  Majesty  keeps  your  army  in 
strength  and  vigor,  you  are  undoubtedly  mistress  of  all 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  39 

towns  and  holds  whatsoever.  By  which  means,  if  your 
Majesty  have  good  ministers,  all  the  wealth  in  the  land  shall 
be  drawn  into  the  hands  of  your  subjects ;  your  soldiers  in 
the  winter  shall  be  carefully  lodged,  and  readily  supplied 
of  any  wants ;  and  we  that  command  your  Majesty's  forces 
may  make  the  war  offensive  and  defensive,  nay,  fight  and 
be  in  safety,  as  occasion  is  offered. 

Secondly,  your  Majesty's  horsemen  are  so  incomparably 
better  than  the  rebels,  and  their  foot  so  unwilling  to  fight, 
in  battle  or  gross,  howsoever  they  be  desirous  to  skirmish 
or  fight  loose,  that  your  Majesty  may  be  always  mistress 
of  the  champaign  countries,  which  are  the  best  parts  of  this 
kingdom. 

Thirdly,  your  Majesty  victualling  your  army  out  of  Eng- 
land, and  with  your  garrisons  burning  and  spoiling  the 
country  in  all  places,  shall  starve  the  rebels  in  one  year, 
because  no  place  else  can  supply  them. 

Fourthly,  since  no  war  can  be  made  without  munition, 
and  munition  this  rebel  cannot  have  but  from  Spain,  Scot- 
land, or  your  own  towns  here,  if  your  Majesty  will  still 
continue  your  ships  and  pinnaces  upon  the  coast,  and  be 
pleased  to  send  a  printed  proclamation,  that,  upon  pain  of 
death,  no  merchant,  townsman,  or  other  subject,  do  traffic 
with  the  rebel,  or  buy  or  sell  in  any  sort  any  kind  of  munition 
or  arms,  I  doubt  not  but  that  in  a  short  time  I  shall  make 
them  bankrupt  of  their  old  store,  and  I  hope  our  seamen 
will  keep  them  from  receiving  any  new. 

Fifthly,  your  Majesty  hath  a  rich  store  of  gallant  colonels, 
captains,  and  gentlemen  of  quality,  whose  example  and 
execution  is  of  more  use  than  all  the  rest  of  your  troops ; 
whereas  the  men  of  best  quality  among  the  rebels,  which  are 
their  leaders  and  their  horsemen,  dare  never  put  themselves 
to  any  hazard,  but  send  their  kerne  and  their  hirelings  to 
fight  with  your  Majesty's  troops;  so  that,  although  their 

i>  4 


40  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.!. 

common  soldiers  are  too  hard  for  our  new  men,  yet  they  are 
not  able  to  stand  before  such  gallant  men  as  will  charge 
them. 

Sixthly,  your  Majesty's  commanders  being  advised  and 
exercised  know  all  advantages,  and  by  the  strength  of  their 
order  will,  in  all  great  fights,  beat  the  rebels.  For  they 
neither  march,  nor  lodge,  nor  fight  in  order,  but  only  by  the 
benefit  of  their  footmanship  can  come  on  and  go  off  at 
pleasure ;  which  makes  them  attend  a  whole  day,  still  skir- 
mishing, and  never  engaging  themselves ;  so  that  it  hath 
been  ever  the  fault  and  weakness  of  your  Majesty's  leaders, 
whensoever  you  have  received  any  blow. 

Now,  if  it  shall  please  your  Majesty  to  compare  your 
advantages  and  disadvantages  together,  you  shall  find,  that 
though  these  rebels  are  more  in  number  than  your  Majesty's 
army,  and  have,  though  I  do  unwillingly  confess  it,  better 
bodies  and  perfecter  use  of  their  arms,  than  those  men 
which  your  Majesty  sends  over,  yet  your  Majesty  com- 
manding the  walled  towns,  holds,  and  champaign  countries, 
and  having  a  brave  nobility  and  gentry,  a  better  discipline, 
and  stronger  order  than  they,  and  such  means  to  keep  from 
them  the  maintenance  of  their  life,  and  to  waste  the  country 
which  should  nourish  them ;  your  Majesty  may  promise 
yourself,  that  this  action  will  in  the  end  be  successful,  though 
costly,  and  that  your  victory  will  be  certain,  though  many 
of  us  your  honest  servants  must  sacrifice  ourselves  in  the 
quarrel ;  and  that  this  kingdom  will  be  reduced,  though  it 
will  ask,  besides  cost,  a  great  deal  of  care,  industry,  and 
time. 

But  why  do  I  talk  of  victory  or  success  ?  Is  it  not  known 
that  from  England  I  receive  nothing  but  discomforts  and 
soul's  wounds  ?  Is  it  not  spoken  in  the  army,  that  your  Ma- 
jesty's favor  is  diverted  from  me,  and  that  already  you  do  bode 
ill  both  to  me  and  it  ?  Is  it  not  believed  by  the  rebels  that 


CHAP.  I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  41 

those  whom  you  favor  most,  do  more  hate  me  out  of  faction, 
than  them  out  of  duty  and  conscience  ?  Is  it  not  lamented 
of  your  Majesty's  faithfullest  subjects,  both  there  and  here, 
that  a  Cobham  or  a  Ralegh  —  I  will  forbear  others  for  their 
places'  sakes  —  should  have  such  credit  and  favour  with  your 
Majesty  when  they  wish  the  ill-success  of  your  Majesty's 
most  important  action,  the  decay  of  your  greatest  strength, 
and  the  destruction  of  your  faithfullest  servants  ? 

Yes,  yes,  1  see  both  my  own  destiny  and  your  Majesty's 
decree,  and  do  willingly  embrace  the  one,  and  obey  the  other. 
Let  me  honestly  and  zealously  end  a  wearisome  life.  Let 
others  live  in  deceitful  and  inconstant  pleasures.  Let  me 
bear  the  brunt,  and  die  meritoriously.  Let  others  achieve 
and  finish  the  work,  and  live  to  erect  trophies.  But  my 
prayer  shall  be  that,  when  my  sovereign  loseth  me,  her  army 
may  not  lose  courage,  or  this  kingdom  want  physic,  or  her 
dearest  self  miss  Essex,  and  then  I  can  never  go  in  a  better 
time,  nor  in  a  fairer  way.  Till  then,  I  protest  before  God 
and  his  angels,  I  am  a  true  votary,  that  is  sequestered  from 
all  things  but  my  duty  and  my  charge.  I  perform  the  utter- 
most of  my  body's,  mind's,  and  fortune's  ability ;  and  more 
should,  but  that  a  constant  care  and  labor  agrees  not  with  an 
inconstant  health  in  an  unwholesome  and  uncertain  climate. 
This  is  the  hand  of  him  that  did  live  your  dearest,  and  will 
die  your  Majesty's  faithfullest,  servant. 

From  Arklow,  the  army,  now  reduced  by  the 
garrisons  and  reinforcements  left  behind,  and  by  sick- 
ness, to  a  much  less  number  than  originally  went 
forth,  returned  direct  to  Dublin,  where  they  arrived 
one  of  the  first  days  in  July. 


42  LIVES    OF   THE   EAliLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 


CHAPTER  II. 

LIFE   OF   EGBERT,   EARL   OF   ESSEX  —  Continued. 

DISPLEASURE  OF  THE  QUEEN  AT  SOUTHAMPTON'S  APPOINTMENT.— 
HIS  DISCHARGE.  —  QUEEN  EXPRESSES  STRONG  DISAPPROBATION 
OP  ESSEX'S  PROCEEDINGS,  WHILE  CECYLL,  IN  LETTERS  TO  SIR 
H.NEVILLE,  APPROVES. — ON  THE  ALARM  OF  A  SPANISH  INVA- 
SION, AND  PREPARATION  OF  ARMAMENT,  ESSEX  ORDERED  NOT 

TO    QUIT    IRELAND.  —  TRIAL    OF    SHI    H.    HARRINGTON'S    MEN. 

DEFEAT  AND  DEATH  OF  SIR  CONYERS   CLIFFORD. ROYAL   LETTER 

OF  REPROOF. ESSEX  PROCEEDS   TO  ULSTER  TO  MAKE   A   RECON- 

NOISSANCE.  —  THE     COUNCIL    PROTEST    AGAINST     AN    ATTACK    ON 

TYRONE.  —  SKIRMISH. PARLEY.  —  TRUCE.  —  ANOTHER     LETTER 

OF    DISAPPROBATION   FROM   THE   QUEEN. 

LET  us  now  inquire,  how  the  conduct  of  Essex,  and 
his  journey  into  Munster,  were  received  at  Court. 

To  explain  the  next  letters,  it  is  necessary  to 
state,  that  the  Earl  of  Southampton,  who,  in  con- 
sequence of  his  marriage,  already  related,  fell  into  the 
deepest  disgrace,  was  appointed  by  Essex  General 
of  the  Horse  in  Ireland,  which  caused  the  following 
correspondence. 

No.  VIII.1 
The  Lords  of  the  Council  to  Essex. 

Her  Majesty  having  of  late  received  certain  knowledge 
that  your  L.  hath  constituted  the  Earl  of  Southampton 
General  of  the  Horse  in  Her  Maj.  army  under  your  charge, 

1  S.  P.  0. 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  43 

with  which  she  is  much  displeased,  hath  given  us  command- 
ment to  signify  her  mind  in  that  behalf,  and  to  let  your  L. 
understand  that  she  thinketh  strange,  and  taketh  it  offensively, 
that  you  would  appoint  his  L.  to  that  place  and  office,  con- 
sidering that  Her  Maj.  did  not  only  deny  it,  when  she  was  here 
moved  by  your  L.  to  that  purpose,  but  gave  you  an  express 
prohibition  to  the  contrary,  that  he  should  not  be  appointed 
thereunto.  This  commandment  being  by  Her  Maj.  so  pre- 
cisely delivered  unto  you,  and  the  same  being  now  so  publicly 
manifested  to  the  world  to  be  broken,  hath  moved  Her  Maj. 
to  great  offence  in  that  respect.  And  therefore  Her  Maj. 
pleasure  is  that  you  do  not  longer  continue  him  in  that  place 
and  charge  of  General  of  the  Horse,  but  dispose  of  it  to 
some  other  as  you  shall  think  good  ;  Her  Maj.  esteeming  it 
a  very  unseasonable  time  to  confer  upon  him  any  so  great 
place,  having  so  lately  given  her  cause  of  offence  towards 
him.  This  being  Her  Maj.  direction  and  commandment 
unto  us,  we  do  deliver  it  by  this  our  letter,  as  from  herself, 
wherein  having  discharged  our  duties,  we  are  sorry  for  the 
occasion.  From  the  Court  at  Greenwich,  the  10th  of  June, 
1599. 

To  this  letter  Essex  replied  from  Dublin  on  the 
llth  July. 

No.  IX.1 

Essex  to  the  Lords  of  the  Council. 

To  come  to  that  which  I  never  looked  should  come  to  me  (I 
mean  your  LL.  letter,  touching  the  displacing  of  the  Earl  of 
Southampton),  your  LL.  say  that  Her  Majesty  thinketh  it 
strange,  and  taketh  it  offensively  that  I  appointed  the  Earl 
of  Southampton  General  of  the  Horse,  seeing  Her  Majesty 
not  only  denied  it  when  I  moved  it,  but  gave  me  an  express 

1  S.  T.  O.,  an  extract. 


44  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

prohibition  to  any  such  choice.     Surely,  my  LL.,  it  shall  be 
far  from  me  to  contest  with  your  LL.,  much  less  with  Her 
Majesty ;  howbeit,  God  and  mine  own  soul  are  my  witnessed 
that  I  had  not,  in  this  nomination,  any  disobedient  or  irre- 
verent thought.     That  I  ever  moved  Her  Majesty  for  the 
placing  of  any  officer,  my  commission  fully  enabling  me  to 
make  free  choice  of  all  the  officers  and  commanders  of  the 
army,  I  do  not  remember.     That  Her  Majesty,  in  the  Privy 
Chamber  at  Kichmond,  I  only  being  with  her,  shewed  a 
dislike  of  his  having  any  office,   I  do   confess;    but  mine 
answer  was,  that  if  Her  Majesty  would  revoke  my  commis- 
sion, I  would  cast  both  myself  and  it  at  Her  Majesty's  feet ; 
but  if  it  pleased  Her  Majesty  that  I  should  execute  it,  I 
must  work  with  mine  own  instruments ;  and  from  this  pro- 
fession and  protestation  I  never  varied;   whereas,   if  I  had 
held  myself  barred  from  yielding  my  Lord  of  Southampton 
place  and  reputation  someway  answerable  to  his  degree  and 
expense,  no  man,  I  think,  doth  imagine  that  I  loved  him  so 
ill  as  to  have  brought  him  over.     Therefore,  if  Her  Majesty 
punish  me  with  her  displeasure  for  this  choice,  pcena  dolenda 
venit.    And  now,  my  LL.,  were  it  as  then  it  was,  that  I  were 
to  choose,  or  were  there  nothing  in  a  new  choice  but  my  L. 
of  Southampton's  disgrace  and  my  discomfort,  I  should  easily 
be  induced  to  displace  him,  and  to  part  with  him.     But 
when  in  obeying  this  commandment  I  must  discourage  all 
my  friends,  who  now  see  the  days  of  my  suffering  draw  near, 
follow  me  afar  off,  and  are  some  of  them  tempted  to  renounce 
me;  when  I  must  dismay  the  army,  which  already  looks 
sadly  upon  me,  as  pitying  both  me  and  itself  in  this  com- 
fortless action ;    when  I  must  encourage    the   rebels,   who, 
doubtless,  will  think  it  time  to  hew  upon  a  withering  tree, 
whose  leaves  they  see  beaten  down,  and  the  branches  in  part 
cut  off;  when  for  ever  I  must  disable  myself  in  the  course  of 
this  service,  the  world  now  clearly  perceiving  that  I  either 


I.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  45 

want  reason  to  judge  of  merit,  or  freedom  to  right  it,  dis- 
graces being  there  heaped,  when,  in  my  opinion,  rewards  are 
due ;  give  just  grief  leave  once  to  exclaim,  O  miserable 
employment,  and  more  miserable  destiny  of  mine,  that  makes  it 
impossible  for  me  to  please  and  serve  Her  Majesty  at  once  I 
Was  it  treason  in  my  Lord  of  Southampton  to  marry  my 
poor  kinswoman,  that  neither  long  imprisonment,  nor  no 
punishment  besides  that  hath  been  usual  in  like  cases,  can 
satisfy  or  appease ;  or  will  no  kind  of  punishment  be  fit  for 
him,  but  that  which  punisheth  not  him,  but  me,  this  army, 
and  poor  country  of  Ireland  ? 

The  star  of  Essex  was  in  its  decline,  and  this 
earnest  apostrophe  only  drew  forth  fresh  reproaches. 
On  the  19th  July,  the  Queen  wrote  to  Essex  a  letter, 
of  which  part  was  a  reply  to  the  above. 

"  For  the  matter  of  Southampton,  it  is  strange  to 
"  us  that  his  continuance  or  displacing  should  work 
"  so  great  an  alteration,  either  in  yourself  valuing 
"  our  commandments  as  you  ought,  or  in  the  dispo- 
"  sition  of  our  army,  where  all  the  commanders  can- 
"  not  be  ignorant  that  we  not  only  not  allowed  of 
"  your  desire,  but  did  expressly  forbid  it,  and  being 
"  such  a  one  whose  experience  can  be  of  no  great 
"  use.  It  is  therefore  strange  to  us  that  you  will 
"  dare  thus  to  value  your  own  pleasing  in  things  un- 
"  necessary,  and  think  by  your  private  arguments 
"  to  carry  for  your  own  glory  a  matter  wherein  our 
"  pleasure  to  the  contrary  is  made  notorious."1 

It  was  now  clear,  whatever  the  cause,  whether  by 
the  workings  of  his  enemies,  or  her  own  anger,  Eli- 

1  s.  P.  o. 


46  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

zabeth  would  not  suffer  Southampton  to  retain  his 
appointment.  It  seems  as  if  the  purpose  was  to 
discontent  and  disgust  Essex  through  his  friends  : 
first,  Sir  Christopher  Blount  refused,  next  South- 
ampton displaced,  and  then  the  Earl  of  Eutland  re- 
called. His  execution  of  the  Queen's  pleasure  was 
announced  by  Essex  to  the  Council. 

No.  X.1 
Essex  to  the  Lords  of  the  Council. 

By  your  last  letters  I  received  a  second  signification  of  her 
Majesty's  pleasure  for  the  dispatching  of  my  Lord  of  South- 
ampton from  the  charge  of  the  government  of  the  horse  ;  and 
withal  a  letter  sent  by  Her  Majesty  in  confirmation  of  Her 
Majesty's  pleasure  delivered  by  your  LL. ;  upon  the  receipt 
of  which  despatch  I  did  both  signify  to  my  Lord  of  South- 
ampton, that  he  should  not  take  upon  him  that  place  here- 
after, and  wrote  to  Mr. ,  to  stay  the  entertainment, 

and  strike  that  office  out  of  the  list,  so  that  Her  Majesty's 
order  is  duly  and  exactly  performed. 

Touching  the  propriety  and  policy  of  the  journey 
into  Leinster  and  Munster ;  although  it  excited,  as 
we  shall  see,  great  anger  in  the  Queen,  there  is  reason 
to  believe  that  course  was  at  first  approved ;  and  it 
was  only  by  the  device  of  Cobham  and  Ealegh,  who 
led  Elizabeth  to  expect  vast  results,  and  then  detracted 
from  whatever  advantage  was  gained,  that  she  was 
led  to  use  such  bitterly  reproachful  language  to  the 
Earl  of  Essex.  It  was  the  custom  of  Queen  Elizabeth 
to  reward  the  most  active  and  zealous  efforts  of  her 

1  S.P.O. 


CHAP.  IT.  ROBERT,    EARL  OF    ESSEX.  47 

servants  with  reproaches  for  not  having  effected 
greater  things. 

Sir  Robert  Cecyll  in  his  correspondence  with  Sir 
Henry  Neville,  at  this  period  ambassador  in  France, 
reports  the  state  of  Irish  affairs ;  and  as  he  cannot 
be  quoted  as  an  authority  in  any  degree  influenced 
by  partiality  for  the  Earl  of  Essex,  his  evidence 
carries  great  weight.  On  the  23rd  May,  he  writes 
in  answer  to  some  premature  reports  that  had  reached 
Paris,  that  Essex,  u  not  having  arrived  in  Ireland 
"  before  the  17th  April,  must  have  wrought  miracles 
"  to  have  settled  and  distributed  an  army  of  16,000 
"foot  and  1300  horse,  and  to  have  accommodated 
"  them  with  all  necessaries  in  a  country  full  of  misery 
"  and  disorder,  in  a  shorter  time  than  he  did;  for 
"  the  time  of  the  year  not  serving  to  pass  into 
"  Ulster  to  break  the  head  of  the  rebellion  till  the 
"  month  of  June,  within  twenty  days  his  L.  began  a 
"  journey  into  Leinster,  and  from  thence  intends  to 
"  pass  into  Munster,  with  a  purpose  to  secure  those 
"  provinces,  that  thereby  the  main  action  of  Ulster 
"  may  be  proceeded  withal  with  less  distraction."1 

On  the  14th  July,  "  the  Earl  is  by  this  time  re-. 
"  turned  to  Dublin,  and  prepareth  to  go  into  the 
"  North  ;  he  hath  done  as  much  as  could  be  done  by 
"  the  sword,  on  the  rebels  in  Munster  and  Leinster ; 
"  for  he  hath  passed  at  his  pleasure  where  he  listed, 
"  notwithstanding  all  the  plots  they  could  use,  either 
"  of  force  or  stratagem.  But  the  rogues  shun  fight, 

1  Memorials  of  Affairs  of  State,  by  Sir  Ralph  Winwood.  Lond.  1725, 
i.  40. 


48  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

"  and  so  know  how  to  spend  us,  and  eat  us  out  with 
«  time."1 

Yet,  on  the  19th  July,  her  principal  minister 
being  clearly  of  opinion  that  good  service  had  been 
done,  the  Queen  wrote  a  long  and  angry  letter  to 
Essex,  full  of  reproaches  for  his  delay  in  proceeding 
against  Tyrone ;  for  the  time  he  had  wasted  in  the 
Munster  journey,  without  bringing  in  a  capital 
rebel ;  and  declaring  that  the  taking  of  Cahir  Castle 
was  only  taking  an  Irish  hold  from  a  rabble  of  rogues, 
and  was  no  great  matter,  but  what  the  President, 
with  a  convenient  addition  to  his  numbers,  might  have 
effected.  "  Then,"  says  she,  "  must  we  not  hide  from 
u  you,  that  however  we  do  esteem  you  for  the  good 
"  things  that  are  in  you,  but  that  our  honour  hath 
"  dwelt  too  long  in  us  to  leave  that  point  uncleared. 
"  That  whosoever  it  be  that  you  do  clad  with  any 
"  honor  or  places,  wherein  the  world  may  read  the 
"  least  suspicion  of  neglect  or  contempt  of  our  com- 
"  mandments,  we  will  never  make  dainty  to  set  on 
"  such  shadows  as  shall  quickly  eclipse  any  of  those 
"  lustres."3  The  letter  continues  with  the  reference 
to  Southampton  already  quoted. 

The  Queen  wrote  again  on  the  30th  July,  and  after 
some  preliminary  remarks  on  the  victualling,  and  an- 
other reprimand  for  his  unseasonable  journey  into 
Munster,  whereby  he  broke  the  heart  of  the  best 
troops,  desires  him  to  lose  no  time  in  making  his 
expedition  into  the  North  against  Tyrone ;  and  then 

1  Memorials  of  Affairs  of  State,  by  Sir  Ralph  Winwood.     London, 
1725,  i.  40. 

*  Copy  in  S.  P.  O.,  certified  by  Secretary  Windebank. 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  49 

continues,  "  because  we  know  that  on  your  continu- 
"  ance  there  doth  now  depend  the  order  and  conduct 
"  of  all  this  important  affair,  and  that  by  your  return, 
"  until  the  Northern  action  be  tried,  many  and  great 
"  confusions  may  follow,  our  will  and  pleasure  is, 
"  and  so  we  do  upon  your  duty  command  you,  that 
"  notwithstanding  our  former  license,  provisionally 
"  given,  whereby  you  have  liberty  to  return  and 
"  constitute  some  temporary  governor  in  your  absence, 
"  that  you  do  now  no  ways  take  that  liberty,  nor  ad- 
"  venture  to  leave  the  State  in  any  person's  govern- 
"  ment  but  with  our  allowance  first  had  of  him,  and 
"  our  pleasure  first  known  to  you,  what  order  you 
"  shall  leave  with  him.  After  you  shall  have  certified 
"  us  to  what  form  you  have  reduced  things  in  the 
"  North,  what  hath  been  the  success,  and  whom  you 
"  and  the  Council  could  wish  to  leave  with  that 
"  charge  behind;  that  being  done,  you  shall  with  all 
"  speed  receive  our  warrant,  without  which  we  do 
"  charge  you,  as  you  tender  our  pleasure,  that  you 
"  adventure  not  to  come  out  of  that  kingdom  by 
"  virtue  of  any  former  license  whatever."1 

This  lets  us  into  the  secret  cause  of  Essex  patch- 
ing up  his  hasty  and  discreditable  truce  with  Tyrone. 
He  at  once  suspected  some  plotting  to  keep  him  in 
Ireland,  and  determined  to  hasten  his  return2,  taking 

1  S.  P.  O. 

2  The  reason  of  the  Queen's  giving  this  order  appears  to  have  arisen 
from  the  apprehension  of  Cecyll,  that  as  soon  as  Essex  heard  of  a  fleet 
fitting  against  the  Spaniards,  he  would  hasten  back  ;    while  from  his 
letters  (Winwood,  i.  91.)   it  appears  that  the  preparations  were  only 
precautions,  he  "  preferring  the  ways  of  safety  before  any  matter  of 
charge." 

VOL.  II.  E 


50  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

advantage  of  the  expression,  "after  the  Northern 
"  action  tried,"  to  disobey  all  the  spirit  of  the  above 
orders.  Mistaken  Essex !  the  true  way  to  have  con- 
quered his  enemies,  and  silenced  them,  was  to  have 
applied  all  his  forces,  all  his  energies,  to  the  Northern 
journey,  and  by  one  blow  have  brought  the  most 
important  rebel  of  all  to  the  dust.  The  small  lump 
of  leaven  in  his  nature  was  now  working,  spreading, 
corrupting  his  noble  qualities,  and  blinding  his  judg- 
ment, and  gradually  leading  him  towards  the  pitfall  of 
destruction,  already  prepared  for  him  by  his  enemies. 

It  has  been  incidentally  remarked,  that  an  English 
force,  under  Sir  Henry  Harrington,  had  been  defeated 
by  the  rebels  near  Wicklow.  This  unlucky  affair 
occurred  on  the  29th  May.  The  force  under  Sir 
Henry  was  500  foot  and  60  horse,  and  they  were 
defeated  with  great  slaughter. 

On  the  return  of  Essex  to  Dublin,  and  his  inquiry 
into  the  circumstances,  it  appearing  that  the  troops 
had  behaved  with  cowardice,  he  resolved  to  make  a 
severe  example,  which  he  thus  reports  to  the  Council 
on  the  llth  July. 

"  On  Monday  last  I  called  a  Marshal's  Court  on 
"  the  captains  and  officers  who  were  under  Sir  H. 
"  Harrington,  when  our  troops,  having  advantage  of 
"  numbers,  and  no  disadvantage  of  ground,  were  put 
[<  in  rout,  and  many  cut  in  pieces  without  striking  a 
"  blow.  In  this  court  Pierce  Walsh,  Lieutenant  to 
"  Captain  Adam  Loftus,  for  giving  the  first  example 
"  of  cowardice  and  dismaying  to  the  troops,  was 
"  condemned  to  die,  and  afterwards  accordingly  exe- 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  51 

"  cuted.  The  other  captains  and  officers,  though 
"  they  forsook  not  their  places  assigned  them,  but 
"  were  forsaken  by  their  soldiers,  yet  because  in  such 
"  an  extremity  and  disaster  they  did  not  something 
"  very  extraordinary,  both  by  their  example  to  en- 
"  courage  the  soldiers,  and  to  acquit  themselves,  were 
"  all  cashiered,  and  are  still  kept  in  prison.  The 
u  soldiers  being  before  condemned  all  to  die,  were  by 
"  me  most  of  them  pardoned ;  and,  for  example's 
"  sake,  every  tenth  man  only  executed.  ;  Sir  H. 
"  Harrington,  because  he  is  a  Privy  Councillor  in  this 
"  kingdom,  I  forbear  to  bring  to  trial  until  I  know 
"  Her  Majesty's  pleasure, 

"  Albeit  the  poor  men  that  marched  with  me  eight 
"  weeks  together  be  very  weary,  and  unfit  for  a  new 
"  journey,  and  besides  the  horsemen  so  divided,  that  I 
u  cannot  draw  300  to  a  head  ;  yet  as  fast  as  I  can  call 
"  these  troops  together,  I  will  go  look  upon  yonder 
"  proud  rebel ;  and  if  I  find  him  on  hard  ground,  and 
"in  an  open  country,  though  I  should  find  him  in 
"  horse  and  foot  three  for  one,  yet  will  I  by  God's 
"  grace  dislodge  him,  or  put  the  Council  here  to  the 
"  trouble  of  chusing  a  Lord  Justice."  1 

Mr.  Chamberlain  again  presents  us  with'  the  talk 
of  the  town. 

28  th  June. — The  Earl  of  Rutland  is  returned  out  of  Ireland 
upon  commandment,  and  the  Earl  of  Southampton  said  to  be 
either  come  or  coming,  his  place  of  General  of  the  Horse  being 
taken  from  him  by  commandment  from  hence;  the  Queen 
nothing  satisfied  with  the  Earl  of  Essex'  manner  of  proceed- 

i  S.  P.  O. 

E    2 


52  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 

ing,  nor  likes  anything  that  is  done,  but  says  she  allows  him 
WOOL  a  day  to  go  in  progress. 

1st  August.— Men  marvel  Essex  hath  done  so  little;  he 
tarries  yet  at  Dublin:  hath  made  sixteen  new  knights,  for 
what  service  I  know  not,  belike  it  is  de  bene  esse.  His  deci- 
mating Sir  H.  Harrington's  company  much  descanted  on,  and 
not  greatly  liked. 

23rd  August.  —  The  Earl  of  Essex  hath  made  many  new 
knights,  but  I  cannot  yet  come  by  the  bead-roll;  marry  for 
a  taste,  you  shall  have  as  many  as  I  can  well  remember :  as 
Sir  Henry  Lindley,  Sir  Henry  Carey,  that  was  Sir  Francis 
Vere's  lieutenant,  two  Lovelaces  ;  Sir  Ajax  Harrington,  Sir 
Jack  Heydon,  Sir  Dick  Morrison,  cum  multis  aliis,  English 
and  Irish,  to  the  number  of  fifty-nine  in  the  whole,  since  his . 
first  arrival  ^  it  is  much  marvelled  that  this  humour  should 
so  possess  him,  that,  not  content  with  his  first  dozens  and 
scores,  he  should  thus  fall  to  huddle  them  up  by  half  hundreds ; 
and  it  is  noted  as  a  strange  thing,  that  a  subject,  in  the  space 
of  seven  or  eight  years,  should,  upon  so  little  service  and 
small  desert,  make  more  knights  than  in  all  the  realm  besides ; 
and  it  is  doubted,  that  if  he  continue  this  course,  he  will 
shortly  bring  in  tag  and  rag,  cut  and  longtail,  and  so  bring 
the  order  into  contempt. 

While  preparing  for  the  expedition  into  Ulster, 
the  Earl  of  Essex  thought  it  necessary  to  give  a 
check  to  some  of  the  rebels  nearer  Dublin ;  the 
O'Connors  and  O'Mores,  in  Leix  and  Ophaly,  being 
very  troublesome.  Leading  1500  men  into  Ophaly, 
and  sending  Sir  Christopher  Blount  with  1000  to 
Leix,  he  dispersed  them  with  ease. 

Having  received  a  supply  of  1000  men  from  Eng- 
land, he  next  prepared  to  march  northward ;  and  in 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  53 

order  to  divide  the  forces  of  Tyrone,  directed  Sir 
Conyers  Clifford,  the  governor  of  Connaught,  to  pene- 
trate into  Ulster  from  that  province,  and  so  create  a 
diversion.  The  force  under  Clifford  was  1500  foot, 
and  100  horse.  On  coming  to  the  Curlew  Moun- 
tains, the  baggage  and  ammunition  were  halted  under 
the  protection  of  the  horse,  while  the  infantry  made 
good  the  passage.  They  had  not  gone  far,  their  road 
lying  along  a  stony  causeway,  with  woods  and  bogs 
on  either  side,  when  the  rebels  under  O'Eorke  at- 
tacked them  vigorously,  but  were  checked,  until  the 
men,  having  nearly  consumed  their  ammunition,  and 
being  fatigued  with  their  long  march,  were  seized  with 
a  panic,  and  took  to  flight :  no  effort  of  their  leaders 
could  restrain  them;  Sir  Conyers  Clifford,  and  Sir 
Alex.  Ratcliffe,  with  120  men,  were  killed  on  the  field ; 
and  the  whole  would  probably  have  shared  the  same 
fate,  had  not  the  small  body  of  horse,  by  repeated 
charges,  so  occupied  the  enemy,  that  their  com- 
rades were  enabled  to  retreat  without  further  loss, 
carrying  their  baggage  with  them  to  Boyle,  and  from 
thence  to  Athlone. 

An  inauspicious  commencement  this  to  the  North- 
ern journey,  especially  when  we  find  that  the  English 
outnumbered  the  Irish  on  this  occasion,  by  at  least 
three  to  one.  It  was  supposed  that  the  leading  men. 
having  given  way  infected  those  behind  with  their 
fears,  and  so  threw  the  whole  into  disorder. 

On  the  intelligence  of  this  defeat  arriving  at  Dub- 
lin, the  Lord  Lieutenant  called  a  general  council  of 
war,  to  consider  how  the  service  was  to  be  carried 

E  3 


54  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 

out,  and  what  could  be  done  in  Ulster.  Their  reso- 
lution is  given  in  full.  Then  follows  a  letter,  in- 
terceding for  "  poor  Jack  Kaddyffe,"  the  brother  and 
heir  of  Sir  Alexander. 

At  H.  M.  Castle  of  Dublin. 

21  Aug.  1598. 

We  the  Lords,  Colonels,  and  Knights  of  the  army,  being 
called  to  a  council  of  war  the  day  and  year  above  written, 
at  what  time  the  L.  Lieutenant  exponing  to  us  his  purpose  of 
invading  Ulster,  as  well  in  regard  of  Her  Maj.  express  com- 
mandment, as  also  to  pull  down  the  pride  of  the  arch  traitor 
Tyrone,  to  redeem  the  late  scorn  of  the  Curlews,  and  lastly 
to  hold  up  the  reputation  of  the  army,  required  us  to  deliver 
our  opinions  in  what  sort  a  present  journey  hither  might  be 
made;  we  who  were  then  present,  being  thoroughly  ac- 
quainted with  the  state  of  Her  Maj.  forces,  as  having  parti- 
cular charge  of  them,  some  as  colonels  over  regiments,  and 
some  as  captains  over  companies,  after  long  debating,  every 
one  of  us  having  spoken  in  order,  at  last  by  common  consent 
resolved ;  seeing  the  army  so  unwilling  to  be  carried  thither, 
that  some  secretly  run  into  England,  others  revolt  to  the 
rebels,  a  third  sort  partly  hide  themselves  in  the  country, 
and  partly  feign  themselves  sick  ;  and  seeing  that  there  could 
be  no  planting  this  year  at  Lough  Foyle,  nor  assailing  of  the 
North  but  one  way,  the  Connaught  army  consisting  of  a  great 
part  of  old  companies  being  lately  defeated,  and  that  our 
army,  which  passeth  not  the  number  3500,  or  4000  at  the 
most,  of  strong  and  serviceable  men,  should  be  far  over- 
matched when  all  the  forces  of  the  North  should  encounter 
them ;  and  sithence  that  it  was  a  course  full  of  danger,  and 
of  little  or  no  hope,  to  carry  the  army  into  their  strengths, 
where  the  rebels  should  be  first  lodged,  and  should  be  able  to 
bring  6000  shot  to  entertain  fight  with  less  than  2000 ;  in 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  55 

which  places  also  our  horse  should  never  be  able  to  serve  or 
succor  our  foot ;  and  further,  forasmuch  as  we  could  place  no 
garrisons  in  the  north,  but  such  as  consisted  of  very  great 
numbers,  and  great  numbers  we  could  not  spare  from  so 
small  an  army,  with  any  likelihood  of  making  a  good  retreat 
with  the  rest ;  to  say  nothing  of  the  want  of  shipping,  and 
especially  of  victualling,  caused  by  the  great  decay  thereof, 
and,  lastly,  sithence  if  we  could  spare  a  sufficient  number 
and  could  lodge  them  at  Armagh  and  the  Blackwater,  it 
would  but  tie  the  army  to  be  ever  busied  in  victualling  them, 
and,  consequently,  more  incommodate  us  than  trouble  the 
rebels,  as  it  appeareth  in  the  former  plantations  there  in  the 
times  of  the  Lord  Burgh,  Sir  Will.  Russel,  and  Sir  John 
Norreys.  In  regard  of  the  premises  we  all  were  of  opinion, 
that  we  could  not  with  duty  to  Her  Maj.,  and  safety  to  this 
kingdom,  advise  or  assent  to  the  undertaking  of  any  journey 
far  north.  In  which  resolution,  if  any  man  suspected  it  pro- 
ceeded of  weakness  or  baseness,  we  will  not  only  in  all  likely 
and  profitable  service  disprove  him,  but  will  every  one  of  us 
deal  with  his  life,  that  we  dissuaded  this  undertaking  with 
more  duty  than  any  man  could  persuade  unto  it. 

This  is  signed  by  the  Earls  of  Southampton  and 
Kildare;  Lord  Castle  Connell;  Sirs  Edward  Wingfield, 
Oliver  Lambert,  Henry  Power,  Matthew  Morgan, 
Henry  Docwra,  Thomas  Jermyn,  Henry  Davers, 
Era.  Darcy,  Samuel  Bagenall,  Arthur  Champernowne, 
Robert  Drury,  Richard  Wilmot,  Edward  Herbert, 
and  John  Bolle. 


K    4 


56  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 

No.  XI.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Too  much  of  the  unhappy  province  of  Connaught  I  have 
written  to  my  LL. ;  to  your  Maj.  only  this,  that  if  your 
Maj.  be  not  gracious  to  poor  Jack  Radclyffe,  in  bestowing 
his  wardship  on  him,  he  that  is  heir  of  a  brave  race,  and  hath 
lost  his  two  elder  brothers  in  your  Maj.  service,  is  utterly 
undone :  his  last  worthy  brother,  who  did  as  much  honour  to 
his  name  by  his  death  as  ever  any  young  gentleman  did,  hath 
so  impaired  the  estate,  as  without  your  Maj.  goodness  it  is 
irrecoverable.  The  knowledge  of  which  makes  me  be  a  re- 
membrancer to  your  Maj.  justice,  though  I  dare  not  be  in- 
tercessor for  any.  But  what  do  I  with  a  pen  in  my  hand  ? 
What  words  have  I  to  offer  to  such  a  goddess  ?  Amazed 
silence  best  will  fit  me,  till  I  revenge  or  follow  worthy  Con- 
yers  Clifford.  My  prayers  shall  be  that  this  world  may  yield 
your  Maj.  as  many  joys  as  it  doth  torments  to  your  Maj. 

humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

On  the  9th  August,  the  Queen  wrote  a  letter  to 
the  Irish  Council,  reprimanding  them  for  having 
dissuaded  the  Lord  Lieutenant  from  the  Northern 
journey  on  his  first  arrival,  when  he  desired  to 
proceed  on  it;  and  for  having  again  objected  to  it 
on  insufficient  grounds.  That  the  Earl  did  not 
escape,  we  may  guess  from  his  reply. 

No.  XII.2 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Madam,  —I  offend  you  often,  and  afflict  myself,  therefore 
I  ask  of  your  Maj.  justice  this  right,  that  I  may  be  ad- 
1  Hulton  MSS.  2  Ibid. 


.CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  57 

judged  by  yourself  a  man  worthy  to  serve  you,  and  to  have 
my  services  graciously  accepted  ;  or  to  have  your  Maj.  leave 
to  retire  for  altogether ;  for  to  spend  my  best  time  without 
regard  and  encouragement,  and  to  be  subject  every  hour  to 
base  and  vile  imputations,  is  as  impossible  for  me  as  it  is  in- 
tolerable. Your  Maj.  humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

Sir  Robert  Cecyll's  notice  of  this  defeat  of  Sir 
Conyers  Clifford  is  given  to  Sir  Henry  Neville  on 
the  17th  August.1  "  Out  of  Ireland,  this  day,  is 
"  arrived  very  cross  news  ;  Sir  Conyers  Clifford, 
"  the  Governor  of  Connaught,  is  slain  in  an  en- 
"  counter  with  O'Donnel,  and  with  him  Sir  Alex. 
"  Ratcliffe  and  some  200  or  300  soldiers.  This 
"  accident  may  much  divert  my  Lord's  journey  into 
"  the  North,  which  if  it  shall  not  be  attempted  at 
"  all,  the  best  part  of  this  year's  expense  is  lost.  I 
"  pray  you  use  this  with  your  accustomed  discretion, 
"  for  though  I  desire  you  may  know  all  truth,  yet 
"  the  worse  luck  we  have,  the  worse  I  know  we 
"  are  esteemed  by  the  French." 

The  Irish  were  as  much  elated  by  their  unusual 
successes,  as  the  English  soldiers  were  dispirited.  It 
is  probable  that  the  Earl  of  Essex  shared  somewhat 
in  these  feelings,  and  did  not  prepare  for  the 
Northern  journey  with  the  alacrity  he  would  have 
shown  against  an  enemy  that  was  to  be  met  in  the 
open  field.  What  indeed  could  be  more  discouraging 
to  a  man  of  his  temper,  than  to  lead  his  troops  along 
narrow  causeways  bordered  by  morasses  and  woods, 

'  Winwood,  i.  91. 


58  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  II. 

from  which  the  unseen  foe  picked  off  his  men  as  they 
passed;  who,  even  when  discovered  and  pursued, 
from  their  activity,  the  lightness  of  their  equipments, 
and  familiarity  with  the  fastnesses,  had  no  difficulty 
in  evading  the  heavily  armed,  inexperienced  English 
soldier  ?  The  Irish,  far  from  showing  symptoms  of 
submission,  swore  that  if  there  were  an  Earl  of  Essex 
on  every  churl  who  came  over  from  England,  they 
should  be  fought  withal. 

Another  source  of  disquiet  to  the  Lord  Lieutenant 
must  have  been  the  constant  rebukes  and  censures 
he  received  from  the  Queen :  we  give  another  letter, 
in  which  he  endeavours  to  soften  her. 


No.  XIII.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

I  perceive  by  your  Maj.  two  last  letters,  there  are  three 
grounds  of  your  displeasure  against  me ;  the  not  displacing 
of  my  Lord  of  Southampton  ;  the  not  sending  the  list  of  the 
officers  and  commanders  ;  and  the  making  of  knights. 

To  the  first  I  plead,  that,  in  the  very  same  hour  in  which 
I  received  a  commandment  signed  by  your  Maj.  to  displace 
my  L.,  I  did  obey  it.  To  the  second,  that  the  treasurer, 
who  might  more  exactly  make  the  certificate  than  myself, 
took  it  upon  him,  and  doth  assure  me  he  hath  long  since  sent 
it  over.  To  the  last,  that  if  I  could  have  found  any  other 
means  to  give  men  of  worth  encouragement  or  reward,  or  by 
any  other  circumstance  could  have  kept  life  and  spirit  in  this 
army,  I  had  been  very  sparing  in  bestowing  this  degree. 
But  except  I  had  more  credit  to  commend  their  suits  into 

1  Hulton  MSS. 


CHAP.  II.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  59 

England,  or  ability  to  reward  their  services  here,  I  must 
either  use  the  liberty  of  your  Maj.  commission  in  that  point, 
or  resolve  to  have  no  men  of  worth  tarry  with  me,  with 
which  I  could  be  well  content  if  I  were  free  from  this  charge, 
which  would  make  you  hear  that  the  governor  of  this  king- 
dom was  quit  by  his  army,  and  no  man  can  tell  what  is  be- 
come of  him,  as  the  governor  of  one  of  your  provinces  was 
too  lately.  As  the  world  is  strangely  altered  with  me,  when 
I  receive  letters  of  such  bitter  style,  so  the  state  and  minds 
of  your  people  are  strangely  altered,  when  your  army,  which 
never  yet  abandoned  the  body  of  any  principal  commander 
being  dead,  doth  now  run  away  from  their  chief  commander 
being  alone  and  in  fight ;  and  that  your  people  had  rather 
be  hanged  for  cowardice,  than  killed  or  hurt  in  service. 
Your  Maj.  may  now  assure  yourself,  you  must  either  make 
peace  with  all  your  enemies,  and  give  satisfaction  to  all  your 
rebels,  or  not  be  known  to  forespeak  and  discountenance  your 
own  actions. 

For  myself,  I  care  not  what  happen  to  myself,  for  if  a 
kerne  kill  me  not,  sickness  will ;  but  for  your  Maj.,  I  sigh  to 
think  when  you  shall  be  safe,  when  your  people  neither  have 
confidence  in  any  one  of  your  subjects,  nor  in  themselves. 
Whosoever  hath  most  of  your  favour,  I  will  most  deserve  it. 
No  man  shall  do  you  that  service,  nor  no  man  bears  in  his 
heart  that  working  affection  that  you  might  have  found  in 
your  Maj.  humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

In  July  and  August  there  were  serious  alarms  in 
England  that  Spain  projected  another  invasion ; 
and  a  fleet  and  armament  were  collected  in  the 
Downs  under  the  Earl  of  Nottingham,  Lord  Mount- 
joy,  Lord  Thomas  Howard,  and  Sir  Walter  Ralegh. 
The  fear  only  lasted  a  month,  but,  as  Sir  Robert 


60  LIVES   OF   THE  EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 

Cecyll  justly  observed  to  Sir  Henry  Neville,  he 
preferred  the  ways  of  safety  before  the  matter  of 
charge  ;  and,  therefore,  although  he  did  not  give 
credit  to  the  report,  he  prepared  against  it.  Camden 
asserts  that  the  real  object  of  this  armament  was 
to  prevent  the  Earl  of  Essex  from  bringing  over 
his  army  to  drive  his  enemies  from  Court.  Poor 
Essex !  he  had  errors  enough  to  answer  for  without 
being  falsely  charged ;  there  was  not  an  atom  of 
truth  in  this  assertion  of  Camden. 

One  of  his  officers  being  desirous  to  offer  his 
services,  Essex  gave  him  the  following  letter  re- 
commending him  to  the  Queen. 

No.  XIV.1 

Essex  to  the  Queen. 

That  any  man  should  leave  purgatory  to  go  to  paradise, 
is  not  strange.  This  gentleman  hath  carried  himself  very 
well  in  his  service  here,  and  is  now  desirous,  upon  the  alarum 
of  attempts  there,  to  render  his  service  there.  None  is  ban- 
ished from  the  happiness  of  your  presence,  and  barred  of 
striking  a  stroke  for  your  defence,  but  your  Majesty's  ser- 
vant, whose  faith  and  sorrow  shall  have  eternal  being, 

ESSEX. 

In  the  beginning  of  September,  Mr.  Cuffe,  secre- 
tary to  the  Earl  of  Essex,  arrived,  having  been 
despatched  by  him  with  letters  to  England,  when  he 
proceeded  on  his  Northern  journey,  which  the  Queen 
answered  in  the  following  letter. 

1  Hulton  MSS. 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  61 

No.  XV.1 

Elizabeth  to  Essex. 

Right  trusty  and  well  beloved  cousin,  and  trusty  and  well 
beloved,  we  greet  you  well.  —  Having  sufficiently  declared 
unto  you  before  this   time,  how  little  the  manner  of  your 
proceedings  hath  answered  with  our  direction,  or  the  world's 
expectation ;   and  finding  now  by  your  letters  by  Cuffe,  a 
course   more  strange,   if  strange  may  be,  we  are  doubtful 
what  to  prescribe  you  at  any  time,  or  what  to  build  upon 
your  writing  to  us  in  anything,   for  we  have  clearly  dis- 
cerned of  late,  what  you  have  ever  to  this  hour  possessed 
us  with — expectation  that  you  would  proceed  as  we  have 
directed  you ;  but  your  actions  always  shew  the  contrary, 
though  carried   in   such   sort,  as  we  were  sure  to  have  no 
time   to   countermand   them.      Before   your   departure,   no 
man's  counsel   was   held   sound,  which  persuaded   not  pre- 
sently the  main  prosecution  in  Ulster,  all  was  nothing  with- 
out that,  and  nothing  was  too  much  for  that.     This  drew  on 
the  sudden  transportation  of  so  many  thousands  to  be  carried 
over  with  you,  and  when  you  arrived,  we  were  charged  with 
more  than  the  list,  on  which  we  resolved,  by  the  number  of 
300  horsemen  above  the  thousand,  which  was  assented  to, 
which  were  only  to  be  in  pay  during  service  in  Ulster ;  we 
have  been  also  put  in  charge  ever  since  the  first  journey,  the 
pretence  of  which  voyage  appeared,  by  your  letters,  was  to 
do  some  present  service  in  the  interim,  while  that  grew  more 
commodious  for  the  main  execution  ;  for  which  purpose,  you 
did  importune  with  great  earnestness,   that  all   manner  of 
provisions  might  be  hastened  to  Dublin  against  your  return  ; 
of  this  resolution  to  defer  your  going  into  Ulster,  you  may 
well  think  that  we  would  have  made  stay,  if  you  had  given 
us  more  time  by  warning,  or  if  we  could  have  imagined,  by 

1  Fynes  Moryson,  Itinerary,  39. 


62  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  II. 

the  contents  of  your  own  writings,  that  you  would  have  spent 
nine  weeks  abroad ;  and  your  return,  when  the  third  part  of 
July  was  past,  and  that  you  had  understood  our  mislike  of 
your  former  course,  and  made  your  excuse  of  undertaking  it 
only  in  respect  of  your  conformity  to  the  council's  opinions, 
with  great  protestations  of  haste  to  the  north.  Then  we  re- 
ceived another  letter  of  new  reasons,  to  suspend  that  journey 
yet  awhile,  and  to  draw  the  army  into  Ophaly,  the  fruit 
whereof,  at  your  home  coming,  was  nothing  else  but  new 
relations  of  such  miseries  of  our  army,  and  greater  difficulties 
to  perform  the  Ulster  wars.  Then  followed  from  you  and 
the  council,  a  new  demand  of  2000  men,  to  which,  if  we 
would  assent,  you  could  speedily  undertake  what  we  had  so 
often  commanded;  when  it  was  granted,  and  your  going 
onward  promised  by  divers  letters,  we  received  by  this 
bearer  new  fresh  advertisements,  that  all  you  can  do  is  to  go 
to  the  frontiers,  and  that  you  have  provided  only  twenty  days 
victuals.  In  which  kind  of  proceeding  we  must  deal  plainly 
with  you  and  that  council,  that  it  were  more  proper  for 
them  to  leave  troubling  themselves  with  instructing  us,  by 
what  rules  our  power  and  their  obedience  are  limited ;  and 
bethink  them  of  the  courses  that  have  been  only  derived  from 
their  counsel ;  and  how  to  answer  this  part  of  theirs,  to  train 
us  into  a  new  expense  for  one  end,  and  to  employ  it  for 
another,  to  which  we  never  would  have  assented,  if  we  could 
have  suspected  it  should  have  been  undertaken  before  we 
heard  it  was  in  action ;  and,  therefore,  we  do  wonder  how  it 
can  be  answered,  seeing  your  attempt  is  not  in  the  capital 
traitor's  country,  that  you  have  increased  our  list.  But  it  is 
true,  and  we  have  often  said  it,  we  were  ever  won  to  expense 
by  little  and  little,  and  by  representations  of  great  resolutions 
in  generalities,  till  they  came  to  particular  execution ;  of  all 
which  courses,  whoever  shall  examine  any  of  your  arguments 
used  for  excuse,  shall  find  that  your  own  proceedings  beget 
your  difficulties,  and  that  no  just  causes  do  breed  the  alter- 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  63 

ations  of  lack  of  numbers.  If  sickness  of  the  army  be  the 
reason,  why  was  not  the  action  undertaken  when  the  army 
was  in  better  state  ?  if  winter's  approach,  why  were  the 
summer  months  of  July  and  August  lost  ?  if  the  spring  were 
too  soon,  and  the  summer  that  followed  otherwise  spent  ?  if 
the  harvest  that  succeeded  were  so  neglected,  as  nothing  hath 
been  done,  then  surely  we  must  conclude  that  none  of  the 
four  quarters  of  the  year  will  be  in  season  for  you  and  that 
council  to  agree  of  Tyrone's  prosecution,  for  which  all  our 
charge  is  intended.  Further,  we  require  you  to  consider 
whether  we  have  not  great  cause  to  think  that  your  purpose 
is  not  to  end  the  war,  when  yourself  have  often  told  us,  that 
all  the  petty  undertakings  in  Leix,  Munster,  and  Connaught 
are  but  loss  of  time,  consumption  of  treasure,  and,  most  of  all, 
our  people,  until  Tyrone  himself  be  first  beaten,  on  whom 
all  the  rest  depend :  do  not  you  see  that  if  this  course  be  in 
all  parts,  by  his  sinister  seconding  all  places,  where  any  at- 
tempts be  offered,  that  it  is  like  to  spend  us  and  our  kingdom 
beyond  all  moderation,  as  well  as  the  report  of  their  success  in 
all  parts  hath  blemished  our  honour,  and  encouraged  others 
to  no  small  presumption :  we  know  you  cannot  so  much  fail  in 
judgment,  as  not  to  understand  that  all  the  world  seeth  how 
time  is  delayed,  though  you  think  that  the  allowance  of  your 

council : how  often  have  you  told  us  that  others  that 

preceded  you  had  no  judgment  to  end  the  war,  who  often 
resolved  us,  until  Lough  Foyle  and  Bealsliman  were  planted, 
there  could  be  no  hope  of  doing  service  on  the  capital  rebels ; 
we  must  therefore  let  you  know,  as  it  cannot  be  ignorance, 
so  it  cannot  be  want  of  means ;  for  you  had  your  asking,  you 
had  choice  of  times,  you  had  power  and  authority  more  ample 
than  ever  any  had,  or  ever  shall  have ;  it  may  well  be  judged 
with  how  little  contentment  we  seek  this  and  other  errors, 
but  how  should  that  be  hid  which  is  so  palpable. 

And  therefore,  to  leave  that  which  is  past,  and  that  you 
may  be  prepared  to  remedy  matters  hereafter,  rather  than  to 


64  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 

fill  your  paper  with  impertinent  arguments  being  in  your 
general  letters,  savoring  still  in  many  points  of  humors  that 
concern  the  private  of  you  our  Lord  Lieutenant,  we  do  tell 
you  plainly,  and  you  that  are  of  our  council,  that  we  wonder 
at  your  indiscretion  to  subscribe  to  letters  which  concern  our 
public  service,  when  they  are  mixed  with  many  matters 
private  and  directed  to  our  council  table,  which  is  not  wont 
to  handle  things  of  so  small  importance. 

To  conclude,  if  you  say  that  our  army,  being  in  list  19,000, 
that  you  have  them  not,  we  answer  then  to  you  our  treasurer, 
that  we  are  evil  served,  and  that  there  needs  not  so  frequent 
demands  of  full  pay :  if  you  will  say  that  the  muster-master 
is  to  blame,  we  much  muse  then  why  he  is  not  punished. 
We  say  to  you  our  General,  if  we  would  ex  jure  proprio  judi- 
care,  that  all  defects  by  musters,  yea,  though  never  in  so  re- 
mote garrisons  have  been  affirmed  to  us,  to  deserve  to  be 
imputed  to  the  General ;  for  the  small  proportion  you  say  you 
carry  with  you,  of  3500  foot,  when  lately  we  augmented 
you  2000  more,  it  is  past  comprehension,  except  it  be  that 
you  have  left  too  great  numbers  in  unnecessary  garrisons, 
which  do  increase  our  charge,  and  diminish  our  army ;  which 
we  command  you  to  reform,  especially  since,  by  your  con- 
tinual report  of  the  state  of  every  province,  you  describe 
them  all  to  be  in  worse  conditions  than  ever  they  were  before 
you  put  foot  in  that  kingdom. 

Then  desiring  to  be  informed  how  the  rest  of  the 
year  is  to  be  passed,  and  how  the  army  is  to  be  dis- 
posed, the  letter  concludes  with  the  following  reference 
to  the  opinion  of  the  principal  officers  given  on  the 
21st  August:  — 

We  have  seen  a  writing,  in  manner  of  a  catalogue,  full  of 
challenges,  that  are  impertinent,  and  of  comparisons  that  are 
needless,  such  as  hath  not  been  before  this  time  presented  to 


CHAP.  II.  EGBERT,  -EARL   OF    ESSEX.  65 

a  state,  except  it  be  done  more  with  the  hope  to  terrify  all 
men  from  censuring  your  proceedings ;  had  it  not  been 
enough  to  send  us  the  testimony  of  the  council,  but  that  you 
must  call  so  many  of  those  that  are  of  ,so  slender  judgment, 
and  none  of  our  council,  to  such  a  form  of  subscription ; 
surely,  howsoever  you  may  have  warranted  them,  we  doubted 
not  but  to  let  them  know  what  belongs  to  us,  to  you,  and  to 
them.  And  thus  expecting  your  answer,  we  end  at  our 
manor  of  Nonsuch,  the  14th  Sept.  1599. 

Ireland  was  then,  as  now,  the  great  difficulty  of  the 
English  Government,  and  but  little  known ;  the  very 
letter  of  Essex  on  the  state  of  the  country,  which 
we  have  already  given,  shows  how  ignorant  he  was 
previous  to  his  going  over,  his  former  opinions  being 
now  brought  up  as  witnesses  against  him.  With 
regard  to  the  delay  of  the  Ulster  journey,  no  doubt 
it  was  impracticable  at  his  first  arrival,  and  that 
the  advice  of  the  Council  which  he  followed,  and 
which  they  subsequently  disowned,  was  perfectly 
good.  Had  it  not  been  so,  Mount] oy,  with  this  ex- 
ample before  his  eyes,  would  scarcely  have  acted  as 
he  did  the  next  year,  when  he  followed  the  footsteps 
of  Essex  so  exactly  that  he  went  into  Munster  first, 
and  did  not  attempt  Ulster  until  the  end  of  May. 

That  journey  into  Munster  filled  advantageously  the 
interval  before  marching  against  Tyrone,  and  afforded 
an  opportunity  of  exercising,  disciplining,  and  accus- 
toming to  field  service,  the  raw  recruits  of  which  a 
very  large  proportion  of  the  army  was  composed. 

There  is  another  consideration, — how  far  blame  is 
due  to  the  Queen,  for  sending  on  a  service  which  she 


& 

VOL.  II.  F 


66  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

and  her  Council  well  knew  required  the  greatest 
patience  and  perseverance  on  the  part  of  its  head, 
one  so  impetuous  and  hasty  as  the  Earl  of  Essex. 
As  it  was  not  his  fault  that  he  was  chosen,  so  we 
cannot  blame  him  for  not  having  put  on  a  new  nature. 
Whatever  opinion  may  be  formed  of  the  policy  of  such 
an  appointment,  there  can  be  but  one  respecting  his 
subsequent '  treatment ;  never  had  General  less  fair 
play  shown  him ;  almost  from  the  hour  of  his  landing 
in  Ireland,  the  royal  despatches  were  filled  with  re- 
proaches, that  the  rebels  were  not  already  vanquished. 
I  now  proceed  to  relate  the  crowning  act  of  this 
campaign. 

The  Lord  Lieutenant  had  notified  in  his  letters  sent 
by  Cuife,  that  the  troops  were  so  unwilling  to  go  into 
Ulster  that  many  of  them  deserted,  many  feigned 
sickness,  and  therefore  he  could  not  muster  more 
than  4000  men  ;  that  Tyrone  had  at  least  6000  well 
entrenched  and  supported  by  bogs  and  woods ;  that 
the  Connaught  army  being  defeated,  no  plantation 
could  be  made  at  Lough  Foyle,  nor  any  conclusive 
result  be  expected  from  a  campaign  against  Tyrone. 
It  was  therefore  resolved  that  with  what  force  he  had, 
and  provisions  for  twenty  days,  he  should  make  a 
demonstration  on  the  borders  of  Ulster. 

He  collected  for  this  purpose  a  force  of  between 
3500  and  4000  foot,  and  500  horse,  which  were 
directed  to  rendezvous  between  Navan  and  the  Kells, 
and  on  the  28th  August  left  Dublin  with  an  escort 
of  100  horse,  for  Ardbracken,  a  house  belonging  to 
the  Bishop  of  Meath,  situated  between  those  two 
Lowns. 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  67 

From  Dublin  he  wrote  a  short  note  to  the  Council 
announcing  his  departure,  and  from  Ardbracken  an- 
other to  the  Lords,  and  one  to  the  Queen.  The  latter 
is  touching,  from  the  depth  of  wretchedness  and 
despair  which  seems  to  have  filled  the  writer's  mind. 

No.  XVI.  * 

Essex  to  the  Council. 

My  Lords, — I  am  even  now  putting  my  foot  into  the  stir- 
rup to  go  to  the  rendezvous  at  the  Navan  ;  and  from  thence  I 
will  draw  the  army  as  far,  and  to  do  as  much,  as  duty  will 
warrant  me,  and  God  enable  me. 

And  so  commending  your  LL.  to  God's  best  protection,  I 
rest  at  your  LL.  commandment, 

Dublin,  the  28th  of  August.  ESSEX. 

No.  XVII.2 
Essex  to  the  Council. 

My  Lords,  —  I  do  send  by  this  bearer  a  list  of  the  army  I 
carry  into  the  field,  as  also  of  all  the  rest  of  Her  Maj.  forces 
in  the  kingdom,  and  of  the  offices  set  down  in  both  the 
establishments.  I  have  also  sent  such  letters  as  are  come  to 
my  hands,  of  the  successes  of  Her  Maj.  troops  in  several 
quarters.  If  in  all  particulars  my  despatches  do  not  satisfy 
Her  Maj.  and  your  LL.,  I  must  pray  your  LL.  to  consider 
what  small  assistance  I  have,  how  infinite  my  cares  must  be, 
and  how  little  should  be  expected  from  a  man  that  hath  no 
constant  health,  and  no  comfort  from  thence. 

I  have  dismissed  the  poor  marshal,  maimed,  fit  now  to 
serve  Her  Maj.  with  his  prayers,  his  limbs  being  gone,  and  his 
service  in  council  forbidden  by  Her  Maj.  I  have  with  me 

1  S.  P.  O.  2  Ibid. 

F  2 


68  LIVES   OF    THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  II. 

none  fit  to  succeed  him,  but  must  myself  do  his  office  and 

mine  own. 

The  charge  of  Leinster  in  mine  absence  I  have  committed 
to  my  Lord°of  Ormonde,  who  might  have  had  more  men  of 
me,  if  he  had  not  thought  the  army  too  weak  which  I  go 

withal. 

I  hear  even  now  that  Tyrone  is  coming  into  the  Brenny, 
and  hath  sent  for  all  that  he  can  make  in  the  world,  bragging 
that  he  will  do  wonders.  But  if  he  have  as  much  courage 
as  he  pretendeth,  we  will  on  one  side  or  the  other  end  the 
war.1  I  commend  your  good  LL.  to  God's  best  protection 
and  rest. 

Ardbracken,  the  30th  August.  ESSEX. 

No.  XVIII.2 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

From  a  mind  delighting  in  sorrow;  from  spirits  wasted 
with  travail,  care,  and  grief;  from  a  heart  torn  in  pieces 
with  passion  ;  from  a  man  that  hates  himself  and  all  things 
that  keep  him  alive,  what  service  can  your  Maj.  reap? 
Since  my  services  past  deserve  no  more  than  banishment 
and  proscription  into  the  most  cursed  of  all  countries,  with 
what  expectation  or  to  what  end  shall  I  live  longer  ?  No, 
no,  the  rebel's  pride  and  successes  must  give  me  means  to 
ransom  myself,  my  soul  I  mean,  out  of  this  hateful  prison 
of  my  body.  And  if  it  happen  so,  your  Maj.  may  believe 
that  you  shall  not  have  cause  to  mislike  the  fashion  of  my 
death,  though  the  course  of  my  life  could  not  please  you. 
From  your  Maj.  exiled  servant, 

Ardbracken,  the  30th  August.  ESSEX. 

1  There  is  a  marginal  note  in  Cecyll's  handwriting  to  this  sentence  : 
—  "  Here  was  no  sign  of  a  parley  toward." 
8  Hulton  MSS. 


CHAP.  II.  EGBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  69 

The  whole  of  the  troops  did  not  come  in  till  the 
31st,  and  he  was  then  compelled  to  wait  another 
day  for  the  provisions  from  Drogheda.  This  interval 
was  passed  by  the  Lord  Lieutenant  in  examining  the 
Lord  Dunsany's  country.  Having  commenced  his 
march  on  the  2nd  September,  he  encamped  on  the 
3rd  at  Ardoif,  from  whence,  at  a  distance  of  a  mile 
and  a  half,  Tyrone's  camp  was  visible,  a  river  and  a 
wood  lying  between  the  two  armies.  500  foot  and 
two  troops  of  horse  were  sent  out  to  protect  the 
parties  cutting  wood  for  fire  and  huts,  which  was 
only  to  be  procured  in  the  wood  lying  between  them 
and  Tyrone  :  some  skirmishing  occurred  between 
the  parties,  without  hurt  on  either  side.  The  next 
day  Essex  marched  through  the  plain  to  the  mill  of 
Louth ;  Tyrone  marching  through  the  woods  on  his 
flank,  and  encamping  in  the  next  wood,  the  outposts 
being  in  sight  of  each  other.  Here  a  council  of  war 
was  held,  which  protested  against  Essex's  proposal 
to  attempt  an  attack  on  Tyrone,  his  army  being 
both  more  numerous  and  advantageously  posted. 
On  the  5th  September,  Henry  Hagan,  a  man  much 
favoured  and  trusted  by  Tyrone,  came  to  desire,  on 
his  master's  part,  a  parley  with  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
which  was  refused ;  but  Essex  told  him  that  he 
should  be  the  next  morning  on  the  hill,  and  if  Tyrone 
desired  to  speak  with  him  he  should  find  him  at  the 
head  of  the  troops. 

The  next  morning  Essex  having  left  a  guard  over 
the  camp  and  baggage,  drew  up  on  the  first  hill  he 
came  to  in  order  of  battle ;  then  marched  to  another 

F    3 


70  LIVES    OF   THE    EAKLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

hill,  on  which  a  body  of  Tyrone's  horse  was  posted, 
which  retired  at  his  approach.  He  continued  there 
till  three  o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  during  which  time 
T3^rone's  foot  never  showed  outside  the  wood :  there 
was  some  skirmishing  between  the  horse,  in  which  the 
only  hurt  on  the  English  side  was  to  a  French  gen- 
tleman in  the  service  of  the  Earl  of  Southampton. 

After  this  skirmish,  one  of  Tyrone's  horsemen 
called  to  one  of  ours,  and  delivered  a  message  from 
his  master, — that  Tyrone  would  not  fight,  nor  draw 
out  of  the  wood,  but  desired  to  speak  with  the  Lord 
Lieutenant,  but  not  between  the  two  armies,  on  which 
the  English  returned  to  their  camp,  leaving  a  garri- 
son of  500  men  under  Sir  Christopher  St.  Lawrence  in 
a  fort  at  "Ne wrath. 

The  next  morning  the  army  dislodged,  and  marched 
to  Drumconragh ;  but  before  they  had  marched  a 
mile,  Henry  Hagan  came  again  to  the  Lord  Lieu- 
tenant, and  in  the  presence  of  the  Earl  of  South- 
ampton, Sir  George  Bourchier1,  Sir  "Warham  St. 
Leger2,  and  others,  delivered  a  message  to  the  fol- 
lowing effect, — that  Tyrone  desired  Her  Majesty's 
mercy,  and  that  the  Lord  Lieutenant  would  hear 
him,  which  if  his  Lordship  would  agree  to,  he  would 
gallop  round  and  meet  his  Lordship  at  the  ford  of 
Bellaclinthe,  in  the  river  Lagan.  On  this,  two  gen- 

1  Third  son  of  John  Bourchier,  second  Earl  of  Bath. 

2  Second  son  of  Sir  Anthony  St.  Leger,  Deputy  of  Ireland  in  Henry 
VIII.'s  reign;  he  served  with  distinction  in  Ireland;  in  January,  1600, 
meeting  a  body  of  rebels  under  Maguire,  chief  of  Fermanagh,  near  Cork, 
the  two  leaders  entered  into  single  combat,  and  both  were  slain.     Sir 
Warham  was  ancestor  to  A.  B.  St.  Leger,  Esq. 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX,  7 1 

tlemen  were  sent  with  Hagan  to  view  the  place. 
There  they  found  Tyrone,  but  the  water  so  much 
out  that  they  thought  it  an  unfit  place  to  speak  in  : 
on  which  Tyrone  exclaimed,  u  Then  I  shall  despair 
ever  to  speak  with  him ; "  but  knowing  the  ford,  he 
rode  in  up  to  his  horse's  belly,  where  the  Earl, 
standing  on  the  other  bank,  might  hear  him.  Then 
the  Earl  came  down,  and  seeing  Tyrone  alone,  left 
his  escort  at  a  distance,  and  conversed  with  him  for 
half  an  hour,  after  which  they  returned  to  their 
camps. 

A  second  meeting  took  place,  when  six  principal 
men  of  each  side  accompanied  their  chiefs.  Those 
who  went  with  Essex  were  the  Earl  of  Southampton, 
Sir  George  Bourchier,  Sir  Warham  St.  Leger,  Sir 
Henry  Davis,  Sir  Edward  Wingfield,  and  Sir  William 
Constable.  Tyrone  and  his  companions  stood  in  the 
water  up  to  their  horses'  bellies,  while  the  Lord  Lieu- 
tenant with  his  party  kept  the  hard  ground.  Tyrone 
spoke  a  good  while  bareheaded,  saluting  with  much 
respect  those  who  came  with  the  Lord  Lieutenant. 
After  half  an  hour's  conference  it  was  agreed  that 
commissioners  from  both  sides  should  meet  the  next 
morning.  The  Earl  of  Essex  sent  Sir  Warham  St. 
Leger,  Sir  William  Constable,  Sir  William  Warren, 
and  his  secretary,  Henry  Wotton.  By  them  a  truce 
was  concluded  for  six  weeks,  to  continue  from  six 
weeks  to  six  weeks,  until  May-day,  and  not  to  be 
broken  without  fourteen  days  notice  on  either  side. 
Tyrone  also  agreed  that  such  of  his  confederates  as 
would  not  agree  to  this  truce  should  not  be  assisted 

F    4 


72  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  II. 

by  him  against  the  Lord  Lieutenant ;  that  restitution 
of  all  spoils  should  be  made  within  twenty  days  after 
notice  given ;  and  that,  for  the  performance  of  this 
covenant,  Essex  should  pledge  his  word,  Tyrone  his 
oath. 

This  being  concluded,  on  the  9th  September  Essex 
dispersed  his  army,  and  went  himself  to  Drogheda 
to  take  physic :  Tyrone  retired  into  the  heart  of  his 
country. 

Had  Essex  agreed  to  this  cessation  of  arms  during 
the  summer,  when,  according  to  the  Queen's  expect- 
ations and  his  own  expressed  intention,  he  should 
have  marched  against  Tyrone,  we  should  have  been 
ready  to  exclaim,  Oh,  vain  and  impotent  conclusion  ; 
but  it  is  not  at  all  clear  that  at  this  time,  when  the 
expedition  was  professedly  but  a  demonstration,  it 
was  not  politic  to  make  this  truce,  and  preserve  the 
borders  of  the  Pale  from  inroad  during  the  winter. 
But  to  effect  this  result  it  was  unquestionably  ne- 
cessary that  he  should  have  remained  at  his  post. 
We  shall  not,  therefore,  learn  with  any  surprise 
that,  shortly  after  his  return  to  England,  Tyrone 
again  broke  out  into  open  rebellion. 

Essex  now  received  that  letter  of  the  14th  Sep- 
tember from  the  Queen,  from  which  some  extracts 
have  been  given :  his  despatch,  enclosing  a  journal 
of  the  expedition  into  Tyrone's  country,  from  which 
this  account  is  taken,  reached  the  Queen  by  the 
hands  of  Captain  Lawson  on  the  16th.  The  very 
next  day  the  Captain  was  sent  back  with  an  answer, 
of  which  the  most  important  portions  follow. 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  73 

No.  XIX.1 
The  Queen  to  Essex. 

Eight  trusty  and  right  well  beloved  counsellor,  we  greet 
you  well.  By  the  letter  and  the  journal  which  we  have 
received  from  you,  we  see  a  quick  end  made  of  a  slow 
proceeding,  for  any  thing  which  our  forces  shall  undertake 
in  those  quarters,  which  you  pretended  to  visit,  and  therefore 
doubt  not  but  that  before  this  time  you  have  ended  the 
charge  of  the  last  two  thousand  which  we  yielded  for  other 
purposes,  and  of  the  three  hundred  more  destined  only  for 
Ulster  service. 

It  remaineth,  therefore,  that  we  return  you  somewhat  of 
our  conceits  upon  this  late  accident  of  your  interview  with 
the  rebels.  We  never  doubted  but  that  Tyrone,  whensoever 
he  saw  any  force  approach  either  himself  or  any  of  his 
principal  partisans,  would  instantly  offer  a  parley,  specially 
with  our  supreme  general  of  that  kingdom,  having  often 
done  it  with  those  of  subaltern  authority  ;  always  seeking 
these  cessations  with  like  words,  like  protestations,  and  upon 
such  contingents  as  we  gather  these  will  prove,  by  your 
advertisement  of  his  purpose  to  go  consult  with  O'Donnell. 

And,  therefore,  to  come  to  some  answer  for  the  present. 
It  appeareth  by  your  journal  that  you  and  the  traitor  spoke 
half  an  hour  together  without  any  body's  hearing ;  wherein, 
though  we  that  trust  you  with  our  kingdom  are  far  from 
mistrusting  you  with  a  traitor,  yet  both  for  comeliness, 
example,  and  your  own  discharge,  we  marvel  you  would 
carry  it  no  better ;  especially  having  in  all  things  since  your 
arrival  been  so  precise  to  have  good  testimony  for  your 
actions,  as  whenever  any  thing  was  to  be  done  to  which  our 
commandment  tied  you,  it  seemed  sufficient  warrant  for  you 
if  your  fellow  councillors  allowed  better  of  other  ways, 

1  Cott.  MSS.  Titus  B.  xiii.  544. 


74  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  II. 

though  your  own  reason  carried  you  to  have  pursued  our 
directions  against  their  opinions;  to  whose  conduct,  if  we 
had  meant  that  Ireland,  after  all  the  calamities  in  which 
they  have  wrapped  it,  should  still  have  been  abandoned,  then 
it  was  very  superfluous  to  have  sent  over  such  a  personage  as 

yourself. 

You  have  dealt  so  sparingly  with  us  in  the  substance, 
by  advertising  us,  at  first,  of  the  half  hour's  conference 
only,  but  not  what  passed  on  either  side  by  letting  us  also 
know  you  sent  commissioners,  without  shewing  us  what 
they  had  in  charge,  as  we  cannot  tell,  but  by  divination, 
what  to  think  may  be  the  issue  of  this  proceeding.  Only 
this  we  are  assured  of,  that  you  have  prospered  so  ill  for  us 
by  your  warfare,  as  we  cannot  but  be  very  jealous  lest  you 
should  be  as  well  overtaken  by  the  treaty.  If  this  parley 
shall  not  produce  such  a  conclusion  as  this  intolerable  charge 
may  receive  present  and  large  abatement,  then  hath  the 
management  of  our  forces  not  only  proved  dishonourable 
and  wasteful,  but  that  which  followeth  is  like  to  prove 
perilous  and  contemptible.  Consider  then  what  is  like  to 
be  the  end,  and  what  will  be  fit  to  build  on. 

To  trust  this  traitor  upon  oath  is  to  trust  a  devil  upon 
his  religion.  To  trust  him  upon  pledges  is  a  mere  illusory; 
for  what  piety  is  there  among  them  that  can  tie  them  to 
rule  of  honesty  for  itself,  who  are  only  bound  to  their  own 
sensualities,  and  respect  only  private  utility. 

And,  therefore,  whatever  order  you  take  with  him, 
yet  unless  he  yield  to  have  garrisons  planted  in  his  own 
country  to  master  him  —  to  deliver  O'Neale's  sons,  whereof 
the  detaining  is  most  dishonourable  —  and  to  come  over  to 
us  personally  here,  we  shall  doubt  you  do  but  piece  up  a 
hollow  peace,  and  so  the  end  prove  worse  than  the  beginning. 
And,  therefore,  as  we  do  well  approve  your  own  voluntary 
profession,  wherein  you  assure  us  you  will  conclude  nothing 


CHAP.  II.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  75 

till  you  have  advertized  us,  and  heard  our  pleasure,  so  do 
we  absolutely  command  you  to  continue  and  perform  that 
resolution.  —  Pass  not  your  word  for  his  pardon,  nor  make 
any  absolute  contract  for  his  conditions,  till  you  do  par- 
ticularly advertize  us  by  writing,  and  receive  our  pleasure 
hereafter  for  your  further  warrant  and  authority  in  that 
behalf. 

Given   under   our  signet  at  Nonsuch,   the    17th   day  of 
September,  1599,  in  the  forty-first  year  of  our  reign. 


76  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  III. 


CHAPTEK  III. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX — continued. 

ARRIVAL   OF   ESSEX  AT   NONSUCH,  ON  THE  MORNING  OF  MICHAELMAS 
EVE. HIS  RECEPTION    BY    THE    QUEEN HE     IS    COMMITTED    TO 

THE  LORD  KEEPER'S  CUSTODY  AT  YORK  HOUSE.  —  THE   QUEEN 

EXASPERATED.  HIS    SUBMISSIVE   LETTERS.  HE   FALLS   ILL. 

LADY  ESSEX'S  GRIEF.  —  POPULAR  FEELING  IN  HIS  FAVOUR. — 

THE  QUEEN  ORDERS  A  CONSULTATION  OF  PHYSICIANS.  —  SHE 
VISITS  HIM,  BUT  REFUSES  HIS  NEW  YEAR'S  GIFT. HE  IS  RE- 
MOVED TO  ESSEX  HOUSE.  —  LADY  ESSEX  ALLOWED  TO  VISIT 

HIM    IN    THE   DAY. — HIS    OCCUPATIONS. HE     IS     SENT     BEFORE 

AN    IRREGULAR  COURT    AT   YORK   HOUSE. PROCEEDINGS  THERE. 

HIS     BEHAVIOUR. THE     CENSURE. HE     IS     RELEASED,     BUT 

ORDERED   NOT    TO   APPROACH    THE   PRESENCE. 

WHEN  the  Queen  wrote  the  letter,  with  which  the 
last  chapter  closes,  she  was  not  aware  that  the  truce 
had  been  concluded,  and  therefore  was  ignorant  of 
the  terms  of  it.  Whether  her  displeasure  at  his 
proceedings,  so  far  as  she  knew  them,  led  him  to 
resolve  on  going  over  in  person,  that  he  might  excuse 
himself;  or  whether  any  report  brought  him  by 
Cuffe,  who  was  the  bearer  of  Elizabeth's  letter  of  the 
14th,  induced  him  to  form  that  resolution  ;  or  whether 
the  truce  itself  was  so  hastily  concluded  to  enable 
him  to  leave  the  country,  seems  problematical.  The 
only  thing  we  are  certain  of  is,  that  the  moment  he 
received  the  letter  of  the  17th,  he  determined  to  go, 
and  assuredly  lost  no  time  ;  for  on  the  24th  he  swore 


CHAP.  III.  EGBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  77 

in  Adam  Loftus,  Archbishop  of  Dublin,  and  Sir 
George  Carew,  as  Lords  Justices ;  appointed  the 
Earl  of  Ormonde  to  command  the  army,  instantly 
embarked,  and  arrived  at  London  on  the  morning  of 
the  28th  September. 

Coming  post  to  Westminster,  he  crossed  in  a 
boat  to  Lambeth,  where  he  took  such  horses  as  he 
found  waiting  for  their  owners.  Sir  Thomas  Gerrard, 
whose  horses  were  coming  over  in  the  ferry  boat, 
shortly  overtook  him,  and  learning  that  Lord  Grey 
de  Wilton  was  in  front,  rode  on  and  told  him  that 
the  Earl  of  Essex  was  a  little  behind,  if  he  would 
speak  with  him.  "  No,"  said  Lord  Grey,  "  I  have 
"  business  at  Court."  "  Then,  I  pray  you,"  rejoined 
Sir  Thomas,  "  let  my  Lord  of  Essex  ride  before, 
"  that  he  may  bring  the  first  news  of  his  return 
"  himself.'7  "  Doth  he  desire  it  ?"  'asked  Lord  Grey. 
"  No,"  answered  Sir  Thomas,  "  nor  will  he,  I  think, 
"  ask  anything  at  your  hands."  "  Then,"  said  his 
Lordship,  "  I  have  business  ; "  and  with  that  rode  on 
harder  than  before,  and  arriving  a  quarter  of  an  hour 
before  the  Earl,  went  up  to  Sir  Robert  Cecyll's  room 
and  acquainted  him  with  it,  but  no  other  person 
knew  of  his  approach.  The  account  of  his  reception 
by  the  Queen  is  given  very  fully  by  Mr.  Rowland 
White.1 

"  On  Michaelmas  eve,  about  ten  o'clock  in  the 
"  morning,  my  Lord  of  Essex  lighted  at  court  gate  in 
"  post,  and  made  all  haste  up  to  the  presence,  and  so  to 

1  Sidney  Mem.  "  R.  W.  to  Sir  Robert  Sidney,  from  Nonsuch,  Michael- 
mas day  at  noon." 


78  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  III. 

"  the  privy  chamber,  and  staid  not  till  he  came  to  the 
"  Queen's  bed-chamber,  where  he  found  the  Queen 
"  newly  up,  the  hair  about  her  face  ;  he  kneeled  unto 
"  her,  kissed  her  hands,  and  had  some  private  speech 
"  with  her,  which  seemed  to  give  him  great  con- 
"  tentment;  for,  coming  from  Her  Majesty  to  go  shift 
"  himself  in  his  chamber,  he  was  very  pleasant,  and 
"  thanked  God,  though  he  had  suffered  much  trouble 
"  and  storms  abroad,  he  found  a  sweet  calm  at  home. 
"  'Tis  much  wondered  at  here  that  he  went  so  boldly 
"  to  Her  Majesty's  presence,  she  not  being  ready,  and 
"he  so  full  of  dirt  and  mire  that  his  very  face  was 
"  full  of  it.  About  eleven  he  was  ready,  and  went 
"  up  again  to  the  Queen,  and  conferred  with  her  till 
"  half  an  hour  after  twelve.  As  yet  all  was  well,  and 
"  her  usage  very  gracious  towards  him.  He  went  to 
"  dinner,  and  during  all  that  time  discoursed  merely 
"  of  his  travels  and  journies  in  Ireland,  of  the  good- 
"  ness  of  the  country,  the  civilities  of  the  nobility  that 
"  are  true  subjects,  of  the  great  entertainment  he  had 
"  in  their  houses,  of  the  good  order  he  found  there. 
"  He  was  visited  frankly  by  all  sorts  here,  of  Lords 
u  and  Ladies  and  Gentlemen  ;  only  strangeness  is  ob- 
"  served  between  him  and  Mr.  Secretary,  and  that 
"  party.  As  he  was  going  from  dinner  he  spied  me, 
"  and  very  honourably  took  me  by  the  hand  ;  very 
"  kindly  taking  me  apart,  he  demanded  of  me  how 
"  your  Lordship  did,  and  when  I  heard  from  you. 
"  I  answered,  that  you  were  well,  but  that  you  had 
"  suffered  much  here.  He  desired  me  to  com- 
"  mend  him  very  heartily  unto  you.  Then  he  went 


CHAP.  in.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  79 

"  up  to  the  Queen,  but  found  her  much  changed  in 
"  that  small  time,  for  she  began  to  call  him  in 
"  question  for  his  return,  and  was  not  satisfied  in  the 
"  manner  of  his  coining  away,  and  leaving  all  things 
"  at  so  great  hazard.  She  appointed  the  Lords  to 
"  hear  him,  and  so  they  went  to  Council  in  the 
"  afternoon ;  Lord  Chamberlain,  Lord  North,  Mr. 
"  Secretary,  and  Mr.  Comptroller ;  and  he  went  with 
"  them,  where  they  sat  an  hour.  But  nothing  was 
"  determined,  or  yet  known.  Belike  it  is  referred  to 
"  a  full  council,  for  all  the  Lords  are  sent  for  to  be 
"  here  this  day.  It  is  mistrusted  that,  for  his  dis- 
"  obedience,  he  shall  be  committed  ;  but  that  will 
"  be  seen  either  this  day  or  to-morrow. 

"  The  manner  of  his  departure  was  thus.  An 
"  hour  before  he  came  away  he  called  the  Council  at 
"  Dublin  before  him,  and  acquainted  them  with  his 
"  resolution  ;  committed  the  sword  to  the  Lord  Chan- 
"  cellor  and  the  Treasurer,  and  the  command  of  the 
"  army  to  the  Earl  of  Ormonde.  There  are  come 
"  over  with  him  the  most  part  of  his  household,  and 
"  a  great  number  of  Captains  and  Gentlemen.  My 
"  Lord  Southampton,  my  Lord  Dunkellin1,  and  others 
"  are  at  London,  but  not  come  hither  yet." 

That  night,  between  ten  and  eleven,  the  Earl  re- 
ceived the  Queen's  command  to  keep  his  chamber. 

The  next  day,  the  Council  sat  in  the  forenoon,  and 
continued  till  two  o'clock,  when  Mr.  Smith  was  sent 
to  bring  the  Earl  of  Essex.  When  he  came,  the 

1  Son  of  the  Earl  of  Clanrickarde ;  he  succeeded  his  father,  1602. 

9 


80  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  III. 

Lords  rose  and  saluted  him,  and  then  reseated  them- 
selves, Essex  standing  uncovered  at  the  head  of  the 
table. 

His  examination  was  so  privately  conducted,  that 
even  the  clerks  were  excluded,  and  it  lasted  till  five 
o'clock,  when  Essex  returned  to  his  apartments,  and 
the  Council  proceeded  to  the  Queen  to  report  their 
proceedings. 

She  replied  that  she  would  pause  and  consider  his 
answers. 

The  temper,  gravity,  and  discretion  with  which 
the  Earl  was  reported  to  have  replied  to  the  matters 
laid  to  his  charge,  could  not  be  surpassed.  The 
charges  were,  that  he  had  contemptuously  disobeyed 
Her  Majesty's  will  and  letters  by  returning ;  that  he 
had  written  presumptuous  letters  from  Ireland ;  that 
his  proceedings  there  were  contrary  to  those  pre- 
viously resolved  on ;  his  rash  manner  of  coming 
away;  his  overbold  going  to  Her  Majesty's  bed- 
chamber ;  his  making  so  many  idle  knights. 

The  Court  divided  openly  into  two  parties  ;  the 
Earls  of  Shrewsbury  and  Nottingham,  the  Lords 
Thomas  Howard,  Cobham,  and  Grey,  Sir  Walter 
Ralegh,  and  Sir  Greorge  Carew,  went  to  dinner  with 
Sir  Robert  Cecyll ;  while  Essex  was  accompanied  by 
the  Earls  of  Worcester1  and  Rutland,  Lords  Mount- 
joy,  Rich,  Henry  Howard,  Lumley,  Sir  Edward  Dier, 

1  Edward  Somerset,  fourth  Earl,  born,  1555;  he  succeeded  Essex  as 
Master  of  the  Horse ;  married  Elizabeth,  daughter  of  Fras.  Earl  of  Hun- 
tingdon ;  and  died,  1627.  Charles  Howard,  Lord  Effingham,  was  the 
eldest  son  of  the  Earl  of  Nottingham. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  81 

Mr.  Comptroller,  and  many  knights.  Lord  Effingham 
was  often  with  him,  professing  friendship.  Lord 
Henry  Howard,  however,  was  held  "  a  ranter,  and  not 
"  to  be  trusted ;"  and  R.  White  cautions  Sir  R. 
Sidney  against  him. 

On  the  1st  October,  the  Queen  committed  Essex  to 
the  custody  of  the  Lord  Keeper ;  and  he  removed  to 
York  House 1,  none  of  his  friends  being  permitted  to 
accompany  him. 

Sir  Robert  Cecyll  had  written  to  Sir  Henry  Neville 
on  the  18th  September,  that  he  conceived  affairs  in 
Ireland  would  soon  draw  to  a  conclusion,  and  that 
Essex  would  be  recalled ;  for  if  peace  followed,  he  need 
not  remain,  and,  for  a  winter  war,  so  great  a  general 
need  not.2  On  the  8th  October  he  again  wrote,  that 
the  manner  of  the  Earl's  coming  before  the  Queen 
knew  of  his  intention,  displeased  her  much ;  for,  not 
two  months  before,  when  the  Spanish  alarm  was  very 
hot,  Her  Majesty  doubting  that  his  desire  might 
bring  him  over,  whereby  the  service  he  was  on  might 
be  prejudiced,  wrote  to  him,  absolutely  commanding 
him  not  to  come  over  till  he  had  her  warrant  for  his 
return.  Notwithstanding  which  order,  on  finding  his 
agreement  with  Tyrone  was  not  likely  to  be  well  re- 
ceived by  her,  he  had  done  so.  His  "  sour  relation," 

1  Built  by  the  Archbishop  of  York,  1557,  but  inhabited  during  this 
and  the  following  reign  by  the  Lords  Keepers ;  subsequently  by  the  Duke 
of  Buckingham  ;  by  the  last  of  whom,  of  the  Villiers  family,  it  was  sold. 
The  purchasers  pulled  it  down,  and  built  on  the  site,  the  streets  called 
George,  "Villiers,  Duke,  Buckingham  Streets,  and  Of  Alley. — See  Hand- 
book of  London. 

2  Winwood,  i.  105, 

VOL.  II.  G 


82  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  III. 

added  to  the  breach  of  her  orders,  had  so  exasperated 
her,  that  she  had  committed  him  to  the  Lord  Keeper's 
custody;  "  a  matter  which  must  have  an  end,  and 
"  will  have  shortly ;  though,  for  example's  sake,  Her 
"  Majesty  hath  kept  this  form  with  him."1 

Mr.  Eowland  White,  having  received  from  Sir  Robert 
Sidney  an  assurance  that  he  would  burn -his  letters, 
which  fortunately  was  not  kept,  he  promised  to  leave 
no  circumstances  unwritten  concerning  my  Lord  of 
Essex's  disgrace :  from  his  letters2,  therefore,  we  shall 
continue  the  narrative. 

3rd  October.  —  My  Lord  of  Essex  in  durance  at  York 
House,  only  attended  on  by  Wiseman  and  another.  A  house 
is  kept  at  Essex  House,  for  my  Lord  and  Lady  Southamp- 
ton, and  the  family. 

6th  October,  Saturday  at  night. — On  Friday,  the  Lord 
Keeper,  Lord  Treasurer,  and  Mr.  Secretary  were  with  my 
L.  of  Essex,  from  eight  in  the  morning  till  near  eleven. 
What  is  truly  handled  against  him  is  not  known,  but  to 
them  who  gravely  and  wisely  govern  here  under  Her  Majesty. 
My  Lady  Walsingham,  —  I  mean  the  old  lady,  —  made 
humble  suit  to  Her  Majesty,  that  she  would  be  pleased  to 
give  the  Earl  leave  to  write  to  his  Lady,  who  was  newly 
delivered ;  Lady  Essex  was  brought  to  bed  of  a  daughter,  on 
the  30th  September,  and  extremely  troubled  that  she  neither 
saw  him  nor  heard  from  him ;  but  at  first  it  was  not  granted, 
neither  do  I  know  if  it  be  yet  or  no :  this  shews  Her  Ma- 
jesty's heart  is  hardened  towards  him.  It  is  said  he  is  very 
ill,  and  troubled  with  a  flux.  No  man  goes  to  him,  nor  he 
desirous  to  see  any." 

He  did  not  omit,  by  submissive  letters,  of  which 

1  Wimvood,  i.  118.  *  Sidney  Mem.  vol.  ii. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  83 

the  following  is  apparently  the  first,  to  endeavour  to 
appease  the  Queen. 

No.  XX.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Receive,  I  humbly  beseech  your  Maj.,  the  unfeigned  sub- 
mission of  the  saddest  soul  on  earth.  I  have  offended  in  pre- 
sumption, for  which  my  humble  soul  doth  sigh,  sorrow, 
languish,  and  wish  to  die.  I  have  offended  a  sovereign  whose 
displeasure  is  a  heavier  weight  upon  me  than  if  all  the 
earth  besides  did  overwhelm  me.  To  redeem  this  offence, 
and  recover  your  Maj.'s  gracious  favour,  I  would  do,  I  pro- 
test, whatsoever  is  possible  for  flesh  and  blood ;  and  for  proof 
of  my  true  sorrow,  if  your  Maj.  do  not  speedily  receive  me, 
I  hope  you  shall  see  the  strong  effects  of  your  disfavour  in 
the  death  and  destiny  of  your  Maj.'s  humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

He  had  been  desired  to  state  the  condition  in 
which  he  left  Ireland,  which  he  did  in  the  following 
paper2;  which,  with  the  answers  he  gave  on  his 
examination,  were  so  satisfactory  to  the  Council,  and 
through  their  report,  to  the  Queen,  that  his  release 
was  daily  expected.  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  told  him  he 
was  glad  to  see  that  the  Queen  was  well  pleased 
with  his  conduct ;  and  that  he  would  do  any  thing 
to  further  his  good  and  contentment,  for  which  my 
Lord  thanked  him. 

1  Hulton  MSS. 

2  This  paper  is  in  the  handwriting  of  Lord  Essex,  and  is  endorsed  by 
Sir  R.  Cecyll,  "20  Sept.  1599.     A  relation  of  the  manner  of  govern- 
ment of  the  kingdom  of  Ireland  as  the  Earl  of  Essex  left  it,  and  hath  now 
delivered  it  under  his  own  hand." 

G  2 


84  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  III. 

I  left  with  the  Justices,  as  also  with  the  Earl  of  Ormonde, 
order  to  keep  this  cessation  precisely,  and  yet  to  stand  upon 
their  guard  in  every  quarter,  and  in  this  cessation  to  see  all  Her 
Maj.  forts  and  garrisons  victualled  for  six  months,  they  being 
most  of  them  victualled  for  a  good  time  already,  and  they 
having  means  left  for  the  present  supply  to  that  proportion 
expressed.  The  authority  of  the  Justices  is  expressed  in  the 
commission,  whereof  I  here  send  a  copy.  It  was  drawn  by 
Sir  K.  Napper  and  Sir.  A.  St.  Leger,  according  to  the  very 
words  of  the  warrant.  The  authority  of  the  Earl  of  Ormonde 
is  the  same  that  was  before  my  going  into  Ireland,  though  he 
have  no  new  commission ;  but  as  while  I  was  present  he  was 
mv  Lieut.  General,  so  now  he  commands  the  wars  in  chief. 

I  used  in  the  treaty  with  Tyrone,  Sir  W.  St.  Leger,  who 
is  now  sent  into  Munster ;  Sir  Wm.  Warren,  whom  I  sent 
to  Tyrone  at  my  corning  away,  the  copy  of  whose  instruc- 
tions is  among  my  papers,  and  the  original  was  shewed  to 
the  Justices ;  Sir  Wm.  Constable  and  H.  Wotton  my  secre- 
tary, who  both  are  come  over  with  me ;  and  H.  Wotton  hath 
both  the  articles  of  cessation  signed  by  Tyrone,  and  the  in- 
structions I  gave  to  them,  and  is  best  able  to  deliver  all  circum- 
stances, the  whole  business  being  chiefly  left  to  Sir  Warham 
St.  Leger  and  him.  The  conditions  demanded  by  Tyrone 
I  was  fain  to  give  my  word  that  I  would  only  verbally  de- 
liver, it  being  so  required  of  him  before  he  would  open  his 
heart ;  his  fear  being  that  they  should  be  sent  into  Spain, 
as  he  saith  the  letter  with  which  he  trusted  Sir  John  Norreys 
was.  I  already  told  Her  Maj.  and  the  Lords  where  the  knot 
is,  which  being  loosed  he  hath  protested  that  all  the  rest 
shall  follow.  But  with  those  that  have  heretofore  dealt  with 
him,  he  protested  he  would  not  deal  in  this  free  manner,  nor 
by  his  will  in  any  sort  whatsoever,  since  he  had  no  confi- 
dence that  they  could  procure  him  that  which  only  would 
satisfy  him,  or  performance  of  all  that  was  agreed  on. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  85 

The  chief  commander  in  Connaught  is  Sir  Arthur  Savage, 
in  Munster  Sir  H.  Poore,  in  Ulster  Sir  Sam.  Bagenall,  in 
Leinster  Sir  Oliver  Lambart,  but  all  whom  account  to  the 
Earl  of  Ormonde,  and  to  use  the  advice  of  such  Colonels  and 
principal  Captains  as  were  their  assistants  in  their  several 
charges. 

The  government  of  Connaught  I  have  assigned  to  Sir  H. 
Docwra,  but  would  not  place  him  in  it,  but  brought  him  over 
to  be  confirmed  or  otherwise  bestowed  as  shall  please  Her 
Maj.  Munster  is  governed  by  a  commission  to  the  principal 
Council,  to  which  I  added  Sir  Warham  St.  Leger ;  anong  my 
papers  there  are  copies  of  all  those  directions. 

To  make  a  more  full  declaration  of  all  things  without  help 
of  my  papers  I  am  not  able,  being  in  that  state  of  body  that 
this  which  I  have  written  is  painfully  set  down.  But  I 
promised  to  send  over  daily  advises  and  directions  as  soon  as 
I  had  spoken  with  Her  Maj.  and  the  LL.,  and  to  give  direc- 
tions also  and  comfort  to  such  of  the  Irishry  as  were  principal 
instruments  for  Her  Maj.  in  that  kingdom,  and  to  return  with 
all  expedition.  If  only  by  my  coming  away  and  Tyrone's 
perfidiousness  any  disaster  had  happened,  I  would  have 
recovered  it,  or  have  lost  my  life :  for  I  have  a  party  there 
for  Her  Maj.  besides  her  army.  But  now,  when  they  shall 
hear  of  my  present  state,  and  shall  see  no  ne\v  hopeful 
course  taken,  I  fear  that  giddy  people  will  run  to  all 
mischief. 

Rowland  White  writes  on  the  llth  October :  — 

The  Ladies  Southampton  and  Rich  were  at  Essex  House, 
but  are  gone  to  the  country  to  shun  the  company  that  daily 
were  wont  to  visit  them  in  town,  because  it  gave  offence  to  the 
Court.  His  very  servants  are  afraid  to  meet  in  any  place  to 
make  merry,  lest  it  might  be  ill  taken.  At  the  Court,  my  Lady 

G  3 


86  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  III. 

Scrope1  is  only  noted  to  stand  firm  to  him;  she  endures 
much  at  Her  Majesty's  hands,  because  she  doth  daily  do  all 
the  kind  offices  of  love  to  the  Queen  in  his  behalf.  She 
wears  all  black,  she  mourns  and  is  pensive,  and  joys  in 
nothing  but  in  a  solitary  being  alone.  And  'tis  thought,  she 
says  much  that  few  would  venture  to  say  but  herself.  My 
Lord  Southampton  and  my  Lord  Rutland  came  not  to  the 
Court ;  the  one  doth  but  very  seldom ;  they  pass  away  the 
time  in  London  merely  by  going  to  plays  every  day. 

16th  October. —  Sir  Christopher  St.  Lawrence  at  an  ordi- 
nary took  a  cup,  and  drank  to  the  health  of  my  Lord  of 
Essex,  and  confusion  to  his  enemies :  he  was  called  in  ques- 
tion for  it  before  my  Lord  Treasurer,  where  he  did  not  deny 
his  words,  but  did  justify  them,  if  any  enemy  of  my  Lord 
Essex  did  find  fault  with  him. 

There  was  a  muttering  of  unkindness  between  the  Earl 
and  Countess  of  Northumberland,  on  which  they  are  parted  ; 
she  came  late  last  night  to  Essex  House.  My  Lady  Essex's 
daughter  was  christened  by  the  Earl  of  Southampton,  the 
Lady  Cumberland,  and  Lady  Rutland,  without  much  cere- 
mony. 

The  speedy  release  of  the  Earl  was  now  antici- 
pated, when  a  letter  came  from  Tyrone  to  him, 
expressing  surprise  at  his  sudden  departure  from 
Ireland,  and  saying  that  he  could  riot  get  his  con- 
federates to  observe  the  truce.  The  Council  also 
reported  that  peace  was  not  likely  to  be  of  long 
continuance.  Essex  refused  to  receive  any  letters 
from  Ireland,  which  were  therefore  delivered  to  the 
Queen.  This  intimation  roused  afresh  her  subsiding 


1  Philadelphia   Gary,   daughter   of  Henry,    Lord   Hunsdon,   wife   of 
Thomas,  Lord  Scrope  of  Bolton. 


CHAP.  III.  EGBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  87 

anger,  and  she  asked  if  there  were  not  good  reason 
for  committing  the  Earl.  She  informed  Lord  Mount- 
joy  of  her  intention  to  send  him  to  Ireland,  from 
which  he  endeavoured  to  excuse  himself. 

On  the  21st  October  the  Council  recommended  the 
Queen  to  enlarge  the  Earl,  his  reasons  for  his  pro- 
ceedings in  Ireland  being  so  good1,  and  his  submission 
to  Her  Majesty  for  his  offence  in  returning  so  humble  : 
she  angrily  replied  that  such  a  contempt  ought  to  be 
publicly  punished.  An  attempt  was  made  to  re- 
concile Cecyll  to  Essex  :  the  former  expressed  unwil- 
lingness, saying  there  was  no  constancy  in  the  Earl's 
love,  and  he  was  too  violent  in  his  passions :  that  if 
he  became  a  suitor  to  the  Queen  for  the  repairing  his 
estate,  and  was  denied,  he  would  be  jealous  of  him, 
Cecyll,  who  indeed  would  not  move  the  Queen  in 
such  a  cause.  He  said  also  that  he  had  seen  Essex's 
letters  to  the  Queen,  and  heard  of  his  language,  full 


1  The  Irish  Council  endeavoured,  by  a  paltry  quibble,  to  clear  them- 
selves of  the  charge  of  having  advised  the  first  proceedings  of  Essex  in 
Ireland.  "  It  appeareth,"  they  write,  "in  one  clause  of  Her  Majesty's 
letter,  that  Her  Majesty  hath  been  informed  that  the  Lord  Lieutenant's 
journey  into  Munster  grew  by  our  consent  and  advice,  contrary  to  his 
Lordship's  own  proposition  and  desire  ;  whereby  a  great  part  of  the 
summer  was  lost,  and  the  flower  of  the  army  so  tired,  as  it  was  accounted 
honor  enough  to  bring  them  back  again  ;  for  our  parts  we  were  utterly 
ignorant  of  his  Lordship's  purpose  to  go  into  Munster,  the  same  being  not 
so  much  as  once  spoken  of  in  council,  nor  any  of  our  advices  or  consents 
demanded.  Though  in  this  matter  we  could  write  more  liberally  in  our 
own  defence,  yet  we  hope  his  Lordship  will  do  us  the  right  to  purge  us,  to 
whom  our  clearness  is  best  known,  and  upon  that  confidence  we  have 
been  thus  long  silent,  awaiting  still  that  his  Lordship  would  free  us  from 
all  imputation  that  way."  It  will  be  recollected  that  they  had  advised  a 
ourney  into  Leinster,  and,  because  Munster  was  not  named,  now  en- 
deavoured to  ignore  the  whole  proceeding. 

a  4 


88  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  III. 

of  unfriendly  expressions  towards  him,  but  he  would 
show  no  malice. 

kth  November. — Yesterday,  the  Earl  being  in  great  extre- 
mity, Her  Majesty  gave  Mr.  Comptroller  and  Dr.  Brown1 
leave  to  go  to  him,  and  this  day  Sir  John  Fortescue  is  per- 
mitted :  he  is  infinitely  troubled  with  the  Irish  looseness. 
Some  lightning  of  grace  and  favor  appears  in  Her  Majesty 
towards  him,  for,  besides  her  yesterday's  favor,  she  is  pleased 
he  shall  have  the  liberty  of  the  garden ;  but  Sir  Walter 
Ralegh  is  fallen  sick  upon  it. 

Leave  is  granted  to  the  Ladies  Northumberland  and  Rich 
to  come  to  Court  to  be  suitors  for  him.  The  French  ambas- 
sador had  instructions  to  deal  with  the  Queen  for  the  Earl's 
liberty,  but  he  found  her  very  short  and  bitter  on  that  point. 

Sir  Robert  Cecyll  either  is  married,  or  to  be  married, 
which  the  Queen  is  offended  withal,  affirming  he  promised 
never  to  marry ;  but  he  denies  it,  and  says  he  only  promised 
to  forbear  it  three  years. 

My  Lady  of  Essex  is  a  most  sorrowful  creature  for  her 
husband's  captivity ;  she  wears  all  black  of  the  meanest 
price,  and  receives  no  comfort  in  any  thing. 

29th  November.  —  On  Sunday,  in  the  afternoon,  the 
Countess  of  Essex  came  to  Court  all  in  black ;  all  she  wore 
was  not  valued  at  51.  She  came  to  the  Countess  of  Hun- 
tingdon's chamber,  who  came  not  to  her ;  but  by  a  second 
means  her  desire  was  made  known,  that  she  would  move  Her 
Majesty  to  give  her  leave  to  go  see  the  Earl  of  Essex,  who  she 
heard  the  night  before  had  been  in  great  extremity.  Answer 
was  returned,  she  must  attend  Her  Majesty's  pleasure  by  the 
Lords  of  the  Council,  and  come  no  more  to  court.  The 
Earl  of  Essex  is  extreme  ill  of  the  stone,  stranguillon,  and 

1  Dr.  Brown  was  the  Queen's  physician,  whom  Essex  had  desired  to 
see  some  ten  days  before,  when  the  Queen  refused  to  permit  the  visit. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  89 

grinding  of  the  kidneys,  which  takes  from  him  his  stomach 
and  rest." 

Sir  John  Harrington,  the  Queen's  godson,  returned 
from  Ireland  about  this  time:  the  Queen  was  very 
angry  with  him,  accusing  him  of  having  gone  for 
his  knighthood.1  Her  fury  was  spent  on  all  who 
had  accompanied  the  Earl :  Sir  John  has  given 
us  an  account  of  his  reception.  He  had  been  de- 
sired to  keep  a  journal  in  Ireland.  "  On  coining 
"  into  the  presence,  she  chafed  much,  walked  fastly 
"  to  and  fro,  looked  with  discomposure  in  her 
"  visage,  and,  I  remember,  catched  at  my  girdle 
"  when  I  kneeled  to  her,  and  swore,  by  God's  son 
"  I  am  no  Queen.  That  man  is  above  me.  Who 
"  gave  him  command  to  come  here  so  soon.  I  did 
"  send  him  on  other  business."  She  then  bid  Har- 
rington go  home ;  he  "  did  not  stay  to  be  bidden 
"  twice.  If  all  the  Irish  rebels  had  been  at  my 
"  heels,  I  should  not  have  made  better  speed."2 
After  reading  the  journal  she  swore  they  were  all 
idle  knaves,  and  the  Lord  Deputy  worse. 

The  storms  raised  in  the  royal  atmosphere  by  the 
name  of  Essex,  and  the  sight  of  any  of  his  com- 
panions, were  probably  aggravated  by  what  took  place 
without.  Not  only  did  the  popular  voice  speak 
loudly  in  his  favour,  but  the  severity  of  the  Queen 
was  blamed ;  the  clergy  from  the  pulpit  preached 
in  his  vindication,  and  even  prayed  for  him  by  name  ; 
pamphlets  were  published,  papers  were  found  on  the 

1  He  was  one  of  the  knights  made  by  Essex  in  Ireland. 

2  Nug.  Ant.  i.  357. 


90  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  III. 

walls,  and  scattered  about  the  chambers  of  the  palace, 
lauding  him,  and  libelling  his  supposed  enemies. 

This  was  the  reason  the  Council  urged  the  Queen 
to  end  the  persecution,  for,  from  the  manner  in  which 
Essex  was  treated,  it  can  be  called  by  no  other 
name;  this  was  the  reason  that  she  obstinately  re- 
fused to  listen  to  a  word  in  his  behalf. 

In  order  to  put  an  end  to  the  public  demonstrations 
in  his  favour,  a  court  of  Star  Chamber  was  held  on 
the  29th  November,  at  which,  after  a  public  decla- 
ration of  the  cause  of  the  Earl's  imprisonment,  and 
a  recapitulation  of  his  alleged  offences,  it  was  com- 
manded that  none  should  busy  themselves  with  affairs 
of  state  which  did  not  concern  them.  And  if  any 
person  should  thereafter  know  the  authors  of  any 
libels,  and  not  reveal  the  same,  they  should  incur 
the  like  penalties  with  the  authors  themselves.  Our 
authority  says  that  the  Lords  "  spoke  so  softly,  and 
"  the  throng  and  press  were  so  mighty,"  that  he  could 
not  hear  what  they  all  said. 

A  slight  amelioration  in  his  treatment  followed 
soon  afterwards,  for  we  find  on  the  13th  December, 
that  — 

My  Lady  of  Essex  had  leave  yesterday  to  go  to  him,  and  so 
she  did,  but  found  him  so  weak,  as,  when  he  was  removed 
out  of  his  bed,  he  was  laid  on  sheets,  his  own  strength  being 
decayed  and  gone,  little  hope  there  is  of  his  recovery.  The 
Earl  of  Essex  received  again  the  communion  on  Sunday; 
sent  unto  Her  Majesty  his  two  patents  of  the  Horse  and  the 
Ordnance,  which  Her  Majesty  sent  back  again ;  that  of  the 
Marshal  he  keeps,  and  will  during  his  life. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  91 

I5t/i  December.  —  On  Thursday  last,  by  Her  Majesty's 
command,  hearing  that  the  Earl  of  Essex  was  desperately 
sick,  eight  physicians  of  the  best  experience  assembled,  and 
consulted  what  might  speedily  recover  him  to  health,  who 
sent  in  writing  their  opinion  to  Her  Majesty, — that  salus 
magis  optanda  quam  speranda  fuit ;  that  these  three  things 
were  required :  to  have  his  mind  quieted,  that  he  might  take 
rest,  that  he  might  have  recreation,  that  he  might  change  the 
air;  for  they  found  his  liver  stopped  and  perished,  his  en- 
trails and  guts  exulcerated,  that  they  could  not  tell  what 
now  to  minister  but  gentle  glysters  to  keep  him  clean 
within. 

This  report  seems  to  have  awakened  a  spark  of  her 
old  tenderness,  for  the  letter  goes  on  to  state — 

Her  Majesty,  very  graciously  understanding  the  state 
he  was  in,  was  very  pensive  and  grieved,  and  sent  Dr.  James 
unto  him  with  some  broth.  Her  message  was,  that  he 
should  comfort  himself,  and  that  she  would,  if  she  might 
with  her  honor,  visit  him ;  and  it  was  noticed  she  had 
water  in  her  eyes  when  she  spoke  it.  Some  comfort  is 
brought  to  the  Earl,  but  it  is  feared  and  thought  that 
it  comes  very  late,  for  nature  is  decayed,  and  he  is  so 
feeble,  that  to  make  his  bed  he  is  removed  on  sheets  and 
blankets.  This  afternoon  a  general  opinion  is  that  he 
cannot  live  many  days,  for  he  begins  to  swell,  and  he  scours 
all  black  matter,  as  if  the  strength  of  nature  were  quite  gone. 

Mr.  White  reports  as  he  was  informed ;  but  it  is 
a  very  remarkable  fact,  that  the  Que^n  did  actually 
visit  Essex  at  York  House.  The  authority  is  so 
good,  and  the  report  so  circumstantial,  that  it  cannot 
be  doubted  that  Elizabeth  paid  this  visit  so  secretly 
as  to  be  unknown  to  the  world.  I  can  hardly 


92  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  III. 

suppose  that  any  gentle  feeling  actuated  her;  per- 
haps she  desired  to  be  convinced  that  Essex  really 
was  as  ill  as  represented,  and  hence  the  consultation 
related  by  White. 

No.  XXI.1 

William  Trew  to  his  Wife  at  Chartley. 

My  G.  S.  M.,  —  I  did  write  to  you  by  Edward  Master- 
gent  of  Utceter,  since  when  we  have  lived  here  in  doubtful 
expectation,  having  a  good  day  and  a  bad.  Upon  Monday 
and  Tuesday  last,  the  rumour  was  all  over  that  my  Lord  was 
gone  to  the  Tower,  amongst  those  which  ken  not ;  and 
amongst  us  that  he  should  go  that  day.  It  was  so  lamented 
generally,  as  I  never  saw  the  like.  Upon  Tuesday  at  night 
there  was  a  letter  found  upon  a  pair  of  stairs  in  the  Court, 
directed  to  Her  Majesty,  for  the  safety  of  Her  Majesty  and 
her  estate ;  this  letter  she  had  and  read,  being  two  sheets  of 
paper,  and  not  acquainting  any  with  the  contents  in  it, 
locked  it  up  in  her  closet.  Thereupon  there  was  a  great 
stir  in  the  Court  that  night,  and  some  of  the  guard  that  gave 
out  they  must  wait  upon  my  Lord  to  the  Tower,  had  their 
coats  plucked  off.  Yesterday  being  Wednesday,  all  went 
well  on  our  side :  at  4  o'clock,  the  Queen,  my  Lady 
Warwick,  and  the  Earl  of  Worcester  went  privately  to 
York  House  to  my  Lord.  What  is  done  this  night  I  know 
not,  but  we  hope  well.  When  the  Sheriffs  were  to  be 
prickt,  my  Lord  Keeper  spoke  for  my  brother  to  be  spared ; 
but  the  Queen  answered  that  she  heard  he  was  an  honest 
man  like  his  father,  and  therefore  was  sorry  she  had  spared 
him  so  long.  My  Lord  Rich  deals  badly  with  me,  but  I 
have  good  words  of  Sir  Gilly  Meyrick  and  Sir  Harry 
Lindley.  Upon  Saturday  the  Ladies  came  to  Essex  House  to 

1  Blithfield  MSS.  Trew  was  son-in-law  to  Mr.  Bagot,  and  was  in 
the  service  of  the  Earl  of  Essex. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL   OY   ESSEX.  93 

lie  there ;  they  are  weary  of  the  country.  Let  nobody  know 
the  news  but  my  brother.  Commend  me  to  all.  Farewell, 
your  loving  husband, 

St.  Andrew's  even,  1599.  WILLIAM  TREW. 

On  the  5th  January,  1600,  Essex  had  sufficiently 
recovered  to  sit  up  and  eat  at  table.  The  Countess 
came  to  him  every  morning  at  seven,  and  staid  till 
six,  to  which  hours  her  access  was  limited  ;  neither 
his  son,  his  sisters,  nor  Lady  Walsingham  were  yet 
allowed  to  see  him. 

He  sent  a  rich  new  year's  gift  to  the  Queen,  which 
was  not  accepted.  Lady  Rich,  who  was  warmly 
attached  to  her  brother,  and  of  a  high  and  resolute 
spirit,  never  ceased  to  importune  the  Queen  for  leave 
to  visit  him.  Her  letters  1  were  read,  her  presents 
accepted,  but  no  leave  granted.  Lady  Leicester  sent 
the  Queen  a  rich  new  year's  gift,  which  was  very 
well  received. 

In  February,  Essex  was  to  have  been  brought 
before  the  Star  Chamber :  this  was  prevented  by  Sir 
Robert  Cecyll's  means,  who  prevailed  on  Essex  to  write 
a  letter  of  submission  to  the  Queen.  All  his  friends 
were  now  again  in  daily  expectation  of  his  release ; 
when  somebody  telling  her  that  it  was  reported  the 
Star  Chamber  proceedings  were  stopped,  because  they 
could  prove  no  offence  against  the  Earl,  which  was 
probably  the  true  reason,  she  became  again  furious, 

1  There  Is  one  letter  of  Lady  Ricli  to  the  Queen,  of  such  celebrity  that 
scarcely  any  large  collection  of  MSS.  wants  a  copy.  It  begins,  "  Early 
did  I  hope  this  morning  to  have  had  mine  eyes  blessed  with  your  Majesty's 
beauty."  It  is  printed  in  Birch,  ii.  442. 


94  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  III. 

and  his  liberty  seemed  as  distant  as  ever,  while  Lady 
Essex's  access  to  him  was  limited  from  nine  till  four, 
and  his  son  went  back  to  Eton  without  seeing  his 
"  lord  and  father."  This  petty  tyranny  went  so  far 
that  his  mother,  Lord  Southampton,  and  others  of  his 
friends,  having  gone  into  a  house  that  overlooked 
York  Garden,  that  they  might  salute  him  from  the 
window,  great  offence  was  taken  at  it,  while  Lady 
Kich  was  ordered  to  confine  herself  to  her  house. 
Poor  Lady  Rich  lost  her  lover  also  at  this  moment  ; 
Lord  Mountjoy  started  for  Ireland  in  the  beginning 
of  February. 

Mr.  Chamberlain  gives  a  different  version  :  — 


February,  1600.  —  You  left  us  with  so  fair  weather, 
and  so  confident  an  opinion  that  all  should  go  well  with  my 
Lord  of  Essex,  and  that  we  should  see  him  a  cockhorse  again, 
that  I  know  it  will  be  strange  news  to  you  to  hear,  that  all 
was  but  a  kind  of  dream,  and  a  false  paradise  that  his  friends 
had  feigned  to  themselves,  giving  their  hopes  and  discourses 
liberty  to  outrun  their  wit;  for  the  bright  sunshine  that 
seemed  so  to  dazzle  them  was  indeed  but  a  glimmering  light 
that  was  suddenly  overshadowed  again,  and  the  sky  as  full 
of  clouds  as  before  ;  and  though  they  thought  they  saw  a 
reconciliation  between  him  and  Mr.  Secretary,  whereupon 
they  built  many  idle  fancies  and  liberal  discoursings,  yet 
either  their  eyes  were  not  their  own,  or  else  they  had  false 
spectacles,  that  made  every  thing  that  was  done  seem  more 
than  double,  for  Mr.  Secretary  never  spake  with  him  since 
he  was  committed,  but  only  carried  his  letter  of  submission 
that  kept  him  from  the  Star  Chamber  ;  so  that  my  Lord 
continues  where  he  was,  and,  for  aught  I  hear,  is  like  enough 
to  tarry  there  still.  The  Lady  Kich  hath  been  called  coram 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  95 

again  about  her  letter,  but  she  excused  herself  by  sickness, 
and,  as  the  Scottish  man  says,  did  not  compeare. 

Last  of  February. — My  Lord  of  Essex  hath  been  some- 
what crazy  this  week.  The  Lord  Keeper  was  sent  for 
yesterday  to  the  Court,  whereupon  his  followers  feed  them- 
selves fat  with  hope  in  this  lean  time  of  Lent. 

5th  March. — Babington,  Bishop  of  Worcester,  preaching 
at  Court  on  Sunday  last,  made  many  proffers  and  glances  in 
his  (Essex's)  behalf,  as  he  was  understood  by  the  whole  audi- 
tory, and  by  the  Queen  herself,  who  presently  calling  him  to 
a  reckoning  for  it,  he  flatly  foreswore  that  he  had  any  such 
meaning. 

We  now  return  to  Rowland  White. 

Wth  March. — By  Her  Majesty's  express  command,  Lady 
Leicester,  Lord  and  Lady  Southampton,  Mr.  Greville,  Mr. 
Bacon,  are  all  removed  from  Essex  House ;  and  this  day  my 
Lord  of  Essex  is  looked  for  there,  to  remain  with  two  keepers, 
Sir  Drue  Drury  and  Sir  Richard  Barkely,  and  none  to  come 
to  speak  with  him  but  by  Her  Majesty's  leave.  Whether 
my  Lady  shall  remain  with  him,  or  come  in  daytime  to  him 
as  she  now  doth,  is  not  yet  known. 

On  Maunday  Thursday,  19th  March,  about  eight  o'clock 
at  night,  he  was  removed  to  Essex  House;  Sir  Richard 
Barkely  having  all  the  keys,  and  his  servant  being  porter ; 
nobody  to  be  admitted  without  leave;  and  Lady  Essex  only 
in  the  day.  At  the  end  of  March,  Lady  Leicester  obtained 
leave  to  see  him. 

These  slight  symptoms  of  returning  kindness,  or 
at  least  of  decaying  anger  on  the  part  of  Elizabeth, 
together  with  the  return  of  spirits  with  his  restoration 
to  health,  induced  Essex  once  more  to  try  the  effect 
of  his  pen  in  moving  the  Queen  to  still  greater 
indulgences  ;  he  accordingly  addressed  her  in  one  of 


96  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  III. 

those  exaggerated  and  flattering  epistles  which   so 
gratified  her  vanity. 

No.  XXII.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

That  I  presume  now  again,  most  dear  and  most  admired 
Sovereign,  to  send  mine  humble  letters  unto  your  Majesty, 
these  are  the  true  causes.  The  experience  of  your  Majesty's 
gracious,  princely,  and  divine  nature ;  the  oppression  of 
mine  own  heart-breaking,  soul-fearing,  and  incomparable 
sorrow ;  the  threatening  of  my  obstructed  body  to  fail  me  of 
his  wonted  ability  to  do  your  Majesty  service,  if  it  long  con- 
tinue in  this  course  of  life ;  and  the  warrant  of  mine  own 
conscience,  that  I  neither  prize  nor  desire  life  itself,  or  any 
circumstance  that  belongs  unto  it,  for  other  respect  than  for 
to  expiate  my  former  offences,  to  recover  your  Majesty's 
more  than  most  precious  favor,  and  to  prove  unto  your 
Majesty  that  you  have  revived  a  servant  whose  humble  and 
infinite  affection  cannot  be  matched ;  no,  though  all  the  men 
in  the  world  had  but  one  heart,  or  the  hearts  of  all  men  had 
but  one  affection.  To  mediate  for  me  to  your  Majesty,  I 
neither  have  nor  would  have  any ;  but  to  encourage  me  to 
be  an  unfortunate  petitioner  for  myself,  I  have  a  lady,  a 
nymph,  or  an  angel2,  who,  when  all  the  world  frowns  upon 
me,  cannot  look  with  other  than  gracious  eyes ;  and  who,  as 
she  resembles  your  Majesty  most  of  all  creatures,  so  I  know 
not  by  what  warrant  she  doth  promise  more  grace  from  your 
Majesty  than  I  without  your  own  warrant  dare  promise  to 
myself.  And  therefore,  if  my  importunity  be  presumptuous, 
your  Majesty  sees  out  of  what  root  grows  the  presumption 
of  your  Majesty's  humblest  vassal, 

4th  April,  1600.  ESSEX. 

1  S.  P.  O, 

2  This  evidently  refers  to  some  image  of  the  Queen :  it  may  be  the 
ring  ! 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  97 

On  the  12th  we  find  he  had  a  little  more  liberty  in 
his  own  house,  being  no  longer  closely  attended  by 
Sir  Kichard  Barkely.  Lady  Essex  was  a  suitor  for 
permission  to  live  in  the  house  with  her  husband,  as 
Lady  Walsingham  was  going  to  Barnelms.  He 
often  walked  on  the  leads,  and  in  the  garden  with 
his  wife,  reading  alternately  one  to  the  other.  Lady 
Essex  was  an  accomplished  person,  and  had  a  refined 
taste  in  literature :  her  society  therefore,  during  this 
long  period  of  confinement  and  anxiety,  must  here 
have  afforded  the  greatest  consolation  to  her  hus- 
band ;  not  a  little  increased  by  her  capability  of 
reading  arid  enjoying  with  him  the  works  of  those 
authors  who,  during  his  stirring  and  exciting  career 
of  the  last  few  years,  had  been  neglected  though  not 
forgotten.  On  St.  George's  Day,  Essex  had  leave  to 
celebrate  the  feast  by  himself  at  his  own  house. 

On  the  10th  May,  however,  Lady  Essex's  petition 
had  not  been  granted ;  and  she  had  gone  to  her 
mother  at  Barnelrns,  rather  than  take  a  lodging  near 
Essex  House,  which  might  give  offence  to  the  Queen. 
He  continued,  as  before,  playing  now  and  then  at 
tennis,  and  walking  on  the  leads  and  in  the  garden. 
He  was  much  troubled  also  that,  without  his  sanc- 
tion, somebody  printed  his  apology  about  the  peace, 
which  he  had  written  two  years  before ;  and  he  sent 
to  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  earnestly  request- 
ing him  to  suppress  it.  Of  course  this  was  a  scheme 
of  his  enemies  to  keep  alive  the  Queen's  anger —  Sir 
Walter  Ralegh's,  probably,  who  always  appears  the 
most  active  among  them,  and  who,  as  we  learn 

VOL.  II.  H 


98  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS   OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  III. 

from  R.  White,  always  fell  sick  when  any  new  in- 
dulgence was  granted  to  the  Earl.  Continued  bad 
accounts  of  the  state  of  Ireland  tended  to  irritate 
the  Queen.  His  next  letter  was  probably  intended 
to  appease  her. 

No.  XXIII.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Before  all  letters  written  in  this  hand  he  banished,  or  he 
that  sends  this  enjoin  himself  eternal  silence,  be  pleased,  I 
humbly  beseech  your  Majesty,  to  read  over  these  humble 
lines.  At  sundry  times,  and  by  sundry  messengers,  I  re- 
ceived these  words  as  your  Majesty's  own,  that  you  meant  to 
correct,  and  not  to  ruin ;  since  which  time,  when  I  languished 
in  four  months  sickness,  forfeited  almost  all  that  I  was  able 
to  engage,  felt  the .  very  pangs  of  death  upon  me,  and  saw 
that  poor  reputation,  whatsoever  it  was  that  I  enjoyed 
hitherto,  not  suffered  to  die  with  me,  but  buried,  and  I  alive,  I 
yet  kissed  your  Majesty's  fair  correcting  hand,  and  was  confi- 
dent in  your  royal  word ;  for  I  said  to  myself,  between  my 
ruin  and  my  Sovereign's  favor  there  is  no  mean,  and  if  she 
bestow  favor  again,  she  gives  it  with  all  things  that  in  this 
world  I  either  need  or  desire.  But  now  the  length  of  my 
troubles,  and  the  continuance,  or  rather  increase,  of  your 
Majesty's  indignation,  have  made  all  men  so  afraid  of  me,  as 
mine  own  poor  state  is  not  only  ruined,  but  my  kind  friends 
and  faithful  servants  are  like  to  die  in  prison,  because  I 
cannot  help  myself  with  mine  own.  Now,  I  do  not  only  feel 
the  weight  of  your  Majesty's  indignation,  and  am  subject  to 
their  malicious  insinuations  that  first  envied  me  for  my 
happiness  in  your  favor,  and  now  hate  me  out  of  custom ; 

S.  P.  O.,  a  copy :  as  he  complains  in  this  of  his  letters  being  rejected, 
it  is  very  probable  the  original  was  sent  back  to  him. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  99 

but  as  if  I  were  thrown  into  a  corner  like  a  dead  carcase,  I 
am  gnawed  on  and  torn  by  the  vilest  and  basest  creatures 
upon  earth.  The  prating  tavern  haunter  speaks  of  me  what 
he  lists ;  the  frantic  libeller  writes  of  me  what  he  lists  ;  already 
they  print  me  and  make  me  speak  to  the  world,  and  shortly 
they  will  play  me  in  what  forms  they  list  upon  the  stage. 
The  least  of  these  is  a  thousand  times  worse  than  death. 
But  this  is  not  the  worst  of  my  destiny,  for  your  Majesty 
that  hath  mercy  for  all  the  world  but  me,  that  hath  pro- 
tected from  scorn  and  infamy  all  to  whom  you  ever  avowed 
favor  but  Essex,  and  never  repented  you  of  any  gracious 
assurance  you  had  given  till  now ;  your  Majesty,  I  say,  hath 
now,  in  this  eighth  month  of  my  close  imprisonment,  as  if 
you  thought  mine  infirmities,  beggary,  and  infamy  too  little 
punishment,  rejected  my  letters,  and  refused  to  hear  of 
me,  which  to  traitors  you  never  did.  What  therefore  re- 
maineth  for  me  ?  only  this,  to  beseech  your  Majesty,  on  the 
knees  of  my  heart,  to  conclude  my  punishment,  my  misery, 
and  my  life  all  together,  that  I  may  go  to  my  Saviour,  who 
hath  paid  himself  a  ransom  for  me,  and  whom,  methinks,  I 
still  hear  calling  me  out  of  this  unkind  world,  in  which  I 
have  lived  too  long,  and  ever  thought  myself  too  happy. 
From  your  Majesty's  humblest  vassal, 

12th  May,  1600.  ESSEX. 

During  the  time  of  Essex's  confinement,  the 
Queen  had  frequently  consulted  Francis  Bacon  re- 
specting his  case,  who  had  hitherto  made  many 
efforts  to  persuade  Elizabeth  to  relax  the  severity  of 
her  treatment.  He  endeavoured  to  dissuade  her 
from  the  declaration  in  the  Star  Chamber  in  Novem- 
ber, telling  her  that  the  Earl  possessed  the  pity  of 
the  people,  and  that  such  a  course  would  lead  them 

H    2 


100  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  III.. 

to  say,  that  ray  Lord  was  wounded  in  the  back,  and 
that  Justice  had  her  balance  taken  from  her,  which 
consisted  ever  in  an  accusation  and  defence.  He 
advised  her  to  restore  the  Earl  to  his  former  attend- 
ance. This  advice  was  rejected  ;  but,  after  Easter,  she 
told  Bacon  that  she  found  his  words  were  true  ;  that 
the  proceedings  in  the  Star  Chamber,  instead  of  doing 
good,  had  only  kindled  factious  fruits ;  and  that  she 
was  therefore  determined  now  to  proceed  against 
the  Earl  in  the  Star  Chamber  by  information, 
although  what  she  did  should  not  be  ad  destructionem, 
but  only  ad  castigationem ;  not  to  render  him  unable 
to  serve  her  hereafter.  Here  was  a  dilemma  for 
Bacon.  Was  he  to  take  a  part  against  his  generous 
and  unflinching  friend  and  patron,  who  had  in  mis- 
fortune a  double  claim  to  his  services  ;  or  was  he  by 
refusing  to  forfeit  the  Queen's  favour  and  his  hopes 
of  advancement  ?  A  man,  I  will  not  say  of  high 
principle,  but  a  man  possessing  an  ordinary  sense  of 
the  claims  of  gratitude  and  honour,  would  not  have 
hesitated  an  instant  in  deciding  in  favour  of  the 
unfortunate ;  I  need  scarcely  inform  the  reader 
that  Bacon,  to  his  eternal  shame,  chose  the  other 
course.  It  is  true  he  wrote  a  letter  to  the  Queen, 
asking  her,  if  she  pleased,  to  spare  him  in  my  Lord 
of  Essex's  cause ;  but  he  took  care  to  add,  that,  if 
she  did  not  please,  he  was  ready  to  serve  her. 

On  the  5th  June,  1600,  the  Earl  of  Essex  was 
brought  before  an  unconstitutional  and  novel  tribunal 
at  York  House.  The  Court  was  composed  of  eighteen 
commissioners :  —  the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  the 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  101 

Lord  Keeper  Egerton,  the  Lord  Treasurer  Buck- 
hurst,  the  Lord  Admiral  Nottingham ;  the  Earls  of 
Worcester,  Shrewsbury,  Cumberland,  Huntingdon, 
Derby  ;  Sir  William  Knollys,  Sir  Robert  Cecyll,  Sir 
John  Fortescue  ;  Lords  Chief  Justices  Sir  John  Pop- 
ham,  Sir  Edmund  Anderson ;  Lord  Chief  Baron  Sir 
William  Periam  ;  Justices  Gawdy  and  Walmesley. 

They  sat  from  eight  in  the  morning  till  nearly  nine 
at  night,  in  chairs  at  a  long  table,  the  upper  end  of 
which  was  left  clear  for  the  Earl.  There  was  an 
auditory  of  about  200  persons,  almost  all  men  of 
quality,  but  of  every  kind  and  profession. 

At  the  Earl's  coming  in,  none  of  the  Commissioners 
stirred  cap,  or  gave  any  sign  of  courtesy.  He  knelt 
at  the  upper  end  of  the  table  for  a  long  time,  without 
even  a  cushion  :  at  length  the  Archbishop  moved 
the  other  Commissioners,  and  he  was  allowed  a 
cushion,  but  still  continued  on  his  knees  until  the 
end  of  the  Queen's  Serjeant's  speech,  when  he  was 
permitted  to  stand ;  and  at  a  later  period,  at  the 
instance  of  the  Archbishop,  was  allowed  a  chair. 
He  had  a  bundle  of  papers,  which  he  sometimes  held 
in  his  hand,  sometimes  laid  in  his  hat,  that  was  on 
the  ground  by  him. 

The  Lord  Keeper  having  stated  the  cause  of  their 
assembly,  called  upon  the  Queen's  Serjeant,  Christo- 
pher Yelverton,  to  open  the  information  against  him. 
His  speech  was  a  very  short  one;  declaratory  of  the 
Queen's  care  and  provision  for  Ireland,  and  her 
gracious  dealings  with  the  Earl  before  his  going 
there,  and  especially  now  in  this  mode  of  procedure. 

H    3 


102  -     LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  III. 

He  was  followed  by  Attorney  General  Coke,  who, 
in  a  characteristic  speech,  of  great  insolence  and 
severity,  laid  open  the  substance  of  the  charges.  Of 
these  there  were  five  specially  made  against  the  Earl : 
that  he  had  made  the  Earl  of  Southampton  General 
of  the  Horse,  in  disobedience  to  the  Queen's  expressed 
command ;  that  he  went  into  Leinster  and  Munster, 
instead  of  prosecuting  a  journey  against  Tyrone, 
thereby  wilfully  and  contemptuously  disobeying  the 
Queen ;  that  he  made  so  many  knights ;  that  he 
entered  into  conference  with  Tyrone  on  equal  terms, 
which  was  dishonourable  to  Her  Majesty,  suspicious 
towards  himself,  and  shameful  in  the  conclusion  ;  that 
he  returned  out  of  Ireland,  contrary  to  Her  Majesty's 
express  command,  which  was  also  exceedingly  dan- 
gerous, for  he  left  the  army  in  such  a  state  that,  but 
for  God's  providence,  the  whole  kingdom  had  been 
ruined.  These  accusations  were  heightened  by  the 
free  use  of  the  bitter  expressions  of  which  the 
Attorney  General  was  so  great  a  master.  Nor  did 
he  confine  himself  to  these  points  :  he  considered 
the  letter  of  Lady  Rich  to  the  Queen,  which  he 
characterised  as  insolent,  saucy,  and  malapert,  to 
be  an  aggravation  of  the  offence ;  and  at  the  end  of 
his  speech  declared  that  Essex,  notwithstanding  all 
his  vaunting  letters  and  speeches,  never  intended  to 
fight  Tyrone. 

To  him  succeeded  Solicitor  General  Fleming,  who 
pointed  out  the  unhappy  events  that  had  followed  the 
Earl's  departure ;  by  which  it  appeared  how  little 
good  he  had  done  there  ;  that  the  traitor  was  grown 


CHAP.  HI.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  103 

stronger,  more  confident,  and  more  insolent  than 
before. 

Mr.  Francis  Bacon  concluded  the  accusations. 
After  considering  the  Earl's  journey  into  Ireland,  he 
pressed  two  points  not  spoken  of  before.  The  first 
of  these  was  the  Earl's  letter  to  the  Lord  Keeper  in 
1598  ;  which  letter,  containing  very  bold  and  pre- 
sumptuous passages,  derogatory  to  Her  Majesty,  had 
been  published.  Those  which  he  particularly  insisted 
on  were  these :  "  There  is  no  tempest  to  the  passionate 
"  indignation  of  a  prince,"  as  if  Her  Majesty  were 
devoid  of  reason,  and  carried  away  by  passion  ;  and 
"  Her  Majesty's  heart  was  obdurate,"  by  which  he 
compared  her  to  Pharoah,  which  was  very  odious. 
The  other  point  of  his  accusation  was  the  Earl's 
patronage  of  Hayward's  book  of  Henry  IV.,  he  only 
writing  a  formal  letter  to  the  Archbishop,  coldly 
desiring  him  to  call  in  the  book  after  it  had  been 
published  a  week. 

All  the  Lords  admired  the  carriage  of  the  Earl, 
who  showed  no  emotion  at  any  thing  said  against 
him,  but  heard  all  with  patience ;  and  when  the 
Counsel  had  finished,  he  began  to  speak,  kneeling,  to 
this  effect,  using  great  discretion  and  mildness.  "  That 
"  ever  since  the  Queen  had  changed  the  course  of  pro- 
"  ceeding  against  him,  he  had  resolved  to  give  up  all 
"  attempt  to  justify  himself,  but  to  acknowledge,  with 
"  grief  and  contrition,  whatever  faults  of  error,  negli- 
"  gence,  or  rashness,  it  pleased  Her  Majesty  to  impute 
"  to  him."  This  first  part  of  his  speech  being  uttered 
with  great  passion,  and  very  well  and  forcibly  ex- 

H    4 


104  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS   OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  III. 

pressed,  drew  tears  from  part  of  the  audience,  who 
lamented  to  see  the  minion  of  Fortune  reduced  to  so 
great  misery  and  humiliation. 

The  Attorney  General  having  however  charged 
him  with  disloyalty  in  the  expression  he  used,  Eegina 
vidit,  consul  vidit,  senatus  vidit,  hie  tamen  vivit  he  said 
that  he  was  forced  to  alter  the  determination  with 
which  he  came,  not  to  justify  himself.  But  now  that 
his  honour  and  loyalty  were  called  in  question,  "  I 
"  shall  do  God  great  wrong,"  said  he,  "  and  my  own 
"  conscience,  if  I  do  not  justify  myself  an  honest  man  ; 
"  and  this  hand  shall  pull  out  this  heart,  when  any 
"  disloyal  thought  shall  enter  it."  He  was  then  pro- 
ceeding to  clear  himself  of  any  suspicion  of  disloyalty, 
when  the  Lord  Keeper  interrupted  him,  saying,  that 
he  need  not  fear  the  charge  of  disloyalty,  as  the 
course  taken  against  him  might  show,  that  he  was 
only  accused  of  contempt  and  disobedience;  that 
if  he  desired  to  persuade  them  that  he  had  indeed 
disobeyed,  but  without  a  purpose  of  disobeying,  that 
was  frivolous  and  absurd. 

The  Lords  then  commenced  their  censures.  First 
the  Lord  Treasurer,  who,  clearing  the  Earl  from  all 
suspicion  of  disloyalty,  refused  to  entertain  divers  of 
his  other  excuses. 

Sir  Eobert  Cecyll,  by  reason  of  his  office,  spoke 
next,  who  showed  more  courtesy  to  the  Earl  than 
any  other,  and  gave  him  due  credit.  He  said,  the 
whole  fault  of  the  bad  success  in  Ireland  lay  in  that 
ominous  journey  into  Munster ;  that  the  Earl  in  all 
his  journeys  did  nothing  but  make  circles  of  errors, 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  105 

which  were  all  bound  up  in  the  knot  of  his  disobedient 
return. 

The  Archbishop  asked  a  question  about  the  tole- 
ration in  religion  said  to  have  been  promised  to 
Tyrone.  The  Earl  thanked  his  Grace  for  moving  that 
point,  which  was  indeed  a  thing  that  had  been  men- 
tioned by  Tyrone,  but  never  yielded  by  him ;  to  whom 
he  had  plainly  said,  "  Hang  thee  up,  thou  carest  for 
"  religion  as  much  as  my  horse." 

In  answer  to  a  remark  of  the  Lord  Admiral,  Essex 
said  that  he  returned,  hoping  for  the  Queen's  pardon, 
as  she  had  formerly  pardoned  the  Earl  of  Leicester, 
who  came  out  of  Holland  contrary  to  her  letter. 
Cecyil  denied  that  any  such  letter  had  ever  been 
written  to  the  Earl  of  Leicester. 

Justice  Walmesley  remarked,  "  Prisoners  at  our 
"  bars  are  more  graceless ;  they  will  not  confess  their 
"  faults."  He  compared  "  my  Lord  his  coming  home, 
"  to  a  shepherd  leaving  his  flock  to  the  care  of  a  dog." 

Then  the  Lord  Keeper  summed  up  in  a  long  and 
eloquent  speech,  ending  thus:  u  If  this  cause  had 
"  been  heard  in  the  Star  Chamber,  my  sentence  must 
"  have  been  so  great  a  fine  as  ever  was  set  upon  any 
"  man's  head  in  that  Court,  and  perpetual  imprison- 
"  ment  in  that  place  which  belongeth  to  a  man  of  his 
"  quality,  that  is,  the  Tower ;  but  now  we  are  in 
"  another  place,  and  in  a  course  of  favour,  my  censure 
"  is,  that  he  is  not  to  execute  the  office  of  a  councillor, 
"  nor  to  hold  himself  for  a  councillor  of  estate,  nor 
"  to  execute  the  office  of  Earl  Marshal  of  England, 
"  nor  of  Master  of  the  Ordnance,  and  to  return  to  his 


106  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  III. 

"  own  house,  there  to  continue  a  prisoner  as  before, 
"  till  it  shall  please  Her  Majesty  to  release  both  this 
"  and  all  the  rest." 

The  rest  all  followed  in  like  manner,  except  only 
the  Earl  of  Worcester,  who  cited  these  two  verses : 

Scilicet  a  superis  etiam  fortuna  luenda  est, 
Nee  veniam,  Iceso  numine,  casus  habet. 

Even  for  our  fortune  Gods  may  cast  us  down, 
Neither  can  chance  excuse,  if  a  God  frown. 

The  Earl  of  Cumberland  said,  that  if  he  thought 
that  censure  would  stand,  he  would  crave  more  time, 
for  he  thought  it  somewhat  heavy,  seeing  how  easily 
a  General  might  incur  the  like ;  but,  in  confidence  of 
Her  Majesty's  mercy,  he  would  concur. 

Lord  Zouch  would,  however,  give  no  other  censure 
than  that  which  he  thought  the  Earl  would  lay  on 
himself;  to  refrain  from  executing  his  offices,  and 
remain  in  his  house  until  Her  Majesty  released  all. 

They  all  appeared  to  entertain  a  confident  assurance 
that  the  Queen  would  speedily  release  him  from  this 
censure.  However,  it  was  a  month  before  his  keeper 
was  removed  from  him. 

Besides  the  printed  accounts  from  which  the  above 
is  chiefly  taken,  we  have  a  letter  to  Walter  Bagot, 
which  shows  what  was  thought  of  Bacon's  conduct, 
and  likewise  informs  us  that  Sir  Walter  Ralegh  was 
in  disgrace  at  this  time. 


CHAP.  III.       ROBERT,  EARL  OF  ESSEX.  107 

No.  XXIV.1 

Ralph  Adderley  to  Walter  Bagot. 

Sir, — On  Thursday  last  my  Lord  of  Essex  was  at  York 
House  before  the  Lords  of  the  Council  and  other  Lords,  as 
four  Earls,  two  Barons,  two  Serjeants  at  Law,  the  Queen's 
Attorney,  and  Bacon,  who  shewed  himself  a  pretty  fellow ; 
and  answered  them  all,  wholly  without  any  touch2,  but  only 
in  some  disloyalty  towards  Her  Majesty.  They  would 
have  had  him  to  have  confessed  those  articles  which 
are  aggravated  against  him  in  the  Star  Chamber,  but  my 
Lord  yielded  to  nothing,  but  only  submitted  himself  to 
Her  Majesty.  It  is  doubtful  he  shall  lose  his  offices  some 
of  them ;  but  they  would  have  all  stand,  as  yet  stand,  at  Her 
Majesty's  pleasure,  and  he  is  at  his  own  house,  as  he  was 
before.  There  were  some  that  said  they  would  move  Her 
Majesty  for  my  Lord's  liberty,  and  that  was  Mr.  Secretary ; 
and  he  said  he  did  not  doubt  but  to  bring  a  discharge  before 
it  were  long,  which  God  grant  it  may  be ;  I  doubt  he  spake 
not  as  he  meant.  My  Lord  is  merry,  and  in  health,  thanks 
be  to  God  !  He  was  at  York  House  from  eight  of  the  clock 
in  the  morning  until  almost  nine  at  night,  without  either 
meat  or  drink.  He  kneeled  two  hours  by  the  clock.  They 
would  have  had  him  to  have  stood,  but  he  would  not,  so  long 
so  as  the  matter  was  in  talk  betwixt  Her  Majesty  and  him. 
The  Lord  Grey  is  gone  over  into  the  Low  Countries. 
Ralegh  is  gone  into  the  country  with  bag  and  baggage,  as 
wife  and  children ;  and  Her  Majesty  called  him  worse  than 
cat  and  dog.  I  pray  you  impart  some  of  this  news  to  my 
cousin  Trew ;  I  would  have  written,  but  the  messenger 
would  not  stay ;  so  with  my  hearty  commendations  to  your- 
self, your  bedfellow,  aunt,  cousin  Okeover,  with  Lettice, 

1  Blitbfield  MSS.    Walter  Bagot  was  the  eldest  son  of  Richard  Bagot. 

2  Peevishness,  or  irritability. 


108  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP,  III. 

Mrs.  Mary,  Mrs.  Trew,  and  Mr.  Anthony,  I  leave  you  to 
the  protection  of  the  Almighty.     London,  in  haste,  this  9th 

of  June,  1600.     Assuredly  yours, 

RALPH  ADDERLEY. 

Mr.  Adderley  does  not  appear  to  trust  much  to  the 
sincerity  of  Sir  Robert  Cecyll.  I  am  not  able  to  decide 
the  question,  whether  he  was  in  secret  the  promoter 
of  the  scorns  and  degradations  which  were  driving 
the  unhappy  Essex  to  madness  ;  but  it  is  fair  to  give 
the  Secretary  any  evidence  we  have  in  his  favour. 
There  is  among  the  Harl.  MSS.  a  letter,  said  to  be 
written  by  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  to  one  Squire,  a  servant 
of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  containing  "  advice  for  the  latter, 
"  being  in  the  Queen's  disgrace  in  anno  1600,  42  Eliz." 
He  says  of  Essex,  "  To  wish  him  to  change  from  one 
"  humour  to  another,  were  but  as  if  for  the  cure  of  a 
"  man  in  pain,  one  should  advise  him  to  lie  upon  the 
"  other  side.  If  from  a  sanguine  delightful  humour 
"  of  love,  he  turn  to  the  melancholy  retired  humour 
"  of  contemplation,  or  a  turbulent  boiling  humour  of 
"  war,  what  doth  he  but  change  tyrants.  Contem- 
"  plation  is  a  dream,  love  is  a  trance,  and  the  humour 
"  of  war  is  raving.  For  his  love  let  it  not  so  disarm 
"  his  heart  within  that  it  make  him  too  credulous  of 
"  favour,  nor  too  tender  in  unkindness,  nor  too  apt 
"  to  depend  on  the  heart  he  knoweth  ;  yea,  in  his 
"  demonstration  of  love,  let  him  not  go  too  far. 
"  These  silly  lovers,  when  they  profess  such  infinite 
"  affection  and  obligation,  they  tax  themselves  at  so 
"  high  a  rate,  as  they  are  ever  under  arrest :  it  makes 
"  their  service  seem  nothing,  and  the  least  cavil  a 
"  great  imputation. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  109 

"  In  his  counsel  let  him  not  be  confident,  for  that 
"  will  make  him  obnoxious  to  success.  But  let  him 
"  follow  the  wisdom  of  oracles,  where  this  was  uttered, 
"  that  might  apply  to  the  event ;  and  ever  rather  let 
"  him  take  the  side  which  is  likeliest  to  be  followed, 
"  than  the  soundest,  least  every  thing  should  seem 
"  to  be  carried  by  his  direction." 

Here  must  be  mentioned  the  last  letter  that  has 
come  under  my  observation  from  Anthony  Bacon  to 
Essex.  It  is  said  to  be  written  after  4th  June,  1600, 
and  is  a  letter  of  friendly  advice  to  Essex  not  to 
despair ;  arguing  that  the  Queen  was  forced  by  the 
reports  that  he  was  condemned  unheard,  to  adopt 
the  harsh  measures  against  him  that  she  had  taken  ; 
he  hints,  also,  that  the  "  piquant  letter "  of  Lady 
Rich  to  the  Queen  was  another  cause  for  the  severity 
of  his  treatment.  He  says  that  his  brother  Francis 
Bacon,  who,  he  thinks,  "is  too  wise  to  be  abused,  and 
"  too  honest  to  abuse,"  assured  him  with  "  great 
"  asseveration,"  that  both  days,  both  that  of  the  Star 
Chamber  and  that  at  the  Lord  Keeper's,  "were 
"  wound  from  the  Queen  merely  upon  necessity  and 
"  points  of  honour,  against  her  inclination  ;•"  and 
urges  him  not  to  despair,  but,  next  to  God,  to  trust 
in  Her  Majesty's  favour. 

Essex  replies  to  this  letter.  He  says  that  Anthony 
Bacon's  letter  "  persuades  that  which  he  wishes 
"  strongly  but  hopes  weakly ; "  that  Bacon's  argu- 
ments only  make  him  despair  t  he  more ;  for  the 
fact  of  the  Queen  having  done  against  him  that  which 
she  did  not  wish,  only  shows  the  power  of  others. 


110  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  III. 

He  thanks  God  that  they  "  who  can  make  Her  Majesty 
"  believe  I  counterfeit  with  her,  cannot  make  God 
"  believe  I  counterfeit  with  Him ; "  for  his  brother 
Francis,  he  assures  him,  he  thinks  no  worse  of  him 
for  what  he  had  done  against  him,  than  of  my  Lord 
Chief  Justice :  "yourself,"  he  adds,  "I  know,  have 
"  suffered  more  for  me  than  any  friend  I  have." ' 

The  next  letter  from  Essex  to  the  Queen  refers  to 
the  late  trial,  which  took  place  on  a  Thursday. 

No.  XXV.2 

Essex  to  the  Queen. 

If  I  had  lost  no  more  but  liberty,  health,  the  sinews  of  my 
private  state,  and  offices  that  give  anxiety  and  reputation  in 
the  world,  most  dear  and  most  admired  Sovereign,  I  should 
pass  the  remnant  of  my  wearisome  life  in  silence.  But  I 
have  lost  more  than  I  could  heretofore  tell  how  to  prize,  or 
any  man  hereafter  will  be  worthy  to  enjoy.  I  sustain  more 
weight  than  the  law  lays  upon  him  who  refuseth  to  answer 
law ;  for  that  outward  weight  lies  upon  the  body  a  short 
time,  and  frees  the  soul  for  ever :  the  sense  I  have  of  the 
inward  weight  of  your  Maj.'s  indignation  is  above  all  bodily 
pains,  and  yet  suffereth  me  to  live ;  who  now  having  heard 
the  voice  of  your  Maj.'s  justice  do  humbly  crave  to  hear  your 
own  proper  and  natural  voice  of  grace,  or  else  that  your 
Maj.  in  mercy  will  send  me  into  another  world.  It  is  not 
restitution  of  anything  that  Thursday  took  from  me  that  I 
long  after,  for  Domina  dedit,  Domina  abstulit,  fiat  voluntas 
DomincB ;  but  after  the  end  of  the  life,  or  the  punishment  of 
your  Majesty's  humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

1  Add.  MSS.  4130.  f.  50.  2  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  IK.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  Ill 

"  The  verses  made  by  the  Earl  of  Essex  in  his 
"  trouble,"  is  the  title  of  one  of  the  many  similar 
effusions  with  which  the  noble  prisoner  may  have 
endeavoured  to  while  away  the  tedious  hours  of 
solitude  and  confinement. 

The  ways  on  earth  have  paths  and  turnings  known,      ^ 

The  ways  on  sea  are  gone  by  needle's  light, 

The  birds  of  heaven  the  nearest  ways  have  flown, 

And  under  earth  the  moles  do  cast  aright : 

A  way  more  hard  than  those  I  needs  must  take, 

Where  none  can  teach,  nor  no  man  can  direct, 

Where  no  man's  good  for  me  example  makes, 

But  all  men's  faults  do  teach  her  to  suspect. 

Her  thoughts  and  mine  such  disproportion  have ; 

All  strength  of  love  is  infinite  in  me ; 

She  useth  the  advantage  time  and  fortune  gave 

Of  worth  and  power  to  get  the  liberty. 

Earth,  sea,  heaven,  hell,  are  subject  unto  laws ; 

But  I !  poor  I !  must  suffer  and  know  no  cause.1 

R.  White  informs  us,  that  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  con- 
tinued to  use  his  good  offices  with  the  Queen,  although 
no  reconciliation  had  taken  place  between  him  and 
the  Earl,  nor  was  desired  by  either.  Mr.  Chamber- 
lain's letters  give  us  more  particularly  the  proceedings 
which  were  continued  against  Essex  after  the  meeting 
at  York  House,  by  which  the  Queen  endeavoured 
"  to  break  his  proud  spirit." 

23rd  June,  1600.  —  I  was  yesterday  at  the  Star  Chamber 
upon  report  of  some  special  matter  that  should  be  determined 

1  Bibl.  Reg.  MS.  Brit.  Mus.  17.  B.  L. 


112  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  III. 

touching  my  Lord  of  Essex,  when  the  Lord   Keeper  made 
a  very  grave  speech  in  nature  of  a  charge  to  the  Judges,  to 
look  to  the  overgrowing  idle  multitude  of  justices  of  peace  : 
to  maintainers  and  abettors  of  causes  and  suits :  to  solicitors 
and  pettifoggers :  to  gentlemen  that  leave  housekeeping  and 
hospitality,  and  hide  themselves  in  cities  and  borough  towns : 
to  the  vanity  and  excess  of  women's  apparel :  to  forestallers 
and  regrators  of  markets :  to  drunkards  and  disorderly  per- 
sons: to  masterless  men  and  other  companions,  that  make 
profession  to  live  by  their  sword  and  by  their  wit :  to  dis- 
coursers  and  meddlers  in  princes'  matters :  and,  lastly,  to 
libellers :  on  occasion  whereof  he  fell  to  a  digression  how 
mercifully  Her  Majesty  had  dealt  with  the  Earl  of  Essex,  in 
proceeding  with  him  so  mildly,  and  by  a  private  hearing; 
whereas,  if  he  had  been  brought  to  that  place,  he  could  not 
have  passed  without  a  heavy  censure,  the  avoiding  whereof 
must  only  be  imputed  to  God  and  Her  Majesty's  clemency, 
upon  an  humble  letter  that  he  wrote  the  night  before  he  was 
to  appear,  that  she  should  be  pleased  to  let  that  bitter  cup 
pass  from  him  ;  but  yet  to  satisfy  the  world,  and  to  stop  the 
slanders  that  gave  out  he  was  condemned  causa  inaudita,  she 
was   to  justify  her   proceedings,   and  call   him   before   her 
Council,  and  others  of  her  ancient  nobility,  to  answer  his 
contempt  and  misgovernment ;  where  he  behaved  himself  so 
wisely  and  so  humbly,  confessing  his  errors  with  tears,  and 
saying  that   the   tears  of  his  heart   had  quenched   all  the 
sparkles  of  pride  that  were  in  him,  that  it  was  great  satisfac- 
tion  to   the  assistance,  and  no  doubt  would   procure   Her 
Majesty's  further  favour  towards  him. 

This  was  the  substance,  and  in  part  the  very  words,  of 
that  delivered  more  at  large;  so  that  now  we  look  every 
day  when  he  shall  have  the  liberty  of  Barnelms,  for  I 
think  his  first  step  will  be  no  farther,  whatever  he  do  after- 
ward. 


CHAP.  UI.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  113 

1st  July.  —  The  Queen  was  very  vehement  the  last  week 
to  degrade  some  of  my  Lord  of  Essex's  Irish  knights, 
specially  such  as  were  made  after  a  certain  letter  she  wrote, 
that  he  should  make  no  more,  which  arise  to  some  thirty- 
nine1,  and  would  touch  some  of  our  friends'  freehold:  it 
should  have  been  done  by  way  of  a  proclamation,  which  was 
signed  on  Wednesday  last ;  but  Mr.  Secretary  made  great 
means  to  dissuade  Her  Majesty  from  that  course  by  many 
reasons,  but  specially  that  she  should  wrestle  with  the  Great 
Seal  of  England,  and  bring  the  authority  thereof  in  question ; 
whereupon  it  was  suspended,  and  lies  still  in  the  desk,  and  so 
like  to  lie ;  for  I  hear  my  L.  of  Essex  is  gone  to  my  Lord 
Keeper's  at  York  House,  to  appear  before  him,  the  Lord 
Treasurer,  and  Mr.  Secretary,  and  there  to  be  discharged  of 
his  keeper,  but  yet  to  keep  his  own  house,  and  to  have  no 
more  access  than  of  his  own  people. 

Rowland  White  to  Sir  Eobert  Sidney,  on  the  5th 
July,  says,  that  Essex  is  sick  of  an  ague,  and  sees 
nobody  but  Lady  Essex ;  and  had,  by  order,  dismissed 
Sir  Gilly  Meyrick  and  Sir  Harry  Linley.  His  sister, 
Lady  Eich,  was  also  confined  to  her  house ;  while  the 
Countess  of  Northumberland  was  constantly  at  Court, 
and  very  graciously  received. 

Essex  now  earnestly  prayed  for  permission  to  retire 
into  the  country,  either  to  Grafton,  or  to  Grays,  the 
house  of  his  uncle,  Sir  William  Knollys,  in  Oxford- 
shire. 

The  next  letter  is  that  which  he  wrote,  thanking 
the  Queen  for  having  released  him  from  the  custody 
of  his  keeper. 

1  The  list  of  knights  made  in  Ireland  has  eighty-one  names.     S.  P.  O. 
VOL.  II.  I 


1 14  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  III. 

No.  XXVI.1 

Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Kather  think  him  dead,  most  dear  and  most  admired  Sove- 
reign, that  since  Tuesday,  at  four  of  the  clock,  hath  sent  you 
no  acknowledgment  of  your  goodness,  grace,  and  mercy,  than 
that  his  duty  and  thankfulness  could  take  days,  yea,  or  admit 
hours  or  minutes,  of  delay.  But  violent  fever  possesseth  your 
Maj.  servant  every  other  day,  groweth  still  upon  me,  and 
leaveth  me  in  charge  to  such  pains  in  my  weak  head,  as 
neither  will  my  brains  undertake  to  indite,  nor  mine  eyes 
willingly  assent  to  any  light  which  shall  direct  my  hand  in 
writing.  Therefore,  dear  and  gracious  Lady,  I  must  be  silent, 
though  my  heart  boils  within  me  for  lack  of  an  interpreter 
to  deliver  the  most  lowly,  zealous,  faithful,  and  matchless 
thankfulness  of  your  Majesty's  humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

In  the  month  of  July,  the  Queen  intended  making 
a  progress,  during  which  she  was  to  visit  Tottenham, 
the  seat  of  the  Earl  of  Hertford.  Essex  renewed  his 
applications  to  obtain  his  perfect  freedom  before  her 
departure,  and  wrote,  as  we  are  told,  "now  and  then  " 
to  the  Queen.  The  two  next  letters  belong  to  this 
period  of  suspense. 

No.  XXVII.2 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

In  this  long  trance,  most  dear  and  most  admired  Sovereign, 
I  must  sometimes  move,  look  up,  and  speak,  that  your  Ma- 
jesty may  know  your  servant  lives.  I  live,  though  sick  in 
spirit  unto  the  death,  yet  moan  not  for  impatience,  as  com- 

1  S.  P.  O.  2  Ibid. 


CHAP.  III.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  115 

monly  sick  men  do.  I  look  up  to  your  Majesty,  on  earth 
my  only  physician  ;  yet  look  for  no  physic  till  you,  in  your 
deepest  wisdom  and  gracious  favor,  shall  think  the  crisis  past, 
and  the  time  fit  for  a  cure.  I  speak  not  the  words  of  my 
lips,  but  the  words  of  my  heart,  yet  cannot  utter  that  which 
most  concerns  me,  and  should  give  my  full  heart  the  greatest 
ease.  Therefore,  I  say  to  myself,  lie  still,  look  down,  and 
be  silent ;  your  Majesty  never  buried  alive  any  creature  of 
your  favour,  and  hath  past  your  princely  word,  that  your 
correction  is  not  intended  for  the  ruin  of  your  Majesty's 
humblest  vassal,  pining,  languishing,  despairing, 

26th  July,  1600.  ESSEX. 

No.  XXVIII.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Pardon,  oh  I  pardon,  most  dear  and  most  admired  Sove- 
reign, the  freedom  of  this  speech,  for  passion  speaks,  and  I 
have  no  longer  power  to  strive  against  it.  If  your  Majesty 
dismiss  me  into  the  country,  as  banished  from  your  presence 
again,  company,  health,  yea,  life  itself,  will  be,  nay,  shall  be, 
hateful  to  me.  I  receive  no  grace,  your  Majesty  shews  no 
mercy.  But  if  your  Majesty  will  vouchsafe  to  let  me  once 
prostrate  myself  at  your  feet,  and  behold  your  fair  and  gra- 
cious eyes,  though  it  be  unknown  to  all  the  world  but  to  him 
that  your  Majesty  shall  appoint  to  bring  me  to  that  paradise; 
yea,  though  afterwards  your  Majesty  punish  me,  imprison 
me,  or  pronounce  the  sentence  of  death  against  me,  your 
Majesty  is  most  merciful,  and  I  shall  be  most  happy.  That 
house  will  make  your  Majesty  remember  what  I  was;  and 
this  favour  shall  make  your  Majesty  know  both  what  I  am, 
and  what  I  will  be :  for  your  Majesty  shall  find  that,  by  my 
fall,  I  am  come  to  know  both  good  and  evil. 

i  S.  P.  O. 
i  2 


ju«~V 


116  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  III. 

Pardon,  oh  !  pardon,  most  dear  Lady,  for  my  words  are,  as 
my  thoughts,  confused.  But  if  your  Majesty  will  be  pleased 
to  assign  me  to  any  man,  I  will  commit  myself  unto  him  ; 
and  upon  my  life  I  will  pass  to  the  place  which  he  shall  ap- 
point me,  and  from  thence  afterwards  to  Ewelme  Lodge, 
without  discovery.  And  your  Majesty's  answer  is  ..... 

or  mortifying  to  your  Majesty's  humblest  vassal, 

ESSEX. 

On  the  26th  August,  Essex  had  been  called  up  to 
York  House  before  the  Lord  Keeper,  Treasurer,  and 
Secretary,  who  signified  to  him  the  Queen's  pleasure 
that  he  should  have  his  liberty.  This  letter,  there- 
fore, was  written  immediately  after  that  event,  and  is 
his  first  effort  towards  obtaining  the  next  important 
step,  admission  to  the  royal  presence.  Her  reply  to 
this,  however,  was,  that  though  she  had  given  him  his 
liberty,  he  still  remained  under  her  indignation,  and 
was,  on  no  account,  to  presume  to  approach  the 
Court.  He  consequently  retired  to  Ewelme  Lodge  in 
the  beginning  of  September  ;  Lady  Rich  being  at  the 
same  time  released,  went  to  Lees,  her  husband's  seat, 
to  attend  him,  who  was  at  the  time  dangerously  ill. 
As  she  had  borne  children  to  Lord  Mountjoy,  with 
whom  her  connection  had  been  notorious  for  some 
years,  this  conduct  shows  how  remarkably  easy  Lord 
Rich's  sense  of  honour  was;  or  what  would  be  yet 
more  contemptible  and  disgraceful,  that  he  sanctioned 
his  wife's  liaison,  and  now,  during  Mountjoy's  absence, 
gave  her  welcome  home.  No  wonder  she  rewarded 
sucn  vile  complaisance  with  the  deepest  scorn. 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  117 


CHAPTER  IV. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX Continued. 

FRANCIS  BACON  ENDEAVOURS  TO  EXPLAIN  HIS  CONDUCT.  —  ESSEX'S 
REPLY. — VAIN  ENDEAVOURS  TO  OBTAIN  ACCESS.  —  CONSIDERATION 
OF  HIS  CONDUCT  IN  IRELAND. — RENEWAL  OF  HIS  LEASE  OF  SWEET 

WINES   REFUSED. HIS    LAST     LETTER,    THREATENING   TO    ENTER 

THE     ROYAL     PRESENCE     IN     ARMOUR. — ESSEX    HOUSE     THROWN 

OPEN. DAILY   PREACHINGS. HIS  FRIENDS  HOLD   MEETINGS   AT 

DRURY   HOUSE. IMMEDIATE     CAUSE    OF     THE    INSURRECTION. 

THE  LORD  KEEPER  GOES  TO  ESSEX  HOUSE,  —  VAIN  ATTEMPT  TO 
RAISE  THE  CITY.  —  ESSEX  HOUSE  IS  INVESTED. ESSEX  SUR- 
RENDERS, AND  WITH  HIS  PRINCIPAL  FRIENDS  IS  SENT  TO  THE 
TOWER. 

LET  us  pause  here  for  a  few  moments  to  consider 
the  conduct  of  Francis  Bacon  before  the  Lords  at 
York  House,  where  he  had  seized  upon  some  impatient 
expressions  in  Essex's  letter  to  the  Lord  Keeper,  and 
the  dedication  of  Hayward's  book  concerning  Henry 
IV.,  and  endeavoured  to  aggravate  them  into  griev- 
ous offences.  Soon  after  the  Earl  was  relieved  from 
the  custody  of  Sir  Richard  Barkely  he  received  the 
following  letter  from  Bacon ;  his  reply  to  which 
merits  particular  attention,  so  dignified,  so  gentle, 
so  free  from  reproach,  or  rather  in  its  very  gentle- 
ness so  full  of  reproach,  it  appeals  infinitely  more 
to  our  feelings  in  favour  of  Essex,  than  those  ex- 
aggerated passionate  letters  which  he  addressed  to 
the  Queen. 

i  3 


118  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

No.  XXIX.1 

Francis  Bacon  to  Essex. 

My  Lord, — No  man  can  expound  my  doings  better  than 
your  Lordship,  which  makes  me  need  to  say  the  less ;  only  I 
humbly  pray  you  to  believe  that  I  aspire  to  the  conscience 
and  commendation  of  bonus  civis  and  bonus  vir,  and  that 
though  I  love  some  things  better,  I  confess,  than  I  love  your 
Lordship,  yet  I  love  few  persons  better,  both  for  gratitude's 
sake,  and  for  virtues  which  cannot  hurt  but  by  accident.  Of 
which  my  good  affection,  it  may  please  your  Lordship  to 
assure  yourself  of  all  the  true  effects  and  offices  that  I  can 
yield ;  for,  as  I  was  ever  sorry  your  Lordship  should  fly  with 
waxen  wings,  doubting  Icarus'  fortune ;  so  for  the  growing 
up  of  your  own  feathers,  be  they  ostriches  or  other  kind,  no 
man  shall  be  more  glad ;  and  this  is  the  axletree  whereupon 
I  have  turned  and  shall  turn.  Which,  having  already  sig- 
nified unto  you  by  some  near  means,  having  so  fit  a  messenger 
for  mine  own  letter,  I  thought  good  to  redouble  also  my 
writing.  And  so  I  commend  you  to  God's  protection.  From 
Gray's  Inn,  July  19.  1600,  &c. 

FRA.  BACON. 

No.  XXX.2 

The  Earls  Reply. 

Mr.  Bacon, — I  can  neither  expound  nor  censure  your 
late  actions,  being  ignorant  of  all  of  them,  save  one;  and 
having  directed  my  sight  inward  only,  to  examine  myself. 
You  do  pray  me  to  believe  that  you  only  aspire  to  the  con- 
science and  commendation  of  bonus  civis  and  bonus  vir;  and 
I  do  faithfully  assure  you  that,  while  that  is  your  ambition, 
though  your  course  be  action  and  mine  contemplative, 

1  Works,  xii.  24.  2  Ibid.  111. 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  119 

yet  we  shall  both  convenire  in  eodem  tertio,  and  convenire 
inter  nos  ipsos.  Your  profession  of  affection,  and  offer  of 
good  offices,  are  welcome  to  me  ;  for  answer  to  them,  I  will 
say  but  this,  that  you  have  believed  that  I  have  been  kind 
to  you;  and  you  may  believe  that  I  cannot  be  other,  either 
upon  humor  or  mine  own  election.  I  am  a  stranger  to  all 
poetical  conceits,  or  else  I  should  say  somewhat  of  your 
poetical  example.  But  this  I  must  say,  that  I  never  flew  with 
other  wings  than  to  desire  to  merit,  and  confidence  in  my 
sovereign's  favor  ;  and  when  one  of  these  wings  failed  me,  I 
would  light  no  where  but  at  my  sovereign's  feet,  though  she 
suffered  me  to  be  bruised  with  my  fall.  And  till  Her  Ma- 
jesty, that  knows  I  was  never  bird  of  prey,  finds  it  to  agree 
with  her  will  and  her  service  that  my  wings  should  be  imped 
again,  I  have  committed  myself  to  the  mew.  No  power  but 
my  God's  and  my  sovereign's  can  alter  this  resolution  of 
your  retired  friend, 

ESSEX. 

The  Earl  of  Essex  continued  his  prayers  to  the 
Queen  for  permission  to  kiss  her  hand.  Francis 
Bacon,  who  had  constant  access  to  her  during  this 
period,  says  that  he  constantly  took  and  gave  occa- 
sions "for  my  Lord's  redintegration  in  his  fortunes;" 
but  the  Queen  used  to  say,  that  he  had  long  tried  her 
anger,  and  she  must  have  farther  proof  of  his  hu- 
mility. Sir  Henry  Neville,  writing  from  London  on 
the  9th  September,  tells  Mr.  Win  wood  that  there  are 
many  arguments  that  the  Queen  begins  to  relent 
towards  him,  and  to  wish  to  have  him  near  her. 

Two  of  Essex's  letters  to  Elizabeth  at  this  time  are 
worth  laying  before  the  reader. 

i  4 


120  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

No.  XXXI.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Haste  paper  to  that  happy  presence,  whence  only  unhappy 
I  am  banished  ;  kiss  that  fair  correcting  hand  which  lays  new 
plasters  to  my  lighter  hurts,  but  to  my  greatest  wound  ap- 
plieth  nothing.  Say  thou  comest  from  pining,  languishing, 

despairing, 

ESSEX. 

No.  XXXII.2 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Words,  if  you  can,  express  my  hearty  thankfulness ;  but 
press  not,  sue  not,  move  not,  least  passion  prompt  you,  and  I 
by  you  both  be  betrayed.  Report  my  silence,  my  solita- 
riness, my  sighs,  but  not  my  hopes,  my  fears,  my  desires ; 
for  mine  uttermost  ambition  is  to  be  a  mute  person  in  that 
presence  where  joy  and  wonder  would  bar  speech.  From 
the  greatest  lady's,  in  favour  and  goodness,  humblest,  mute 


Sept.  9. 1600.  ESSEX. 

Sometimes  he  cheered  his  solitude  and  banishment 
(for,  as  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  observed,  he  walked  forth 
alone  without  greeting  from  his  summer  friends)  by 
addressing  himself  to  the  Muses,  as  in  these  lines  :  — 

Happy  were  he  could  finish  forth  his  fate 

In  some  enchanted  desert,  most  obscure 

From  all  society,  from  love,  from  hate 

Of  worldly  folk,  then  would  he  sleep  secure ; 

Then  wake  again  and  yield  God  ever  praise, 

Content  with  hips  and  haws  and  bramble-berries, 

>  Add.  MSS.  9828.  f.  6.  «  Ibid  f>  5      Qrig 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  121 

In  contemplation  passing  still  his  days, 
And  change  of  holy  thoughts  to  make  him  merry ; 
And  when  he  dies  his  tomb  may  be  a  bush, 
Where  harmless  robin  dwells  with  gentle  thrush ; 
Quoth  Robertus  Comes  Essexia3.1 

Before  we  dismiss  the  Irish  service  and  its  results, 
it  will  be  proper  to  consider  how  far  the  conduct  of 
the  Earl  of  Essex  deserved  the  bitter  reproaches,  the 
severe  punishment,  and  the  humiliations  to  which  it 
had  been  the  Queen's  pleasure  to  subject  him. 

If  conduct  in^n  enterprise  is  to  be  measured  solely 
by  its  success,  then  assuredly  Essex  deserved  all,  for 
with  large  means  he  had  made  no  greater  progress 
towards  the  subduing  to  order  and  obedience  the  in- 
habitants of  Ireland  than  had  any  of  his  predecessors 
in  the  same  office.  But  as  it  appears  that  both  physi- 
cally and  morally  it  was  a  task  impossible  to  achieve 
in  so  short  a  time,  we  must  acquit  him  of  blame 
merely  for  his  want  of  success.  What  possibility 
was  there,  by  any  means  in  his  power,  to  instil  loyalty 
into  the  breasts  of  an  entire  population,  who,  from 
the  noble  to  the  kerne,  hated  the  yoke  of  English 
rule;  and  if  they  submitted  in  the  presence  of  superior 
strength  to  acknowledge  the  Queen  of  England  as 
their  sovereign,  never  failed,  the  instant  the  pressure 
was  removed,  to  relapse  into  rebellion  or  sedition. 
What  were  16,000  soldiers,  or  double  that  number, 
to  achieve  against  an  enemy  that  never  appeared  in 
the  open  field,  except  under  most  favourable  con- 
ditions, or  accidentally  ?  What  were  troops  trained 

1  Bodl.  Libr.  Tanner  MSS.  79. 


122  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

to  act  in  bodies,  heavily  loaded  with  arms  and  pro- 
visions, to  achieve  against  a  horde  of  enemies,  who, 
scarcely  clothed,  lightly  armed,  and  unburthened, 
never  left  the  shelter  of  their  woods  and  morasses ; 
but  from  a  hole  in  a  peat  bog,  or  from  behind  a  tree, 
would  watch  the  favourable  moment  for  harassing 
and  annoying  them,  and  cutting  off  a  straggling  man 
or  cart  of  provisions.  No  wonder  the  raw  levies  were 
discouraged ;  no  wonder  the  patience  of  their  im- 
petuous general  was  exhausted. 

Commanded  as  he  was  to  listen  to  the  advice  of 
his  Council,  he  was  not  to  be  blamed  for  deferring 
the  Ulster  journey ;  ignorant  of  the  country,  he  could 
not  be  aware  that  the  reasons  given  by  them  to 
induce  him  to  go  were  untrue  or  exaggerated  ;  and, 
indeed,  the  delay  was  approved  of  by  the  Queen's 
Council  in  their  letter  of  the  8th  May.  But,  un- 
questionably, his  conduct  in  treating  with  Tyrone 
was  a  great  fault ;  having  been  warned  in  his  in- 
structions that  it  was  probable  the  traitor  would 
desire,  as  he  had  before,  to  be  received  as  a  good 
subject;  and  directed  in  that  event  only  to  receive 
him  "  on  simple  submission  "  to  the  Queen's  mercy ; 
although,  in  the  subsequent  part  of  the  same  instruc- 
tions, his  power  to  deal  with  the  rebel  was  enlarged  ; 
there  is  no  excuse  for  the  haste  with  which  he  patched 
up  a  truce,  and,  dismissing  the  army,  quitted  the 
government  without  any  guarantees  that  the  peace 
would  be  observed. 

Then,  again,  his  obstinacy  about  the  Earl  of  South- 
ampton must  have  been  personally  offensive  to  the 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  123 

Queen  ;  he  had  been  ordered  to  be  circumspect  in 
the  use  of  his  power  of  creating  knights,  and  made 
the  extravagant  number  of  eighty-one:  he  had  re- 
ceived an  order  not  to  come  over  to  England  without 
license ;  though  of  this  act  of  disobedience,  as  the 
prohibition  was  only  meant  to  refer  to  the  period 
of  alarm  about  a  Spanish  invasion,  we  do  not  think  so 
much  ;  but  all  were  handles  which  he  himself  made 
for  the  use  of  his  enemies. 

Yet  these  errors  and  offences  would  never  have 
been  visited  with  that  severe  treatment,  had  he  not 
lost  his  place  in  the  heart  of  the  Queen.  That  this 
was  the  cause  there  can  be  no  doubt,  from  the  caprice 
and  personal  acrimony  which  was  exhibited  towards 
him.  How  this  occurred  is  not  so  easy  of  explana- 
tion. Queen  Elizabeth  was  haughty  and  imperious, 
jealous,  selfish,  and  vain ;  whether  she  had  at  length 
become  tired  of  the  violent  methods  which  Essex 
used  to  gain  his  ends  with  her,  and  resolved  to  shake 
off  his  influence ;  whether  she  dreaded  and  disliked 
his  popular  reputation,  and  was  resolved  to  pull  him 
down  ;  or  whether  she  had  discovered  that  the  warmth 
of  his  attachment  to  her  person,  and  his  admiration  of 
her  beauty,  were  simulated ;  or  whether  all  these 
feelings  and  passions  were  mingled,  and  kept  con- 
stantly alive  by  the  arts  of  his  enemies  ;  it  is  quite 
certain  that  personal  feeling  had,  at  least,  an  equal 
share  in  his  treatment  with  public  motives. 

In  fact,  the  conduct  of  Elizabeth  with  regard  to 
Essex  during  this  period  was  rather  that  of  a  vengeful 
woman  than  of  a  justly  incensed  Queen.  It  is  quite  evi- 


124  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

dent,  by  retaining  him  in  the  place  which  brought  him 
into  close  personal  attendance  on  her,  that  his  ultimate 
restoration  to  favour  was  in  her  mind  ;  yet  so  com- 
plete was  her  ignorance  of  his  character,  that,  pushing 
her  rigour  one  step  too  far,  she  deeply  wounded  that 
haughty  spirit,  and  brought  his  fiery  and  ungovern- 
able passions  to  the  aid  of  the  mischievous  and  evil 
counsels,  which  speedily  wrought  his  ruin. 

As  he  had  not  been  excluded  from  performing  the 
duties  of  his  office  of  Master  of  the  Horse,  both 
Essex  and  his  friends  entertained  confident  hopes 
that  he  would  -soon  be  restored  to  favour.  He 
accordingly  continued  to  write  to  the  Queen  in  the 
most  humble  strain,  that  he  kissed  her  fair  hands, 
and  the  rod  with  which  she  had  corrected  him  ;  that 
he  would  retire  into  a  country  solitude,  and  say  with 
Nebuchadnezzar,  "  Let  my  dwelling  be  with  the 
"  beasts  of  the  field ;  let  me  eat  grass  as  an  ox, 
"  and  be  wet  with  the  dew  of  heaven,  till  it  shall 
"  please  Her  Majesty  to  restore  me  to  my  under- 
"  standing."  With  this  the  Queen  was  much 
pleased,  and  said  that  she  hoped  his  words  and  deeds 
would  agree  ;  that  he  had  long  tried  her  patience, 
and  she  had  reasonably  tried  his  humility ;  but  yet 
she  did  not  grant  the  desired  audience. 

The  monopoly  of  the  importation  of  sweet  wines 
which  had  been  granted  to  Essex  at  the  death  of  the 
Earl  of  Leicester,  expired  at  Michaelmas  in  this 
year l ;  by  the  renewal  or  refusal  of  this  patent, 
Essex  resolved  to  determine  whether  the  Queen 

1  1600. 


CHAP.  IV.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  125 

intended  to  restore  him  to  her  favour,  or  to  reduce 
him  to  degradation  and  poverty.  This  was  the 
turning  point  of  his  fate ;  unhappily  for  him  the 
Queen,  whose  severe  temper  caused  her  to  listen 
favourably  to  the  insinuations  of  his  enemies,  that  he 
had  not  yet  been  sufficiently  humbled,  first  deferred, 
then  refused  to  renew  his  patent.  Her  speech  to 
Francis  Bacon  shows  by  what  feelings  she  was 
actuated ;  that  my  Lord  had  written  her  some  very 
dutiful  letters,  and  that  she  had  been  moved  by 
them  ;  but  when  she  took  it  to  be  the  abundance  of 
his  heart,  she  found  it  to  be  but  a -preparation  to  a 
suit  for  the  renewing  of  his  farm  of  sweet  wines. 

On  receiving  his  application,  she  first  said  that  she 
would  see  what  it  was  ;  that  such  good  turns  were 
not  to  be  bestowed  blindfold ;  again,  that  the  more 
one  feeds  corrupt  and  diseased  bodies,  the  more  one 
hurts  them  ;  and,  lastly,  she  declared,  that  the  un- 
governable beast  must  be  stinted  of  his  provender ; 
and  informed  him  that  she  intended  to  reserve  that 
farm  for  her  own  use. 

The  letter  which  follows  contains  the  suit  of  the 
Earl  for  the  renewal  of  his  patent. 

No.  XXXIII.1 

Essex  to  the  Queen. 

If  conscience  did  not  tell  me,  that,  without  imploring  your 
Majesty's  goodness  at  this  time,  most  dear  and  most  admired 
Sovereign,  I  should  not  only  lose  the  present  support  of  my 
poor  estate,  but  the  hope  of  any  ability  to  do  your  Majesty 

1  S.  P.  O. 


126  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

future  service,  and  not  that  alone,  but  the  means  of  satis- 
fying a  great  number  of  hungry  and  annoying  creditors, 
which  suffer  me  in  my  retired  life  to  have  no  rest ;  I  would 
appear  still  before  your  Majesty  as  a  mute  person.  But 
since  this  day  se'night,  the  lease  which  I  hold  by  your 
Majesty's  beneficence  expireth,  and  that  farm  is  both  my 
chiefest  maintenance  and  mine  only  means  of  compounding 
with  the  merchants  to  whom  I  am  indebted ;  give  me  leave, 
I  humbly  beseech  your  Majesty,  to  suit  that  canon  to  your- 
self which  I  received  from  yourself,  your  Majesty's  courses 
tend  ad  correctionem,  non  ad  ruinam.  If  my  creditors  will 
take  for  payment  many  ounces  of  my  blood,  or  the  taking 
away  of  this  farm  would  only  for  want  finish  my  body,  your 
Majesty  should  never  hear  of  this  suit.  For  in  myself  I  find 
no  boldness  to  importune,  and  from  myself  I  can  draw  no 
argument  to  solicit.  The  only  suit  which  I  can  make  wil- 
lingly, and  must  make  continually  unto  your  Majesty  is, 
that  you  will  once  again  look  with  gracious  eyes  upon  your 
Majesty's  humblest,  faithfullest,  and  more  than  most  devoted 
vassal, 

22nd  Sept.  1600.  ESSEX. 

There  are  other  letters  of  this  period,  in  which 
Essex  prays  only  for  admission  to  the  presence ;  of 
which  the  following  is  one. 

No.  XXXIV.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

If  I  should  as  often  present  your  Majesty,  most  dear  and 
most  admired  Sovereign,  with  mine  humble  lines,  as  mine 
oppressed  spirit  would  disburthen  itself,  I  should  be  pre- 
sumptuous and  importunate ;  if  I  should  as  seldom  write  as 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP. IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  127 

your  Maj.  gives  me  encouragement,  I  should  be  dumb  and 
desperate ;  and  I  am  confident  that  your  Maj.  inseparable 
justice  in  both  kinds  pleadeth  for  me.  When  you  say,  Why 
is  Essex  silent  ?  your  Maj.  answers  yourself,  His  infinitely 
affectionate  heart  is  overawed  with  duty.  When  your  Maj. 
saith,  How  dare  he  write  now?  you  likewise  answer,  His 
present  fear  is  overcome  by  passion.  By  passion  I  say, 
tyrannous  to  me,  but  reverent  to  your  Maj.  Out  of  that 
passion  my  soul  cries  out  unto  your  Maj.  for  grace,  for  ac- 
cess, and  for  an  end  of  this  exile.  If  your  Maj.  grant  this 
suit,  you  are  most  gracious,  whatsoever  else  you  deny  or  take 
away.  If  this  cannot  be  obtained,  I  must  doubt  whether 
that  the  means  to  preserve  life,  and  the  granted  liberty,  have 
been  favours  or  punishments  ;  for  till  I  may  appear  in  your 
gracious  presence,  and  kiss  your  Majesty's  fair  correcting 
hand,  time  itself  is  a  perpetual  night,  and  the  whole  world 
but  a  sepulchre  unto  your  Majesty's  humblest  vassal, 
18th  Oct.  1600.  ESSEX. 

In  October,  Mr,  Chamberlain  wrote  twice  to  Mr. 
Carleton,  that  the  "  Earl  continued  in  London  and  at 
"  Barnelms ;  that  his  friends  were  sanguine  of  his 
"  speedy  restoration  to  favour,  which  (says  he)  you 
"  may  believe  as  much  of  as  you  list,  but  I  ne'er 
"  a  whit :  for  till  I  see  his  license  for  sweet  wines 
"  renewed,  that  expired  at  Michaelmas,  or  some  other 
"  substantial  favour  answerable  to  it,  I  shall  esteem 
"  words  as  wind  and  holy  water  of  courts." 

Essex  did  not  yet  resign  all  hope ;  and  we  have  a 
letter  of  the  17th  November,  the  anniversary  of  the 
Queen's  accession,  in  which  he  makes  a  last  earnest 
effort  to  be  received  by  her. 


128  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  IV. 

No.  XXXV.1 

Essex  to  the  Queen. 

Vouchsafe,  dread  Sovereign,  to  know  there  lives  a  man, 
though  dead  to  the  world,  and  in  himself  exercised  with 
continued  torments  of  mind  and  body,  that  doth  more  true 
honor  to  your  thrice  blessed  day,  than  all  those  that  appear 
in  your  sight.  For  no  soul  had  ever  such  an  impression  of 
your  perfections,  no  alteration  shewed  such  an  effect  of  your 
power,  nor  no  heart  ever  felt  such  a  joy  of  your  triumph. 
For  they  that  feel  the  comfortable  influence  of  your  Ma- 
jesty's favor,  or  stand  in  the  bright  beams  of  your  presence, 
rejoice  partly  for  your  Majesty's,  but  chiefly  for  their  own, 
happiness. 

Only  miserable  Essex,  full  of  pain,  full  of  sickness,  full 
of  sorrow,  languishing  in  repentance  for  his  offences  past, 
hateful  to  himself  that  he  is  yet  alive,  and  importunate  on 
death,  if  your  sentence  be  irrevocable,  he  joys  only  for  your 
Majesty's  great  happiness  and  happy  greatness ;  and  were  the 
rest  of  his  days  never  so  many,  and  sure  to  be  as  happy  as 
they  are  like  to  be  miserable,  he  would  lose  them  all  to  have 
this  happy  seventeenth  day  many  and  many  times  renewed 
with  glory  to  your  Majesty,  and  comfort  of  all  your  faithful 
subjects,  of  whom  none  is  accursed  but  your  Majesty's  hum- 
blest vassal, 

ESSEX. 

I  shall  offer  to  my  readers  but  one  more  letter 
from  our  unfortunate  Earl.  It  is  an  undated,  but  an 
original  letter ;  and  extremely  remarkable,  as  pointing 
plainly  to  that  course  which  brought  his  head  to  the 
block  — the  entering  by  force  into  the  royal  presence. 
There  is  a  difficulty  presented  by  his  reference  to 

1  Birch,  ii.  462. 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OE    ESSEX.  129 

having  seen  the  Queen,  which  may  be  thus  explained. 
After  his  release  from  confinement,  the  Countess  of 
Warwick,  a  lady  of  great  influence  at  Court,  and  a 
fast  friend  to  Essex,  had  advised  him  to  take  an 
obscure  lodging  at  Greenwich  ;  and  watching  an  oc- 
casion when  the  Queen  should  go  forth  in  good 
humour,  of  which  she  would  give  him  notice,  to 
present  and  humble  himself  before  her.  This  advice 
is  said  to  have  sunk  deep  into  the  mind  of  the 
Earl,  who  had  resolved  to  follow  it,  but  was  dissuaded 
by  Cuffe,  who  assured  him  he  was  only  preparing 
additional  disgrace  and  humiliation  for  himself.  It 
is,  however,  possible  that  he  may  have  presented 
himself  and  have  been  spurned,  and,  in  the  absence 
of  dates,  I  adopt  this  idea. 

No.  XXXVI.1 
Essex  to  the  Queen. 

This  is  but  one  of  the  many  letters  which,  since  I  saw 
your  Maj.,  I  wrote,  but  never  sent  unto  you  ;  for,  to  write 
freely  to  a  Lady  that  lies  in  wait  for  all  things  that  I  do  or 
say,  were  too  much  hazard :  to  write  in  a  plausible  style, 
when  I  have  so  discontented  a  heart,  were  baseness,  if  not 
falsehood.  To  be  silent,  and  to  put  myself  suddenly  into  a 
new  course  of  life,  might  be  thought  lightness,  too  much 
melancholy,  and  I  know  not  what.  By  this  description  your 
Maj.  seeth  the  state  of  my  mind,  full  of  confusion  and  con- 
trariety. I  sometimes  think  of  running,  and  then  remember 
what  it  will  be  to  come  in  armour  triumphing  into  that  pre- 
sence, out  of  which  both  by  your  own  voice  I  was  com- 

1  Hulton  MSS 
VOL.  II.  K 


130  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

manded,  and  by  your  hands  thrust  out.  But  God  knows 
this  is  no  sudden  accident.  You  may  tell  those  that  thirst 
and  gape  after  my  ruin,  that  you  have  now  an  advantage, 
that,  being  in  passion,  I  spake  rashly.  It  is  well  you  have 
that  you  looked  for,  and  so  have  I.  In  holding  me  as  you 
have  done  of  late,  you  pleased  nobody.  In  making  this  con- 
clusion of  my  fortune,  you  shall  please  those  you  seem  to 
favor  most.  But  siste  calame,  plura  de  extremis  loqui,  pars 
ignava  est,  et  incusare  deos  vel  homines,  ejus  qui  vivere  velit. 

From  this  moment  Essex  resigned  all  hope  •  of 
regaining  the  Queen's  favour,  and  gave  himself  up  to 
rage  and  despair.  Sir  John  Harrington  says,  "  he 
"  shifteth  from  sorrow  and  repentance  to  rage  and 
"  rebellion  so  suddenly,  as  well  proveth  him  devoid 
"  of  good  reason  as  of  right  mind.  In  my  last 
"  discourse  he  uttered  strange  words,  bordering  on 
"  such  strange  designs,  that  made  me  hasten  forth 
"  and  leave  his  presence.  Thank  heaven,  I  am  safe 
"  at  home,  and  if  I  go  in  such  troubles  again,  I 
"  deserve  the  gallows  for  a  meddling  fool.  His 
"  speeches  of  the  Queen  become  no  man  who  hath 
"  mens  sana  in  corpore  sano.  He  hath  ill-advisers, 
"  and  much  evil  hath  sprung  from  this  source.  The 
"  Queen  well  knoweth  how  to  humble  the  haughty 
"  spirit;  the  haughty  spirit  knoweth  not  how  to 
"  yield,  and  the  man's  soul  seemeth  tossed  to  and  fro, 
"  like  the  waves  of  a  troubled  sea." l 

How  well  these  words  depict  the  distracted  state  of 
mind,  bordering  on  insanity,  to  which  Essex  was  re- 
duced. 'He  had  humbled  himself  in  a  manner  which 

1  Nugse  Ant.  179 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  131 

must  have  been  gall  and  bitterness  to  his  proud 
heart,  and  all  in  vain  ;  his  most  passionate  and  pa- 
thetic appeals  were  repulsed  with  harsh  words,  or  con- 
temptuously left  unanswered.  Those  fiery  passions, 
which  had  been  with  difficulty  restrained  for  a  time, 
now  burst  through  all  control,  and  he  gave  vent  to 
his  feelings  in  such  wild  and  threatening  language, 
with  such  insulting  expressions  touching  the  Queen 
herself,  as  alarmed  all  his  friends ;  while,  by  his 
enemies,  they  were  carefully  collected,  to  be  made  use 
of  in  the  furtherance  of  their  own  designs.  Sir 
Walter  Ralegh,  than  whom  no  one  can  offer  better 
testimony  on  this  point,  said,  that  the  expression  of 
Essex,  that  the  Queen  was  cankered,  and  that  her  mind 
had  become  as  crooked  as  her  carcass,  cost  him  his 
head ;  which  his  insurrection  had  not  cost  him  but 
for  that  speech.1 

In  order  to  arrive  at  a  clear  understanding  of  the 
origin  of  the  intrigues  which  led  to  so  miserable 
an  end,  we  must  go  back  to  the  period  when  Essex 
was  first  consigned  to  the  custody  of  the  Lord  Keeper 
in  the  autumn  of  1599.  He  committed  the  care 
of  his  interests  at  that  time  to  his  two  most  dear 
and  intimate  friends,  the  Earl  of  Southampton  and 
Lord  Mountjoy.  When  he  was  threatened  with  com- 
mittal to  the  Tower,  and  trial  in  the  Star  Chamber, 
these  noblemen  were  anxiously  considering  how  to  re- 
lieve him  from  the  excessive  severities  with  which  he 
was  menaced.  Several  plans  were  considered,  among 

1  Prerogative  of  Parliaments,  Ralegh's  works. 
K  2 


132  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  IV. 

others,  that  he  should  make  his  escape  into  France : 
that  he  should  call  for  the  assistance  of  his  friends  in 
Wales :  that  he  should  take  possession  of  the  Court, 
to  enable  him  to  gain  access  to  the  Queen.  It  was 
at  last  resolved,  that  the  first  was  the  most  advisable 
course  for  Essex  to  follow ;  and  Southampton  found 
means  to  convey  this  decision  to  him,  with  an  offer 
that  he  and  Sir  Henry  Davers  would  accompany 
him,  and  share  his  fortunes  in  a  foreign  land.  But 
this  advice  Essex  absolutely  refused  to  follow,  saying 
that  he  would  rather  run  any  danger  than  live  the 
life  of  a  poor  fugitive. 

During  the  previous  summer,  while  Essex  was  in 
Ireland,  Mountjoy  had  sent  an  agent  to  Scotland,  to 
assure  King  James  that  Lord  Essex  entertained  none 
of  those  ambitious  views  which  his  enemies  had 
ascribed  to  him,  but  was  most  desirous  that  his 
Majesty  should  be  declared  successor  to  Queen 
Elizabeth  during  her  life.  When  Mountjoy  was 
appointed  Lord  Deputy  of  Ireland,  being  unwilling 
to  leave  Essex  in  the  dangerous  position  in  which  he 
believed  the  Queen's  death  would  place  him,  and 
being  earnestly  pressed  by  Essex  to  take  some  steps 
to  relieve  him,  it  was  resolved  to  send  again  to  King 
James,  and  propose  that  he  should  call  upon  Eliza- 
beth to  declare  his  right  to  the  succession ;  that,  to 
support  his  demand,  Mountjoy  would  leave  Ireland 
defensively  guarded,  and  with  4000  or  5000  men 
come  to  his  assistance ;  while  Essex  should  make 
head  with  his  party.  The  King's  answer  was,  that, 
until  the  garrison  was  settled  at  Lough  Foyle,  he 
should  not  be  prepared  to  entertain  that  course, 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  133 

and  with  this  temporizing  answer  the  matter  dropped 
for  the  time. 

Towards  the  end  of  April,  1600,  Southampton  went 
to  join  Mountjoy  in  Ireland  ;  by  him  Essex  sent  letters 
to  Mountjoy,  pressing  him  to  proceed  to  the  execution 
of  the  above  arrangement,  but  to  bring  his  forces 
over  into  Wales  instead  of  carrying  them  to  Scotland. 
Lord  Mountjoy,  however,  did  not  think  it  lawful  to 
enter  into  that  course  except  with  the  approbation  of 
the  next  in  succession  to  the  Crown  ;  and,  now  the 
life  of  Lord  Essex  was  no  longer  in  danger,  he  would 
not  venture  on  any  enterprise  merely  to  restore  his 
fortune.  In  August,  Southampton  having  returned 
from  Ireland,  went  into  the  Low  Countries.  Essex, 
released  from  the  surveillance  of  Sir  Richard  Barkely, 
was  then  listening  to  the  dangerous  advice  of  Henry 
Cuife,  who  advised  him  to  renew  his  intrigue  with 
James  of  Scotland,  through  whom  he  persuaded  him 
he  could  do  many  things  for  his  advantage. 

Essex  next  sent,  by  Sir  Charles  Davers,  to  inform 
Mountjoy  what  his  plans  were :  that  he  relied  on 
him  and  Southampton  as  his  best  friends,  and  would 
follow  their  advice  in  all  things :  that  his  lease  of 
sweet  wines  expiring  at  Michaelmas,  he  should  be 
able  to  judge,  by  the  renewal  or  refusal  of  it,  what 
were  the  Queen's  intentions  towards  him:  that  a 
Parliament  would  be  called  about  that  time,  and  if 
he  was  not  kept  from  attending  it  by  his  confine- 
ment, he  and  his  friends  would  propose  some  things 
for  the  good  of  the  state — meaning  a  declaration 
of  the  successor  to  Elizabeth :  that  if  he  was  unable 


134  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

to  attend  the  Parliament,  he  did  not  rightly  know 
what  to  do ;  but  that  he  was  resolved,  by  means  of 
his  friends,  to  present  himself  to  the  Queen ;  to  which 
end  he  desired  Mountjoy  would  write  him  a  letter, 
complaining  of  misgovernment  in  the  state,  and 
calling  on  him  to  do  something  towards  redressing  it. 

To  this  Mountjoy  replied,  that  he  did  not  approve 
of  the  project ;  but  recommended  the  Earl  to  have 
patience,  and  endeavour  to  regain  the  Queen's  favour 
by  submission  to  her  will.  That,  when  he  returned 
home,  he  would  act  for  him  as  a  friend,  but  that  he 
would  write  no  letter  that  he  could  not  justify. 

Before  Mountjoy 's  answer  arrived,  Essex  had  given 
up  this  plan  ;  and  an  agent  was  sent  to  the  Scotch 
King,  to  urge  him  again  to  send  ambassadors  to 
Elizabeth,  to  demand  an  immediate  recognition  of  his 
right  to  the  succession ;  and  all  other  measures  were 
deferred  until  the  arrival  of  his  reply,  or  of  the  am- 
bassadors. 

In  the  mean  time,  Essex  House  was  thrown  open ; 
and  Sir  Gilly  Meyrick,  the  Earl's  steward,  entertained 
all  comers.  The  result  was  a  constant  assemblage  of 
discontented  persons,  adventurers  of  all  sorts,  and 
soldiers  out  of  employ.  The  most  eminent  Puritan 
divines  preached  daily  at  Essex  House,  to  hear  whose 
sermons  the  citizens  flocked  in  great  numbers.  The 
extreme  heedlessness  of  such  conduct  is  almost  in  itself 
a  refutation  of  the  charge  of  any  treasonable  plotting 
being  then  carried  on,  which  would  have  required  the 
utmost  secresy  to  disarm  the  suspicions  so  certain  to 
be  excited  by  this  mode  of  proceeding.  The  Puritans 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL  OF   ESSEX.  135 

were  in  the  habit  of  justifying  resistance  to  authority, 
and  one  of  the  preachers  at  Essex  House  went  so  far 
as  to  say,  that  the  great  magistrates  of  the  kingdom 
had  power,  in  case  of  necessity,  to  control  and  restrain 
the  Sovereign. 

We  may  as  well  state  here,  that  King  James,  who 
was  very  suspicious  of  the  Secretary,  Sir  Robert 
Cecyll,  at  once  embraced  the  proposal  sent  him,  to 
demand  of  Elizabeth  a  declaration  of  his  right  to  the 
succession:  the  Earl  of  Mar  and  Bruce  of  Kinloss 
were  appointed  ambassadors ;  but  unforeseen  accidents 
having  caused  the  outbreak  of  the  Earl  of  Essex 
before  their  departure  from  Scotland,  their  ostensible 
business  was  altered  to  one  of  congratulation  to  the 
Queen  on  her  escape  from  the  late  conspiracy. 1  But 
Dr.  Birch  has  extracted  from  papers  in  the  Advocate's 
Library  at  Edinburgh,  the  King's  private  instructions 
to  the  envoys  ;  by  which  it  appears  that  they  were  to 
take  part  in  it,  or  lie  still,  according  as  his  friends  in 
England  thought  best ;  that  if  they  resolved  on  action, 
and  only  required  a  head,  his  envoys  had  full  powers 
to  declare  him  ready  to  supply  that  place, — with  the 
sole  reservation  that  the  Queen's  person  was  to  be 
safe ;  that  if  all  were  over  before  they  arrived  there, 
they  were  to  use  every  means  to  strengthen  his  party. 

The  last  clause  in  these  instructions  was  the  only 
one  that  remained  for  them  to  execute,  which  they 
did  with  such  success,  as  to  obtain  assurances  from 
all  the  principal  noblemen  and  councillors,  that  on 

1  Birch,  ii.  509.  10. 
K  4 


136  LIVES    OF   THE    EAKLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  IV. 

the  death  of  Elizabeth,  James  should  be  proclaimed 
King  of  England.  Among  these  was  Sir  Robert 
Cecyll,  who  from  this  time  kept  up  a  correspondence 
with  the  Scots  King  by  means  of  Lord  Henry  Howard. 
In  this  correspondence  Lord  Henry  gave  the  King 
particular  accounts  of  the  state  of  the  English  Court, 
recommending  him  to  place  his  whole  dependence  on 
the  Secretary ;  and  prejudicing  him  against  the  Earl 
of  Northumberland,  Lord  Cobham,  arid  Sir  Walter 
Ralegh,  whom  he  describes  as  men  without  principles 
of  religion  or  morality,  a  triplicity,  who  deny  the 
Trinity.  Of  Northumberland,  whom  he  calls  also  a 
very  contemptible  man,  he  relates  the  following 
anecdote.  That  he  had  told  his  Countess,  to  whom, 
after  two  years7  separation,  he  had  lately  been  recon- 
ciled, that  he  had  rather  the  King  of  Scots  were 
buried  than  crowned,  and  he  and  his  friends  would 
lose  their  lives,  rather  than  her  brother's  great  god 
should  reign  in  England.  To  which  the  Countess 
answered  with  great  spirit,  if  not  much  delicacy,  that 
rather  than  any  other  King  should  reigri  in  England, 
she  would  eat  all  their  hearts  in  salt,  though  she 
were  brought  to  the  gallows  immediately  after. 

The  preachings  and  concourse  at  Essex  House 
excited  so  much  attention,  that,  about  Christmas,  the 
Earl's  friends  feared  that  he  would  be  committed  to 
confinement ;  and  seeking  safety  by  flight  was  more 
thought  of  than  any  thing  else. 

It  is  said  by  Thuanus,  that  a  young  man  of  good 
family,  a  domestic  of  the  Earl,  who  had  been  educated 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  137 

with  him1,  and  was  so  much  trusted  by  him,  that,  in 
his  hearing,  he  discussed  his  most  secret  designs,  at 
this  time  turned  informer,  and  revealed  to  the  Secre- 
tary every  thing  that  passed  at  Essex  House.  The 
name  of  this  traitor  is  not  given,  and  we  have  no 
means  of  knowing  the  truth  of  the  assertion  ;  but 
there  is  no  doubt  the  Government  had  full  knowledge 
of  all  the  proceedings  of  the  Earl  and  his  friends. 

In  the  beginning  of  January,  1601 ,  a  committee  of 
the  principal  partisans  of  the  Earl  of  Essex  began  to 
hold  meetings  at  Drury  House 2,  the  residence  of  the 
Earl  of  Southampton.  These  were,  Southampton 
himself,  Sir  Charles  Davers,  Sir  Ferdinando  Gorges, 
Sir  John  Davis,  and  Mr.  John  Lyttelton  of  Frankley, 
in  Worcestershire.  The  list  of  names  of  persons  sup- 
posed to  be  attached  to  Essex  numbered  120  earls, 
barons,  knights,  and  gentlemen. 

The  points  submitted  by  the  Earl  of  Essex  for 
their  consideration,  with  a  view  to  secure  his  access 
to  the  Queen  in  such  a  manner  as  could  not  be 
resisted,  were  these  :  whether  it  would  be  necessary 
to  possess  the  Tower,  as  a  check  upon  the  city,  should 
their  seizure  of  the  Court  be  disliked;  in  what 
manner  the  enterprise  at  the  Court  should  be  ex- 
ecuted ;  whether  both  attempts  should  be  made  at 
once  ;  what  numbers  would  be  requisite  for  both  or 

1  As  Anthony  Bagot  was  pardoned  for  his  share  in  the  insurrection, 
Gabriel  Montgomery  is  the  only  person  who  appears  to  fulfil  these  con- 
ditions. 

2  The  Olympic  Theatre  occupies  the  site  of  Drury  House. 


138  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  IV. 

either ;    what    persons    should    be   employed ;    and 
where  they  should  assemble. 

It  appears  that  the  city  being  considered  friendly, 
it  was  not  thought  necessary  to  seize  the  Tower ;  and 
for  the  Palace,  it  was  resolved  that  Sir  Christopher 
Blount  should  seize  the  outer  gate,  Sir  Charles  Davers 
the  Guard  Chamber  and  Presence  Chamber ;  and  Sir 
John  Davis  the  Great  Hall ;  that  being  done,  the 
Earl  should  come  out  of  the  Mews,  make  his  way  to 
the  Queen,  and  humbly  entreat  her  to  remove  his 
enemies  from  her  person,  and  call  a  Parliament. 

Nothing,  however,  was  to  be  finally  settled  until 
the  arrival  of  the  Scots  ambassadors,  which  was  im- 
patiently expected. 

An  unforeseen  event  hastened  the  catastrophe. 
On  Saturday,  the  7th  February,  Secretary  Herbert 
was  sent  from  the  Council  to  desire  Essex  to  appear 
before  them,  their  professed  intention  being  to  ad- 
monish him  to  make  a  temperate  use  of  his  liberty. 
He  excused  himself  on  the  plea  of  ill-health.  Very 
shortly  after  this  visit  he  received  a  note  from  an 
anonymous  writer,  warning  him  to  provide  without 
delay  for  his  own  safety. 

He  immediately  called  a  council  of  his  friends. 
They  deliberated  whether  they  should  at  once  seize 
the  palace,  or  first  try  the  feelings  of  the  city,  and 
with  the  aid  of  the  citizens  attempt  the  palace ;  or 
whether  they  should  abandon  their  projects,  and 
seek  safety  in  immediate  flight.  The  first  plan 
was  thought  impracticable  on  account  of  their  want 
of  men,  it  being  reported  that  the  guards  at  the 


CiiAi>.IV.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  139 

Court  had  been  doubled.  While  debating  the  second, 
a  person  came  in  who  pretended  to  have  been  sent 
from  the  city,  and  promised  all  assistance  against  the 
enemies  of  the  Earl,  who  was  assured  that  Sheriff 
Smith,  with  1000  men  of  the  trained  bands,  was 
ready  to  support  them.  This  encouraged  Essex  at 
once  to  declare  against  the  third  alternative  of  flying 
the  kingdom.  Blinded  by  despair,  and  by  the  vain 
idea  of  his  popularity  bringing  him  support  from 
the  city,  he  resolved  on  one  of  the  maddest  enter- 
prises  ever  attempted  by  a  man  of  sound  mind. 
What  could  be  expected  for  a  handful  of  men,  unsup- 
ported even  by  a  good  cause,  in  an  attempt  to  over- 
turn a  long-established,  vigorous,  wise,  and  popular 
government,  but  defeat,  destruction,  and  disgrace  ? 

The  Earl's  plan  was  this :  the  next  day,  Sunday, 
the  8th  February,  he  was  to  enter  the  city  at  the 
head  of  200  men,  so  as  to  arrive  at  Paul's  Cross 
a  little  before  the  end  of  the  sermon  ;  after  which  he 
was  to  acquaint  the  Aldermen  and  Common  Council 
with  the  reasons  for  his  coming,  and  demand  their 
assistance.  If  they  afforded  it,  he  would  instantly 
force  his  way  to  the  Queen ;  if  they  objected,  he  would 
immediately  escape  to  another  part  of  the  kingdom. 

The  night  was  passed  in  summoning  all  his  friends 
to  Essex  House.  In  the  morning  there  were  assembled 
the  Earls  of  Rutland  and  Southampton,  Lords  Sandys 
and  Monteagle,  and  many  knights  and  gentlemen  with 
their  followers,  amounting  in  all  to  some  300  persons. 
Essex  informed  them  that  Lord  Cobham  and  Sir  Wal- 
ter Ralegh  designed  to  take  away  his  life ;  that  the  city 


140  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  IV. 

of  London  being  on  his  side,  he  meant  to  retire  into 
it,  and  thence  make  his  way  to  the  royal  pre- 
sence, and  demand  revenge  for  the  injuries  his  ad- 
versaries had  inflicted  on  him.  The  gates  of  Essex 
House  were  closed,  no  person  admitted  who  was  un- 
known, and  none  suffered  to  go  out,  except  Sir  Ferdi- 
nando  Gorges,  who  was  allowed  to  go  to  Sir  Walter 
Ralegh,  who  was  waiting  in  a  boat  to  speak  with 
him. 

Information  of  these  persons  flocking  into  Essex 
House  had  been  conveyed  to  the  Queen,  who  de- 
spatched orders  to  the  Lord  Mayor  to  see  that  all  the 
citizens  were  in  readiness  to  obey  orders,  and  at  the 
same  time  sent  four  of  her  great  officers  to  Essex 
House,  to  inquire  into  the  cause  of  the  assemblage, 
and  thus  prevented  the  execution  of  the  plan. 

The  original  declaration  of  the  Lord  Keeper,  Lord 
Chief  Justice  Popham,  and  the  Earl  of  Worcester, 
signed  by  them,  being  the  most  authentic  account  of 
what  passed  at  Essex  House,  is  presented  entire  to  the 
reader.1 

One  can  scarcely  understand  the  infatuation  which 
possessed  Essex :  the  only  chance  left  for  him  under 
the  circumstances  was  to  dismiss  his  followers,  and  to 
have  sought  safety  in  flight ;  no  overt  act  of  treason 
or  violence  had  been  committed ;  his  followers  would, 
therefore,  have  been  unmolested.  Sir  Charles  Davers 
advised  him,  either  to  treat  with  the  Lord  Keeper,  or 
else  make  his  way  through  the  gate  of  Essex  House, 

1  s.  P.  o. 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  141 

and  then  haste  away  to  Highgate,  and  so  to  Northum- 
berland, and  thence  to  the  King  of  Scots ;  under  his 
protection  they  might  make  their  peace  ;  if  they  failed, 
the  Queen  was  old,  and  could  not  live  long.  This 
good  counsel  passed  unheeded. 

Upon  Sunday,  the  8th  February  last  past,  about  ten  of  the 
clock  in  the  forenoon,  the  Lord  Keeper  of  the  Great  Seal,  the 
Earl  of  Worcester,  Sir  Wm.  Knollys,  Comptroller  of  H.M. 
household,  and  the  Lord  Chief  Justice  of  England,  being 
commanded  by  direction  from  the  Queen's  Majesty,  did 
repair  to  the  late  Earl  of  Essex  house,  and  finding  the  gate 
shut  against  them,  after  a  little  stay  they  were  let  in  at  the 
wicket,  and  as  soon  as  they  were  within  the  gate,  the  wicket 
was  shut  upon  them,  and  all  their  servants  kept  out.  At 
their  coming  thither,  they  found  the  court  full  of  men  as- 
sembled together  in  very  tumultuous  sort.  The  Earls  of 
Essex,  Rutland,  and  Southampton,  and  the  Lord  Sandys, 
Master  Parker,  commonly  called  Lord  Monteagle ;  Sir  Chris- 
topher Blount,  Sir  Charles  Davers,  and  many  other  knights 
and  gentlemen,  and  other  persons  unknown,  flocked  together 
about  the  L.  Keeper,  &c. ;  and  thereupon  the  L.  Keeper 
told  the  Earl  of  Essex  that  they  were  sent  from  Her  Maj.  to 
understand  the  cause  of  this  their  assembly,  and  to  let  them 
know,  that  if  they  had  any  particular  cause  of  grief  against 
any  persons  whatsoever,  it  should  be  heard,  and  they  should 
have  justice  ;  hereupon  the  Earl  of  Essex,  with  a  very 
loud  voice,  declared  that  his  life  was  sought,  and  that  he 
should  have  been  murdered  in  his  bed ;  that  he  had  been 
perfidiously  dealt  with ;  that  his  hand  had  been  counter- 
feited, and  letters  written  in  his  name ;  and  that  there- 
fore they  were  assembled  there  to  defend  their  lives,  with 
much  other  speech  to  like  effect.  Hereupon  the  Lord 
Chief  Justice  said  unto  the  Earl,  that  if  they  had  any  such 


142  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  IV. 

matter  of  grief,  or  if  any  such  matter  were  attempted  or  pur- 
posed against  him,  he  willed  the  Earl  to  declare  it,  assuring 
him  that  it  should  be  truly  related  to  Her  Maj.,  and  that  it 
should  be  indifferently  heard,  and  justice  should  be  done, 
whomsoever  it  concerned.  To  this  the  Earl  of  Southampton 
objected  the  assault  made  upon  him  by  the  Lord  Grey ; 
whereunto  the  Lord  Chief  Justice  said,  that  in  his  case 
justice  had  been  done,  and  the  party  imprisoned  for  it. 
And  hereupon  the  Lord  Keeper  did  eftsoons  will  the  Earl 
of  Essex,  that  whatsoever  private  matter  of  offence  he  had 
against  any  person  whatsoever,  if  he  would  deliver  it  unto 
them,  they  would  faithfully  and  honestly  deliver  it  to  the 
Queen's  Majesty,  and  doubted  not  to  procure  him  honorable 
and  equal  justice,  whomsoever  it  concerned ;  requiring  him 
that  if  he  would  not  declare  it  openly,  that  he  would  impart 
it  unto  them  privately,  and  doubted  not  but  they  would 
satisfy  him  in  it.  Upon  this  there  was  a  great  clamor 
raised  amongst  the  multitude,  crying,  "Away,  my  Lord, 
they  abuse  you,  they  betray  you,  they  undo  you,  you  lose 
time."  Whereupon  the  Lord  Keeper  put  on  his  hat,  and  said 
in  a  loud  voice,  "  My  Lord,  let  us  speak  with  you  privately, 
and  understand  your  griefs;  and  I  command  you  all,  on  your 
allegiance,  to  lay  down  your  weapons  and  to  depart,  which 
you  ought  all  to  do,  being  thus  commanded,  if  you  be  good 
subjects,  and  owe  that  duty  to  the  Queen's  Maj.  which  you 
profess."  Whereupon  they  all  brake  out  into  an  exceeding 
loud  shout  and  cry,  crying,  "  All,  all,  all."  And  whilst  the 
Lord  Keeper  was  speaking,  and  commanding  them  upon  their 
allegiance,  as  is  before  declared,  the  Earl  of  Essex  and  the 
most  part  of  that  company  did  put  on  their  hats.  And  so 
the  Earl  of  Essex  went  into  the  house,  and  the  Lord  Keeper, 
&c.  followed  him,  thinking  that  his  purpose  had  been  to 
speak  with  them  privately,  as  they  had  required  ;  and  as  they 
were  going,  some  of  that  disordered  company  cried,  "Kill 


CHAP.  IV.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  143 

them ;"  and  as  they  were  going  into  the  great  chamber  some 
cried,  "  Cast  the  Great  Seal  out  of  the  window ;"  some  other 
cried  then,  "  Kill  them  ;"  and  some  other  said,  "  Nay,  let  us 
shop  them  up."  The  Lord  Keeper  did  often  call  on  the 
Earl  of  Essex  to  speak  with  them  privately,  thinking  still 
that  his  meaning  had  been  so,  until  the  Earl  brought  them 
into  his  back  chamber,  and  then  gave  order  to  have  the 
further  door  of  that  chamber  shut  fast ;  and  at  his  going  forth 
out  of  that  chamber,  the  Lord  Keeper  pressing  again  to  have 
spoken  with  the  Earl  of  Essex,  the  Earl  said,  "  My  Lords, 
be  patient  a  while,  and  stay  here,  and  I  will  go  into  London 
and  take  order  with  the  Mayor  and  Sheriffs  for  the  city,  and 
will  be  here  again  within  this  half-hour ;"  and  so  departed 
from  the  Lord  Keeper,  &c.  leaving  the  Lord  Keeper,  &c. 
and  divers  of  the  gentlemen  prisoners  in  that  chamber, 
guarded  by  Sir  John  Davis,  Francis  Tresham,  and  Owen 
Salisbury,  with  musket  shot,  where  they  continued  until  Sir 
Ferd.  Gorges  came  and  delivered  them  about  four  of  the 
clock  in  the  afternoon.  In  the  mean  time,  we  did  often 
require  Sir  John  Davis  and  Francis  Tresham  to  suffer  us  to 
depart,  or  at  the  least  to  suffer  some  one  of  us  to  go  to  the 
Queen's  Majesty,  to  inform  her  where  and  in  what  sort  we 
were  kept ;  but  they  answered  that  my  Lord,  meaning  the 
Earl  of  Essex,  had  commanded  that  we  should  not  depart 
before  his  return,  which  they  said  would  be  very  shortly. 

THOS.  EGERTON,  C.  S. 

All  this  I  heard  also,  saving  only  the  words,  "Cast  the  Seal 
out  of  the  window,"  and  the  words  the  Earl  said  touching  his 
going  to  the  Lord  Mayor  and  settling  the  city,  which  I  heard 
not,  being  somewhat  before  my  Lord  Keeper;  but  in  the 
chamber  where  the  books  were,  I  moved  the  Earl  that  he 
would  cause  his  company  to  depart,  that  we  might  have  some 
private  speech  with  the  Earl :  the  Earl  answered,  he  would 


144  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  IV. 

not  cause  them  to  depart,  for  that  they  should  not  think  he 

had  betrayed  them. 

J.  POPHAM. 

The  most  part  of  these  words  uttered  by  my  Lord  Keeper 
and  my  Lord  Chief  Justice,  I  do  very  well  remember ;  but 
the  throng  was  so  great  as  I  was  cast  behind  at  their  going 
into  the  chamber,  but  recovering  their  company,  1  heard  my 
Lord  Keeper,  as  I  take  it,  say,  that  if  they  stay  us,  they  must 
keep  us  as  prisoners,  otherwise  we  would  depart  to  Court ; 
whereunto  the  Earl,  as  I  take  it,  replied,  and  said,  that  if  his 
Lordship  and  the  rest  would  have  patience  until  his  return, 
both  he  and  they  would  go  together,  and  lay  himself  and  his 
causes  at  the  foot  of  Her  Majesty.  And  so  the  rest  cried 
out,  "My  Lord,  you  lose  time,"  and  so  they  departed,  and  left 
us  under  guard.  For  the  words,  "  Cast  the  Seal  out  at  the 
window,"  I  did  not  hear  myself,  but  by  report ;  but  many 
gave  their  censures,  some  saying,  "Kill  them;"  some,  "Keep 
them  as  prisoners  ;"  some,  "  Let  them  be  pledges  until  their 

return." 

E.  WORCESTER. 

On  quitting  the  Lord  Keeper,  Essex,  leaving  his 
house  in  the  charge  of  Sir  Gilly  Meyrick,  went  out 
immediately  with  a  company  of  about  200  men. 
In  the  street  he  was  joined  by  the  Earl  of  Bedford, 
Lord  Cromwell,  and  their  followers. 

He  proceeded  at  once  to  the  house  of  Sheriff 
Smith,  near  Fenchurch,  crying  out  as  he  went: 
"  For  the  Queen  !  for  the  Queen !  a  plot  is  laid  for 
"  my  life :"  the  streets  were  empty,  and  there  was  no 
sermon  at  Paul's  Cross  in  consequence  of  the  message 
from  the  Queen :  the  citizens,  all  amazed  at  the 
unusual  outcry,  came  to  their  doors  to  see  what 


CHAP.  IV.       ROBERT,  EARL  OF  ESSEX.  145 

caused  the  noise,  but  not  a  man  took  up  arms  for 
him.  On  his  approach,  the  Sheriff,  upon  whose 
support  he  had  depended,  made  his  escape  by  the 
back-door  to  the  Lord  Mayor.  On  arriving  at  the 
Sheriff's  house,  Essex  is  said  to  have  been  in  such  a 
profuse  perspiration  from  his  agitation  of  mind  and 
body,  that  he  was  obliged  to  "  shift  himself." 

In  the  mean  time,  Thomas,  Lord  Burghley,  ac- 
companied by  Garter  King-at-Arms,  and  the  Earl  of 
Cumberland,  with  Sir  Thomas  Gerard,  Knight  Mar- 
shal, proclaimed  the  Earl  and  his  adherents  traitors 
in  different  parts  of  the  city. 

Hearing  this,  and  finding  there  was  no  hope  of 
assistance  from  the  citizens,  he  resolved  to  return  to 
Essex  House,  send  his  submission  to  the  Queen  by 
the  Lord  Keeper,  and  endeavour  to  obtain  some  terms. 
At  Ludgate,  a  company  of  soldiers  was  posted  under 
Sir  John  Leveson,  who  refused  to  let  them  pass. 
Essex  ordered  a  charge,  but  his  disheartened  fol- 
lowers, and  now  diminished  numbers,  for  many  had 
slipped  away,  were  repulsed.  In  the  skirmish,  Essex 
was  shot  through  the  hat,  Sir  Christopher  Blount 
wounded  and  taken ;  a  young  gentleman  named 
Tracy,  "  dear  to  the  Earl,"  and  two  or  three  citizens 
killed. 

Retreating  to  Queenhithe,  they  there  took  boat, 
and  gained  Essex  House.  Here  another  disappoint- 
ment awaited  him :  Sir  Ferdinando  Gorges,  who  left 
him  in  the  city,  had  come  to  Essex  House,  released 
the  Lord  Keeper  and  his  fellow  prisoners,  and  accom- 
panied them  to  the  palace. 

VOL.  II.  L 


146  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  IV. 

On  his  return  he  burnt  all  his  papers,  among 
which  was  one  he  called  a  history  of  his  troubles, 
saying  they  should  tell  no  tales  of  his  friends. 

During  the  day  the  alarm  had  been  excessive  at 
Court;  all  the  gates  were  closed  and  fortified, 
the  passages  blocked  up  with  carriages  and  chains. 
The  Queen  alone  displayed  the  courage  and  firmness 
which  had  formerly  so  endeared  her  to  the  hearts  'of 
her  people.  She  alone  talked  of  going  to  meet  the 
insurgents,  declaring  that  not  one  of  them  would 
dare  to  meet  her  eye,  but  would  fly  at  her  approach. 

The  return  of  the  Lord  Keeper  brought  the  in- 
telligence of  the  insurgents  having  been  discomfited 
in  the  city,  and  of  their  return  to  Essex  House.  The 
Lord  Admiral  was  sent  to  invest  it  before  the  in- 
mates had  time  to  strengthen  its  defences.  The 
Earls  of  Cumberland  and  Lincoln,  Lords  Thomas 
Howard,  Grey,  Burghley,  and  Compton  took  post  on 
the  land  side ;  the  Lord  Admiral,  his  son,  Lord 
Effingham,  Lord  Cobham,  Sir  John  Stanhope,  Sir 
Robert  Sidney,  and  Fulke  Greville,  in  the  garden, 
and  on  the  river  side.  Before  storming  the  house, 
Sir  Robert  Sidney  was  sent  to  summon  the  besieged. 
Southampton  appeared  on  the  roof,  and  asked  to 
whom  they  should  yield  ?  To  their  enemies  ?  that 
would  be  giving  themselves  up  to  destruction.  To 
the  Queen  ?  that  would  be  confessing  themselves 
guilty.  But  if  the  Lord  Admiral  would  give  hos- 
tages for  their  safety,  they  would  present  themselves 
before  the  Queen  ;  otherwise  they  determined  to  die 
in  their  own  defence. 


CHAP.  IV.       ROBERT,  EARL  OF  ESSEX.  147 

The  Lord  Admiral  returned  for  answer  that  he 
would  make  no  terms  with  rebels;  but  he  gave  an 
hour's  delay  to  allow  Lady  Essex,  Lady  Rich,  and 
other  women  to  leave  the  house. 

Essex  now  showed  the  most  remarkable  irreso- 
lution :  he  was  but  half  a  rebel,  and  already  regret- 
ting the  excesses  to  which  he  had  gone,  could  resolve 
on  nothing.  First,  he  determined  to  sally  out ;  in 
which  he  was  encouraged  by  Lord  Sandys,  a  man 
advanced  in  years,  who  declared  the  boldest  course 
to  be  the  safest,  and  that  it  better  became  men  of 
their  rank  to  die  sword  in  hand  than  by  the  hands  of 
the  executioner.  Soon  changing  his  mind,  the  Earl 
declared  he  would  surrender  on  conditions.  The 
Lord  Admiral  refused  to  listen  to  them.  On  this 
Essex  said  he  did  not  insist  on  prescribing  terms, 
and  made  but  these  three  singular  requests ;  that  they 
should  be  civilly  treated  ;  that  their  cause  should  be 
justly  and  lawfully  heard ;  and  that  Mr.  Ashton,  his 
chaplain,  might  attend  him  in  prison  for  the  comfort  of 
his  soul ;  which  being  agreed  to,  the  Lords  and  Gen- 
tlemen in  Essex  House,  on  their  knees,  surrendered 
their  swords  to  the  Lord  Admiral. 

Thus  an  enterprise,  begun  in  madness  and  folly, 
was  weakly  and  ignominiously  ended. 

The  Earls  of  Essex,  Southampton,  and  Rutland, 
Lords  Sandys,  Cromwell,  and  Monteagle,  Sir  Charles 
Davers,  and  Sir  Henry  Bromley,  were  sent  to  the 
Tower:  the  other  prisoners  were  distributed  among 
the  public  prisons. 

L   2 


1 48  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CIIAP.  IV. 

On  the  9th  the  Queen  issued  a  proclamation, 
thanking  the  citizens  of  London  for  their  loyal  con- 
duct, and  warning  them  to  be  careful  of  the  peace  of 
the  city,  as  the  extent  of  the  conspiracy  was  not  yet 
known. 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  149 


CHAPTEK  V. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX Continued. 

WESTMINSTER  HALL  AT  THE  TRIAL  OF  ESSEX  AND  SOUTHAMPTON. 

THEIR  ARRAIGNMENT. CONFESSIONS  OF  THEIR  COMPANIONS. 

—  BACON'S    SPEECH  AND  BEHAVIOUR. — ESSEX'S   SPEECH,   AND 

CONDEMNATION. MR.  ASHTON  OBTAINS  A  CONFESSION.  —  CHAM- 

BERLAIN'S  ACCOUNT.  —  LADY  ESSEX'S  LETTER  TO  CECYLL,  WHO 
RELENTS. — RALEGH'S  LETTER,  URGING  THE  DEATH  OF  ESSEX. — 

THE    STORY   OF    THE    RING  CONSIDERED,    WITH   THE    SUBSEQUENT 

REGRET   OF  ELIZABETH. THE  QUEEN*S   INDECISION. — ORDER   OF 

EXECUTION  SENT. LAST  HOURS  AND  DEATH  OF  ESSEX. 

THE  19th  February,  1601,  was  appointed  for  the 
arraignment  of  the  Earls  of  Essex  and  Southampton. 

For  their  trial  a  court  was  made  in  Westminster 
Hall :  a  raised  platform,  about  two  yards  high  and 
six  yards  square,  was  erected  at  the  upper  end  of  the 
hall ;  the  seat  of  the  Lord  Steward  on  the  west  side 
towards  the  King's  Bench  ;  on  each  side  seats  covered 
with  green  cloth  for  the  Peers ;  in  the  middle  a 
table  covered  with  green  cloth,  after  the  manner  of 
the  Exchequer,  with  seats  round  it  for  the  Judges 
and  Counsel ;  on  the  north  side  a  little  square  space 
was  cut  for  the  Serjeant  of  the  Mace  ;  at  the  east  end 
was  the  bar  where  the  prisoners  stood. 

Lord  Buckhurst,  the  Lord  High  Steward  for  the 
time  being,  preceded  by  the  King  of  Arms  bearing 
the  white  staff,  and  accompanied  by  seven  Serjeants 

L    3 


150  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

with  maces,  having  taken  his  seat,  the  Constable  and 
the  Lieutenant  of  the  Tower  produced  the  prisoners, 
who  were  preceded  by  a  porter  bearing  the  axe, 
with  its  edge  turned  from  them.  On  meeting  at  the 
bar  the  Earls  kissed  each  other's  hands,  and  embraced 
cheerfully. 

Silence  having  been  proclaimed,  the  Clerk  of  the 
Crown  read  the  commission,  and  the  precept  contain- 
ing the  names  of  the  Peers  of  Robert,  Earl  of  Essex, 
and  Henry,  Earl  of  Southampton.  Proclamation  being 
then  made  that  all  Earls,  Viscounts,  and  Barons 
summoned  do  answer  to  their  names,  the  Lords  were 
called  as  follows  :  — 

Edward,  Earl  of  Oxford.  Thomas,  Lord  Grey  de 
Gilbert,  Earl  of  Shrewsbury.  Wilton. 

William,  Earl  of  Danby.  Thomas,  Lord  Lumley. 

Edward,  Earl  of  Worcester.  Henry,  Lord  Windsor. 

George,  Earl  of  Cumberland.  William,  Lord  Chandos. 

Robert,  Earl  of  Sussex.  Robert,  Lord  Riqh. 

Edward,  Earl  of  Hertford.  Thomas,  Lord  Darcy. 

Henry,  Earl  of  Lincoln.  George,  Lord  Hunsdon. 

Charles,  Earl  of  Nottingham.  Oliver,  Lord  St.  John  of 
Thomas,  Viscount  Bindon.  Bletsoe. 

Thomas,  Lord  De  la  Warr.  Thomas,  Lord  Burghley. 

Edward,  Lord  Morley.  William,  Lord  Compton. 

Henry,  Lord  Cobham.  Thomas,  Lord  Howard  de 
Henry,  Lord  Stafford.  Walden. 

The  Judges  were  the  Lord  Chief  Justices  Popham, 
and  Anderson,  L.  C.  Baron  Sir  William  Periarn, 
Justices  Gawdie,  Fenner,  Walmesley,  Warburton, 
Kingsrnill,  and  Mr.  Baron  Clarke. 

Essex  asked  the  Chief  Justice  whether,  like  any 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  151 

common  person,  they  might  challenge  those  of  the 
Peers  whom  they  knew  to  be  their  professed  enemies  : 
being  answered  in  the  negative,  he  said  he  was  con- 
tented :  when  the  Lord  Grey  was  called,  he  pulled 
Southampton  by  the  sleeve  arid  laughed.1 

They  were  then  ordered  to  hold  up  their  hands 
while  the  indictment  was  read :  the  Earl  of  Essex 
first  cast  up  his  hand  with  a  bold  countenance,  and 
said,  "  I  have  held  it  up  to  a  better  purpose,  and 
"  thought  to  have  done  so  again."  During  the 
reading  of  the  indictment,  •  to  which  he  paid  great 
attention,  "  he  did  very  often  show  divers  gestures 
"  with  much  smiling  in  countenance,  and  often  whis- 
"  pering  to  his  companion ;  acting  also  a  vehement 
"  passion  of  admiration,  with  holding  up  his  hands 
"  and  shaking  his  head,  blessing  himself,  as  it  were, 
"  at  the  strangeness  of  those  accusations,  though 
"  silent  the  whole  time,  not  uttering  one  word  of  in- 
"  terruption." 

Serjeant  Yelverton  opened  the  prosecution  in  a 
speech  of  great  moderation,  showing  that  whoever 
is  guilty  of  rebellion  is  guilty  of  an  intention  to  seek 
the  death  of  the  Prince,  which  is  treason,  and  that 
the  punishment  of  treason  is  death.  He  ended  his 

1  Lord  Grey  had  been  committed  to  the  custody  of  the  Marshal,  while 
in  Ireland,  for  having  given  some  orders  to  a  colonel  of  horse,  without 
permission  of  Southampton,  General  of  the  Horse.  This  bred  a  quarrel ; 
but  the  Queen  prevented  a  duel,  and  commanded  them  not  to  meddle 
with  each  other ;  notwithstanding  which  Grey  set  upon  Southampton  in 
the  Strand,  one  day  in  January,  1600  ;  the  former  having  many  followers, 
the  latter  only  a  footboy,  who  lost  his  hand  in  the  encounter  ;  nevertheless 
Southampton  contrived  to  defend  himself  till  succour  arrived.  For  this 
Lord  Grey  was  committed  to  the  Fleet. 

L  4 


152  LIVES   OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

speech  with  a  prayer,  that  God  might  long  preserve 
Her  Majesty,  and  guard  her  from  her  enemies ;  to 
which  Essex  and  Southampton  replied,  "  Amen,  and 
"  God  confound  their  souls  that  ever  wished  other- 
"  wise  to  her  sacred  person." 

The  Attorney  General,  Sir  Edward  Coke,  suc- 
ceeded, who,  in  his  usual  coarse  and  brutal  style, 
endeavoured  to  aggravate  the  offence  of  the  pri- 
soners. 

The  declaration  of  the  Lord  Keeper,  Lord  Chief 
Justice,  and  Earl  of  Worcester,  was  read  and  at- 
tested by  the  two  latter,  and  the  examination  of  one 
Henry  Witherington,  who  had  accompanied  the  Earls 
into  the  city,  and  left  them  there,  was  also  proved. 

Essex  said  that  they  were  charged  by  the  Attorney 
with  having  dealt  with  Papists :  he  desired  to  assure 
their  Lordships  that  Papists  had  been  hired  and 
suborned  to  bring  him  into  danger,  and  that  his 
handwriting  had  been  counterfeited  with  the  like 
purpose.  The  last  assertion  referred  to  the  following 
circumstance.  While  Essex  was  in  the  custody  of 
the  Lord  Keeper,  the  Countess  gave  a  casket  of 
letters  (for  purpose  of  concealment  in  case  her  hus- 
band's papers  should  be  seized)  to  the  wife  of  one 
John  Daniel,  who  had  been  her  gentlewoman,  to  keep 
them  for  her. 

Jane  Daniel  says1,  that  about  the  18th  October, 

1  In  a  MS.  book  written  by  Jane  Daniel,  and  entitled  "  Daniel's  Dis- 
asters," which  has  lately  been  discovered  in  the  Chapter  House,  Westmin- 
ster, with  a  privy  seal  attached,  authorising  the  printing  of  the  said  book, 
in  the  reign  of  James  I.,  it  appears  that  Jane  Daniel  was  the  daughter  of 
Franc;ois  Kethulle,  Lord  of  Ryhove,  in  Flanders,  Governor  and  Highbailiff 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  153 

1599,  the  Countess  of  Essex  committed  to  her  charge 
a  "  casket  of  a  reasonable  bigness,"  keeping  the  key 
herself,  and  saying  there  were  only  letters  therein. 
About  the  7th  January,  1600,  Lady  Essex  sent  for 
the  casket  again  :  "  the  next  day  after  the  casket 
"  was  delivered,  her  L.  came  to  my  house  and  told 
"  me  that  she  missed  some  of  her  letters  out  of  it ; 
"  and  being  answered  by  me  that  I  never  touched 
"  any  of  her  letters,  my  husband  was  called  forth  of 
"  his  bed,  and  after  some  conference  between  them, 
"  she  desired  that  we  would  make  some  search  in  the 
"  house  among  the  servants  ;  and  went  away  de- 
"  livering  some  expressions  of  discontent  against  my 
"  husband."  On  the  24th  February,  Lady  Essex 
wrote  to  Mrs.  Daniel,  that  she  understood  her  hus- 
band had  the  letters,  adding,  "  let  him  bring  them  to 
"  me,  and  my  Lord  and  I  will  be  better  and  more 
"  kind  to  him  than  ever  we  were;"  and,  in  a  post- 
script, desires  her  to  use  her  best  endeavour  with 
her  husband  :  which,  says  she,  "  I  did,  but,  if  the 
"  depth  of  this  matter  were  well  known,  I  recJved 
"  the  like  success  that  Yolumnia  had  in  persuading 
"  her  son  Coriolanus  to  raise  the  siege  from  Kome, 
"  for  he  whom  I  persuaded  to  shun  Scylla  fell  upon 
"  Charybdis."  Daniel  was  at  the  time  on  duty  at 
the  Court  in  some  post  which  doubtless  was  obtained 
for  him  by  the  master  he  was  betraying.  He  wrote 

of  Ghent  and  Dendermond,  who,  meeting  with  misfortunes,  partly  on 
account  of  his  religion,  died  in  poverty,  and  his  daughter  was  taken  into 
the  service  of  Lady  Essex,  at  that  time  wife  to  Sir  Philip  Sidney ;  and 
remained  with  her  until  she  became  the  wife  of  John  Daniel,  of  Deeres- 
bury,  or  Dewsbury,  in  Cheshire,  who  was  in  Essex's  service. 


154  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

thus  to  his  wife :  "  Jane,  I  am  glad  that  the  Countess 
"  of  Essex  made  you  acquainted  where  her  letters 
"  are,  which  I  was  loth  to  have  done.  But  now  I 
"  think  good  to  let  you  know,  that  my  decayed  estate 
"  is  more  than  I  was  willing  you  should  be  partaker 
"  of;  and  although  I  meant  to  have  delivered  the 
"  Countess'  letters  to  Her  Majesty,  yet  if  I  can  re- 
"  cover  myself  by  them  that  have  wrought  my  decay, 
"  I  will,  for  your  sake,  forbear  my  purpose;  hoping 
"  the  Countess  will  deal  well  with  me,  and  recom- 
"  pense  all  my  losses  sustained  by  her  and  her  Lord, 
"  then  I  will  willingly  satisfy  her  request  in  that 
"  behalf;  otherwise  I  will  deliver  her  letters  to  the 
"  Queen,  as  I  was  before  determined,  and  so  do  bid 
"  you  heartily  farewell.  From  the  Court  at  Rich- 
"  mond,  the  last  of  February,  1600." 

Daniel  was  a  great  scoundrel,  and  fully  deserved  to 
fall  upon  the  Charybdis  he  made  for  himself.  It  ap- 
pears he  demanded  3000/.,  a  sum  that  Lady  Essex 
was  not  able  to  pay,  but  by  the  sale  of  her  jewels  she 
contrived  to  make  up  1720^.,  which  Daniel  consenting 
to  take,  he  was  paid  by  Sir  Edward  Dier  and  Mr. 
William  Lylle ;  and  gave  up  to  them,  not  the  original 
letters,  but  forged  duplicates  he  had  obtained. 

Peter  Bales,  a  schoolmaster,  who  was  employed 
by  Daniel  to  copy  the  letters,  made  a  declaration 
of  the  circumstances  attending  his  employment.1 
He  says  that  he  suspected  there  was  treason  in 
the  letters,  from  some  secrcsy  contained  in  one, 

1  Chapter  House,  Westminster. 


CHAP.V.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  155 

beginning  "  Frank, — I  send  unto  you  Cuffe,  my  man, 
"  whom  you  may  believe  in  what  he  saith ; "  and 
about  the  middle  of  the  letter,  "the  Queen's  corn- 
"  mandment  may  break  my  neck,  but  mine  enemies  at 
"  home  shall  never  break  my  heart :  "  and  in  the  end 
of  the  letter  he  saith,  "  when  your  belly  shall  be  laid, 
"  I  will  provide  for  your  being  here  ; "  which  letter 
was  from  the  Earl  in  Ireland  to  his  Countess  in 
England,  dated  in  August  before  his  coming  over. 

If  we  cannot  like  the  schoolmaster  discover  trea- 
son in  these  expressions,  we  at  all  events  learn  one 
remarkable  fact,  which  refutes  many  an  accusation 
against  Essex,  of  treasonable  plans  for  returning 
from  Ireland  at  the  head  of  his  army  ;  for  in  August 
he  had  so  little  intention  of  leaving  that  country, 
that  he  looked  forward  to  his  wife  joining  him  there 
after  her  confinement,  which  took  place  the  30th  of 
September.  It  is  probable  the  letters  contained  per- 
sonal allusions  to  the  Queen,  of  a  nature  which  made 
it  very  desirable  they  should  not  be  seen  by  her. 

Mr.  Daniel,  however,  does  not  seem  to  have  en- 
joyed his  plunder  very  long.  The  declaration  of 
Peter  Bales  was  made  in  July,  1600.  Daniel  was 
sentenced  in  the  Star  Chamber  to  perpetual  imprison- 
ment, to  pay  a  fine  of  3000/.,  of  which  2000/.  were  to 
be  returned  to  the  Countess,  and  to  stand  with  his 
ears  nailed  to  the  pillory,  and  this  inscription  —  "A 
wicked  forger  and  impostor" 

To  return  from  this  digression  to  the  trial. 

Sir  Ferdinando  Gorges  was  examined,  whose  evi- 
dence was  to  the  same  effect  as  the  others ;  but  being 


156  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

particularly  pressed,  both  by  the  peers  and  the  pri- 
soners, to  disclose  anything  further  of  any  intention 
against  the  Queen's  person,  he  said,  that  by  the  oath 
he  had  taken,  he  never  knew  or  heard  of  any  thought 
or  purpose  of  hurt  or  disloyalty  intended  to  Her 
Majesty's  person  by  my  Lord  of  Essex. 

Essex  accused  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  of  having  said,  that 
the  Infanta  of  Spain  was  the  right  heir  to  the  Crown  of 
England.  The  Secretary,  who  had  been  concealed,  in 
the  anticipation,  as  it  seems,  of  some  such  charge, 
stepped  forth  on  this  being  said,  and  desiring  to  speak, 
insisted  that  Essex  should  produce  his  authority,  who 
only  replied,  that  Southampton  had  heard  it  as  well 
as  himself.  Cecyll  then  conjured  the  latter,  by  his 
duty  to  God,  his  Christianity,  and  their  ancient 
friendship,  to  name  the  councillor  to  whom  he  was 
reported  to  have  made  this  speech.  Being  told  it  was 
Mr.  Comptroller,  the  Secretary  fell  on  his  knees,  desired 
that  Sir  William  Knollys  might  be  sent  for,  and  sent 
a  message  to  the  Queen,  vowing  to  God,  that  if  she 
would  not  allow  Sir  William  to  come,  he  would  die 
rather  than  ever  serve  her  again.  It  appeared  that  a 
book,  treating  of  the  succession  of  the  Infanta,  had 
been  read  in  his  presence,  and  some  remarks  made  on 
it,  but  that  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  had  never  used  such  an 
expression  to  the  Comptroller.  Doubtless  it  was  one 
of  the  stories  propagated  and  exaggerated  by  an 
enemy  of  Cecyll,  to  make  it  palatable  to  the  Earl  of 
Essex ;  although,  from  the  extreme  agitation  evinced 
by  Sir  Robert,  it  is  probable  he  had  some  secret 
correspondence  which  he  dreaded  might  become 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  157 

known,  though  of  any  intention  of  advocating  the 
interest  of  the  Infanta  we  must  acquit  him. 

When  Sir  Walter  Ralegh  was  called  and  sworn, 
Essex  exclaimed,  "  What  booteth  it  to  swear  this 
fox  ?  " 

The  confessions  of  some  of  the  principal  followers 
of  Essex  and  Southampton  were  next  put  in.  The 
Earls  were  totally  unaware  of  this,  and  it  must  have 
been  a  severe  shock  to  find  those  matters  confessed, 
of  which,  otherwise,  there  had  been  no  proof;  as  of 
the  meetings  at  Drury  House,  and  what  passed  at 
their  consultations.  What  means  were  used  to  induce 
those  unhappy  men  to  confess,  we  know  not ;  it  availed 
them  but  little.  These  confessions  were  all  taken  on 
the  18th,  the  day  before  the  trial  of  the  Earls. 

Sir  John  Davis  confessed  that  they  met  at  Drury 
House,  the  Sunday  se'nnight  before  the  outbreak,  for 
the  first  time :  the  object  of  the  meetings  was  to 
consult  how  my  Lord  should  possess  himself  of  the 
Court ;  and  they  had  two  meetings. 

Sir  Charles  Davers  made  a  similar  confession,  the 
substance  of  which  is  contained  in  our  account  of  the 
projected  enterprise.  He  said  that  Cuffe  had  always 
been  of  opinion  that  the  Earl  should  go  to  Court  after 
that  fashion. 

Sir  Christopher  Blount's  was  to  the  same  effect ; 
and  in  reply  to  a  question,  whether  he  did  not  expect 
toleration  for  his  religion  should  the  Earl  come  to 
the  chief  power,  he  said  he  should  be  wrong  to 
deny  it. 

The  Earl  of  Rutland  knew  nothing  before  he  went 


158  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

to  Essex  House  on  Sunday  morning ;  whither  he  went, 
resolved  to  live  and  die  with  the  Earl  of  Essex. 

Lord  Sandys  was  only  acquainted  with  what  passed 
on  the  Sunday. 

Lord  Cromwell  did  not  make  any  deposition 
a,t  that  time,  nor  until  after  the  death  of  Essex; 
nor  does  it  appear  that  Henry  Cuffe1  or  Sir 
Gilly  Meyrick  ever  did.  These  confessions  disclosed 
the  meetings  of  Drury  House ;  and  although  South- 
ampton urged  that  to  consult  was  not  to  determine, 
and  that  there  was  no  connection  between  those 
meetings  and  the  irruption  into  the  city,  which  was 
caused  entirely  by  the  sudden  intimation  of  danger 
to  Essex,  and  the  arrival  of  the  Lord  Keeper,  yet  a 
much  graver  case  was  thereby  made  against  them. 

Great  surprise  was  felt  at  this  weak  betrayal  of 
themselves  and  their  associates.  George  Carleton, 
writing  to  his  brother  Dudley,  after  the  execution  of 
the  Earl,  says,  "  It  was  strange  to  see  the  beginning 
"  of  this  action,  whereof  I  was  a  beholder,  and  some- 
"  what  stranger  to  consider  the  circumstances  now 
"  towards  the  end  ;  for  these  noble  and  resolute  men, 
"  assured  of  one  another  by  their  undoubted  valor, 
"  and  combined  together  by  firm  oaths,  being  all 
u  taken,  severed,  examined,  and  the  principal  ar- 
"  raigned  and  condemned,  set  in  the  end  before  their 
"  deaths  to  such  plain  confessions  and  accusations 
"  one  of  another,  that  they  seemed  to  strive  who 
"  should  draw  one  another  in  deepest,  and  sought  by 

1  Cuffe  wrote  a  remarkable  letter,  which  may  be  called  a  confession,  to 
Sir  Robert  Cecyll,  while  under  sentence  of  death. 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  159 

"  all  means  to  remove  the  blame  and  shame  of  being 
"  the  first  movers  and  contrivers  of  these  their  con- 
"  fessed  treasonable  plots  one  from  another ;  in  which 
"  the  Earl  himself  exceeded  all  other  to  all  men's 
"  wonder."  This  is  an  unjust  charge  against  Essex, 
who  did  not  make  any  confession  until,  through  the 
confessions  of  his  comrades,  he  had  been  condemned 
to  death. 

The  most  remarkable  circumstance  attending  the 
trial  was  the  appearance  of  Francis  Bacon  as  counsel 
for  the  prosecution. 

A  man  of  fine  feeling,  or  one  endowed  with  a  high 
sense  of  honour,  would  have  stood  up  and  defended  to 
the  very  utmost  of  his  power  the  friend  and  patron 
of  former  years ;  one  who  possessed  but  the  most 
ordinary  share  of  such  qualities  would  have  re- 
mained neuter.  Bacon  was  none  of  these.  To  him 
the  smiles  of  the  Queen  far  outweighed  the  calls 
of  gratitude,  friendship,  and  honour.  Not  being  a 
Crown  lawyer,  he  was  not  required  by  his  office 
to  appear ;  the  offence  was  so  clear,  that  a  con- 
viction was  certain,  had  no  counsel  spoken  at  all ; 
yet  did  Francis  Bacon,  to  his  eternal  shame,  not  only 
appear  against  them,  but  exerted  all  his  wit  and  elo- 
quence to  aggravate  the  offence  of  the  prisoners,  and 
to  cut  away  those  grounds  of  palliation  from  which 
they  might  have  hoped  to  reach  the  Queen's  pardon. 
How  different  was  the  conduct  of  Serjeant  Yelverton, 
who,  many  years  after,  was  called  on,  as  Attorney  Ge- 
neral, to  prosecute  the  Earl  of  Somerset,  and  nobly 
dared  the  utmost  anger  of  King  James  rather  than 


160  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

plead  against  the  man  who  had  made  him  Solicitor 
General. 

Essex  urged  in  palliation  of  his  conduct  that  he 
was  surrounded  by  enemies,  who  had  ruined  his  for- 
tune, who  sought  his  life,  and  by  whose  means  he  had 
been  driven  to  despair.  Bacon  compared  him  to  Pi- 
sistratus,  who,  by  working  on  the  affection  borne  him 
by  the  citizens,  established  tyranny  at  Athens.  He 
declared  all  that  Essex  had  said  or  could  say  were 
but  shadows.  Essex  then  interrupted  him,  saying, 
he  should  call  Mr.  Bacon  for  a  witness  against  Mr. 
Bacon  the  pleader ;  and  desired  him  to  tell  the 
Lords,  whether  he  had  not  written  letters  in  the 
names  of  Essex  and  his  brother  Anthony,  in  which 
he  pointed  out  the  enemies  of  the  Earl  as  plainly  as 
he  now  denied  them.  To  this  Bacon  only  replied, 
that  he  had  spent  more  hours  in  endeavouring  to 
make  Essex  a  good  subject  than  any  man  in  the 
world  besides ;  and  proceeded  to  compare  Essex  to 
the  Duke  of  Guise,  and  his  going  into  the  city  to  the 
day  of  the  barricades  at  Paris  ;  a  comparison  which 
more  than  any  other  which  could  have  been  hit  upon, 
\vas  calculated  to  embitter  and  exasperate  the  feelings 
of  the  Queen  against  the  Earl ;  for  as  some  analogy 
might  be  drawn  between  him  and  the  Duke  of  Guise, 
the  comparison  which  would  naturally  follow  between 
her  and  Henry  III.,  who  was  held  in  such  subjection 
by  his  great  subject,  must  have  been  in  the  highest 
degree  offensive  to  her. 

The  prisoners  having  been  withdrawn,  the  Peers 
unanimously  found  them  guilty  of  high  treason. 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  161 

Being  then  brought  back  to  the  bar,  the  bearer  of  the 
axe  turning  its  edge  towards  them,  the  Clerk  of  the 
Crown  said :  "  Robert,  Earl  of  Essex,  you  have  been 
"  arraigned  and  indicted  of  high  treason  ;  you  have 
"  pleaded  not  guilty,  and  for  your  trial  you  have 
"  put  yourself  on  God  and  your  Peers;  the  Peers  here 
"  have  found  you  guilty ;  now  what  can  you  say  for 
"  yourself,  why  you  should  not  have  judgment  of 
"  death  ?  " 

The  Earl  spoke  as  follows :  "I  only  say  this,  that 
"  since  I  have  committed  that  which  has  brought  me 
"  within  the  compass  of  the  law,  I  may  be  accounted 
"  the  law's  traitor  in  offending  the  law,  for  which  I 
"  am  willing  to  die,  and  will  as  willingly  go  thereto 
"  as  ever  any  did ;  but  I  beseech  your  Lordships 
"  here  to  have  consideration  of  what  I  have  formerly 
"  spoken,  and  do  me  the  right  to  think  I  am  a 
"  Christian,  and  that  I  have  a  soul  to  save,  and  that 
"  I  know  it  is  no  time  to  jest.  Lying  and  counter- 
"  feiting  my  soul  abhorreth;  for  I  am  not  desperate 
"  nor  devoid  of  grace,  now  to  speak  falsely.  I  do  not 
"  speak  to  save  my  life,  for  that  I  see  were  vain  ; 
"  I  owe  God  a  death,  which  shall  be  welcome,  how 
"  soon  soever  it  pleaseth  Her  Majesty.  And  to 
"  satisfy  the  opinion  of  the  world,  that  my  con- 
"  science  is  free  from  Atheism  and  Popery  ;  how- 
"  soever  I  have  been  misled  in  this  action,  to  trans- 
"  gress  the  points  of  the  law,  in  the  course  and 
"  defence  of  private  matters,  and  whatsoever  through 
"  my  weakness  of  wit,  and  dulness  of  memory,  or 
<;  through  violent  courses,  I  have  omitted,  or  may 

VOL.  II.  M 


162  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

"  have  uttered  otherwise ;  yet  I  will  live  and  die 
"  in  the  faith  and  true  religion  which  here  I  have 
"  professed." 

The  Clerk  of  the  Crown  having  put  the  same 
question  to  the  Earl  of  Southampton,  he  made  a 
speech,  throwing  himself  wholly  on  the  mercy  of 
the  Queen. 

The  Lord  Steward  then  addressed  Essex,  saying, 
that  the  Queen  had  granted  him  many  favours,  and 
he  therefore  wished  that  Essex  would  in  like  manner 
submit  himself  to  Her  Majesty's  mercy.  To  whom 
the  Earl  replied  :  — 

"  My  Lord,  you  have  made  an  honorable  motion  ; 
"  do  but  send  for  me  at  the  time  of  my  death,  and 
"  you  shall  see  how  penitent  and  humble  I  will  be 
"  towards  Her  Majesty,  both  in  acknowledging  her 
"  exceeding  favors  to  my  ancestors  and  to  myself, 
"  whereby  I  doubt  not,  but  that  the  penitent  suffering 
"  of  my  death,  and  sprinkling  of  my  blood,  will 
"  quench  the  evil  conceited  thoughts  of  Her  Majesty 
"  against  me.  And  I  do  most  humbly  desire  Her 
"  Majesty,  that  my  death  may  put  a  period  to  my 
"  offences  committed,  and  be  no  more  remembered  by 
"  Her  Highness.  If  I  had  ever  perceived  any  of  my 
"  followers  to  have  harboured  an  evil  thought  against 
"  Her  Majesty,  I  would  have  been  the  first  that 
"  should  have  punished  the  same  in  being  his  execu- 
"  tioner ;  and  therefore  I  beseech  you,  my  good  Lord, 
"  mistake  me  not,  nor  think  me  so  proud  that  I  will 
"  not  crave  Her  Majesty's  mercy,  for  I  protest, 
"  kneeling  upon  the  very  knee  of  my  heart,  I  do 


.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  163 

"  crave  Her  Majesty's  mercy  with  all  humility;  yet  I 
"  had  rather  die  than  live  in  misery." 

Then  the  Lord  Steward  exhorted  them  to  prepare 
to  meet  their  God,  and  said  that  the  law  having  found 
them  guilty,  he  must  proceed  to  judgment.  To  which 
Essex  replied  cheerfully,  "  Yea,  my  good  Lord,  with 
41  a  very  good  will  I  pray  you  to  go  on." 

Then  the  Lord  High  Steward  gave  judgment :  "  You 
"  must  go  back  to  the  place  from  whence  you  came, 
44  there  to  remain  during  Her  Majesty's  pleasure ;  from 
44  thence  to  be  drawn  on  a  hurdle  through  the  streets 
44  of  London,  and  so  to  the  place  of  execution,  where 
44  you  shall  be  hanged,  bowelled,  and  quartered ;  your 
44  heads  and  quarters  to  be  disposed  of  at  Her 
44  Majesty's  pleasure  ;  and  so  God  have  mercy  on  your 
"  souls." 

The  Earl  of  Essex  then  said :  44  My  Lord,  I  am  not 
44  a  whit  dismayed  to  receive  this  sentence,  for  I 
44  protest  death  is  as  welcome  to  me  as  life ;  and  I 
44  shall  die  as  cheerful  a  death  upon  such  a  testimony 
"  as  ever  man  did.  And  I  think  it  fit  my  poor 
44  quarters,  that  have  done  Her  Majesty  true  service 
44  in  divers  parts  of  the  world,  should  be  sacrificed 
44  and  disposed  of  at  Her  Majesty's  pleasure ;  where- 
44  unto  with  all  willingness  of  heart  I  do  submit 
44  myself.  But  one  thing  I  beg  of  you,  my  Lords, 
44  that  have  free  access  to  Her  Majesty's  person, 
"  humbly  to  beseech  Her  Majesty  that,  during  the 
44  short  time  I  shall  live,  T  may  have  the  same  preacher 
"  to  comfort  me  that  hath  been  with  me  since  my 
44  troubles  began  ;  for  as  he  that  hath  been  long  sick, 

M    2 


164  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

"  is  most  desirous  of  the  physician  which  hath  been 
"  and  is  best  acquainted  with  the  constitution  of  his 
"  body,  so  do  I  most  wish  to  have  comfort  and 
"  spiritual  physic  from  the  preacher  which  hath  been 
"  and  is  acquainted  with  the  inward  griefs  and 
"  secret  affections  of  my  soul.  And  my  last  request 
"  shall  be  only  this :  that  it  will  please  Her  Highness 
"  that  my  Lord  Thomas  Howard  and  the  Lieutenant 
"  of  the  Tower  may  be  partakers  with  me  in  receiv- 
"  ing  the  sacrament,  and  be  witness  of  it,  in  token 
"  of  what  I  have  protested  in  this  life,  for  my  loyalty, 
"  religion,  and  peace  of  conscience ;  and  then,  when- 
"  soever  it  shall  please  Her  Majesty  to  call  me,  I 
"  shall  be  ready  to  seal  the  same  with  my  blood." 

The  Earl  then  desired  the  Lords  Delaware  and 
Morley  to  forgive  him  for  having  been  the  cause  of 
leading  their  sons  into  trouble,  and  declared  that  they 
knew  nothing  of  what  was  done  or  to  be  done.  He 
also  asked  pardon  of  the  Earl  of  Worcester  and  Chief 
Justice  for  having  confined  them. 

The  trial  lasted  from  eight  o'clock  in  the  morning 
till  seven  at  night. 

When  Essex  found  that  Sir  Christopher  Blount, 
Sir  Ferdinando  Gorges,  Sir  Charles  Davers,  and  Sir 
John  Davis,  had  confessed  all  the  consultations  held  at 
Drury  House,  for  arranging  the  plan  of  surprising 
the  Court,  he  exclaimed  to  those  about  him,  that 
these  very  men  who  now  accused  him,  had  been,  ever 
since  the  last  August,  inciting  him  to  work  his  access 
to  the  Queen  with  force. 

Dr.  Dove,  Dean  of  Norwich,  was  sent  to  Essex  the 


CHAP.V.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  165 

next  day  by  the  Lords  of  the  Council,  to  urge  him  to 
acknowledge  the  offences  of  which  he  had  been  found 
guilty ;  he  refused  to  listen  to  the  persuasions  of  that 
reverend  divine.  Being  asked  by  the  Dean  why  he 
had  refused  to  go  to  the  Council,  when  sent  for  on  the 
Friday  before  the  insurrection,  he  replied,  that  David 
refused  to  go  to  Saul  when  sent  for  by  him. 

Mr.  Ashton  his  chaplain,  also  instructed  by  the 
Council,  was  next  admitted  to  him.  This  person  is 
described  as  a  timid  and  mercenary  man,  who  by 
great  show  of  zeal  had  gained  the  good  opinion  of 
the  Earl,  who  being  himself  of  strong  religious  prin- 
ciples, was  very  easily  deceived  into  believing  others 
as  sincere  as  himself. 

Mr.  Ashton  found  Essex  very  cheerful  and  resigned. 
Instead  of  administering  consolation  to  him,  this  Chris- 
tian minister  opened  upon  the  unfortunate  nobleman  a 
torrent  of  the  most  bitter  reproaches.  He  told  him  that 
he  had  dishonoured  God,  shamed  his  profession,  of- 
fended his  sovereign,  and  drawn  on  himself  notes  of 
infamy.  That  he  had  shown  to  the  world  that  he  was  a 
hypocrite  in  religion,  and  in  his  heart  either  an  atheist 
or  a  papist.  That  he  was  sorry  to  see  he  had  no  more 
sense  of  these  fearful  sins.  He  declared  that  what- 
ever colour  it  might  please  the  Earl  to  give  to  it,  there 
was  no  doubt  his  object  was  an  ambitious  seeking  of 
the  crown;  and  unless  by  a  true  confession  and 
unfeigned  repentance  he  unburthened  himself  of  these 
sins,  he  would  carry  out  of  the  world  a  guilty  soul  to 
God,  and  leave  upon  his  memory  the  stain  of  infamy 
to  the  remotest  posterity. 

M    3 


166  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

Essex,  who  had  expected  to  receive  spiritual  comfort 
only  from  Mr.  Ashton,  was  grievously  distressed  at 
the  slanderous  accusations  with  which  his  chaplain  so 
unmercifully  overwhelmed  him.  After  a  long  and 
sad  silence,  he  said  to  him :  "  Mr.  Ashton,  you  have 
"  laid  grievous  things  to  my  charge,  of  which  if  I 
"  could  not  with  truth  free  and  clear  myself,  I  might 
"  justly  be  held  one  of  the  most  unworthy  creatures 
"  on  earth.  And  I  assure  you  that  to  have  these 
"  reports  carried  and  believed  in  the  world,  is  more 
"  grievous  to  me  than  a  thousand  deaths.  Touching 
"  my  religion,  I  have  always  abhorred  atheism  and 
"  superstition,  believing  in  the  true  God,  and  desiring 
"  to  serve  him  in  [that  form  of  his  worship  professed 
"  and  believed  in  England,  in  which  from  my  infancy 
"  I  was  brought  up,  and  have  constantly  held  the 
"  profession  thereof  till  this  day.  True  it  is,  that 
"  in  those  public  services  wherein  I  have  been  ern- 
"  ployed,  I  have  had  use  of  men  of  sundry  quali- 
"  ties.  But  howsoever  I  loved  their  valor,  faithful- 
"  ness,  and  knowledge  of  service,  that  were  not  re- 
"  ligious,  I  was  ever  grieved  at  the  want  thereof  in 
"  them,  and  neglected  no  opportunity  I  could  possibly 
"  gain,  to  bring  them  to  it. 

"  For  the  crown,  I  never  affected  it ;  neither,  I 
"  praise  God,  was  ever  so  careless  of  my  soul,  as  by 
"  seeking  a  crown  on  earth  to  which  I  had  no  color 
"  of  title,  to  deprive  my  soul  of  a  crown  in  heaven, 
"  whereof  I  have  so  assured  hope.  Neither  am*  I 
"  ignorant  what  success  God,  in  his  justice,  hath  laid 
14  upon  such  ambitious  courses  in  ages  past.  But 


CHAP.V.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  167 

"  being  a  principal  member  in  this  commonwealth,  I 
"  could  not  but  see  and  feel  what  misery  was  near 
"  unto  my  country  by  the  great  power  of  such  as  are 
"  known  indeed  to  be  atheists,  papists,  and  pen- 
"  sioners  to  the  mortal  enemies  of  this  kingdom.  I 
"  knew  myself  to  be  bound  in  conscience,  as  a  Chris- 
"  tian,  to  prevent  the  subversion  of  religion,  and  as 
"  an  Englishman  to  have  regard  of  my  native  country. 
"  The  only  means  left  to  turn  away  these  evils  was 
"  to  procure  my  access  to  Her  Majesty,  with  whom  I 
"  assured  myself  to  have  had  that  gracious  hearing, 
"  that  might  have  tended  to  the  infinite  happiness 
"  of  this  state,  both  in  removing  evil  instruments 
"  from  about  her  person,  and  in  settling  a  succession 
"  for  the  Crown,  to  the  preventing  of  Spanish  servi- 
"  tude,  and  the  saving  of  many  thousand  English- 
"  men's  lives.  No,  no,  Mr.  Ashton,  I  never  desired 
"  other  condition  than  the  state  of  a  subject ;  but  only 
"  to  my  sovereign,  and  not  to  so  base  and  unworthy 
"  vassals  under  her." 

This  answer  was  far  from  being  sufficient  to  ap- 
pease the  appetite  of  Mr*  Ashton's  employers ;  he 
accordingly  told  Essex,  that  he  did  not  believe  those 
general  assertions,  and  warned  him,  that  though  he 
knew  what  it  was  to  die  here,  he  had  yet  to  learn 
what  it  was  to  receive  condemnation  at  the  judgment- 
seat  of  God.  He  said  he  did  not  believe  the  Earl  had 
any  other  motives  than  he  had  named,  nor  that  he 
could  mention  any  one  person  who  was  either  his  ad- 
viser, persuader,  or  approver. 

Deeply  distressed  at  this  doubt  of  his  truth,  Essex 

M   4 


168  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

replied :  "  Mr.  Ashton,  I  cannot  marvel  that  my 
"  protestations  are  so  little  believed  by  my  enemies, 
"  when  they  prevail  so  little  with  you.  But  I  am 
"  able,  by  particulars,  so  to  confirm  that  to  you, 
"  who  are  a  minister  of  the  Gospel,  and  messenger  of 
"  God  to  me  at  this  my  last  end,  as  you  shall  no 
"  longer  doubt  it." 

He  proceeded  to  explain  the  whole  scope  and 
bearing  of  his  plan  to  obtain  an  Act  of  Parliament  to 
establish  the  right  of  the  King  of  Scotland  to  the 
succession ;  and  named  a  great  many  persons  of  rank 
and  sound  religion,  who  had  approved  of  his  views, 
and  engaged  with  him  to  further  them. 

The  treacherous  intention  of  Mr.  Ashton,  who 
ought  rather  to  have  been  a  Jesuit  than  va  Puritan 
divine,  now  showed  itself.  He  told  Essex  that  these 
were  great  matters  he  had  divulged,  and  that  he 
should  consider  himself  bound  in  allegiance  to  reveal 
them.  Religious  consolation  was  a  secondary  object 
with  this  worthy  chaplain ;  and  by  his  declarations  that 
he  should  himself  report  the  confidential  communica- 
tion he  had  received,  and  his  other  persuasions,  he  so 
worked  on  the  mind  of  the  Earl,  that  he  was  induced 
to  send  to  Lord  Thomas  Howard,  Constable  of  the 
Tower,  and  request  him  to  move  Her  Majesty  that 
the  Lord  Keeper,  the  Lord  Treasurer,  Lord  Admiral, 
and  Secretary,  might  be  sent  to  him  that  he  might 
discharge  his  conscience  by  confessing  his  offences, 
and  reconciling  himself  to  his  enemies. 

These  great  officers  accordingly  waited  on  him  in 
the  Tower  the  next  day,  and  there  received  his  con- 


CiiAP.V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  169 

fession.  As  most  of  the  conspirators  had  already  con- 
fessed, his  confession  implicated  but  few  who  were  not 
already  in  confinement.  The  principal  of  these  were 
Lord  Mount] oy,  and  Sir  Henry  Neville,  Ambassador 
in  France,  who  had  attended  one  or  two  meetings  at 
Drury  House,  but  on  finding  that  they  projected 
violent  means  to  gain  their  object,  withdrew,  and  re- 
fused to  hold  any  further  communication  with  them. 
Lord  Mount] oy,  in  common  with  the  majority  of  people 
of  consideration  in  the  country,  had  desired  to  see  the 
question  of  the  succession  settled,  and,  as  we  have 
seen,  had  been  engaged  in  the  intrigues  for  that  pur- 
pose. His  services  were  too  valuable  to  be  spared 
from  Ireland,  and  his  preparations  for  flight,  and  his 
fears,  were  ended  by  a  comfortable  letter  from  Eliza- 
beth, assuring  him  of  her  confidence  in  his  loyalty, 
and  not  dropping  a  hint  of  her  knowledge  that  he 
had  been  engaged  with  Essex. 

In  his  weakness,  over  which  we  grieve,  and  which 
can  only  be  accounted  for  by  the  ascendancy  which 
his  chaplain  had  now  gained  over  him,  Essex  requested 
that  his  secretary,  Cuffe,  might  be  brought  before 
him,  when  he  exhorted  him  to  call  to  God  and  the 
Queen  for  mercy,  and  deserve  it  by  confessing  the 
whole  truth  :  "  For  I,"  said  he,  "  that  must  now  pre- 
"  pare  for  another  world,  have  resolved  to  deal 
"  clearly  with  God  and  the  world,  and  must  needs 
"  say  this  to  you  ;  you  have  been  one  of  the  chiefest 
"  instigators  of  me  in  all  these  my  disloyal  courses 
"  into  which  I  have  fallen." 

Cuffe  made  no  other  reply  than  a  complaint  of  his 


170  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.V. 

Lordship's  inconstancy,  and  betraying  of  his  most  de- 
voted friends ;  a  reproof  which  we  are  sorry  to  own 
the  justice  of,  although  his  friends  had  begun  by  be- 
traying him  and  themselves. 

Mr.  Chamberlain  gives  an  account  of  the  trial  and 
subsequent  events  to  Dudley  Carleton,  which  may  be 
supposed  to  represent  the  opinion  and  feeling  of  an  un- 
interested bystander.  After  some  account  of  the  pro- 
ceedings, he  relates  the  heads  of  Essex's  defence,  and 
proceeds : — 

This  was  the  sum  of  his  answer,  but  delivered  with  such 
bravery,  and  so  many  words,  that  a  man  might  easily  see 
that,  as  he  had  ever  lived  popularly,,  so  his  chief  care  was  to 
leave  a  good  opinion  in  the  people's  minds  now  at  parting. 
But  the  worst  of  all,  was  his  many  and  loud  protestations  of 
his  faith  and  loyalty  to  the  Queen  and  State,  which  no  doubt 
caught  and  carried  away  a  great  part  of  his  hearers :  but  I 
cannot  be  so  easily  led  to  believe  protestations,  though  never 
so  deep,  against  manifest  proof;  yet  I  must  needs  say,  that 
one  thing  sticks  much  in  many  men's  minds,  that  whereas 
divers  preachers  were  commanded  the  Sunday  before,  to 
deliver  to  the  people  arribng  his  other  treasons,  that  he  had 
complotted  with  Tyrone,  and  was  reconciled  to  the  Pope — 
and  whereas  Mr.  Attorney,  at  Tom  Leigh's  arraignment, 
averred  the  same  combining  with  Tyrone,  and  that  he  had 
practised  by  the  means  of  seminary  priests,  with  the  Pope 
and  King  of  Spain,  to  be  King  of  England  —  there  was  no 
such  matter  once  mentioned  at  his  arraignment ;  and  yet 
there  was  time  enough  for  it,  from  nine  o'clock  in  the  morn- 
ing till  almost  seven  at  night. 

At  his  coming  to  the  bar,  his  countenance  was  somewhat 
unsettled,  but  after  he  was  once  in,  I  assure  you  I  never  saw 
any  go  through  with  such  boldness  and  shew  of  resolution, 


CHAP.  V.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX,  171 

and  contempt  of  death ;  but  whether  this  courage  was  bor- 
rowed and  put  on  for  the  time,  or  natural,  it  were  hard  to 
judge.  But  I  hear  he  begins  to  relent,  and,  among  other 
faults,  to  acknowledge  and  be  sorry  for,  his  arrogant,  or 
rather,  as  the  Secretary  well  termed  it  to  his  face,  his  impu- 
dent behaviour  at  his  arraignment;  and  what  is  more,  to 
lay  open  the  whole  plot,  and  appeach  divers  others  not  yet 
called  in  question.  His  execution  was  expected  on  Satur- 
day, then  yesterday,  now  to-morrow  or  Thursday.  Most 
of  the  Council  have  been  with  him  these  three  or  four  days 
together. 

The  Earl  of  Southampton  spake  very  well,  but  methought 
somewhat  too  much,  as  well  as  the  other,  and  as  a  man  that 
would  fain  live,  pleaded  hard  to  acquit  himself;  but  all  in 
vain,  for  it  could  not  be :  whereon  he  descended  to  entreaty, 
and  moved  great  commiseration ;  and  though  he  were  gene- 
rally well  liked,  yet  methought  he  was  somewhat  too  low 
and  submiss,  and  seemed  too  loth  to  die  before  a  proud 
enemy. 

I  do  not  well  remember  whether  I  sent  you  word  of  Tom 
Leigh's  traitorous  enterprise  to  surprise  the  Privy  Chamber, 
which  he  communicated  to  Sir  Henry  Neville,  that  married 
my  Lord  Treasurer's  daughter,  and  Sir  Robert  Crosse,  who 
revealed  him,  both  at  once.  Being  arrested,  he  confessed  his 
meaning  was  but  to  have  gotten  the  Queen  to  have  signed  a 
warrant  for  the  noblemen's  delivery  ;  at  his  trial,  he  affirmed 
his  intent  only  to  have  argued  her  one  half  hour,  that  she 
might  have  lived  the  merrier  all  her  life  after.  To  this  tune 
he  died  on  the  17th  of  this  present  at  Tyburn,  very  reso- 
lutely, and,  to  seeing,  religiously. 

This  Captain  Leigh,  as  appears  by  his  trial,  had 
offered  his  services  to  the  Lord  Admiral  and  Secretary 
to  kill  the  Earl  of  Essex,  and,  after  the  latter  was  sent 


172  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

to  the  Tower,  made  proposals  to  force  the  Queen  to 
release  those  Earls,  which,  as  related  by  Mr.  Cham- 
berlain, was  immediately  revealed  to  the  ministers, 
and  on  search  being  made  for  Leigh,  he  was  found, 
in  the  dusk  of  the  evening,  near  the  door  of  the  Privy 
Chamber.  He  was  tried  for  plotting  to  take  away 
the  Queen's  life,  and  although  it  does  not  appear  that 
he  entertained  any  such  intention,  was  condemned 
and  executed  for  the  same;  which,  "as  the  times 
were,  appeared  a  very  seasonable  piece  of  rigor." 

Besides  Mr.  Ashton,  two  other  divines  were  now 
sent  to  Essex,  Dr.  Montford,  Prebendary  of  West- 
minster, and  Dr.  Barlow,  who,  if  their  own  report  be 
trustworthy,  so  worked  on  the  religious  feelings  and 
tender  conscience  of  the  Earl,  that  he  made  use  of  all 
kinds  of  extravagant  expressions,  such  as  that  the 
Queen  could  not  be  in  safety  while  he  lived ;  that  his 
crime  was  a  leprosy,  which  had  infected  far  and 
near ;  and  that  he  desired  to  die.  These  ministers 
were  sent  by  the  faction  which,  having  been  so  long 
striving  to  effect  the  ruin  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  were 
now  within  one  move  of  winning  their  game.  This 
one  was  the  most  difficult ;  for,  not  only  did  Queen 
Elizabeth  at  all  times  affect  the  quality  of  clemency, 
—  and  in  this  case,  however  his  enemies  might  endea- 
vour to  magnify  the  offence  and  its  effects,  she  was 
too  clear-sighted  not  to  be  aware  how  little  real 
danger  to  herself  or  her  crown  was  involved  in  the 
mad  enterprise,  if  it  may  be  so  termed,  of  the  Earl  of 
Essex,  —  but  she  must  have  been  more  or  less  than 
woman,  if  his  present  unhappy  situation  had  not  re- 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  173 

vived  some  feeling  of  tenderness  and  compassion 
towards  the  man  who  for  years  had  been  the  object 
of  her  favour  and  affection.  Tf  the  haughty  and  ob- 
stinate deportment  which  he  had  conceived  it  to  be 
necessary  to  carry  towards  his  mistress,  had  roused  a 
spirit  as  haughty  and  obstinate  as  his  own,  and,  for 
the  time,  extinguished  her  regard,  surely  at  this 
moment,  when  his  life  depended  on  a  stroke  of  her 
pen,  the  old  feelings  must  have  rushed  back  like  a 
torrent  into  their  former  channel.  Essex  said  that  he 
did  not  despise  her  mercy,  but  he  did  not  think  he 
should  sue  too  humbly  for  it.  He  had  been  con- 
demned by  his  Peers  for  an  act  of  treason  against  her  ; 
and  though  not  unwilling  to  receive  mercy,  preferred 
death  before  a  pardon,  which  was  not  the  sponta- 
neous act  of  the  Queen  against  whom  he  had  offended. 
But  the  reader  must  not  suppose  that  no  efforts 
were  made  by  others  to  obtain  a  reprieve  at  least,  for 
the  unhappy  Essex.  Lady  Essex's  appeal  to  Sir 
Robert  Cecyll,  breathed  the  deepest  misery,  and 
surely  could  not  have  been  read  by  her  husband's 
bitterest  enemy  without  emotion. 

No.  XXXVII.1 

Lady  Essex  to  Cecyll. 

Sir,  —  Although  the  answer  I  received  from  you  two  days 
since,  gave  me  small  encouragement  to  flatter  myself  that 
any  importunity  I  could  make  should  be  able  to  appease  the 
scandal  you  had  conceived  to  be  given  you  by  my  unfortunate 

1  Lansd.  MSS.  88.  14. 


174  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  V. 

husband  ;  yet,  had  it  not  pleased  God  to  pour  upon  me  one 
affliction  after  another,  and  to  add  to  the  immeasurable  sor- 
rows of  my  heart  so  violent  a  sickness  as  I  am  not  able  of 
myself  to  stir  out  of  my  bed,  I  had  presented  unto  your  view 
the  image  of  the  unfortunate  widow  mentioned  in  the  Scrip- 
tures, and  had  never  ceased  to  pester  you  with  my  complaints 
till  you  had  afforded  me  some  assurance  that  whatsoever 
respects  might  depart  you  from  so  much  as  wishing  my  hus- 
band's good,  yet  that  an  afflicted  and  woful  lady  should  not 
wholly  lose  her  labor,  or  return  desperate  of  such  comforts 
as  the  last  year  you  so  honorably  ministered  unto  me  in  a 
great  affliction,  though  differing  from  this  in  quality.  As  I 
received  then  such  noble  courtesies  from  you  as  must  never 
be  forgotten,  so  be  persuaded,  I  beseech  you,  that  whatsoever 
new  favor  you  shall  now  be  pleased  to  add  to  the  old,  shall 
so  bind  me  to  reverence  of  your  virtues,  as  I  will  resolve  to 
reckon  myself  a  bankeroute  until  I  have  yielded  some  de- 
monstrative testimony  of  the  best  that  the  honestest  heart 
can  express  for  the  worthiest  benefit. 

Honorable  Sir,  I  know  there  be  private  causes  to  discourage 
me  from  moving,  you  hearing;  yet,  seeing  the  highest  pro- 
vidence hath  placed  you  in  a  calling  most  proper  to  be  a 
mean  for  my  comfort,  and  that  former  experience  hath  taught 
me  that  you  are  rather  inclined  to  do  good,  than  to  look 
alway  to  private  interest;  I  beseech  you,  even  for  your  virtue's 
sake,  perform  this  noble  office  for  me,  as  to  join  with  the  rest 
of  your  Lordships  of  the  Council  in  presenting  my  humblest 
supplication  to  Her  Majesty. 

Dear  Sir,  I  pray  you  bear  with  these  tedious  blots  from  her 
feeble  hand  and  sad  sick  heart,  that  is  stored  with  much 
thankfulness  and  infinite  best  wishes  unto  you,  who  will  ever 
rest  your  most  beholding  poor  distressed  servant, 

FKANCES  ESSEX. 

Good  Mr.  Secretary,  even  as  you  desire  of  God  that  your 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  175 

own  son  never  be  made  orphan  by  the  untimely  or  unna- 
tural death  of  his  dear  father,  vouchsafe  a  relenting,  to  the 
not  urging,  if  you  may  not  to  the  hindering,  of  that  fatal 
warrant  for  execution,  which  if  it  be  once  signed,  I  shall 
never  wish  to  breathe  one  hour  after. 

We  see  by  this  letter  that  Cecyll  had  been  deeply 
offended  by  the  unfounded  accusation  that  he  had 
supported  the  claim  of  the  Infanta  to  the  Crown, 
which  was  put  forth  by  Essex  on  his  trial ;  and  that, 
in  consequence,  he  had  returned  an  unfavourable 
answer  to  a  previous  letter  from  Lady  Essex. 
Whether  this  touching  appeal  produced  an  effect,  or 
whether  other  motives  actuated  him,  we  have  no 
means  of  ascertaining,  but  there  is  no  doubt  that  he 
showed  symptoms  of  relenting1,  which  called  forth 
the  following  letter. 

No.  XXXVIII.2 
Ralegh  to  Cecyll. 

[This  letter  is  not  dated,  but  endorsed  1601.] 

Sir,  —  I  am  not  wise  enough  to  give  you  advice;  but,  if 
you  take  it  for  a  good  counsel  to  relent  towards  this  tyrant, 
you  will  repent  when  it  shall  be  too  late.  His  malice  is  fixed, 
and  will  not  evaporate  by  any  of  your  mild  courses ;  for  he 
will  ascribe  the  attention  to  Her  Majesty's  pusillanimity,  and 
not  to  your  good  nature,  knowing  that  you  work  upon  her 

1  The  opinion  that  Cecyll  did  not  desire  to  put  Essex  to  death,  receives 
support  from  an  expression  of  Sir  John  Harrington,  in  a  letter  to  the 
Bishop  of  Bath  and  Wells,  1603.     "  Cecyll  doth  bear  no  love  to  Ralegh, 
as  you  well  understand,  in  the  matter  of  Essex."  —  Nug.  Ant.  ii.  342. 

2  Murdin,  811. 


176  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

humor,  and  not  out  of  any  love  towards  him.  The  less  you 
make  him,  the  less  he  shall  be  able  to  harm  you  and  yours ; 
and  if  Her  Majesty's  favor  fail  him,  he  will  again  decline  to 
a  common  person.  For  after-revenges  fear  them  not ;  for 
your  own  father  was  esteemed  to  be  the  contriver  of  Norfolk's 
ruin,  yet  his  son1  followeth  your  father's  son,  and  loveth  him. 
Humors  of  men  succeed  not,  but  grow  by  occasion,  and  acci- 
dents of  time  and  power.  Somerset2  made  no  revenge  on  the 
Duke  of  Northumberland's  heirs.  Northumberland3  that 
now  is,  thinks  not  of  Hatton's  issue.  Kelloway  lives,  that 
murdered  the  brother  of  Horsey,  and  Horsey  let  him  go  by 
all  his  life  time.  I  could  name  a  thousand  of  those ;  and 
therefore  after-fears  are  but  prophecies,  or  rather  conjectures, 
from  causes  remote.  Look  to  the  present,  and  you  do  wisely. 
His  son  shall  be  the  youngest  Earl  of  England  but  one, 
and  if  his  father  be  now  kept  down,  Will.  Cecyll4  shall  be 
able  to  keep  as  many  men  at  his  heels  as  he,  and  more  too. 
He  may  also  match  in  a  better  house  than  his,  and  so  that 
fear  is  not  worth  the  fearing.  But  if  the  father  continue,  he 
will  be  able  to  break  the  branches,  and  pull  up  the  tree,  root 
and  all.  Lose  not  your  advantage ;  if  you  do,  I  read  your 
destiny. 

1  Thomas,  Duke  of  Norfolk,  beheaded  2nd  June,  1572.   His  second  son 
Thomas  was  restored  in  blood,  and  in  1597  summoned  as  Lord  Howard 
de  Walden;  in  1603,  he  was  created  Earl  of  Suffolk  ;  and  in  1614,  Lord 
Treasurer. 

2  Edward  Seymour,  son  of  the  Protector,  Duke  of  Somerset.    Dudley, 
Duke  of  Northumberland,  obtained  an  act  depriving  Edward  Seymour  of 
his  titles  and  lands,  which  had  not  been  forfeited  by  the  pretended  offence 
for  which  his  father  had  been  executed.     He  was  created  Earl  of  Hert- 
ford, 1  Eliz. 

3  Henry  Percy,  eighth  Earl,  was  found  dead  in  the  Tower,  whither  he 
had  been  committed  on  a  charge  of  conspiring  with  the  Guises  to  release 
Mary,  Queen  of  Scots.     The  coroner's  jury  returned  a  verdict  that  he 
had  killed  himself;  but  suspicions  were  cast  on  a  servant  of  Sir  Christo- 
pher Hatton,  who  had  lately  been  appointed  to  attend  him. 

4  Sir  Robert  Cecyll's  son. 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  177 

Let  the  Queen  hold  Bothwell  while  she  hath  him ;  he  will 
ever  be  the  canker  of  her  state  and  safety.  Princes  are  lost 
by  security,  and  preserved  by  prevention.  I  have  seen  the 
last  of  her  good  days,  and  all  ours,  after  his  liberty. 

Yours,  &c. 

W.  K. 

The  first  part  of  this  letter  would  have  been 
equally  applicable  to  the  situation  of  the  parties 
during  the  summer  of  the  preceding  year,  but  the 
name  of  Bothwell,  by  which  Ralegh  designates  Essex 
in  the  latter  part,  fixes  it  clearly  for  this  period. 
Francis  Stuart,  descended  from  a  natural  son  of 
James  IV.,  had  been  created  Earl  of  Bothwell,  and 
Lord  Admiral  of  Scotland,  by  James  VI.  Turbulent 
and  ambitious,  these  honours  did  not  satisfy  him ;  he 
desired  to  govern  the  countr}7.  He  was  constantly 
engaged  in  intrigues ;  made  several  attempts  to  obtain 
possession  of  the  King's  person  by  violence,  in  one  of 
which  he  was  successful;  was  pardoned  in  1593; 
again  declared  a  traitor,  he  was  forced  to  fly  the 
country,  and  died  at  Naples,  1612. 

We  are  in  the  dark  respecting  the  petition  offered 
to  the  Queen  herself  in  behalf  of  Essex  :  one  thing 
only  is  certain,  that  he  did  not  make  any  direct  appeal 
to  Her  Majesty  for  mercy.  Yet  we  can  scarcely  be- 
lieve that  he  was  destitute  of  all  hope  of  a  reprieve, 
but  rather  suppose  that  he  was  himself  taken  by  sur- 
prise when  the  order  for  execution  arrived ;  for  it  is  a 
remarkable  fact,  that  he  never  saw  his  wife  or  son, 
nor  took  a  last  farewell  of  them  or  any  of  his  friends, 

VOL.  II.  N 


178  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.V. 

nor  had  expressed  a  wish  to  see  any  of  them.1  We 
come  then  to  the  consideration  of  what  private  com- 
munication he  may  have  made  to  the  Queen,  and  of 
the  celebrated  story  of  the  ring  which  he  is  said  to 
have  sent  to  her.  After  carefully  examining  the  au- 
thorities, I  incline  to  believe  in  its  truth ;  but  as 
doubts  have  been  thrown  upon  the  authenticity  of 
the  facts  stated,  I  lay  before  the  reader,  to  enable 
him  to  form  his  own  judgment,  the  original  relation 
as  given  by  M.  Aubery  de  Maurier,  and  the  story  as 
told  in  England  by  Lady  Elizabeth  Spelman,  with 
some  other  extracts  bearing  on  the  question. 

II  ne  sera  pas  inutile  ni  desagreable  d'aj outer  ici  ce  que  le 
meme  Prince  Maurice  tenoit  de  M.  Carleton,  ambassadeur 
d'Angleterre  en  Hollande,  qui  est  mort  secretaire  d'etat,  si 
fort  connu  sous  le  nomme  de  Milord  Dorchester,  homme  d'un 
tr£s-grand  merite ;  que  la  reine  Elisabeth  donna  une  bague 
au  Comte  d'Essex  dans  la  plus  grande  ardeur  de  sa  passion, 
lui  disant  qu'il  la  gardat  bien ;  et  quoiqu'il  put  faire,  en  lui 
rendant  ce  depot,  qu'elle  lui  pardonneroit.  Depuis  les  en- 


1  An  additional  argument  may  be  brought  forward  to  support  this  view, 
viz.  the  absence  of  any  testamentary  paper  of  a  date  subsequent  to  the 
birth  of  his  son.  The  will  of  Lord  Essex,  proved  by  his  son  in  1616,  is 
in  the  Prerogative  Court.  It  is  dated  in  1591,  previous  to  the  Norman 
expedition;  leaves  to  the  Countess  for  life,  the  manors  of  Teinton, 
Bicknor,  and  Dymock,  Gloucester ;  Merevale  in  Warwick  and  Leicester, 
with  all  the  possessions  of  that  dissolved  monastery,  including  "  the  em- 
paled ground  containing  deer,  called  Merevale  Park;"  and  the  manors 
of  Llanthomas  and  Hay,  otherwise  Gelly,  in  Brecknockshire ;  with  all 
plate,  household  stuff,  &c.  that  she  had  in  common  use.  By  a  law 
paper  in  S.  P.  O.  Dora.  1595,  which  appears  to  be  an  abstract  of  the 
remainders  of  the  estates  of  Lord  Essex,  it  appears  that  Essex  House 
was  in  remainder  to  "  Walter  Devereux,  the  base  reputed  son  of  Rob. 
Earl  of  Essex,  begotten  of  the  body  of  Elizabeth  Southwell." 


CHAP.V.  EGBERT,   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  179 

nemis  du  Comte  Payant  emporte  sur  Pesprit  de  la  reine,  et 
d'ailleurs  se  trouvant  irritee  du  mepris  que  le  Comte  faisoit  de 
sa  beaute,  que  Page  ruinoit,  elle  lui  fit  faire  son  proces,  et 
dans  le  temps  de  sa  condamnation,  attendoit  toujours  qu'il 
lui  rendit  cette  bague  pour  lui  donner  grace,  selon  sa  parole- 
Le  comte,  dans  la  derniere  extremite,  eut  recours  a  la  femme 
de  Pamiral  Howard,  sa  parente,  et  la  fit  supplier  par  une 
personne  confidente,  de  bailler  cette  bague  a  la  reine  en  main 
propre ;  mais  son  mari,  Pun  des  ennemis  capitaux  du  comte,  si 
qui  elle  le  dit  imprudemment,  Payant  empechee  de  s'acquitter 
de  sa  commission,  elle  consent! t  a  sa  mort,  indignee  centre 
un  esprit  si  fier  et  si  altier,  qui  aimoit  mieux  mourir  que  de 
recourir  a  sa  clemence. 

Quelque  temps  apres,  cette  amirale  etant  tombee  malade 
et  abandonnee  des  medecins,  envoya  dire  a  la  reine  qu'elle 
avoit  une  chose  de  grande  importance  a  lui  dire  devant  que 
de  mourir.  La  reine  etant  au  chevet  de  son  lit,  ayant  fait 
retirer  tout  le  monde,  Pamirale  lui  rendit  hors  de  temps  cette 
bague  du  Comte  d'Essex,  s'excusant  de  ne  lui  avoir  pu  donner 
plutot,  sur  ce  que  son  mari  Pen  avoit  empechee.  La  reine  se 
retira  aussitot  frappee  d'une  douleur  mortelle,  fut  quinze 
jours  a  soupirer,  sans  presque  prendre  de  nourriture,  se 
couchant  tout  habillee,  et  se  relevant  cent  fois  la  nuit.  Enfin 
elle  mourut  de  faim  et  de  douleur. 

J'espere  que  les  lecteurs  curieux  seront  bien  aises  de  savoir 
ces  particularites  et  ces  secrets  de  cette  grande  princesse,  que 
mon  pere  avoit  appris  de  M.  le  Prince  Maurice.1 

Now  let  us  compare  this  relation  with  the  story  as 
it  descends  to  us  from  Lady  Elizabeth  Spelman,  the 
great-grand-daughter  of  Sir  Robert  Cary,  afterwards 

1  Mem.  pour  servir  a  1'Histoire  d'Hollande,  par  Messire  Louis  Aubery, 
Seigneur  de  Maurier,  p.  260.  Paris,  1688. 

N  2 


180  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF  ESSEX. 

Earl  of  Monmouth.1  Sir  Robert  Gary  left  memoirs 
of  his  life,  in  which  was  an  account  of  the  last  illness 
and  death  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  of  whom  he  says, 
that  when  he  came  to  Court,  he  found  the  Queen  ill, 
but  that  hearing  of  his  arrival  she  sent  for  him. 
After  he  had  kissed  her  hand,  and  said,  his  chief 
happiness  was  to  see  her  in  health,  which  he  hoped 
might  long  continue,  she  took  his  hand,  wrung  it 
hard,  and  replied,  "  No,  Robin,  I  am  not  well ;"  and 
then,  discoursing  of  her  indisposition,  told  him  that 
her  heart  had  been  sad  and  heavy  these  ten  or 
twelve  days ;  and,  while  talking,  she  fetched  not  so 
few  as  forty  or  fifty  great  sighs. 

Lady  E.  Spelman's  story  was,  that  when  the 
Countess  of  Nottingham  was  dying,  she  sent  to  en- 
treat the  Queen  to  visit  her,  as  she  had  something 
to  reveal  before  she  could  die  in  peace.  On  the 
Queen's  coming,  Lady  Nottingham  told  her  that 
when  the  Earl  of  Essex  was  lying  under  sentence 
of  death,  he  was  desirous  to  ask  Her  Majesty's 
mercy  in  the  manner  she  had  prescribed  during  the 

1  Sir  Robert  KCary,  born  1559  =  Eliz.  Trevanion. 
Earl    of   Monmouth,    ob. 
1639,  set.  80. 


Henry,  E.  of  Monmouth  =  Martha,  daughter  of  Lionel 


ob.  1661. 


Cranfield,  E.  of  Middle- 
sex, Lord  Treasurer. 


Two  sons  and  eight 

daughters,  of  whom,  Martha  =  John.  E.  of  Middleton. 
mar.  1667.    | 

Lady  Eliz.  Spelman. 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  181 

height  of  his  favour.  Being  doubtful  of  those  about 
him,  and  unwilling  to  trust  any  of  them,  he  called  a 
boy  whom  he  saw  passing  beneath  his  window,  and 
whose  appearance  pleased  him,  and  engaged  him  to 
carry  the  ring,  which  he  threw  down  to  him,  to  the 
Lady  Scrope,  a  sister  of  Lady  Nottingham,  and  a 
friend  of  the  Earl,  who  was  also  in  attendance  on 
the  Queen,  and  to  beg  her  to  present  it  to  Her 
Majesty.  The  boy,  by  mistake,  took  it  to  Lady 
Nottingham,  who  showed  it  to  her  husband  in  order 
to  take  his  advice.  The  Earl  forbade  her  to  carry  it 
to  the  Queen,  or  return  any  answer  to  the  message, 
but  desired  her  to  retain  the  ring.  Lady  Notting- 
ham having  made  this  confession,  entreated  the 
Queen's  forgiveness;  but  Elizabeth  exclaiming,  "God 
"  may  forgive  you,  but  I  never  can ! "  left  the  room 
in  great  emotion,  and  was  so  much  agitated  and  dis- 
tressed that  she  refused  to  go  to  bed,  nor  would  she 
for  a  long  time  take  any  sustenance.1 

M.  de  Maurier's  account,  which  he  states  to  have 
received  from  his  father,  was  printed  about  eighty 
years  after  the  events  had  occurred.  Sir  Dudley 
Carleton,  the  alleged  authority,  was  ambassador  in 
Holland  under  James  I.  That  the  story  was  not 
then  told  for  the  first  time,  we  learn  from  Lord 
Clarendon,  who,  in  his  "younger  days,"  wrote  a 
"  Disparity  between  the  Earl  of  Essex  and  the  Duke 
"  of  Buckingham,"  in  reply  to  Sir  Henry  Wotton's 

1  The  story  of  the  ring  is  also  related  in  a  little  book  called  "  Secret 
History  of  Queen  Elizabeth  and  the  Earl  of  Essex,"  by  a  "  Person  of 
Quality."  Printed  at  Cologne,  1695,  and  in  London  without  date. 

N  3 


182  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CnAr.V. 

"  Parallel"  between  them.  He  did  not  believe  in 
that  "  loose  report  which  hath  crept  in,"  of  the  Queen's 
expressing  much  grief  for  his  death,  on  the  delivery  of 
the  ring  by  Lady  Nottingham.  We  shall  see,  presently, 
that  the  Queen  did  not  wait  for  that  event  to  express 
her  grief  for  the  loss  of  Essex.  Lady  Elizabeth 
Spelman  was  the  descendant  of  Sir  Robert  Gary; 
but  the  anecdote  related  by  her  could  scarcely  have 
come  from  him,  or  he  would  have  mentioned  it  in  his 
memoirs,  the  manuscript  of  which  was  given  by 
Lady  Elizabeth  to  the  Earl  of  Cork,  by  whom  they 
were  edited.  Clarendon's  doubt  only  shows  at  how 
early  a  period  the  story  of  the  ring  was  current ; 
that  it  was  not  more  generally  known  is  not  sur- 
prising, if  we  consider  that  the  knowledge  of  the 
circumstance  was  confined  to  the  Queen,  the  Earl 
of  Nottingham,  and  probably  Lady  Scrope.  Sir 
Dudley  Carleton  returned  from  his  mission  to  Holland 
in  1618  ;  Clarendon  was  born  in  1608,  entered  Mag- 
dalen College,  Oxford,  in  1621,  and  while  a  student 
may  be  supposed  to  have  written  his  "  Disparity." 

There  are  two  rings,  claiming  to  be  the  identical 
one  retained  so  fatally  by  Lady  Nottingham,  which 
ought  to  be  noticed  here.  The  one  is  preserved  at 
Hawnes,  in  Bedfordshire,  and  is  now  in  the  posses- 
sion of  the  Rev.  Lord  John  Thynne,  from  whom  I 
have  received  the  following  history. 

It  has  descended  from  Lady  Frances  Devereux, 
afterwards  Duchess  of  Somerset,  in  unbroken  suc- 
cession from  mother  to  daughter,  according  to  the 
following  table :  — 


CHAP.  V. 


ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX. 


183 


Lady  Frances  Devereux,     = 
daughter    of    Robert, 
second  Earl  of  Essex. 


William,  Earl  of 
Hertford. 


Mary    =     Heneage,  Earl  of  Winchilsea. 


Frances     =     Thomas  Thynne,  first  Viscount  Weymouth. 


Frances     =     Sir  Robert  Worsley,  of  Appuldurcombe. 


Frances     =    John  Carteret,  Earl  Granville. 
I 

Louisa  =  Thomas,  second  Viscount  Weymouth,  whose 
second  son,  Henry  Frederick  Thynne, 
became  heir  to  his  uncle,  Earl  Granville. 

A  very  clear  descent  is  thus  made ;  but  it  must, 
on  the  other  hand,  be  remarked,  that  in  the  very 
long,  curious,  and  minute  will  of  the  Duchess  of 
Somerset,  no  mention  is  made  of  any  such  ring. 
Whether  it  be  the  ring  or  not,  it  is,  both  as  a  work  of 
art,  and  as  an  historical  relic,  of  great  value  *and  high 
interest. 

The  ring,  of  which  an  engraving  is  annexed,  is 


gold,  the  sides  are  engraved,  and  the  inside  set  in 
blue  enamel:  the  stone  is  a  sardonyx,  on  which  is 
cut  in  relief  a  head  of  Elizabeth,  the  execution  of 
which  is  of  a  high  order. 


N   4 


184  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  V. 

The   second   ring,   which   is    represented    in   the 
following  cut,  is  the  property  of  C.  W.  Warner,  Esq. 


This  ring  was  given  by  Charles  I.  to  Sir  Thomas 
Warner,  the  settler  of  Antigua,  Nevis,  and  other 
islands  in  the  West  Indies.  It  has  continued  in  the 
possession  of  his  descendants  to  the  present  time, 
with  the  tradition  attached  to  it,  on  what  authority 
is  not  known,  that  it  is  the  identical  ring  given  by 
Queen  Elizabeth  to  Essex.  But  there  is  also  another 
tradition  of  interest  attached  to  it,  which  may  in- 
terfere with  its  claims  to  be  the  Essex  ring :  namely, 
that  it  was  sent  to  Elizabeth  by  Mary,  Queen  of 
Scots,  together  with  some  lines  by  Buchanan.  The 
stone  is»a  diamond  of  the  size  represented  in  the 
engraving,  set  in  gold,  inlaid  with  black  enamel  at 
the  back  and  sides. 

Let  us  now  resume  our  narrative.  What  a  hurri- 
cane of  passions  and  emotions,  pride  and  anger  strug- 
gling against  tenderness  and  love,  must  have  torn 
the  heart  of  Elizabeth  during  the  week  that  elapsed 
between  the  condemnation  and  the  execution  of  Essex. 
Urged  by  the  dominant  faction,  she  signed  the  warrant 
for  execution ;  relenting,  she  sent  Edmund  Gary  to 
countermand  it.  Days  passed,  yet  no  petition,  no 
token  reached  her  from  the  prisoner;  the  serpent 
Ralegh  and  the  vindictive  Cobham  at  her  ear,  com- 


CHAP.V.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  185 

paring  Essex  to  Bothwell  and  to  Guise,  and  persuad- 
ing her  that  he  had  himself  declared  his  continuing 
to  live  incompatible  with  her  safety — incredible  tale ! 
Under  his  supposed  obstinacy  in  refusing  to  implore 
her  mercy,  her  anger  was  again  awakened,  and  aided 
too  well  the  machinations  of  his  enemies.  She  sent 
off  Mr.  Darcy  with  an  order  to  execute  the  warrant, 
which  this  time  was  not  recalled. 

On  the  evening  of  the  24th  of  February,  it  was 
made  known  to  Essex,  that  on  the  following  morning 
he  would  undergo  the  sentence  of  the  law.  The 
execution  was  to  take  place  within  the  Tower,  it  is 
said  at  his  own  request,  lest  he  should  be  "  hoven 
e£  up"  by  the  acclamations  of  the  citizens.  Strict  in- 
junctions were  given  that  he  should  not  be  permitted 
to  speak  of  the  nature  of  his  offence,  or  of  his  asso- 
ciates, but  confine  himself  to  a  simple  declaration  of 
his  treason. 

It  was  well  to  say  that  Essex  had  himself  desired 
to  be  executed  in  private;  but  there  can  be  little 
doubt  no  option  was  given  to  him.  The  true  reason 
was,  that  Essex  was  now  as  ever  the  darling  of  the 
people,  who  could  not  be  made  to  believe  that  he  had 
received  a  fair  trial.  So  powerful  was  this  feeling 
in  his  favour,  that  the  popularity  of  the  Queen 
seemed  to  die  with  him ;  after  his  death,  she  was 
greeted  no  longer  with  cheers  and  acclamations,  but 
was  received  in  mournful  silence  when  she  appeared 
in  public.  Her  councillors,  who  were  thought  to 
have  hunted  him  to  death,  were  met  by  expressions 
of  hatred  and  insult. 


186  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

Our  narrative  of  the  last  moments  of  the  Earl  of 
Essex,  has  been  selected  from  the  numerous  manu- 
script accounts  which  exist,  some  by  spectators,  and 
all  by  cotemporaries. 

On  Tuesday  night,  between  eleven  and  twelve,  he 
opened  the  casement  of  his  window,  and  spoke  to  the 
guards :  "My  good  friends,  pray  for  me,  and  to-morrow 
"  I  shall  leave  an  example  behind  me  you  shall 
"  all  remember ;  you  shall  see  in  me  a  strong  God  in 
"  a  weak  man.  I  have  nothing  to  give  you,  for  I  have 
"  nothing  left  but  that  which  I  must  pay  to  the 
"  Queen  to-morrow,  in  the  morning." 

On  Wednesday  morning  he  arose  about  one  o'clock, 
and  desired  Dr.  Mountford,  Dr.  Barlow,  and  his 
chaplain  Mr.  Ashton,  to  join  with  him  in  those  ex- 
ercises that  might  best  prepare  him  for  death  ;  saying 
to  them,  "  God  so  bless  you  as  you  comfort  me." 
About  seven  he  was  brought  forth  by  the  Lieutenant 
of  the  Tower,  accompanied  by  the  three  divines,  and 
sixteen  partisans  of  the  guard,  to  the  scaffold,  which 
was  erected  in  the  high  court  above  Caesar's  tower ;  it 
was  raised  some  four  feet  high,  was  three  yards  wide, 
and  railed  round.  The  Earl  was  dressed  in  a  black 
wrought  velvet  gown,  and  a  black  satin  suit,  with  a 
black  felt  hat.  He  prayed  aloud  all  the  way  from 
his  chamber  to  the  scaffold,  saying,  "  0  God !  give  me 
"  true  repentance,  true  patience,  and  true  humility, 
"  and  put  all  worldly  thoughts  out  of  my  mind."  His 
countenance  was  neither  light  nor  dejected,  as  with  a 
steady  step  he  mounted  the  scaffold  and  approached 
the  block,  which  was  a  piece  of  wood,  some  half  a 


CHAP.  V.       ROBERT,  EARL  OF  ESSEX.  187 

bow  over,  and  half  a  yard  long,  rounded  at  the  upper 
side.  On  a  seat  placed  near  the  scaffold,  were  the 
Earls  of  Cumberland  and  Hertford,  Lord  Thomas 
Howard,  Constable  of  the  Tower,  Yiscount  Bindon, 
Lords  Darcy  and  Compton,  who  were  ordered  to 
attend  the  execution ;  many  knights  and  gentlemen, 
and  some  aldermen  of  the  city,  in  all  about  100 
persons. 

The  Earl,  after  some  small  pacing,  drew  near  the 
Lords,  and  then  with  some  bowing  of  his  body  and 
delivering  away  his  hat,  he  spoke  in  a  distinct  and 
serious  manner,  with  his  eyes  lifted  up  to  heaven :  — 

My  Lords,  and  you,  my  Christian  brethren,  that  are  ap- 
pointed by  God  to  see  me  die,  I  confess,  to  the  glory  of  God, 
that  I  am  a  most  wretched  sinner,  and  that  my  sins  are  more 
in  number  than  the  hairs  of  my  head ;  that  I  have  bestowed 
my  youth  in  wantonness,  lust,  and  uncleanness ;  that  I  have 
been  puffed  up  with  pride,  vanity,  and  love  of  this  wicked 
world's  pleasures ;  and  that,  notwithstanding  many  good 
motions  inspired  into  me  from  the  spirit  of  God,  the  good  I 
would,  I  have  not  done,  and  the  evil  that  I  would  not,  that 
I  have  done ;  for  all  which  I  beseech  my  Saviour  Christ  to 
be  a  mediator  to  the  Eternal  Majesty  for  my  pardon,  especially 
for  this  my  last  sin, — this  great,  this  bloody,  this  crying,  this 
infectious  sin, — whereby  too  many  for  love  of  me  have  been 
drawn  to  offend  God,  to  offend  their  Sovereign,  and  to  offend 
the  world.  I  beseech  God  to  forgive  it  us,  and  to  forgive  me, 
the  most  wicked  of  all.  I  beseech  Her  Majesty,  the  State, 
and  the  Ministers  thereof,  to  forgive  it  us.  The  Lord  grant 
Her  Majesty  a  prosperous  reign,  and  a  long,  if  it  be  His  will. 
O  Lord !  grant  her  a  wise  and  an  understanding  heart !  O 
Lord !  bless  her  and  the  nobles  and  ministers  of  the  Church 


188  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  V. 

and  State  !  And  I  beseech  you  and  the  world  to  have  a  chari- 
table opinion  of  me  for  my  intention  towards  Her  Majesty, 
whose  death,  upon  my  salvation,  and  before  God,  I  protest  I 
never  meant,  nor  violence  to  her  person ;  yet  I  confess  I  have 
received  an  honorable  trial,  and  am  justly  condemned.  And 
I  desire  all  the  world  to  forgive  me,  even  as  I  do  freely,  and 
from  my  heart,  forgive  all  the  world.  And  whereas  I  have 
been  condemned  for  my  religion,  I  was  never,  I  thank  God, 
atheist  nor  papist :  for  I  never  denied  the  power  of  my  God 
not  believing  the  word  and  scriptures ;  neither  did  I  ever 
trust  to  be  justified  by  my  own  works  or  merits,  but  hope,  as 
a  true  Christian,  for  my  salvation  from  God,  only  by  the 
merits  and  mercy  of  my  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  crucified  for 
my  sins.  This  faith  I  was  brought  up  in,  and  therein  am 
now  ready  to  die,  beseeching  you  all  to  join  yourselves  with 
me  in  prayer,  not  with  eyes  and  lips  only,  but  with  lifted  up 
hearts  and  minds  to  the  Lord  for  me,  that  my  soul  may  be 
lifted  up  above  all  earthly  things  :  for  now  I  will  give  myself 
up  to  my  private  prayer  ;  yet,  for  that  I  beseech  you  all  to 
join  with  me,  I  will  speak  that  you  may  hear. 

Then  returning  to  the  block,  he  took  off  his  gown 
and  ruff;  he  told  the  chaplains  that  having  been  often 
in  places  of  danger  where  death  was  not  so  present 
and  certain,  he  had  felt  the  weakness  of  the  flesh,  and 
therefore  he  hoped  God  would  strengthen  him  in  this 
conflict,  that  the  flesh  should  have  no  power  over  him. 
He  asked  for  the  executioner,  who  on  his  knees 
entreated  his  pardon ;  to  whom  he  replied,  "  Thou  art 
"  welcome  to  me,  I  forgive  thee ;  thou  art  the  minister 
"  of  true  justice."  He  then,  with  his  eyes  fixed  upon 
heaven,  and  long  and  passionate  pauses,  began  his 
prayers. 


CHAP.  V.  ROBERT,   EARL   OF  ESSEX.  189 

O  God  !  creator  of  all  things,  and  judge  of  all  men,  thou 
hast  let  me  know  by  warrant  of  thy  word,  that  Satan  is  then 
most  busy  when  our  end  is  nearest,  and  that  Satan  being 
resisted,  will  fly :  I  humbly  beseech  you  so  to  assist  me  in 
this  my  last  combat ;  and  since  thou  acceptest  our  desires  as 
acts,  accept  of  my  desire  to  resist  him  with  true  resistance, 
and  perfect  by  thy  grace  what  thou  seest  to  be  frail ;  and 
give  me  patience  to  be  as  becometh  me  in  this  just  punish- 
ment, inflicted  upon  me  by  so  honorable  a  trial.  Grant  me 
the  inward  comfort  of  thy  spirit !  Let  thy  spirit  seal  unto  my 
soul  an  assurance  of  thy  mercies !  Lift  my  soul  above  all 
earthly  cogitations,  and  when  my  soul  and  body  shall  part, 
send  thy  blessed  angels  to  be  near  unto  me,  which  may  con- 
vey it  to  the  joys  of  heaven. 

He  next  said  the  Lord's  Prayer,  and  afterwards  the 
Creed,  one  of  the  divines  saying  it  softly  before  him, 
and  ended  with  this  ejaculation :  "  Lord  Jesus  receive 
"  my  soul,  into  thy  hands  I  commend  my  spirit !"  He 
then  prayed  for  forgiveness  to  his  enemies,  because 
they  bare  the  image  of  God  as  well  as  himself.  Then 
inquiring  of  the  executioner  how  he  should  dispose 
himself  towards  the  block,  and  his  doublet  being  re- 
moved, in  a  scarlet  waistcoat  he  bowed  himself  towards 
the  block,  saying,  "  0  God !  give  me  true  humility, 
"  and  patience  to  endure  to  the  end ;  and  I  pray  you 
"  all  to  pray  with  me  and  for  me,  that  when  you  shall 
"  see  me  stretch  out  my  arms  and  my  neck  on  the 
"  block,  and  the  stroke  ready  to  be  given,  it  would 
"  please  the  ever  living  God  to  send  down  his  angels 
"  to  carry  my  soul  before  his  mercy  seat." 

Then  lifting  up  his  eyes  devoutly  to  heaven,  he 


190  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.V. 

said:  "Lord  God,  as  unto  thine  altar  do  I  come, 
"  offering  up  my  body  and  soul  for  a  sacrifice,  in 
"  humility  and  obedience  to  thy  commandment,  to 
•"  thy  ordinance,  and  to  thy  good  pleasure.  O 
"  God !  I  prostrate  myself  to  my  deserved  punish- 
"  ment."  And  so  lying  flat  on  the  boards,  with  his 
hands  stretched  out,  he  said,  "  Lord  have  mercy  upon 
"  me,  thy  prostrate  servant !  "  He  was  desired  by  one 
of  the  divines  to  say  the  beginning  of  the  51st  Psalm, 
"  Have  mercy  on  me,  0  God,"  &c.,  whereof  when  he 
had  said  two  verses,  he  uttered  these  words,  "  Execu- 
"  tioner,  strike  home !  Lord  Jesus!  come,  Lord  Jesus ! 
"  and  receive  my  soul.  0  Lord !  into  thy  hands  I 
"  commend  my  spirit ! "  in  the  midst  of  which  sen- 
tence his  head  was  severed  from  his  body  at  three 
blows ;  the  first  of  which,  however,  deprived  him  of 
all  sense  and  motion. 

The  executioner  then  took  the  head,  in  which  the 
eyes  remained  open  and  turned  towards  heaven,  and 
the  expression  of  the  face  unchanged,  and  holding  it 
up,  cried,  "  God  save  the  Queen ! " 

The  body  and  head  were  then  removed  into  the 
Tower,  put  into  a  comn  ready  prepared,  and  buried 
by  the  Earl  of  Arundel  and  Duke  of  Norfolk.1 

So  perished  the  gallant  and  accomplished  Essex, 
in  the  pride  and  vigour  of  life ;  he  was  thirty-three 
years,  three  months,  and  fifteen  days  old  at  his  exe- 
cution. Brave,  eloquent,  generous,  and  sincere,  — 

1  The  Queen  ordered  that  the  banner  and  hatchment  of  the  Earl  of 
Essex  as  Knight  of  the  Garter  should  not  be  removed  from  St.  George's 
ChapeL 


CHAP.V.  ROBERT,   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  191 

proud,  imprudent,  and  violent, — his  fate  is  a  lesson. 
Endowed  with  talents  and  qualities  that  placed 
him  far  above  the  majority  of  men,  his  unrestrained 
and  ungoverned  passions  ruined  himself  and  some  of 
his  dearest  friends,  and  brought  on  them  the  traitor's 
doom. 


192  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  VI. 


CHAPTER  VI. 

LIFE    OF   ROBERT   EARL    OF   ESSEX Concluded. 

CHARACTER  OF  ESSEX.  —  HIS  WRITINGS LIBERALITY  —  CHILDREN. 

—  FATE  OF  ESSEX'S  COMPANIONS. POPULAR  FEELING  RESPECTING 

ESSEX. — BACON'S  "DECLARATION  OF  THE  TREASONS  OF  THE  LATE 

EARL  OF   ESSEX." ANTHONY  BACON   DEFENDS  ESSEX   TO  THE 

LAST.  —  ELIZABETH'S  MELANCHOLY,  GRIEF  FOR  ESSEX'S  LOSS,  AND 

DEATH. — FAVOUR   SHOWN   BY   JAMES   I.    TO   ESSEX'S   FRIENDS. 

ATTAINDER  OF  RALEGH,  GREY,  AND  COBHAM.  —  NORTHUMBERLAND 

ARRAIGNED. MOUNTJOY  RETURNS  FROM  IRELAND,  MARRIES  LADY 

RICH. HIS  DISGRACE  AND  DEATH. — DESCRIPTION  BY  MORYSON. 

THE  character  of  the  Earl  of  Essex  may  be  fairly 
judged  from  his  life  and  letters ;  but  he  must  have 
possessed  qualities  of  the  most  attractive  and  endear- 
ing nature,  which  cannot  be  there  discerned,  if  it  be 
true,  as  Lord  Clarendon  tells  us,  that  love  for  the 
memory  of  his  father  was  one  of  the  chief  causes 
which,  forty,  years  afterwards,  made  the  last  Earl  of 
Essex  the  most  popular  nobleman  of  his  time. 

Yet  we  are  not  without  some  precise  information 
respecting  the  late  Earl.  Sir  Henry  Wotton1,  one  of 
his  secretaries,  has  described  his  person  and  habits. 
Tall,  strong,  and  able-bodied,  he  was  not  graceful  in 
his  movements,  arid  bent  a  little  forward  in  the  neck. 
His  hands  were  incomparably  fair,  and  of  fine  shape, 
which,  though  it  be  but  feminine  praise,  he  inherited 
from  his  father.  He  was  not  a  good  dancer ;  was 

1  Reliq.  Wott.  171. 


CHAP.  VI.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  193 

thoughtful  and  reserved  in  countenance,  and  gene- 
rally more  so  at  meals,  when  others  are  most  cheer- 
ful. He  used  to  say  that  the  time  he  preferred  to 
consider  and  solve  any  knotty  business,  was  when  he 
had  checked  his  appetite  with  two  or  three  morsels, 
after  which  he  sat  usually  a  good  while  silent. 

As  he  became  more  attentive  to  business,  so  he 
became  less  curious  in  his  dress,  insomuch  that 
those  about  him  thought  that  sometimes,  when  he 
went  up  to  the  Queen,  he  scarce  knew  what  he  had 
on.  This  was  his  manner :  his  chamber  being  com- 
monly crowded  with  friends  and  suitors,  when  he 
was  up  he  gave  his  legs,  arms,  and  breast  to  his 
ordinary  servants  to  button  and  dress  him,  Avith  little 
heed  ;  his  head  and  face  to  his  barber ;  his  eyes  to 
his  letters,  and  ears  to  his  petitioners ;  and  many 
times  all  at  once.  Then  the  gentleman  of  his  robes 
throwing  a  cloak  over  his  shoulders,  he  would  make 
a  step  into  his  closet,  and  after  a  short  prayer  he  was 
gone.  Only  in  his  baths  he  was  somewhat  delicate. 
For  point  of  diet  and  luxury,  he  was  very  inordinate 
in  his  appetite  ;  and  of  so  indifferent  a  taste,  that  he 
would  stop  in  the  midst  of  any  physical  potion,  lick 
his  lips,  and  then  swallow  the  rest. 

He  never  spoke  ill  of  any  one ;  only  against  Henry 
Lord  Cobham  he  forswore  all  patience,  calling  him, 
even  to  the  Queen,  the  sycophant  per  excellentiam ; 
arid  one  lady,  whom,  for  her  sex's  sake,  Sir  Henry 
forbears  to  nominate,  he  termed  the  spider  of  the 
Court. 

VOL.  II.  O 


1 94  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  VI. 

He  was  a  bad  philosopher,  being  a  great  resenter 
and  a  weak  dissembler ;  and  herein  no  good  pupil  of 
my  Lord  of  Leicester,  who  put  all  his  passions  in  his 
pocket. 

In  1588,  when  he  was  made  M.  A.  of  Oxford,  he 
was  esteemed  one  of  the  best  poets  among  the  no- 
bility of  England.  There  are  not  many  poems  extant 
known  to  be  from  his  pen;  one  beginning1  "There 
"  was  a  time  when  silly  bees  could  speak,"  is  printed 
in  Walpole's  "  Royal  and  Noble  Authors."  Several 
sonnets  are  in  the  Ashmolean  Library,  Oxon,  of  which 
the  following  is  one  :  — 

There  is  none,  oh  !  none  but  you, 

Who  from  me  estrange  the  sight, 
Whom  mine  eyes  affect  to  view, 

And  chain'd  ears  hear  with  delight. 

o 

Other's  beauties,  others  move, 

In  you  I  all  the  graces  find; 
Such  are  the  effects  of  love, 

To  make  them  happy  that  are  kind. 

Women  in  frail  beauty  trust, 

Only  seem  you  kind  to  me ; 
Still  be  truly  kind  and  just, 

For  that  can't  dissembled  be. 

Dear,  afford  me  then  your  sight, 

That  surveying  all  your  looks, 
Endless  volumes  I  may  write, 

And  fill  the  world  with  endless  books. 

1  This  is  said  to  have  been  written   "  during  his  first  discontentment 
and  absence  from  Court,"  in  July,  August,  1598. 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  195 

Which  when  after  ages  view, 

All  shall  wonder  and  despair, 
Women  to  find  a  man  so  true, 

And  men,  a  woman  half  so  fair. 

On  one  occasion,  when  the  Queen  showed  some 
appearance  of  coolness  towards  him,  he  wrote  a  song, 
which  he  caused  to  be  sang  before  her,  of  which  the 
burthen  was  — 

And  if  thou  should'st  by  her  be  now  forsaken, 
She  made  thy  heart  too  strong  for  to  be  shaken. 

He  was  an  acute  and  sound  speaker  when  he  was 
in  earnest ;  the  letters  in  this  memoir  afford  abundant 
proof  of  his  talents  as  an  epistolary  writer,  not  merely 
in  the  exaggerated  style  of  euphuism  in  which  it  was 
the  fashion  of  the  day  to  address  the  Queen,  but  his 
public  letters  are  worthy  of  admiration.  I  would 
especially  call  attention  to  his  letter  on  the  state  of 
Ireland,  of  the  25th  June,  1599,  addressed  to  the 
Queen  ;  by  following  the  advice  contained  in  it,  his 
successor,  Mountjoy,  who  had,  fortunately,  more  able 
co-operators,  and  more  seasoned  soldiers  than  Essex, 
succeeded  in  subduing  that  kingdom.  His  Latin 
letters  are  said  to  afford  excellent  proof  of  his 
scholarship.  Of  his  other  writings,  his  "  Darling 
"  Piece  of  Love  and  Self-love  "  is  particularly  named 
by  Sir  H.  Wotton.  It  is,  I  believe,  not  extant.  His 
apology  to  Mr.  A.  Bacon  has  been  often  printed. 
One.  of  a  different  kind  I  have  placed  in  the  Ap- 
pendix ;  it  is  a  device  made  by  the  Earl  of  Essex  for 
the  entertainment  of  Her  Majesty. 

o  2 


196  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  VI. 

His  liberality  was  great,  especially  towards  men  of 
genius  and  learning,  in  whose  society  he  delighted. 
He  had  a  great  respect  for  eminent  divines  ;  with 
these  feelings  he  had  a  kind  of  filial  regard  both  for 
Archbishop  Whitgift  and  Mr.  Cartwright,  who  was  the 
principal  Puritan  divine  of  the  day.  He  was  a  great 
admirer  of  Spenser,  whose  patron  he  would  doubtless 
have  been,  had  not  that  poet  been  attached  to  Sir 
Walter  Ralegh.  But  Spenser  dying  in  great  distress, 
he  was  buried  in  Westminster  Abbey  at  the  expense 
of  Lord  Essex.  As  Ralegh  was  of  Spenser,  so 
Southampton  was  the  patron  of  Shakspeare  ;  but  it  is 
not  to  be  doubted  that  the  noble  friends  often  en- 
joyed together  the  society  of  the  great  dramatist.  In 
the  opening  chorus  of  the  fifth  act  of  Henry  V.,  some 
mention  is  made  of  him  being  then  in  Ireland ;  and 
of  the  welcome  home  that  he  will  receive  when  he 
brings  "  rebellion  broached  upon  his  sword." 

The  Earl  of  Essex,  by  his  wife  Frances,  daughter 
of  Sir  Francis  Walsingham,  and  widow  of  Sir  Philip 
Sidney,  left  three  sons  and  two  daughters. 

Robert,  baptized  22nd  January,  1591. 
Walter,  baptized  21st  January,  1592. 
Henry,  baptized  14th  April,  1595. 
Frances,  born  30th  September,  1599. 
Dorothy,  born  about  20th  December,  1600. 

The  second  and  third  sons  died  young.  Lady 
Frances  Devereux  was  married  at  Drayton  Basset,  on 
the  3rd  March,  1617,  to  Sir  William  Seymour,  after- 
wards Marquis  of  Hertford  and  Duke  of  Somerset, 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  197 

widower  of  the  unfortunate  Lady  Arabella  Stewart, 
and  died  in  1674. 

Lady  Dorothy  was  married  at  the  church  of  St. 
Lawrence  Pountney,  London,  the  18th  May,  1615,  to 
Sir  Henry  Shirley,  Bart.,  of  Stanton  Harold,  who 
died  8th  February,  1634  ;  and  secondly,  to  William 
Stafford,  Esq.,  of  Blatherwyke,  in  Northamptonshire. 
By  the  second  marriage  she  had  no  issue,  and  died 
30th  March,  1636. 

These  ladies  became  ultimately  co-heiresses  to  their 
brother. 

The  Countess  of  Essex  found  a  third  husband  in 
the  person  of  that  Eichard  de  Burgh,  Earl  of  Clan- 
rickarde,  who  was  said  to  bear  some  resemblance 
to  her  late  husband.  This  marriage  took  place 
about  the  time  of  the  Queen's  death.  Mr.  Cham- 
berlain writes  from  London  on  the  12th  April, 
1603:  — "  Here  is  a  common  bruit  that  the  Earl  of 
"  Clanrickarde  hath  married  my  Lady  of  Essex, 
"  wherewith  many  that  wished  her  well  are  nothing 
"  pleased.  The  speech  goes  that  the  King  hath  taken 
"  order,  and  sent  her  word  that  her  son  shall  be 
"  brought  up  with  the  young  princes."1 

The  companions  in  crime  and  misfortune  of  the 
Earl  of  Essex  were  disposed  of  in  the  following 
manner. 

The  Earl  of  Southampton  was  reprieved,  but  re- 

1  S.  P.  O.  The  Earl  of  Clanrickarde  was,  in  4  Chas.  I.,  created  Earl 
of  St.  Alban's.  He  died  1636,  and  the  title  became  extinct  on  the  death 
of  his  son,  s.  p> 

o  3 


198  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  VI. 

mained  a  prisoner  until  the  accession  of  Jarnes ',  when 
he  was  restored  in  blood  and  honours,  and  created  a 
Knight  of  the  Garter. 

Sir  Charles  Danvers,  Sir  Christopher  Blount,  Sir 
John  Davis,  Sir  Gilly  Meyrick,  and  Henry  CuiFe, 
were  tried  and  condemned  at  Westminster,  the  5th 
March.  The  first  two  were  beheaded  on  Tower  Hill. 
Meyrick  and  Cuffe  were  hanged  at  Tyburn.  Sir  John 
Davis,  after  a  year's  imprisonment,  received  the 
Queen's  pardon. 

Sir  Henry  Neville,  for  having  been  privy  to  the 
treasonable  councils  at  Drury  House,  and  not  reveal- 
ing the  same,  was  confined  in  the  Tower  during  the 
remainder  of  this  reign. 

Mr.  Lyttelton,  a  man  of  large  fortune  and  great 
abilit}7,  who  had  been  of  the  council  at  Drury  House, 
was  tried  with  Sir  Edward  Bainham,  and  Orell,  an 
old  soldier.  They  were  condemned.  Mr.  Lyttelton 
purchased  a  reprieve,  by  paying  Sir  Walter  Ralegh 
10,000£ ,  who  also  obtained  a  remission  of  Bainham's 
sentence  on  similar  terms.  If  he  dealt  largely  in  this 
line  among  the  prisoners,  Sir  Walter  must  have  made 
a  very  pretty  profit  out  of  the  Essex  insurrection. 

Of  the  other  prisoners,  some  were  pardoned,  others 
imprisoned,  and  most  of  them  fined ;  but  very  few 
among  them  paid  their  fines. 

The  popular  feeling  was  so  strongly  manifested, 
that  even  Elizabeth  thought  it  was  necessary  to 

1  "The  10th  of  this  month  the  Earl  of  Southampton  and  Sir  Henry 
Neville  were  delivered  out  of  the  Tower  by  a  warrant  from  the  King." 
—Chamberlain  to  Carleton,  12th  April,  1603. 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  199 

justify  the  severe  measures  which  had  been  taken. 
Dr.  Barlow,  one  of  the  divines  who  had  attended 
Essex  in  the  Tower,  was  accordingly  ordered  to 
preach  a  sermon  on  the  subject  at  Paul's  Cross,  on 
Sunday,  the  1st  March  ;  while  Mr.  Francis  Bacon 
drew  up  a  "  Declaration  of  the  practices  and  treasons 
"  attempted  and  committed  by  the  late  Robert,  Earl 
"  of  Essex,  and  his  complices."  Clarendon  thought 
that  no  expression  of  regret  to  his  memory,  friends, 
or  dependents,  could  weigh  down  these,  which  he 
declared  to  be  two  of  the  most  pestilent  libels  against 
his  fame,  that  ever  were  published  against  any  male- 
factor. 

Of  the  divine  and  his  sermon  I  have  nothing  to 
say ;  he  was  a  labourer  hired  for  a  given  purpose,  and 
soon  received  his  wages  in  the  shape  of  two  prebend al 
stalls  in  the  churches  of  St.  Paul's  and  Westminster. 
But  what  shall  we  say  to  Bacon,  who,  not  now  shel- 
tered under  the  wretched  plea  of  his  duty  as  an 
advocate,  did  not  scruple  to  use  all  his  ingenuity,  not 
merely  to  aggravate  the  offences  of  which  his  generous 
friend  had  notoriously  been  guilty,  but .  to  pervert 
facts,  and  charge  him  with  other  and  more  heinous 
crimes,  which  they  had  not  ventured  to  hint  at  in 
Court,  because  they  knew  well  how  unsubstantial  they 
would  be  proved.  He  endeavoured  to  excuse  himself, 
saying  that  he  furnished  but  the  language,  and  was 
not  answerable  for  the  matter.  How  weak  an  excuse, 
must  be  evident  to  every  one  ;  and  all  he  gained  by 
it  was  a  share  in  the  universal  dislike  which  attended 
the  enemies  of  Essex.  On  the  death  of  Elizabeth, 

o  4 


200  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  VI. 

not  venturing  to  present  himself,  he  wrote  an  abject 
letter  to  Southampton,  full  of  professions  of  respect 
and  regard,  which  doubtless  were  received  with  the 
contempt  they  merited.  Subsequently  he  wrote  to 
Mountjoy,  then  Earl  of  Devonshire,  an  apology, 
touching  his  conduct  towards  the  late  Earl  of  Essex, 
a  weak  defence  of  undeniable  baseness.  It  was  not 
until  1607,  that  he  received  the  reward  which  had 
tempted  him  to  commit  these  meannesses.  In  that 
year  he  was  made  Solicitor  General,  when  his  great 
talents  and  insinuating  address  rapidly  bore  him  to 
the  highest  point  of  his  profession,  only  that  he  might 
be  cast  down  with  the  more  overwhelming  crash. 

Of  Anthony  Bacon's  fate  but  little  is  known.  He 
is  said  to  have  died  in  Essex  House,  but  the  time  of 
his  death  is  uncertain,  except  that  it  took  place  before 
the  accession  of  James  I.  The  diseases  under  which 
he  had  so  long  suffered,  and  whose  aggravation  pro- 
bably terminated  his  life,  must  have  been  a  complete 
bar  to  any  active  exertion  on  his  part :  yet  it  is  gra- 
tifying to  know,  that  the  qualities  of  baseness  and  in- 
gratitude, which  attach  so  disgracefully  to  his  brother 
Francis,  are  not  to  be  found  in  him ;  and  that  some 
aspersions  having  been  cast  upon  the  honour  of  his 
deceased  friend  and  patron,  he  took  means  to  clear  his 
reputation.  It  appears  to  me  that  the  charge  of  a 
weak  confession  of  guilt,  at  the  expense  of  his  asso- 
ciates, has  already  been  removed  from  the  memory  of 
Lord  Essex ;  the  evidence  of  the  well-informed  writer 
of  the  letter  from  which  the  following  extract  has 
been  made,  may,  however,  add  weight  to  that  opinion. 


CHAP.  VI.  EGBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  201 

No.  XXXIX.1 
A.  Bacon  to . 

Sir,  —  I  perceive  by  your  letters,  many  strange  reports  are 
spread  of  a  confession  my  L.  of  Essex  should  make  before 
his  death,  wherein  his  honor  hath,  as  you  say,  been  much 
touched,  and  your  desire  is  to  receive  some  satisfaction  con- 
cerning the  same.  And  surely,  I  confess,  you  cannot  give 
me  a  more  pleasing  subject  to  write  of,  than  the  discovery  of 
that  truth,  by  which  any  unworthy  aspersion  of  dishonor 
may  be  removed  from  his  memorial,  whose  life  was  so  dear 
unto  me,  and  of  whose  noble  virtues  I  had  so  great  experi- 
ence. 

After  his  L.  condemnation,  upon  his  suit  to  the  Lords, 
there  was  sent  to  him  one  Ashton,  that  was  preacher  in  his 
house,  a  man  base,  fearful,  and  mercenary ;  but  such  a  one 
as  by  a  formal  shew  of  zeal,  had  gotten  a  good  opinion  of 
that  noble  Lord,  who  that  way,  being  himself  most  religious, 
might  easily  be  deceived.  How  the  man  was  prepared,  I 
touch  not ;  but  how  he  dealt,  the  substance  of  which  was  his 
own  confession  to  a  worthy  person,  as  he  well  knoweth,  I 
will  fully  relate  unto  you.  At  his  coming  to  my  L.  he 
found  his  L.  exceeding  cheerful,  and  prepared  with  great 
contentation  for  his  end,  with  whom  he  began  to  deal  to  this 
effect. 

The  rest  of  the  letter  contains  the  account  already 
given,  of  the  manner  in  which  Ashton  obtained  a 
confession  from  Essex,  and  then  by  his  threats  and 
reproaches  induced  him  to  make  confession  to  the 
Lords,  which  after  all  only  amounted  to  the  fact,  that 

1  Camd.  Ann.  edition  by  Hearne,  1717,  in  the  Appendix.  The  letter 
is  dated,  u  From  my  chamber  in  London,  30th  May,  1601,"  but  not  signed. 


202  LIVES   OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  VI. 

his  intention  was  to  establish  the  title  of  the  King  of 
Scots  to  the  succession. 

I  have  observed  that  Sir  Robert  Cecyll  com- 
menced a  correspondence  with  King  James  imme- 
diately after  the  death  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  by  the 
agency  of  those  ambassadors  who  had  been  sent 
at  the  instance  of  the  latter.  He  used  every  endea- 
vour to  keep  this  from  the  Queen's  knowledge,  but 
there  was  a  party  of  which  he  was  yet  more  jealous  ; 
this  consisted  of  his  quondam  allies,  Cobham  and 
Ralegh,  who,  with  the  Earl  of  Northumberland *, 
had  formed  themselves  into  an  opposition  to  the 
Secretary  at  the  English  Court,  and  endeavoured  to 
supplant  him  with  James.  Lord  Plenry  Howard, 
who  carried  on  the  Scotch  correspondence  for  Cecyll, 
called  them  the  diabolical  triplicity,  and  insinuated 
that  Lady  Arabella  Stewart  was  the  person  they  de- 
sired to  see  on  the  throne,  a  woman  being  more 
tractable  than  a  man.  In  fact,  from  the  time  Essex 
was  removed,  Elizabeth  appears  to  have  been  little 
thought  of;  all  her  devoted  servants  were  paying 
court  to  her  successor,  as  she  soon  discovered.  Well 
might  she  exclaim,  that  times  were  altered  with  her, 
and  she  had  no  one  now  to  trust. 

This  feeling  must  have  added  poignancy  to  her 

1  Northumberland  was  a  weak  and  intemperate  man,  although  so 
learned  as,  from  his  pursuit  of  science,  to  gain  the  sobriquet  of  the 
Wizard  Earl ;  possessing  no  judgment,  and  often  engaged  in  quarrels,  in 
which  he  was  usually  worsted,  as  in  the  cases  of  Southampton  and  Sir 
Francis  Vere.  His  separation  from  Lady  Northumberland  in  October, 
1599,  has  been  mentioned ;  they  became  reconciled  in  the  summer  of 
1601.  Lady  Northumberland  died  in  1619,  her  husband  in  1632. 


CHAP.  VI.  EGBERT,    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  203 

regrets  for  the  loss  of  Essex;  yet,  although  she 
struggled  gallantly,  affected  youthful  vigour,  and  in- 
sisted on  making  her  annual  progress,  she  could  not 
persuade  her  courtiers  to  worship  the  setting  sun. 
The  accounts  of  her  grief,  her  despondency  and 
illness,  are  extremely  curious. 

Sir  John  Harrington,  Elizabeth's  godson,  who  had 
accompanied  Essex  to  Ireland,  and  was  knighted 
by  him,  came  to  the  Court  in  October,  1601.  He 
says,  "  The  Queen  was  reduced  to  a  skeleton  ;  altered 
"  in  her  features ;  her  taste  for  dress  gone.  Nothing 
"pleased  her;  she  stamped  and  swore  violently  at 
"  the  ladies  of  the  Court,  whom  she  tormented  beyond 


measure." 


Sir  John  again  visited  her  at  the  end  of  December, 
1602;  he  was  asked  if  he  had  seen  Tyrone.  He  re- 
plied, that  he  had  seen  him  with  the  Lord  Deputy. 
She  looked  up  with  grief  arid  choler  in  her  counte- 
nance, and  said,  "  Oh !  now  it  mindeth  me  that  you 
"  was  one  that  saw  this  man  elsewhere ;  "  and  dropping 
a  tear,  smote  her  bosom.1 

Comte  Harlay  de  Beaumont  was  the  French  Am- 
bassador at  the  Court  of  London,  and  we  have  ex- 
tracts from  his  original  despatches,  by  M.  Yon  Rau- 
mer2,  and  from  copies  of  them  by  Dr.  Birch.3 

In  May  and  June,  1602,  the  Queen  told  De  Beau- 
mont that  she  was  tired  of  life,  for  nothing  now  cori- 

1  Nug.  Antiquae,  i.  322. 

2  History  of  16th  and  17th  Centuries,  translated  from  the  German, 
vol.  ii.  pp.  101.  passim.     London,  1835. 

8  Mem.  of  Queen  Elizabeth,  1754. 


204:  LIVES   OF   THE    EAKLS    OF   ESSEX.         CiiAP.Vl. 

tented  her  spirit,  or  gave  her  any  enjoyment.  She 
talked  to  him  of  Essex  with  sighs,  and  almost  with 
tears.  She  said,  that  she  foresaw  his  impatient 
spirit  would  involve  him  in  misfortunes;  that  she 
had  warned  him,  "qu'il  se  contentat  de  prendre 
"  plaisir  de  lui  deplaire  a  toutes  occasions,  et  de 
"  mepriser  sa  personne  insolemment,  comme  il  faisoit, 
"  et  qu'il  se  gardat  bien  de  toucher  a  son  sceptre." 
De  Beaumont  proceeds  to  say,  that  finding  the  sub- 
ject moved  her  too  much,  he  gave  the  conversation 
another  turn. 

A  letter  to  a  Scotch  nobleman  from  his  corre- 
spondent in  England,  also  quoted  by  Dr.  Birch,  says  : 
"  Our  Queen  is  troubled  with  a  rheum  in  her  arm, 
"  which  vexeth  her  very  much,  besides  the  grief 
"  which  she  hath  conceived  for  the  death  of  my  Lord 
"  of  Essex.  She  sleepeth  not  so  much  by  day  as  she 
"  used,  neither  taketh  rest  by  night.  Her  delight  is 
"  to  sit  in  the  dark,  and  sometimes  with  shedding 
"  tears  to  bewail  Essex."  l 

De  Beaumont  reports,  in  November,  1602,  that  — 

The  Queen,  though  she  has  suffered  from  pains  of  the 
stone,  and  flux  of  blood  from  the  bladder,  is  restored  to 
health ;  her  eye  is  lively,  and  her  spirits  good.  A  new  in- 
clination, supposed  to  be  for  the  Earl  of  Clanrickarde,  a 
handsome,  brave  Irishman,  who  is  said  to  resemble  Essex ; 
but  he  is  cold,  and  hath  not  sufficient  understanding  to  lift 
himself.  The  Queen  declares  she  cannot  love  him,  as  he 
recalls  her  sorrow  for  the  Earl.  This  occupies  the  whole 
Court. 

1  Birch,  ii.  506.  The  original  is  in  the  Advocate's  Library,  Edinburgh. 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  205 

13th  March,  1603  (New  Style).  — The  Queen  would  not 
receive  De  Beaumont,  alleging  her  mourning  for  Lady  Not- 
tingham. 

15th  March.  —  The  Queen  has  been  unwell  these  seven  or 
eight  days. 

19  th  March. — Sickness  has  been  the  cause  of  the  Queen  not 
shewing,  not  her  grief  for  Lady  Nottingham,  as  alleged  to 
me.  She  does  not  sleep,  eats  little ;  some  think  her  disorder 
proceeds  from  dissatisfaction  at  what  has  taken  place  with 
respect  to  Miss  Arabella  [this  was  the  project  for  marrying 
Lady  Arabella  Stewart  to  William  Seymour]  ;  some  that  it 
proceeds  from  Irish  affairs  [the  pardon  of  Tyrone] ;  others 
that  sorrow  for  the  Earl  of  Essex  has  taken  possession  of  her. 
It  is  certain  that  she  has  displayed  great  melancholy. 

28th  March.  —  The  Queen  quite  exhausted ;  some  days  ago 
she  said,  I  no  longer  desire  to  live,  and  desire  to  die.  She 
speaks  not  a  word  for  three  hours  together.  For  the  last 
two  days  has  her  finger  almost  continually  in  her  mouth,  and 
sits  on  cushions  without  ever  rising,  or  laying  herself  quite 
down,  her  eyes  open,  and  fixed  on  the  ground. 

Dr.  Lingard  has  quoted  from  a  manuscript,  said  to 
be  an  account  by  the  "  fair  young  Mrs.  Southwell." 
That  lady  was  a  very  short  time  maid  of  honour. 
We  find,  in  the  Sidney  Correspondence,  that  she 
was  appointed  in  November,  1599,  on  the  death  of 
Mrs.  Ratcliffe;  but  on  the  23rd  December,  she  ap- 
pears as  "  My  Lady  Mollins,  she  that  was  Mrs.  South- 
"  well,  the  maid  of  honor."  It  is  doubtful,  therefore, 
whether  she  was  an  eye-witness  of  the  Queen's  last 
illness. 

Mr.  Chamberlain  writes  to  Mr.  Dudley  Carleton  an 
account  of  her  illness,  to  which  we  also  append  a 


206  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  VI. 

curious  account  in  French,  which    is    in  the  State 
Paper  Office,  said  to  be  written  by  Mr.  D.  Carleton.1 

30th  March,  1603. — I  had  good  means  to  understand  how 
the  world  went,  and  find  her  disease  to  be  nothing  but  a 
settled  and  unremovable  melancholy,  insomuch  that  she 
could  not  be  won  or  persuaded,  neither  by  the  council,  di- 
vines, physicians,  nor  by  the  women  about  her,  once  to  taste 
or  touch  any  physic,  though  ten  or  twelve  physicians  that 
were  continually  about  her,  did  assure  her,  with  all  manner 
of  asseveration,  of  perfect  and  easy  recovery,  if  she  would 
follow  their  advice ;  so  that  it  cannot  be  said  of  her,  as  it  was 
of  the  Emperor  Adrian,  that  turba  medicorum  occidit  regem, 
for  they  say  she  died  only  for  lack  of  physic.  Here  was 
some  whispering  that  her  brain  was  distempered,  but  there 
was  no  such  matter,  only  she  held  an  obstinate  silence  for  the 
most  part ;  and  because  she  had  a  persuasion,  that  if  she  once 
lay  down,  she  should  never  rise,  she  could  not  be  gotten  to 
bed  in  a  whole  fortnight,  till  three  days  before  her  death ;  so 
that  after  three  weeks  languishing,  she  departed  the  24th  of 
this  present,  being  our  Lady's  eve,  between  two  and  three  in 
the  morning. 

Le  3me  Avril  (N.S.).  —  Sur  les  trois  heures  du  matin,  la 
royne  d'Angleterre  rend  1'esprit  fort  doucement,  ayant 
comence  de  perdre  la  parolle  depuis  deux  jours,  sans  avoir 
endure  ny  fiebvre  ny  aucune  douleur  pendant  sa  raaladie,  ny 
perdu  le  sens  ny  1'entendement.  L'opinion  comune  des 
medecins  de  la  royne,  et  de  ceux  qui  la  servoient  privement 
en  sa  chambre,  est,  que  sa  maladie  ne  .precede  que  d'une 
tristesse  qu'elle  conceut  fort  secretement  quelques  jours 
devant  que  s'en  plaindre.  Et  se  fondent  en  ce  jugement  sur 

1  Although  endorsed  as  from  Sir  Dudley  Carleton,  it  appears  not  to  be 
in  his  handwriting.  It  may  have  been  written  by  a  secretary.  Carleton 
was  at  the  time  Ambassador  at  Paris. 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  207 

cc  qu'il  n'est  aparu  auctm  signe  du  mal  qui  fut  mortel  en 
elle  outre  celui  de  1'age,  aiant  le  poux,  urine,  et  les  yeux 
toujours  bons  jusqu'a  la  fin.  Et  principalement  qu'en  tout 
le  cours  de  sa  maladie,  elle  n'a  jamays  voulu  user  d'aucune 

remede  qu'on    luy  ait non  obstant   les  prieres  et 

menaces  de  mort  que  ses  serviteurs  et  medecins  luy  faisoient ; 
comme  sy  1'apprehension  et  mespris  de  sa  vieillesse,  out 
quelque  autre  repentement  secret,  que  Ton  attribue  au  regret 
de  la  mort  du  feu  Comte  d'Essex,  1'eussent  esmene  a  la 
chercher  ou  desirer  elle  meme.  Quoy  que  se  soit,  c'est  la 
verite  que  des  lors  qu'elle  sentit  atteinte,  elle  diet  en  vouloir 
mourir. 

This  shows  that  even  at  the  time,  grief  for  the 
death  of  Essex  was  one  of  the  causes  to  which  her 
death  was  ascribed.  The  following  extract  from  an 
intercepted  letter,  apparently  from  a  popish  priest, 
connects  the  Queen's  last  illness  with  Lady  Notting- 
ham's death-bed  very  curiously. 

London,  9  Martii,  1603.  —  About  ten  days  since  died  the 
Countess  of  Nottingham.  The  Queen  loved  the  Countess 
very  much,  and  hath  seemed  to  take  her  death  very  heavily, 
remaining  ever  since  in  a  deep  melancholy,  with  conceit  of 
her  own  death,  and  complaineth  of  many  infirmities  suddenly 
to  have  overtaken  her,  as  impostumation  in  her  head,  aches 
in  her  bones,  and  continued  cold  in  her  legs,  besides  notable 
decay  in  judgment  and  memory,  insomuch  as  she  cannot 
attend  to  any  discourses  of  government  and  state,  but  de- 
lighteth  to  hear  some  of  the  "  Hundred  Merry  Tales,"  and 
such  like,  and  to  such  is  very  attentive ;  at  other  times  very 
impatient  and  testy,  so  as  none  of  the  Council,  but  the 
Secretary,  dare  come  in  her  presence.1 

1  S.  P.  O.  Venice. 


208  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  VI. 

Elizabeth  died  on  the  24th  March,  1603.  Sir  Robert 
Gary  waited  under  the  windows  of  the  Palace  at 
Richmond,  until  a  token  ring  was  thrown  to  him 
from  the  window,  with  which  he  posted  off  to  Scot- 
land, and  was  cordially  received  by  King  James,  as 
the  bearer  of  tidings  of  great  joy.  James  was  pro- 
claimed in  London  the  day  that  Elizabeth  died,  and 
the  inhabitants  that  night  lighted  innumerable  bon- 
fires ;  we  may  presume,  therefore,  that  grief  for  the 
loss  of  their  late  mistress,  was  confined  to  a  few 
bosoms. 

King  James  lost  no  time  in  proceeding  to  take  pos- 
session of  his  land  of  promise  ;  but  even  before  he 
quitted  Edinburgh,  he  bethought  him  of  the  friends 
and  family  of  Essex. 

The  message  he  sent  to  Lady  Essex  has  been 
already  noticed ;  with  the  order  for  the  release  of 
Southampton,  came  an  invitation  to  that  nobleman 
to  repair  to  York,  to  meet  there  his  friend  and  sove- 
reign. Great  alarm  was  caused  by  this  conduct ; 
Ralegh,  Cobham,  and  Grey,  although  doubtful  of 
their  reception,  resolved  to  meet  the  King,  and  ac- 
companied by  the  weak  Northumberland,  who  had 
associated  himself  with  them,  repaired  to  York.  The 
three  former  were  left  in  neglect ;  Ralegh  indeed  lost 
his  offices  of  Warden  of  the  Stannaries  and  Captain 
of  the  Yeomen  Guard,  while  the  last,  owing  probably 
to  his  connection  with  Essex,  received  a  promise  of 
favour. 

Two  conspiracies,  which  in  some  degree  owed  their 
origin  to  the  consciousness  of  this  adverse  feeling  in 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,   EARL   OF  ESSEX.  209 

the  royal  breast,  and  the  mysteries  of  which  have 
never  been  clearly  unravelled,  were  on  foot  at  this 
time,  and  enabled  the  King  to  wreak  his  vengeance 
on  the  enemies  of  Essex.  Lords  Cobham,  Grey, 
and  Sir  Walter  Ralegh,  headed  the  one,  the  object 
of  which  was  said  to  be,  the  dethroning  of  King 
James,  and  setting  up  Arabella  Stewart1  in  his 
place;  to  effect  which  they  treated  with  the  Count 
d'Aremberg,  envoy  from  the  Archduke,  for  600,000 
crowns,  and  Ralegh  was  said  to  have  demanded  a 
pension  of  1500  crowns  a-year.  The  other  conspiracy, 
which  was  independent  of  this,  and  yet  so  far  con- 
nected, that  the  same  persons  were  privy  to  both,  and 
"  hoped  that  if  one  sped  not,  the  other  might,"  was 
headed  by  George  Brook,  Lord  Cobham's  brother,  Sir 
Griffin  Markham,  Anthony  Copley,  and  two  priests, 
named  Watson  and  Clarke.  These  conspirators  pro- 
posed to  seize  the  persons  of  the  King  and  Prince, 
carry  them  to  the  Tower  or  to  Dover,  and  keep  them 
in  custody  until  James  had  complied  with  their 
demands ;  the  chief  of  which  was,  the  satisfaction  of 
personal  vengeance  against  Cecyll  and  other  ministers. 
On  the  16th  July,  a  proclamation  was  issued  to 
arrest  Sir  Griffin  Markham.  Anthony  Copley  con- 
fessed the  existence  of  a  plot  to  surprise  the  King. 

1  Margaret,  daughter  of  Henry  VII.,  married,  first,  James  IV.,  King  of 
Scotland,  secondly  Archibald,  Earl  of  Angus.  By  the  latter  she  left  a 
daughter,  wife  of  Matthew  Stewart,  Earl  of  Lennox,  and  grandmother  to 
James  I.  and  Arabella  Stewart ;  but  the  father  of  Arabella  was  younger 
brother  to  Lady  Darnley.  The  advocates  of  her  claim  put  forward  her 
birth  within  the  realm,  as  outweighing  her  defect  in  primogeniture. 

VOL.  II.  P 


210  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF  ESSEX.        CHAP.  VI. 

Lord  Cobham  being  examined,  denied  all  knowledge 
of  it,  but  refused  to  put  his  hand  to  anything.  On 
the  30th,  Cobham  and  Ralegh  being  then  in  the 
Tower,  Sir  John  Peyton,  the  Lieutenant,  makes  a 
report  of  them.  Ralegh  still  continues  "  perplexed," 
and  "  my  L.  Cobham' s  spirits  are  exceedingly  de- 
"  clined  ;  he  is  grown  passionate  in  lamentation."1 

The  plague  was  raging  in  London ;  the  King  fled 
from  it,  the  judges  followed  the  Court,  and  it  was  not 
until  November  that  the  conspirators  were  tried. 
Sir  William  Waad,  reporting  to  Lord  Cecyll  that 
he  had  brought  the  prisoners  to  Winchester  Castle, 
the  13th  November,  1603,  gives  a  proof  of  the  ex- 
cessive violence  of  the  popular  feeling  against  Ralegh. 
"  I  thank  God  we  brought  all  our  prisoners  safely 
"  hither  yesternight  in  good  time,  and  yet  I  protest 
"  it  was  hob  or  nob  whether  Sir  Walter  Ralegh 
"  should  have  been  brought  alive  through  such 
"  multitudes  of  unruly  people  as  did  exclaim  against 
"  him.  We  took  the  best  order  we  could  in  setting 
"  watches  through  all  the  streets,  both  in  London, 
"  and  for  the  suburbs.  If  one  hair-brained  fellow 
"  among  so  great  multitudes  had  begun  to  set  upon 
"  him  (as  they  were  very  near  to  do  it),  no  entreaty 
"  or  means  could  have  prevailed,  the  fury  of  the 
"  people  was  so  great."2 

Cobham, the  "sycophant  per  excellentiam,"  justified 
the  contempt  which  Essex  had  always  expressed  for 

1  S.  P.  o.  *  ibid. 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  211 

him.     "  Never,"   says   Sir  Dudley  Carleton1,   "  was 
"  seen  so  poor  and  abject  a  spirit." 

Grey  made  a  long  and  eloquent  speech,  and  bore 
himself  so  gallantly,  as  to  win  the  esteem  of  his 
judges.2  The  chief  evidence  against  Ralegh  was  the 
confession  of  Cobham,  whom  he  had  betrayed  to 
Cecyll,  and  who,  in  return,  betrayed  him.  Cobham 
afterwards  retracted ;  and  there  was  great  difficulty 
in  proving  Ralegh's  guilt  without  implicating  d' Arem- 
berg.  The  Attorney  General,  Sir  Edward  Coke, 
endeavoured  to  make  up  the  defects  in  evidence  by 
an  amount  of  invective  and  vituperation,  unusual 
even  in  that  foul-mouthed  advocate ;  but  the  fact  of 
the  pension  was  proved.  All  were  condemned  ;  but 
only  the  two  priests  and  George  Brook  were  executed. 
Sir  Walter  Ralegh  remained  in  the  Tower  till  August, 
1616,  when  he  was  suffered  to  go  on  the  voyage  to 
Guiana,  from  which  he  promised  the  King  such  great 
results,  and  which  proved  a  complete  failure.  On  his 
return,  he  was  confined  to  his  house,  and  James, 
willing  to  conciliate  Spain,  determined  to  proceed 
against  him  on  the  old  judgment  of  1603  ;  and  on 
the  29th  October,  1618,  he  was  beheaded  in  Old 
Palace  Yard,  Westminster.  In  his  speech  from  the 
scaffold,  he  did  not  hesitate  to  call  God  to  witness 
that  he  was  not  a  "  persecutor  of  the  death  of  the 
"  Earl  of  Essex,  but  shed  tears  for  him  when  he 

1  Who  was  in  England  at-  this  time.     His  letter  describing  the  trial,  is 
in  State  Trials,  vol.  ii.  p.  50. 

2  "  Great  compassion  was  had  of  this  young  lord  ;  for  so  clear  and 
fiery  a  spirit  had  not  been  seen  by  any  that  had  been  present  at  like 
trials."  —  Sir  D.  Carleton,  ut  supra. 

F  2 


212  LIVES   OF   THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  VI. 

"  died."  What  belief  is  to  be  placed  in  this  decla- 
ration, his  own  letter  to  Cecyll  has  shown.  There 
can  be  no  doubt  he  met  death  with  a  lie  in  his 
mouth. 

After  the  failure  of  the  Gunpowder  Plot,  in 
November,  1605,  the  Earl  of  Northumberland,  on 
account  of  his  connection  with  Thomas  Percy,  one  of 
the  conspirators,  was  confined  first  in  the  house  of 
the  Archbishop  of  Canterbury,  afterwards  in  the 
Tower ;  he  was  brought  before  the  Star  Chamber  the 
next  year,  and  arraigned  on  these  charges ;  that  he 
had  sought  to  be  the  head  of  the  papists :  that  he  had 
admitted  Thomas  Percy  to  be  a  gentleman  pensioner, 
without  administering  the  oath  of  supremacy:  and 
that  after  his  restraint  he  wrote  letters  without  leave, 
giving  warning  to  Percy  to  seek  safety.  He  treated 
them  with  contempt,  and  desired  a  public  trial  by 
law.  The  proofs  against  him  failed;  nevertheless, 
the  Star  Chamber  sentenced  him  to  pay  a  fine  of 
30,000/.,  to  be  imprisoned  during  the  King's  pleasure, 
deprived  him  of  all  his  offices,  and  declared  him 
incapable  of  holding  any  in  future.  During  a  con- 
finement in  the  Tower  of  thirteen  years,  he  acquired 
the  character  of  a  Mecaenas,  from  his  devotion  to 
literary  and  scientific  pursuits,  and  the  number  of 
learned  men  he  entertained.  Imprisonment  could 
not  lower  the  pride  of  the  Percy ;  for  when  Hay,  Lord 
Doncaster — the  King's  favourite,  who  had  married, 
against  her  father's  consent,  Lady  Lucy  Percy,  the 
celebrated  beauty,  better  known  as  Countess  of 
Carlisle — obtained  his  liberation  from  James,  in 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,   EARL  OF   ESSEX.  213 

1617,   Northumberland  was  with  difficulty  induced 
to  accept  the  favour  at  such  hands. 

Mountjoy  had  succeeded,  during  the  autumn  of 
1602,  in  reducing  Tyrone  and  O'Donnel,  the  heads 
of  the  Irish  rebels,  to  so  great  distress,  that  they  were 
anxious  to  submit  on  terms ;  but  Elizabeth  at  first 
would  listen  to  nothing  less  than  an  unconditional 
surrender,  and  subsequently  was  so  undecided,  that 
Mountjoy  knew  not  what  to  do;  until,  at  length, 
hearing  that  the  Queen  was  dying,  he  sent  at  once 
for  Tyrone,  received  his  submission  kneeling,  and  in 
return,  published  an  act  of  oblivion  of  all  past 
offences.  Scarcely  was  this  done,  when  the  intelli- 
gence arrived  that  Elizabeth  was  no  more;  Tyrone 
burst  into  tears  of  regret  that  he  had  been  so  preci- 
pitate. 

Mountjoy  brought  over  with  him  the  two  Irish 
chiefs,  who  were  pardoned,  Tyrone  being  re-invested 
with  his  former  title,  and  O'Donnel  created  Earl  of 
Tyrconnel.  Mountjoy  himself  was  received  by  James 
with  the  utmost  favour,  not  only  as  having  been 
successful  in  Ireland,  but  as  the  friend  of  Essex,  and 
his  associate  in  the  secret  correspondence  with  Scot- 
land. On  the  21st  July,  1603,  he  was  created  Earl 
of  Devonshire,  K.  G.,  and  Master  General  of  the  Ord- 
nance. His  favour  was  as  great  with  the  King,  as 
that  of  Lady  Rich  was  with  the  Queen.  Shortly  after- 
wards, by  mutual  consent,  that  lady  was  divorced 
from  her  husband,  and  on  the  26th  December,  1605, 
became  the  wife  of  the  Earl  of  Devonshire ;  the  cere- 
mony was  performed  by  Laud,  afterwards  Archbishop, 


214  LIVES   OF   THE  EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  VI. 

then  the  Earl's  chaplain.  This  union  roused  the 
greatest  anger  in  James,  who  declared  such  a  mar- 
riage illegal  and  void. 

Devonshire  and  his  wife  were  disgraced  and 
banished  from  Court.  The  case  was  argued ;  but  before 
any  decision  was  arrived  at,  the  Earl  fell  ill  of  a  fever, 
which  carried  him  off,  after  ten  days7  illness,  on  the 
3rd  April,  1606.  Sir  Dudley  Carleton,  writing  to 
Mr.  J.  Chamberlain,  at  Ware  Park,  on  Good  Friday, 
the  17th  April,  says:  — 

My  L.  of  Devonshire's  funeral  will  be  performed  in  West- 
minster, about  three  weeks  hence.  There  is  much  dispute 
among  the  heralds,  whether  his  lady's  arms  shall  be  impaled 
with  his,  which  brings  in  question  the  lawfulness  of  the  mar- 
riage, and  that  is  said  to  depend  on  the  manner  of  the  divorce ; 
which,  though  it  run  in  these  terms,  that  she  was  to  be  sepa- 
rated from  her  late  husband,  a  ihoro  et  mensa,  propter  varia  et 
diversa  adulteria,  confessata  et  commissa  ea  in  suburbis  quam 
intra  muros  civitatis  London,  yet  are  they  tied  in  the  con- 
clusion not  to  marry  any  other.  Her  estate  is  much  threat- 
ened with  the  King's  account,  but  it  is  thought  she  will  find 
good  friends,  for  she  is  visited  daily  by  the  greatest,  who 
profess  much  love  to  her  for  her  Earl's  sake ;  meantime, 
amongst  the  meaner  sort,  you  may  guess  in  what  credit  she 
is,  when  Mrs.  Bluenson  complains  that  she  hath  made  her 
cousin  of  Devonshire  shame  her  and  the  whole  kindred. 

2nd  May.  —  My  L.  of  Devonshire's  funeral  will  be  per- 
formed on  Wednesday  next,  in  which  my  Lord  of  South- 
ampton is  chief  mourner,  my  L.  of  Suffolk  and  Northampton 
assistants,  and  three  other  Earls.  It  is  determined  that  his 
arms  shall  be  set  up  single,  without  his  wife's.1 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  215 

She  survived  him  but  a  short  time,  and  died 
in  1607.  Their  eldest  son,  Mount]  oy  Blount,  was 
created  Baron  Mountjoy,  1627,  and  Earl  of  Newport, 
1628. 

Fynes  Moryson  has  left  so  interesting  an  account 
of  the  person  and  habits  of  his  master,  that  no  apology 
is  requisite  for  its  insertion  here. 

"  He  was  of  stature  tall,  of  comely  proportion  ;  his 
"  skin  fair ;  he  had  very  little  hair  on  his  body,  it 
"  was  nearly  black,  thin  on  the  head,  where  he  wore 
"  it  short,  except  a  lock  under  the  left  ear,  which  he 
"  nourished,  and  being  woven  up,  hid  it  in  his  neck 
"  under  his  ruff.  He  only  used  the  barber  for  his 
"  head ;  for  the  hair  on  his  chin,  cheeks,  and  throat, 
"  growing  slowly,  he  used  to  cut  with  his  scissors 
"  almost  daily,  keeping  it  so  low  that  it  could  scarce 
"  be  discerned,  keeping  also  the  hair  on  his  upper 
"  lip  somewhat  short,  suffering  only  that  under  his 
"  nether  lip  to  grow  at  length  and  full ;  yet  some  two 
"  or  three  years  before  his  death,  he  had  a  very  sharp 
"  and  short  pike  devant  on  his  chin.  His  forehead 
"  was  broad  and  high ;  his  eyes,  great,  black,  and 
"  lovely ;  his  nose,  low  and  short,  and  something 
"  blunt  at  the  end ;  his  chin,  round  ;  cheeks,  full, 
"  round,  and  ruddy ;  countenance,  cheerful  and 
"  amiable  as  ever  I  beheld  of  any  man.  His  arms 
"  were  long,  his  hands  long  and  white,  his  fingers 
"  great  in  the  end,  and  his  legs  somewhat  little, 
u  which  he  gartered  above  the  knee. 

"  His  apparel  in  Court  and  city  was  commonly  of 
"  white  or  black  taffetas  or  satins ;  he  wore  two,  yea, 

p  4 


216  LIVES   OF   THE   EABLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  VI. 

"  sometimes  three,  pair  of  silk  stockings,  with  black 
u  silk  grogram  cloak,  guarded,  and  ruffs  of  comely 
"  depth  and  thickness ;  black  beaver  hat,  with  plain 
"  black  band  ;  a  taffety  quilted  waistcoat  in  summer  ; 
"  a  scarlet  waistcoat,  and  sometimes  both,  in  winter. 
"  In  the  country,  and  in  the  field,  he  wore  jerkins 
"  and  round  hose ;  he  never  ware  other  fashion  than 
"  round,  with  laced  panes  of  russet  cloth,  and  cloak  of 
"  the  same  lined  with  velvet,  and  white  beaver  hat 
"  with  plain  band ;  and  besides  his  ordinary  stockings 
"  of  silk,  he  wore  under  boots  another  pair  of  woollen 
"  or  worsted,  with  a  pair  of  high  linen  boot  hose. 
*'  Yea,  three  waistcoats  in  cold  weather  and  a  thick 
"  ruff,  besides  a  russet  scarf  about  his  neck  thrice 
"  folded  under  it ;  so  as  I  never  observed  any  of  his 
"  age  and  strength  to  keep  his  body  so  warm.  He 
"  was  very  comely  in  all  his  apparel,  but  the  robes 
"  of  St.  George's  Order  became  him  extraordinarily 
"  well. 

"  For  his  diet  he  used  to  fare  plentifully  and  of  the 
"  best,  so  as  no  lord  in  England  might  compare  with 
"  him  in  that  kind  of  bounty.  Before  the  war  he 
"  used  to  have  nourishing  breakfasts,  as  panadoes 
"  and  broths ;  but  in  the  wars,  he  used  commonly  to 
"  break  his  fast  with  a  dry  crust  of  bread,  and,  in 
"  the  spring  time,  with  butter  and  sage,  with  a  cup 
"  of  stale  beer,  wherewith,  in  winter,  he  would  have 
"  sugar  and  nutmeg  mixed.  He  fed  plentifully,  both 
"  at  dinner  and  supper,  having  the  choicest  and 
"  most  nourishing  meats,  with  the  best  wines,  which 
"  he  drank  plentifully,  but  never  in  great  excess ;  in 


CHAP.  VI.  ROBERT,    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  217 

"  his  latter  years,  and  in  the  wars,  he  used  to  sleep 
"  in  the  afternoons,  and  that  long,  upon  his  bed.  He 
"  took  tobacco  abundantly,  and  of  the  best.  He  was 
"  very  neat,  loving  cleanliness  both  in  apparel  and 
"  diet ;  and  was  so  modest,  that  his  most  familiar 
"  never  heard  or  saw  him  use  any  liberty  out  of  his 
"  privy  chamber,  except,  perhaps,  in  his  Irish  journeys, 
"  when  he  had  no  withdrawing  room. 

"  His  behaviour  was  courtly,  grave,  and  exceeding 
"  comely.  He  loved  private  retiredness,  good  fare, 
"  and  some  few  friends.  He  delighted  in  study,  in 
"  gardens,  a  house  richly  furnished,  and  delectable 
"  rooms  of  retreat ;  in  riding  on  a  pad  to  take  the 
"  air ;  in  playing  at  shovel- board  or  at  cards ;  in 
"  reading  play-books  for  recreation ;  and  especially 
"  in  fishing  and  fish-ponds ;  seldom  using  any  other 
"  exercises,  and  using  these  as  pastimes  only  for  a 
"  short  and  convenient  time,  and  with  great  variety 
"  of  change  from  one  to  the  other. 

"  He  was  a  close  concealer  of  his  secrets,  sparing  in 
"  speech,  but  judicious,  if  not  eloquent.  He  hated 
"  swearing,  which  I  have  seen  him  often  control  at 
"  his  table  with  a  frowning  brow  and  an  angry  cast 
"  of  his  black  eye  ;  slow  to  anger,  but  once  provoked 
"  spoke  home ;  a  gentle  enemy,  easily  pardoning,  and 
"  calmly. pursuing  revenge;  as  a  friend,  if  not  cold, 
"  yet  not  to  be  used  much  out  of  the  highway* 
"  Lastly,  in  his  love  to  women,  he  was  faithful  and 
"  constant,  if  not  transported  with  self-love  more 
"  than  the  object,  and  therein  obstinate." 


218  LIVES   OF  THE  EARLS   OF  ESSEX.          CHAP.  VII. 


CHAPTER  VII. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX. 

•CONTRAST  BETWEEN  ELIZABETH  "AND  JAMES  I. — ROBERT  DEVEREUX, 
AT  ETON  AND  OXFORD.  — THE  ATTAINDER  OF  ESSEX  AND  SOUTH- 
AMPTON REVERSED.  —  QUARREL  BETWEEN  THE  PRINCE  OF  WALES 
AND  ESSEX.  - — MARRIAGE  OF  ESSEX  AND  LADY  FRANCES  HOWARD, 
AND  FESTIVITIES  AT  COURT.- — DISSOLUTE  STATE  OF  THE  COURT. 

ESSEX    GOES    ABROAD.  —  HIS    LETTERS    FROM    FRANCE.  —  HIS 

CORRESPONDENCE    WITH   THE   PRINCE   OF   WALES. 

IT  would  be  difficult  to  point  out  two  characters 
which,  with  certain  points  of  resemblance,  offer  a 
more  complete  contrast  than  do  those  of  the  late 
Queen  and  her  successor.  Elizabeth  was  fearless, 
firm,  cautious,  arid  parsimonious ;  James  was  timid, 
irresolute,  credulous,  and  prodigal.  Both  were  hasty 
and  irritable,  indulging  in  the  coarsest  abuse  in  their 
moments  of  anger  ;  but  Elizabeth  was  malignant  and 
vengeful,  while  James  was  easily  appeased,  and  would 
ask  pardon  of  those  he  had  wronged  or  abused  in  his 
anger.  Both  were  learned.  Few  women  of  her  age 
were  better  read  than  Elizabeth,  who  spoke  five 
languages1 ;  James  prided  himself  on  his  kingcraft, 

1  "Elizabeth  possessess  much  understanding  and  courage,  and  is 
adorned  with  many  great  qualities.  She  speaks  French,  Spanish,  Italian, 
and  Latin,  knows  something  of  the  sciences  and  history,  is  thoroughly 
acquainted  with  the  affairs  of  her  kingdom,  knows  those  of  her  neighbours 


3i 

15  91  -   1646. 


CHAP.  VII.       ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  219 

his  theology,  his  knowledge  of  the  science  of  demo- 
nology,  while  his  undoubted  acquirements  were  so 
overlaid  with  pedantry,  as  to  earn  for  him,  from 
Sully,  the  title  of  "the  wisest  fool  in  Europe."  Both 
had  favourites ;  but  the  spirit  of  the  Tudors  always 
preserved  Elizabeth  from  the  abject  slavery  in  which 
James  was  bound  to  Somerset  and  Buckingham. 

The  morals  of  the  Court  of  Elizabeth  were  not  of 
the  purest  order,  if  we  compare  them  with  a  modern 
standard;  but  in  contrast  with  the  profligate  and 
degrading  habits  of  the  great  lords  and  ladies  under 
James,  her  courtiers  were  models  of  propriety.  In 
the  course  of  this  narrative,  enough  will  appear  to 
warrant  the  assertion  that,  not  even  in  the  age  of 
Charles  II.,  were  honour,  virtue,  and  morality  at  so 
low  an  ebb,  as  during  the  first  quarter  of  the  seven- 
teenth century. 

When  James  was  proclaimed  on  Tower  Hill,  "  at 
"  that  instant  the  Earl  of  Southampton,  with  his 
"  keeper,  did  walk  upon  the  leads  in  the  Tower, 
"  whence  he  perceived  the  proclamation  to  be  made, 
"  at  which  he  did  much  rejoice,  as  great  reason  he 
"  hath  so  to  do,  throwing  his  hat  up  two  several  times, 
"  and  the  third  time  cast  it  over  the  wall  from  him, 
"  that  all  upon  the  Tower  Hill  might  behold  it.  At 
"  the  time  of  proclamation  of  the  King  in  Cheap- 
"  side,  my  Lord  of  Northumberland  brought  with 

and  judges  well  of  them.  She  is  passionate  and  violent  among  her 
attendants,  and  demands  more  than  is  due  to  her  sex  ;  she  is  more  frugal 
than  she  ought  to  be,  and  instead  of  giving  will  have  others  give  to  her.'* 
—From  a  despatch  of  M.  de  Bouillon,  1596.  Von  Raumer,  ii.  178. 


220  LIVES   OF   THE   EAELS   OF  ESSEX.      CHAP.  VII. 

"  him,  upon  horseback,  the  Earl  of  Essex  his  son, 
"  and  instantly  after  the  proclamation  was  done,  he 
"  was  sent  unto  Essex  House  to  his  mother,  for  there 
"  she  doth  lie  at  this  time."1 

Eobert  Devereux  was,  at  this  time,  a  gentleman 
commoner  of  Merton  College,  Oxford,  whither  he  had 
removed  from  Eton  at  the  end  of  January,  1602. 
Mr.,  afterwards  Sir  Henry  Savile2,  was  Warden  of 
Merton,  who,  for  his  father's  sake,  undertook  that 
the  youth  should  be  learnedly  and  religiously  edu- 
cated; the  better  to  effect  this,  he  gave  him  an 
apartment  in  the  Warden's  lodging.3 

On  the  5th  April,  James  wrote  a  letter  from  Holy- 
rood  concerning  the  Earl  of  Southampton,  which 
does  not  bear  the  address,  but  was  probably  to  the 
Privy  Council ;  in  it  he  says,  "  We  have  thought 
"  meet  to  give  the  Peers  of  the  realm  notice  of  our 
"  pleasure,  though  the  same  be  to  be  executed  by 
"  our  own  regal  power ;  which  is,  only  because  the 
"  place  is  unwholesome  and  dolorous  to  him,  to 
"  whose  body  and  mind  we  would  give  present  com- 
"  fort.  We  have  written  to  our  Lieutenant  of  the 
"  Tower  to  deliver  him  out  of  prison  presently,  to  go 

1  From  a  letter  from  Thomas  Ferrers  to  his  brother  Sir  Henry  Ferrers 
at  Walton  on  Trent,  in  Lord  Ashburnham's  Collection,  No.  355.  Stowe 
Catalogue. 

2  Warden  of  Merton,  1585.  He  became  Provost  of  Eton  1596,  and  died 
1621.     He  was  a  man  of  severe  morals,  and  the  strictest  religious  prin- 
ciples,  from  whom   probably  Lord  Essex  imbibed   the  anti-episcopal 
opinions  which  distinguished  him  at  a  later  period.     Sir  Henry  Savile 
was  also  an  eminent  mathematician,  and  founder  of  the  chairs  of  Astro- 
nomy and  Geometry  at  Oxford. 

3  Ath.  Oxon.  iii.  189. 


CHAP.  VII.        EGBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  221 

"  to  any  such  place  as  he  shall  choose,  in  or  near  our 
"  city  of  London,  there  to  carry  himself  in  such 
"  modest  form  as  we  know  he  will  think  meet  in  his 
"  own  discretion,  until  the  body  of  our  State  now 
u  assembled  shall  come  unto  us,  at  which  time 
"  we  are  pleased  that  he  shall  also  come  unto  our 
"  presence ;  for  as  it  is  on  us  that  his  only  hope 
"  dependeth,  so  we  will  reserve  those  words  of 
"  further  favor  until  the  time  he  behold  our  own 
"  eyes,  whereof  as  we  know  the  comfort  will  be  great 
"  to  him,  so  it  will  be  contentment  to  us  to  have  op- 
"  portunity  to  declare  our  estimation  of  him."1 

There  was  little  cause  to  fear  that  the  subject  of 
such  expressions  from  the  new  Sovereign  would  be 
treated  with  harshness  or  disrespect.  But  the  House 
of  Peers  had  not  even  waited  thus  long ;  for  on  the 
26th  March,  only  two  days  after  the  death  of  the 
Queen,  bills  reversing  the  attainders  of  the  Earls  of 
Southampton  and  Essex  were  read  a  first  time,  and 
came  back  from  the  Commons  the  18th  April.  James 
must,  therefore,  have  given  instructions  before  he 
became  King,  or  else  his  wishes  were  so  well  known 
to  Cecyll  that  he  ventured  to  forestal  them  thus ;  a 
remarkable  circumstance  whichever  way  it  is  viewed. 

James  I.  arrived  at  Theobalds  on  the  7th,  having, 
by  his  reception  of  Southampton  at  York,  displayed 
his  antipathy  to  the  late  Queen,  quite  as  much  as  his 
regard  for  the  memory  of  Essex. 

On  the  13th  May,  he  made  his  entry  into  London, 

1  Ashburnham  MSS.  692.  Stowe  Cat. 


222  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  VII. 

and  shortly  afterwards  had  a  creation  of  Peers, 
when  Lord  Henry  Howard  became  Earl  of  Nor- 
thampton; Lord  Thomas  Howard,  Earl  of  Suffolk; 
Mountjoy,  Earl  of  Devonshire ;  and  Sir  Robert 
Cecyll,  Baron  Cecyll  of  Essendon. 

Henry,  Prince  of  Wales,  was  about  two  years 
younger  than  the  Earl  of  Essex,  who,  in  pursuance  of 
his  promise  to  Lady  Essex,  the  King  placed  about 
the  Prince  as  a  sharer  both  in  his  studies  and  his 
amusements.  "  They  became  very  conversant  and 
."  familiar,  the  Prince  being  near  unto  him  in  years, 
"  but  nearer  in  affection."  1  The  Prince  matriculated 
at  Magdalen  College,  Oxford,  in  August,  1605  ;  but 
whether  it  was  in  the  Tennis  Court  at  Oxford,  or 
elsewhere,  that  the  quarrel  occurred  between  him 
and  Essex  which  is  related  by  Mr.  Codrington,  we 
are  not  informed. 

The  Prince  and  Essex  were  playing  tennis  to- 
gether, when,  after  a  set  or  two,  a  dispute  arose 
connected  with  the  game.  The  Prince  became  so 
angry,  that  he  called  Essex  "son  of  a  traitor;"  on 
which  the  latter  hit  the  Prince  on  the  head  with  his 
racket,  "  so  shrewdly,"  that  he  drew  blood.  The 
quarrel  came  to  the  ears  of  the  King,  who  examined 
into  it,  and  finding  what  provocation  the  Prince  had 
given,  dismissed  them  with  these  words  to  his  son  : 
"  that  he  who  did  strike  him  then,  would  be  sure, 
"  with  more  violent  blows,  to  strike  his  enemy  in 
"  times  to  come." 

1  Life  of  Robert,  Earl  of  Essex,  by  Robert  Codrington,  M.  A.,  printed 
in  Harl.  Misc.  vol.  i.  p.  212. 


CHAP.  Vn.       ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  223 

The  recreations  of  Essex  at  Oxford,  were  "  riding 
"  the  great  horse,  running  at  the  ring,  and  the 
"  exercise  of  arms.  His  other  hours  were  occupied 
"  in  the  perusal  of  books  that  afforded  most  profit, 
"  not  most  delight." 

In  the  autumn  of  1605,  King  James  was  enter- 
tained by  the  University  of  Oxford,  when  the  degree 
of  M.A.  was  bestowed  on  the  Earl  of  Essex,  in 
company  with  many  other  noblemen1  and  knights. 

On  the  24th  October,  1605,  Mr.  Chamberlain,  writ- 
ing to  Sir  Dudley  Carleton  at  Paris,  says :  "  The 
"  Earl  of  Essex,  and  the  young  Lord  Cranborne2, 
"  shall  marry  two  of  my  Lord  Chamberlain's3 
"  daughters  at  Court  very  shortly :  they  only  stay 
"  for  the  King's  coming,  who  is  looked  for  in  the 
"  next  week." 

This  match  is  said  to  have  been  made  by  King 
James,  in  his  care  for  the  children  of  the  late  Earl  of 
Essex;  but  as,  in  the  divorce  case  in  1613.  he  in- 
veighed strongly  against  "  the  marrying  of  young 
"  couples  before  they  be  acquainted  one  with  another," 
that  assertion  may  be  considered  doubtful.  Others 
say  that  Salisbury,  who  desired  to  connect  his  son 
and  Essex,  was  the  contriver ;  but  as  Lord  Cran- 
borne's  marriage  did  not  take  place  till  three  years 
later,  that  could  hardly  be  the  case.  By  whom- 
soever proposed,  nothing  could  be  less  happy  than 
the  result  of  this  union. 

1  Ath.  Oxon.  iii.  189.  gives  the  names. 

2  Cecyll  was  created  Viscount  Cranborne  in  1604,  and  Earl  of  Salis- 
bury the  4th  May,  1605. 

3  Earl  of  Suffolk,  Lord  Chamberlain,  1603. 


224  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  VII. 

It  appears  by  the  following  letter,  the  earliest  I 
have  discovered  of  Essex's  writing,  that  he  and  Lord 
Cranborne,  who,  as  well  as  himself,  had  been  brought 
up  with  the  Prince,  were  somewhat  more  than  mere 
playfellows  at  this  time. 

No.  XL.* 

Essex  to  Salisbury. 

My  most  honorable  good  Lord, — I  humbly  beseech  your 
Honor  that  you  will  be  pleased  to  excuse  my  Lord  of  Cran- 
borne's  not  coming  to  the  Court,  for  the  knowledge  of  your 
L.  pleasure  was  brought  unto  him  so  late,  as  he  could  not 
with  any  ease  or  conveniency  observe  the  same ;  but  if  your 
Honor  will  please  to  give  us  leave  to  keep  company  together 
until  the  next  week,  we  will  then  be  ready  to  do  our  service 
to  his  Highness,  and  I  will  ever  acknowledge  myself  most 
bound  unto  your  good  Lordship,  and  will  always  rest  your 

Honor's  humbly  to  be  commanded, 

Ko.  ESSEX. 
Chesterford,  this  5th  September,  1605. 

On  the  5th  January,  1606,  the  Earl  of  Essex  was 
married  to  Lady  Frances  Howard,  and  on  that  and 
the  following  nights  there  were  great  entertainments 
at  Court  in  honour  of  the  nuptials.  Mr.  Pory  wrote 
an  account  of  the  fetes  to  Sir  Robert  Cotton ;  he 
observes,  "  The  bridegroom  carried  himself  so  gravely 
"  and  gracefully,  as  if  he  were  of  his  father's  age.  He 
"  had  greater  gifts  given  him  than  my  Lord  of 
"  Montgomery2  had,  his  plate  being  valued  at  3000/. ; 

>  S.  P.  O. 

2  Philip  Herbert,  who  was  created  Earl  of  Montgomery,  4th  May, 
1605,  married  Lady  Susan  Vere,  daughter  of  the  Earl  of  Oxford. 


CHAP.  VII.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  225 

"jewels,  money,  and  other  gifts,  WOOL  more.1  But 
"  to  return;  both  Inigo,  Ben2,  and  the  actors,  men 
"  and  women,  did  their  parts  with  great  commenda- 
"  tion.  The  concert,  or  soul  of  the  masque,  was 
"  Hymen  bringing  in  a  bride,  and  Juno  Pronuba's 
"  priest  a  bridegroom,  proclaiming  that  these  two 
"  should  be  sacrificed  to  nuptial  union.  Before  the 
"  sacrifice  could  be  performed,  Ben  Jonson  turned 
"  the  globe  of  the  earth,  standing  behind  the  altar, 
"  and  within  the  concave  sat  the  eight  men  masquers, 
"  representing  the  four  humors  and  the  four  affec- 
"  tions,  who  leapt  forth  to  disturb  the  sacrifice  to 
"  union.  But  amidst  their  fury,  Reason,  that  sat 
"  above  them  all,  crowned  with  burning  tapers, 
"  came  down  and  silenced  them.  These  eight,  to- 
"  gether  with  Reason,  their  moderatress,  mounted 
"  above  their  heads,  sat  somewhat  like  the  ladies 
"  in  the  scallop  shell  last  year.  About  the  globe 
"  hovered  a  middle  region  of  clouds,  in  the  centre 
"  whereof  a  grand  concert  of  musicians,  and  on  the 
"  cantons,  or  horns,  sat  the  ladies,  four  at  one  corner, 
"  four  at  another,  who  descended  upon  the  stage. 
"  These  eight,  after  the  sacrifice  was  ended,  repre- 
"  sented  the  eight  nuptial  powers  of  Juno-  Pronuba, 
"  who  came  down  to  confirm  the  union.  The  men 
"  were  clad  in  crimson,  the  women  in  white ;  they 
"  had  every  one  a  white  plume  of  the  richest  heron's 
"  feathers,  and  were  so  rich  in  jewels  as  was  most 

1  The  King's  gift  consisted  of  506f  oz.  of  gilt  plate  of  sundry  kinds. 

2  Ben  Jonson  was  the  author  of  the  masque,  Inigo  Jones  the  ma- 
chinist. 

VOL.  II.  Q 


226  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  VII. 

"  glorious.  I  think  they  hired  and  borrowed  all  the 
"  jewels  and  ropes  of  pearls  in  both  Court  and  City. 
"  The  Spanish  ambassador  seemed  but  poor  to  the 
"  meanest  of  them.  They  danced  all  the  variety  of 
"  dances,  both  severally  and  promiscue ;  and  then  the 
"  women  and  men,  as  namely  the  Prince,  who  danced 
"  with  as  great  perfection  and  as  settled  a  majesty 
"  as  could  be  devised,  the  Spanish  ambassador,  the 
"  Archduke's  ambassador,  the  Duke,"  &C.1 

The  Lords  who  figured  in  the  masque  were  Lord 
Willoughby2,  Lord  Walden3,  Sir  James  Hay4,  Earl 
of  Montgomery 5,  Sir  Thomas  Howard6,  Sir  Thomas 
Somerset7,  Earl  of  Arundel8,  Sir  John  Ashley. 

Their  dress  was  taken  from  the  antique  Greek 
statues,  with  some  modern  additions,  which  made 
it  "  both  graceful  and  strange."  They  wore  Persic 
crowns,  with  scrolls  of  gold  plate  turned  outwards, 
and  wreathed  with  carnation  and  silver  net  lawn. 
Their  bodies  were  in  carnation  cloth  of  silver,  "  cut 
"  to  express  the  naked  in  manner  of  the  Greek 
"  thorax,"  with  broad  belts  of  cloth  of  gold  em- 
broidered and  fastened  with  jewels ;  mantles  of 
several  coloured  silks,  as  they  were  coupled  in  pairs : 
first,  sky -colour;  second,  pearl  colour;  third,  flame 

1  Nichol's  Progresses  of  James  I.,  ii.  33. 

2  Robert,  tenth  Lord  Willoughby  of  Eresby,  afterwards  Earl  of  Lind- 
sey,  killed  at  Edgehill,  23rd  October,  1642. 

3  Eldest  son  of  the  Earl  of  Suffolk. 

4  Afterwards  Earl  of  Carlisle,  Viscount  Doncaster. 

5  Philip,  brother  of  William  Herbert,  third  Earl  of  Pembroke. 

6  Second  son  of  the  Earl  of  Suffolk. 

17  Third  son  of  Edward,  fourth  Earl  of  Worcester. 
8  Son  of  that  Earl  who  died  in  the  Tower  in  1595. 


CHAP.  VII.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  227 

colour ;  fourth,  tawny.  They  were  fastened  on  the 
right  shoulder,  and  "  fell  compass  down  the  back  ... 
"  gracious  folds."  Their  legs  were  encased  in  silver 
greaves. 

The  ladies,  who  were  arranged  according  to  their 
height,  were,    the   Countess   of  Montgomery,   Lady 
Knollys,    Mrs.  A.    Sackville,   Lady   Berkeley,   Lady 
Dorothy  Hastings,  Lady  Blanche  Somerset,  Countess 
of  Bedford,  Countess  of  Rutland.     Their  attire  was 
"  wholly  new  for  the  invention,  and  full  of  glory."  The 
upper  part,  white  cloth  of  silver,  wrought  with  Juno's 
birds  and  fruits ;  a  loose  under  garment,  full  gathered, 
of  carnation,  striped  with  silver,  and  parted  with  a 
golden  zone.     Beneath  that,  another  flowing  garment 
of  watchet  cloth  of  silver,  laced  with  gold,  "  through 
•"  all  which,  though  they  were  round  and  swelling, 
"  there   yet  appeared  some  touch  of  their  delicate 
"  lineaments,  preserving  the  sweetness  of  proportion, 
"  and  expressing  itself  beyond  expression."     Their 
hair  was  carelessly  bound  under  the  circle  of  a  rare 
and  rich  coronet,  adorned  with  choice  jewels,  from 
the  top  of  which  flowed  a  transparent  veil  down  to 
the  ground,  whose  verge,  returning  up,  was  fastened 
to  either  side  "  in  most  sprightly  manner."     Shoes  of 
azure   and   gold,    set   with   rubies,   completed   their 
costume,  every  part  of  which  abounded  in  ornament. 

The  next  night  being  Monday,  out  of  a  niist  made 
of  delicate  perfumes,  two  females  appeared,  represent- 
ing Truth  and  Opinion.  After  a  dialogue  between 
them,  their  supporters  appeared,  sixteen  knights  on 
each  side,  one  side  led  by  the  Duke  of  Lennox,  the 

n  2 


228  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  VII. 


by  the  Earl  of  Sussex,  who  "  addressed  them- 
to  fight,"  but  were,  after  a  time,  interrupted 
by  an  angel,  who  made  a  speech,  and,  reconciling 
the  rival  ladies,  they  retired  hand  in  hand. 

As  Lord  Essex  was  but  fifteen  years  of  age  at  the 

time  of  his  marriage,  and  the  bride  a  year  or  two 

younger,  it  was  arranged  that  he  should  pass  the 

interval  until  his  arrival  at  man's  estate  in  foreign 

travel.     This,  reasonable  as  it  appears,  was  probably 

in  some  degree  the  origin  of  their  future  misfortunes  ; 

for  had  Essex  been  constantly  in  the  society  of  his 

young  wife,  she  might  have  bestowed  on  him  that 

ardent  affection,  which,  given  to  another  whom  to 

love  was  a  crime,  and  unchecked,  ungoverned  by  any 

principle,  hurried  her  into  an  abyss  which  is  fearful 

to  contemplate.     Not  only  was  she  separated  from 

her  husband,  but  she  remained  in  the  worst  school, 

under  the  worst  guide  that  could  have  been  selected, 

—  at   Court,  under   the   care  of  her   mother,    Lady 

Suffolk.     That  lady,  herself  a  beauty,  avaricious,  and 

unprincipled,  was   more  than   suspected   of  having 

bartered  her  favours  for  gold.1     One  of  her  occupa- 

tions was  the  endeavour  to  find  a  young  Englishman 

1  Lady  Suffolk  as  well  as  her  husband  received  bribes  for  political 
services.  "  The  Constable  of  Castile  procured  a  peace  so  advantageous 
for  Spain  and  disadvantageous  for  England;  there  was  not  one 
courtier  of  note  that  tasted  not  of  Spain's  bounty,  nor  any  in  so  large  a 
proportion  as  the  Countess  of  Suffolk  :  in  truth,  Audley  End,  that 
famous  and  great  structure,  may  be  said  to  have  its  foundations  of  Spanish 
gold."  —  Secret  History  of  the  Court  of  James  /.,  vol.  i.  p.  338.  Audley 
End  was  built  by  the  Earl  of  Suffolk.  In  1618,  Lord  S.  was  tried  in  the 
Star  Chamber  for  peculation  in  his  office  of  Lord  Treasurer,  and  con- 
demned to  imprisonment,  and  to  pay  a  fine  of  30,000/. 


CHAP. VII.        ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  229 

to  occupy  the  post  of  favourite,  the  courtiers  being 
extremely  jealous  of  the  favours  lavished  by  James 
on  the  Scotch.  For  this  purpose  she  sought  out 
handsome  youths,  dressed  them  up,  curled  their  hair, 
and  perfumed  their  breaths1,  and  placed  them  in  the 
way  of  the  King,  in  the  hope  they  would  attract  his 
notice.  Henry  Rich2,  afterwards  Earl  of  Holland, 
was  one  of  the  youths  on  whose  "  curious  face  and 
"  complexion  "  James  cast  his  eye  with  favour,  but 
who,  little  as  his  character  deserves  esteem,  is  at  least 
to  be  respected  in  this,  that  he  scorned  to  accept  so 
degrading  a  post.  The  manner  in  which  he  showed 
his  repugnance  to  subscribe  to  the  conditions  neces- 
sary for  the  royal  favourite,  was  sufficiently  marked. 
One  day,  after  King  James  had  lolled  upon  his  neck, 
and  slabbered  his  face,  Henry  Rich,  who  could  not 
restrain  his  disgust,  turned  aside  from  the  King,  and 
spat  upon  the  ground. 

Neither  the  example  nor  precepts  of  Lady  Suffolk, 
were  therefore  likely  to  keep  Lady  Essex  in  the 
straight  road.  To  show  the  reader  what  kind  of 
lessons  were  to  be  learnt  at  Court,  I  cannot  do  better 
than  transcribe  part  of  a  letter  from  Sir  John 
Harrington,  "  the  witty  godson  "  of  Queen  Elizabeth, 
to  Secretary  Barlow,  describing  the  entertainment  of 
Christian  IV.,  King  of  Denmark,  who  visited  London 
in  July,  1606:  "The  ladies  abandon  their  sobriety, 

1  Secret  History  of  the  Court  of  James  I.,  vol.  i.  pp.  375,  376.     All 
those  plans  were  upset  by  the  accident  of  Carr  breaking  his  leg. 

2  Henry  Rich  was  second  son  of  Lord  Rich  and  Penelope  Devereux, 
and  godson  to  Henry  IV.  of  France. 

Q  3 


230  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  VII. 

"  and  roll  about  in  intoxication.     One  day  a  great 

"  feast  was  held,  and,  after  dinner,  the  representation 

"  of  Solomon  his   temple,   and  the  coming   of  the 

"  Queen  of  Sheba  was  made,  or,  as  I  may  better  say, 

"  was  meant  to  have  been  made,  before  their  Majesties, 

"  by  device  of  the  Earl   of  Salisbury  and  others. 

"But  alas !  as  all  earthly  things    do  fail   to   poor 

"  mortals  in  enjoyment,  so  did  prove  our  present- 

"  merit  hereof.     The  lady  who  did  play  the  Queen's 

"  part,  did  carry  most  precious  gifts  to  both  their 

"  Majesties ;  but,  forgetting  the  steps  arising  to  the 

"  canopy,  overset  her  caskets  into  his  Danish  Majesty's 

"  lap,  and  fell  at  his  feet,  though  I  rather  think  it 

"  was  in  his  face.     Much  was  the  hurry  and  confu- 

"  sion ;  cloths  and  napkins  were  at  hand  to  make  all 

"  clean.     His  Majesty  then  got  up,  and  would  dance 

"  with  the  Queen  of  Sheba ;  but  he  fell  down  and 

"  humbled  himself  before  her,  and  was  carried  to  an 

"  inner  chamber,  and  laid  on  a  bed  of  state,  which 

"  was  not  a  little  defiled  with  the  presents  of  the 

"  Queen  bestowed   on  his  garments,    such   as  wine, 

"  cream,  jelly,  beverage,  cakes,  spices,  and  other  good 

"  matters.       The    entertainment    and    show    went 

"  forward,  and  most  of  the  presenters  went  back- 

"  ward  or  fell  down,  wine  did  so  occupy  their  upper 

"  chambers.     Now  did  appear  in  rich  dress,  Hope, 

"  Faith,  and  Charity.     Hope  did  essay  to  speak,  but 

"  wine  rendered  her  endeavour  so  feeble,  that  she 

"  withdrew,  and  hoped  the  King  would  excuse  her 

"  brevity.    Faith  was  then  all  alone,  for  I  am  certain 

"  that  she  was  not  joined  with  good  works,  and  left 


CHAP.  VII.          EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  231 

"  the  Court  in  a  staggering  condition.  Charity  came 
"  to  the  King's  feet,  and  seemed  to  cover  the  multitude 
"  of  sins  her  sisters  had  committed  ;  in  some  sort  she 
"  made  obeisance,  and  brought  gifts,  but  said  she 
"  would  return  home  again,  as  there  was  no  gift 
"  which  heaven  had  not  already  given  His  Majesty. 
"  She  then  returned  to  Hope  and  Faith,  who  were 
"  both  sick  in  the  lower  hall.  Next  came  Victory,  in 
"  bright  armour,  and  presented  a  rich  sword  to  the 
"  King,  who  did  not  accept  it,  but  put  it  by  with  his 
"  hand,  and  by  a  strange  medley  of  versification 
"  did  endeavour  to  make  suit  to  the  King.  But 
"  Victory  did  not  triumph  long ;  for  after  much 
"  lamentable  utterance,  she  was  led  away  like  a  silly 
"  captive,  and  laid  to  sleep  on  the  outer  steps  of  the 
"  antechamber.  Now  did  Peace  make  entry,  and 
"  strive  to  get  foremost  to  the  King ;  but  I  grieve  to 
"  tell  how  great  wrath  she  did  discover  unto  those  of 
"her  attendants,  and  much  contrary  to  her  semblance, 
"  most  rudely  made  war  with  her  olive  branch,  and 
"  laid  on  the  pates  of  those  who  did  oppose  her 
"  coming.  We  are  going  on  hereabouts  as  if  the 
"  devil  was  contriving  every  man  should  blow  himself 
"  up  by  wild  riot,  excess,  and  devastation  of  time  and 
"  temperance.  The  great  ladies  do  go  well  masked, 
"  and  indeed  it  be  the  only  show  of  their  modesty  to 
"  conceal  their  countenance.  But,  alack !  they  meet 
"  with  such  countenance  to  uphold  their  strange 
"  doings,  that  I  marvel  not  at  aught  that  happens. 
"  I  do  say --but  not  aloud — that  the  Danes  have 
u  again  conquered  the  Britons ;  for  I  see  no  man,  or 

Q  4 


232  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  VII 

"  woman  either,  that  can  command  himself  or  herself. 
"  I  wish  I  was  at  home.  0  rus,  quando  te  aspiciam! "  * 

Lord  Essex  did  not  go  abroad  until  the  spring  of 
1608 ;  but  there  is  no  mention  of  his  presence  at  any 
Court  festivities  between  his  marriage  and  his  depar- 
ture, excepting  on  one  occasion  that  the  King  and 
Prince  of  Wales  were  entertained  at  Merchant  Tailors' 
Hall,  when  the  latter,  and  by  his  desire  the  Lords 
"  present  who  loved  him  and  were  not  free  of  other 
"  companies,"  were  made  members  of  that  society : 
among  the  number  was  the  Earl  of  Essex. 

The  first  place  that  he  visited  was  Paris.  We  learn 
from  the  letters  which  follow,  that  he  was  most 
graciously  received  and  entertained  by  Henry  IV., 
who  had  always  felt  great  regard  and  esteem  for  his 
father.  From  that  time  until  his  return  to  England, 
after  an  absence  of  between  three  and  four  years,  very 
little  is  known  of  his  movements ;  a  few  letters  to 
the  Prince  of  Wales,  and  to  Mr.  Newton,  their 
common  tutor,  are  all  written  from  France.  Arthur 
Wilson  says  he  also  travelled  in  Germany;  and  it 
is  very  probable  he  might  have  visited  his  own 
country  during  that  period,  but  no  record  exists  of 
either. 

No.  XLI.2 

Lord  Carew  to  the  Prince  of  Wales. 

May  it  please  your  Highness,  —  The  opportunity  of  this 
bearer  yieldeth  me  two  causes  of  writing.  The  first,  to  pre- 

1  Nug.  Ant.  i.  348. 

2  Harl.  MSS.  7007.  216.     Sir  George  Carew,  Master  of  the  Ordnance 
under  Elizabeth,  was  created,  3  James  I.,  Lord  Carew  of  Clopton,  and  in 
I  Charles  I.,  Earl  of  Totness;  ob.  S.  P.  M.  1629. 


CHAP.  VII.        ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  233 

sent  mine  own  humble  duty,  having  as  yet  none  other  means 
of  professing  my  readiness  and  desire  to  shew  my  devoted 
affection  toward  your  service,  which  should  more  effectually 
appear,  if  I  might  have  the  honor  and  happiness  of  receiving 
your  gracious  commandments  in  any  thing  that  my  weak 
means  were  able  to  accomplish ;  the  other,  to  witness  unto 
your  Highness,  that  by  the  King  your  uncle's  commandment, 
and  mine  advice,  this  gentleman,  Monsieur  de  St.  Antoine  1, 
hath  made  some  longer  stay  in  these  parts,  than  his  desire  to 
have  been  attendant  on  your  person,  in  his  place  of  service, 
could  otherwise  have  permitted.  To  the  end  he  might  ac- 
company my  Lord  of  Essex  to  Fontainebleau,  whither  the 
King  invited  his  Lordship  to  come  unto  him,  to  use  him 
with  respect  and  kindness,  in  leading  him  on  hunting  with 
him,  and  making  other  demonstrations  of  favor  towards  him. 
And  because  none  of  my  Lord's  own  attendants  were  ac- 
quainted with  the  manner  and  customs  of  this  Court,  there- 
fore recourse  was  had  to  Mons.  de  St.  Antoine's  experience 
and  judgment  in  that  behalf.  Where  he  hath  both  much 
steaded  his  Lordship ;  and  besides  been  a  hearer  of  that  high 
and  honorable  opinion,  which  is  generally  held  in  these  parts, 
of  your  noble  towardliness,  or  rather  accomplished  virtues  and 
parts  of  worthiness.  For  the  continuance  and  prospering  of 
the  which,  in  long  life  and  honor,  praying  to  the  Almighty, 
I  humbly  leave  your  Highness  to  His  most  holy  protection ; 
resting  your  Highness'  most  humbly  devoted  in  all  loyalty, 
Paris,  1st  April,  1608.  G.  CAREW. 

No.  XLII.2 

Essex  to  the  Prince  of  Wales. 

Most  gracious  Prince, — I  do  in  these  few  lines  present 
my  humblest  duties  unto  your  Highness.     Being  now  entered 

1  The  Prince's  riding  master. 

2  Harl.  MSS.  7007.  440.     This  letter  is  endorsed  "  My  lo.  of  Essex, 
No.  2." 


234  LIVES   OP   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  VII. 

into  my  travels,  and  intending  the  end  thereof  to  attain  to 
true  knowledge  and  to  better  my  experience,  I  hope  God 
will  so  bless  me  in  my  endeavours,  as  that  I  shall  return  an 
acceptable  servant  unto  your  Highness.  My  heart,  noble 
Prince,  stands  humbly  and  truly  affected,  and  the  world  can 
yield  me  no  such  comfort  as  to  be  numbered  among  those 
that  do  indeed  honor  and  reverence  you  with  their  entirest 
thoughts.  I  will  every  day  pray  upon  the  knees  of  my 
humblest  heart,  that  God  will  bless  your  Highness  with  many 
and  most  happy  days.  Your  Highness'  humblest  servant, 
Montreuil,  this  24th  of  May.  Ko.  ESSEX. 

No.  XLIII.1 
Essex  to  Mr.  Newton. 

Good  Mr.  Newton, — The  hope  I  have  of  your  kindness, 
makes  me  the  more  unwillingly  to  trouble  you  with  my  com- 
mendations, of  which,  if  it  will  please  you  to  accept,  as  they 
are  truly  meant,  with  a  loving  affection,  I  shall  be  very 
glad ;  entreating  your  good  opinion,  I  entreat  further  assu- 
rance of  your  love,  that  you  will  be  daily  a  means  for  me  to 
the  Prince,  my  most  noble  master,  that  his  Highness  will 
please  to  remit  all  past  errors,  and  remember  me,  though  in 
a  remote  place,  as  one  of  his  servants  that  will  ever  honor 
him  with^  an  humble  heart,  and  to  my  uttermost  seek  to 
deserve  well  with  the  honestest  and  carefullest  service  I  can 
perform.  I  would  willingly  have  written  to  his  Highness 
now  ;  but  to  presume  too  often  may  be  interpreted  a  fault  of 
much  boldness.  I  will  pray  humbly  and  heartily  for  his 
Highness  many  happy  and  blessed  days  ;  and  I  will  ever,  if 
in  this  you  will  be  my  friend,  love  you  with  the  love  of  an 
honest  man.  I  pray  you  that  you  will  remember  me  to  good 

1  Lansd.  MSS.  68.  22. 


CHAP.  VII.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  235 

Mistress   Newton;    and   so  committing  you  to  God's  good 
protection,  I  rest  your  very  loving  friend, 

Blois,  this  5th  Sept.  Ko.  ESSEX. 

No.  XLIV.1 
Essex  to  Mr.  Newton. 

Good  Mr.  Newton,  —  I  have  received  your  letter,  full  of 
such  comfort,  as  I  shall  think  myself  very  unhappy  if  I  do 
not  in  some  part  grow  worthy  thereof.  For  your  own  kind 
offer,  I  do  acknowledge  myself  very  much  obliged  to  you.  I 
shall  firmly  rely  upon  your  kindness,  whenever  I  shall  have 
occasion  to  implore  his  Highness'  goodness  to  me,  and  your 
good  furtherance  therein :  in  the  mean  time,  I  do  hold  it  a 
great  blessing  to  be  continued  in  his  honorable  good  opinion ; 
to  effect  which  my  own  means  is  small  or  none,  your  good 
offices  will  be  of  power,  and  available  in  this.  I  pray  you 
shew  your  love  to  me,  and  as  I  will  ever  be  an  honest  faith- 
ful servant  to  my  worthy  master,  so  will  I  be  a  loving,  faith- 
ful man  to  you,  and  will  be  very  proud  if  you  will  hold  me 
in  the  number  of  your  assured  loving  friends. 

Blois,  this  15th  October.  Ko.  ESSEX. 

The  above  are  all  that  remain  of  Essex's  letters 
from  abroad ;  his  last  correspondence  with  the 
Prince  may  be  placed  here,  before  I  proceed  to 
narrate  the  scandalous  transactions,  which  ended  in 
the  annulling,  by  an  extra-judicial  process,  of  the 
marriage  of  Lord  and  Lady  Essex. 

1  Lansd.  MSS.  68.  21. 


236  LIVES   OF   THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  VII* 

No  XLV.1 
Essex  to  the  Prince  of  Wales* 

Most  mighty  Prince,  —  Let  it  out  of  your  great  goodness 
be  pardoned,  if,  in  forwardness  of  my  zeal,  I  took  boldness  to 
present  my  humble  duty  to  your  Highness'  most  gracious 
acceptance.  In  the  poorness  of  my  fortune,  I  am  not  able  to 
give  better  testimony  of  my  true  affected  heart  to  your  ser- 
vice ;  which,  were  it  so  good  as  it  would  give  means,  no 
creature  should  be  more  careful  and  forward  to  do  your 
Highness  honor,  than  myself:  as  it  is,  that,  with  my  life, 
shall  be  freely  expended,  to  continue  your  princely  good 
opinion  of  me.  In  hope  of  this,  your  royal  nobleness,  none 
shall  more  truly  pray  for  the  increase  and  continuance  of 
your  Highness'  great  happiness,  or  stand  more  heartily  de- 
voted to  perform  all  hearty  obedience,  than  your  Highness' 

poorest  servant, 

Eo.  ESSEX. 

No.  XL VI.2 

The  Prince  to  Essex. 

My  respect  hath  always  been  such  unto  you,  that  I  was 
well  content  to  see  the  late  remembrance  of  your  affection 
unto  me  by  your  letter ;  and  would  be  no  less  glad  to  see 
you  at  some  times,  if  your  occasions  did  afford  you  the  means, 
according  to  your  desire.  But  whatsoever  be  wanting  in 
that  kind,  I  am  well  persuaded  will  be  supplied  by  the  con- 
tinuance of  your  hearty  affection,  which  shall  ever  be  re- 
garded by  me  with  that  kindness  which  can  be  expected  from 

your  very  good  friend, 

HENRY. 

1  Harl.  MSS.  7008.  105. ;  not  dated,  but  endorsed  "  My  lo.  of  Essex, 
1612." 

2  Harl.  MSS.  7008.  105. 


/ 


CHAP.  VII.         ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  237 

No.  XL VII.1 
Essex  to  the  Prince  of  Wales. 

My  most  gracious  Prince, — It  is  my  truest  contentment 
to  receive  so  noble  a  testimony  of  your  Highness'  favor,  as  it 
hath  pleased  you  to  grace  me  with  in  Mr.  Newton's  letter ; 
I  will  thereby  give  myself  assurance  of  your  princely  good- 
ness, whensoever  I  shall  be  emboldened  humbly  to  implore 
the  virtue  thereof.  And,  my  most  princely  master,  I  can 
but  vow  in  the  uprightness  of  my  innocent  heart,  that  when- 
soever your  Highness  shall  lend  your  princely  hand  to  the 
raising  of  my  poor  fortune,  it  shall  be  to  enable  a  servant 
that  will  always  be  ready  to  do  you  his  best  and  faithfullest 
services  to  the  last  mite  of  his  estate,  to  the  last  breath  of  his 
life. 

Thus  much  all  your  Highness'  servants  will  be  ready  to 
offer ;  thus  much  I  will  be  ever  ready  to  perform. 

So  most  humbly  praying  your  gracious  pardon,  I  presume 
to  kiss  your  princely  hands,  and  will  ever  pray  to  God  for 
the  long,  happy,  and  prosperous  continuance  of  your  blessed 
life.  Your  Highness'  most  humble  and  most  faithful  servant, 

Bo.  ESSEX. 

1  Harl.  MSS.  7008. 104. ;  not  dated,  but  endorsed  "  Lord  Essex,  No.  5." 


238  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS   OF    ESSEX.      CuAr.  VIII. 


CHAPTEE  VIII. 

LIFE    OF   ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX Continued. 

RISE  OF  CARR  TO  BE  FAVOURITE. —  LADY  ESSEX  BECOMES  ATTACHED 

TO    HIM. SHE    REFUSES    TO    LIVE    WITH    HER    HUSBAND. HER 

LETTERS  TO    MRS.  TURNER    AND    DR.  FORMAN,  FROM  CHARTLEY. 

THE  CONNECTION  OF  LADY  ESSEX  AND  ROCHESTER  BECOMES 
NOTORIOUS.  —  A  COMMISSION  APPOINTED  TO  INQUIRE  INTO  THE 
PETITION  OF  LADY  ESSEX  FOR  DISSOLUTION  OF  THE  MARRIAGE. 
—  ITS  PROCEEDINGS ESSEX  CHALLENGES  MR.  HENRY  HOWARD. 

IN  the  autumn  of  the  year  1607,  there  appeared  at 
Court,  in  the  suite  of  Lord  Hay1,  a  youth  of  "  comely 
"  visage  and  proportionable  personage,  mixed  with  a 
"  courtly  presence,"  named  Robert  Carr.  Lord  Hay, 
having  a  part  to  perform  in  a  tilting  match,  sent  his 
device  to  the  King,  according  to  the  custom  of  those 
pastimes,  by  Carr,  who  acted  as  his  esquire.  In 
dismounting  from  his  horse  to  perform  this  duty, 
the  animal  started,  threw  him  to  the  ground,  and  his 
leg  was  broken  by  the  fall.  This  accident  happening 
to  one  whose  good  looks  he  had  already  noticed, 
called  forth  all  the  sympathies  of  King  James,  who 
directed  that  he  should  be  carried  into  the  palace, 

1  Son  of  Sir  James  Hay,  of  Kingask,  created  by  King  James  successively 
Lord  Sawlie,  Viscount  Doncaster,  and  Earl  of  Carlisle.  His  second 
wife  was  Lady  Lucy  Percy,  whose  beauty  was  celebrated  by  Waller  and 
other  poets.  His  expenditure  was  so  enormous,  that  of  400,000^  of  gifts 
received  from  the  King,  he  left  at  his  death  neither  a  house  nor  an  acre 
of  land. 


CHAP.  VIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  239 

and  there  tended.  His  Majesty  was  also  pleased  to 
visit  the  interesting  patient  every  day  ;  the  result  of 
which  was,  that  in  the  month  of  December,  the  chry- 
salis, casting  off  the  grubby  form  of  a  page,  which 
till  then  he  had  borne,  burst  forth  in  all  the  butterfly 
glory  of  a  royal  favourite.  He  was  sworn  Gentleman 
of  the  Bedchamber,  and  knighted.  No  suit,  petition, 
letter,  or  grant,  from  this  time,  either  reached  or  de- 
parted from  the  royal  hand,  except  through  the 
favourite ;  by  which  means,  and  the  lavish  gifts  of  his 
master,  he  had  become  so  enriched  in  a  short  time, 
that  on  the  9th  April,  1611,  he  was  elevated  to  the 
peerage  as  Viscount  Rochester. 

At  this  period  Lady  Essex  was  just  entering  her 
eighteenth  year.  She  had,  says  Arthur  Wilson,  "  a 
"  most  sweet  and  bewitching  countenance,  hiding  a 
"  wicked  heart."  Sir  Symons  d'Ewes l  positively 
asserts,  that,  set  on  by  her  great-uncle  Northampton, 
she  captivated  the  Prince  of  Wales,  who  first  en- 
joyed her.  Sir  Charles  Corn wallis2  opposes  this  no- 
tion very  strongly ;  while  Arthur  Wilson  says,  that 
the  Prince  threw  many  admiring  glances  towards 
her,  until  observing  that  she  was  captivated  by 
Rochester,  he  soon  slighted  her.  There  is  an  anec- 
dote related,  that  on  one  occasion,  when  she  dropped 
her  glove,  a  courtier  picked  it  up  and  brought  it  to 
the  Prince,  thinking  he  was  performing  an  accept- 


1  Life  written  by  himself.     Harl.  MSS.  646.  27. 

2  Second  son  of  Sir  Thomas  Cornwallis,  of  Brome  Hall,  Suffolk.     He 
was  some  time  ambassador  in  Spain,   and  was  treasurer  of  the  Prince's 
household. 


240  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  VIII. 

able  service.  The  Prince,  however,  rejected  it, 
saying,  he  would  have  no  glove  that  was  stretched 
by  another. 

I  incline  to  the  belief  that  the  Prince  of  Wales,  if 
he  ever  became  an  admirer  of  Lady  Essex,  was  a 
rejected  suitor ;  and  that  in  the  absence  of  her  Lord, 
forgetting,  or  possibly  indifferent  to  her  duty,  she 
gave  her  whole  heart  to  Rochester.  The  exceeding 
inconsistency  of  the  various  writers  of  this  period  as 
to  dates  and  intervals  of  time,  renders  it  difficult  to 
ascertain,  with  any  approach  to  exactness,  when 
Lord  Essex  returned  to  England  to  assume  his 
marital  rights.  I  believe  it  to  have  been  in  the 
summer  or  autumn  of  1611.  There  is  no  proof  of 
any  criminality  between  Lady  Essex  and  Rochester  up 
to  that  time ;  but  probably  they  were  then  attached  to 
each  other,  and  the  return  of  her  husband  hastened 
a  declaration  of  their  mutual  feelings.  It  did  more, 
it  brought  to  maturity  all  the  evil  passions  of  her  na- 
ture. Nevertheless,  she  dissembled  so  well,  that  Essex 
ascribed  to  her  "  maiden  bashfulness  "  all  the  cold- 
ness she  evinced  in  return  for  his  ardent  love,  and 
bore  it  for  a  time  with  the  utmost  patience  and  good 
humour.  He  was  at  length,  however,  forced  to  call 
upon  Lord  Suffolk  to  use  his  influence  with  his 
daughter.  At  this  crisis,  Essex  was  unluckily  at- 
tacked by  the  small-pox ;  and  we  may  reasonably 
presume,  that  the  aversion  felt  towards  him  by  his 
wife,  was  not  lessened  by  the  disfiguring  marks  left 
by  the  disease.  "  Yet  he,"  says  Arthur  Wilson, 


CHAP.  VIII.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  241 

"  loved  her  with  an  extraordinary  affection,  having 
"  a  gentle,  mild,  and  courteous  disposition,  espe- 
"  cially  to  women,  as  might  win  upon  the  roughest 
"  natures."  l 

Lord  Suffolk  again  interposed,  and  insisted  that 
Lady  Essex  should  accompany  her  husband  to 
Chartley.  She  was  compelled  to  obey ;  but,  de- 
termined not  to  be  defeated,  she  had  recourse  to 
a  certain  Mrs.  Turner,  the  widow  of  a  doctor  of 
medicine,  whose  prodigal  and  profligate  life  had 
brought  her  to  want.2  Lady  Essex  had  two  objects 
to  attain  ;  the  one  was  to  prevent  the  access  of  her 
husband,  the  other  to  maintain  the  constancy  of 
Rochester.  By  the  advice  of  Mrs.  Turner,  one 
Forman,  a  reputed  conjuror  and  a  quack  doctor, 
was  called  in,  who  promised,  by  his  art,  to  afford 
Lady  Essex  the  assistance  she  desired.  He  made 
little  figures  of  brass  and  of  wax,  resembling  Lord 
Rochester,  and  the  Countess,  and  the  Earl  of  Essex ; 
the  former  to  be  strengthened  and  united,  the  latter 
weakened  and  melted  away.  But  he  did  not  trust 
entirely  to  the  black  art ;  he  supplied  philtres  and 
potions  to  be  administered  to  the  two  noblemen, 
which  were  to  work  upon  them  physically,  and  it 
is  quite  possible  with  rather  more  effect  than  the 
symbols  of  brass  and  wax. 

On  arriving  at  Chartley,  Lady  Essex  shut  herself 

1  Life  and  Reign  of  James  L,  1719,  p.  686. 

2  Mrs.  Turner  was  celebrated  as  the  inventor  of  yellow  starch  for  ruffs, 
which  became  very  fashionable. 

VOL.  II.  R 


242  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  VIII. 

up  in  her  apartments,  entirely  separating  herself 
from  her  husband,  whom,  when  she  was  compelled 
to  see  him,  she  received  with  reproaches  and  mur- 
murs, calling  him  "cow,  beast,  and  coward," — terse, 
if  not  elegant,  language  from  a  beauty  in  her  teens  ; 
all  which  he  bore  patiently  for  a  long  time,  hoping 
thus  to  win  her  affections. 

The  endeavours  of  her  husband  to  please  her, 
the  influence  of  her  father,  mother,  brother,  were 
alike  exerted  in  vain.  Her  passion  for  Rochester 
was  as  a  hurricane,  sweeping  before  it  every  vestige 
of  decency  and  propriety,  and  was  only  strengthened 
by  opposition  ;  no  crime  now  appeared  too  great,  if  it 
was  to  procure  her  the  power  of  gratifying  her  law- 
less love. 

A  letter  to  Mrs.  Turner,  found  in  that  person's 
desk,  notwithstanding  the  injunction  of  the  writer 
to  burn  it,  shows  how  recklessly  she  placed  herself 
in  the  power  of  these  infamous  instruments,  in  her 
eagerness  to  effect  her  purpose.  It  is  a  letter  which 
could  not  be  omitted  from  this  narrative,  containing 
as  it  does,  under  her  own  hand,  evidence  of  the  gross 
perjury  of  which  she  was  guilty  in  the  subsequent 
process  for  annulling  her  marriage.  It  was  written 
from  Chartley,  and  with  another  of  the  same  period 
to  Dr.  Forman,  will  place  the  reader  behind  the 
scenes,  when  he  comes  to  the  proceedings  of  the 
divorce  commission. 


CHAP. VIII.      ROBERT,    TIIIHD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  243 

No.  XL VIII.1 
Lady  Essex  to  Mrs.  Turner. 

[Burn  tliis.] 

Sweet  Turner,  —  I  am  out  of  all  hope  of  any  good  in  this 
world,  for  my  father,  my  mother,  and  my  brother  said  I 
should  lie  with  him.  My  brother  Howard  was  here,  and  said 
he  would  not  come  from  this  place  all  this  winter,  so  that  all 
comfort  is  gone ;  and,  which  is  worst  of  all,  my  Lord  hath 
complained  that  he  hath  not  lain  with  me,  and  that  I  would 
not  suffer  him  to  use  me  as  his  wife.  My  father  and  mother 
are  angry,  but  I  would  rather  die  at  a  hundred  times  over, 
for  besides  the  suffering,  I  should  lose  his  love  if  I  lie  with 
him  ;  I  will  never  desire  to  see  his  face  any  more,  if  my  Lord 
do  that  thing  to  me.  My  Lord  is  very  well  as  ever  he  was, 
and  very  merry,  so  as  you  may  see  in  what  a  miserable  case 
I  am.  You  must  send  the  party  word  of  all :  he  sent  me 
word  all  should  be  well ;  but  I  shall  never  be  so  happy  as 
the  Lord  to  love  me.  As  you  have  taken  pains  all  this  time 
for  me,  so  now  do  all  you  can,  for  never  so  unhappy  as  now, 
for  I  am  not  able  to  endure  all  the  miseries  that  are  coming 
on  me.  But  I  cannot  be  helped  so  long  as  this  man  liveth  ; 
therefore  pray  for  me,  for  I  have  need  of  it :  but  I  should  be 
better  if  I  had  your  company  to  ease  my  mind.  Let  him 
know  this  ill  news.  If  you  can  get  this  done,  you  shall  have 
as  much  as  you  can  demand ;  this  is  fair  play.  Your  loving 

sister, 

FRANCES  ESSEX. 

Notwithstanding  the  great  crimes  into  which  the 
passions  of  Lady  Essex  hurried  her,  and  the  horror 
one  must  feel  at  the  deliberate  planning  of  the  death 


1  Cobbett's  State  Trials,  ii.  930. 
R  2 


244  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  VIII. 

of  her  husband  which  is  shown  in  the  latter  part  of 
this  letter,  one  cannot  but  feel  some  sympathy  for  her 
situation.  Married,  when  a  child,  to  one  who,  being 
sent  abroad,  remained  a  stranger  to  her,  she  became 
attached,  during  his  absence,  to  another,  and  now 
resisted  courageously  all  the  efforts  and  authority  of 
her  parents,  brother,  and  husband,  to  make  her  un- 
faithful to  the  man  she  loved.  Had  she  rested  here, 
her  unhappy  situation  would  have  called  for  our 
compassion. 

Lady  Suffolk  was  not  likely  to  have  instilled  into 
her  daughter  those  principles  by  which  alone  the  evil 
passions  of  her  nature  might  have  been  governed. 
No  wonder  then,  that  under  their  influence,  backed 
by  such  advisers  as  Turner  and  Forrnan,  she  sank  to 
the  lowest  depth  of  crime  and  degradation. 

No.  XLIX.1 
Lady  Essex  to  Dr.  Forman. 

Sweet  Father,  —  I  must  still  crave  your  love,  although  I 
hope  I  have  it,  and  shall  deserve  it  better  hereafter.  Ke- 
member  the  galls!  for  I  fear,  though  I  have  yet  no  cause  but 
to  be  confident  in  you,  yet  I  desire  to  have  it  remain  as  it  is. 
You  will  see  it  continue  still  if  it  be  possible,  and,  if  you  can, 
you  must  send  me  some  good  news ;  alas !  I  have  need  of  it. 
Keep  the  Lord  still  to  me,  for  that  I  desire.  Be  careful  you 
name  me  not  to  any  body,  for  we  have  so  many  spies,  that 
you  must  use  all  your  wits,  and  all  little  enough ;  for  the 
world  is  against  me,  and  the  heavens  favor  me  not.  I  hope 
you  will  do  me  good,  and  if  I  be  ungrateful,  let  all  mischief 

1  State  Trials,  ii.  932. 


CHAP.  VIII.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  245 

come  unto  rne.  My  Lord  is  lusty  and  merry,  and  drinks 
with  his  men,  and  all  the  content  he  gives  me  is  to  use  me  as 
doggedly  as  ever  before ;  I  think  I  shall  never  be  happy  in 
this  world,  because  he  hinders  my  good,  and  ever  will,  I 
think  ;  so  remember,  I  beg,  for  God's  sake,  get  me  free  from 
this  place.  Your  affectionate  daughter, 

FRANCES  ESSEX. 

P.S. —  Give  Turner  warning  of  all  things,  but  not  the 
Lord;  I  would  not  have  anything  come  out,  for  fear  of  my 
Lord  Treasurer,  for  so  he  may  tell  my  father  and  mother, 
and  fill  their  ears  full  of  toys. 

It  appears  by  this  postscript  that  Lady  Essex 
dreaded  the  interference  of  Lord  Salisbury,  should 
he  become  acquainted  with  her  practices.  He  seems, 
indeed,  to  have  been  a  check  upon  all  parties,  from 
the  King  downwards.  He  died  on  the  24th  May, 
1612;  and  almost  immediately  afterwards,  the  con- 
nection between  Lady  Essex  and  Rochester  became 
notorious.  The  Earl  of  Northampton,  disgracing  his 
rank,  his  learning,  and  his  grey  hairs,  to  gain  the 
favour  of  the  favourite,  became  pander  to  the  dis- 
honour of  his  niece,  and  arranged  meetings  for  the 
lovers  at  his  own  house.  Essex,  having  discovered 
that  her  aversion  to  himself  was  caused  by  her 
passion  for  Rochester,  had  ceased  to  attempt  any 
exercise  of  authority  over  her.  The  stolen  pleasures 
of  the  guilty  pair  were  uninterrupted,  but  they  were 
stolen,  and  that  slight  restraint  became  very  soon  too 
grievous  to  be  borne. 

Northampton  was  again  employed,  and  used  his 
influence  with  James,  who  was  also  anxious  to  gratify 
his  favourite,  to  such  purpose  that  the  King  consented 


B    3 


246  LIVES   OF    THE   EAKLS   OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  VIII. 

to  further  a  dissolution  of  the  marriage.  Lord  Essex 
was  willing  to  aid  in  all  ways  that  did  not  reflect 
dishonour  on  himself;  and  at  length  a  sort  of  com- 
mittee of  the  friends  of  both  parties,  being  the  Lord 
Privy  Seal,  the  Lord  Chamberlain1,  the  Earl  of 
Southampton,  and  Lord  Knollys,  was  assembled  to 
consider  how  the  proceedings  for  the  separation 
should  be  carried  on.  The  state  of  the  law  at  that 
time  made  it  a  matter  of  great  difficulty,  and  the 
affair  of  Devonshire  and  Lady  Bich,  in  1606,  had 
created  a  very  strong  feeling,  which  was  not  yet 
forgotten ;  but  it  was  at  length  arranged  that  Lady 
Essex  should  present  a  petition  praying  for  a  dis- 
solution on  the  ground  of  impotence  in  her  husband. 

This  does  not  appear  to  be  a  mode  of  proceeding 
that  could  much  gratify  the  Earl  of  Essex,  but  was 
probably  the  only  course  which  could  be  adopted 
under  the  circumstances ;  and  no  doubt  the  King, 
who  prided  himself  greatly  on  his  knowledge  of 
divinity  and  ecclesiastical  law,  had  many  a  doubt  to 
be  resolved,  and  argument  to  be  answered,  before  he 
approved  of  any  plan. 

He  at  length  consented  to  appoint  a  Commission 
under  the  Great  Seal  to  inquire  into,  and  resolve  the 
question,  whether  the  complaint  set  forth  by  the 
Countess  of  Essex  in  her  petition  were  well  founded. 

On  or  about  the  12th  May,  1613,  the  Archbishop 
of  Canterbury2  was  requested  by  the  King  to  sit  on 

1  The  Earls  of  Northampton  and  Suffolk. 

2  George  Abbot,  whose  narrative,  written  and  signed  by  himself  (Harl. 
MSS.  6854.  261.),  contains  a  full  and  very  curious  account  of  the  pro- 
ceedings.    It  is  printed  in  State  Trials. 


CHAP.  V11I.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  247 

the  Commission.  After  an  interview  with  Essex,  who 
"  was  very  reserved,  but  declared  his  ability,  and 
"that  he  would  lay  no  blemish  on  himself,"  and 
with  the  condition  that  other  Bishops  should  be 
joined  with  him,  his  Grace  consented,  and  a  Com- 
mission was  appointed,  composed  of  the  following 
ten  persons :  George,  Archbishop  of  Canterbury ; 
John,  Bishop  of  London ;  Lancelot,  Bishop  of  Ely ; 
Kichard,  Bishop  of  Lichfield  and  Coventry ;  Sir 
Julius  Ca3sar,  LL.D.,  Chancellor  of  the  Exchequer ; 
Sir  Thomas  Parry,  LL.D.,  Chancellor  of  the  Duchy 
of  Lancaster ;  Sir  Daniel  Dun,  LL.D.  ;  Sir  John 
Benett,  LL.D. ;  Doctors  Francis  James,  and  Thomas 
Edwards.  Some  of  the  Commissioners,  says  the 
Archbishop,  were  "  very  averse  to  the  business, 
"  especially  Sir  Thomas  Parry ;  but  after  the  L. 
"  Chamberlain  had  some  private  conversation  with 
"  him  one  day  at  Windsor,  he  was  quite  altered." 

It  is  not  possible  to  go  into  the  details  of  the  case  ; 
the  depositions  and  examinations  may  be  found  at 
length  in  the  State  Trials.  Lord  Essex  appears 
throughout  the  whole  of  the  proceedings  to  have 
treated  the  lady  with  far  more  tenderness  and  deli- 
cacy than  she  showed  towards  him,  or  in  any  way 
deserved. 

The  Archbishop  says,  that  when  the  Earl  was 
examined,  "  he  used  no  ill  speech  of  his  Lady,  for 
"  which  we  all  much  commended  him."  He  said, 
"  When  I  came  out  of  France  I  loved  her ;  I  cannot 
"  so  now,  neither  ever  shall  I."  When  he  was 
examined  as  to  the  article  that  she  was  virgo  incor- 

K    4 


248  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CIIAP.  VIII. 

rupta,  "  he  smiled  and  said,  she  saith  so,  and  she  is 
"  so  for  me."  Sir  Daniel  Dun,  catching  at  this, 
desired  the  registrar  to  set  down  as  the  answer, 
"  credit  articulum  esseverum"  "  This,"  adds  his  Grace, 
"  gave  me  no  great  encouragement."  It  was  resolved 
that  Lady  Essex  should  be  examined  by  a  jury  of 
matrons.  The  Archbishop  says,  "  The  inspectrices 
"  who  were  chosen  came  most  unwillingly,  and  how- 
"  soever  Sir  Jul.  CaBsar  and  Sir  Daniel  Dun,  whom 
"  we  never  suspected  to  be  as  parties  in  the  cause, 
"  as  afterwards  they  appeared  to  be,  made  all  clear 
"  and  fair  weather,  yet  my  Lord  of  London  told  us 
"  openly,  that  he,  being  with  them,  found  that  the 
"  ladies  knew  not  well  what  to  make  of  it ;  that  they 
"  had  no  skill,  nor  knew  not  what  was  the  truth,  but 
"  what  they  said  was  upon  the  credit  of  the  midwives, 
"  which  were  but  two,  and  I  know  not  how  tampered 
"  with.  Lady  Knevet  declared  her  sorrow  at  being 
"  used  in  such  a  business,  and  wept  all  the  day  about 
"  it." 

Mr.  Chamberlain  says1:  — 

The  divorcement  'twixt  the  Earl  of  Essex  and  his  Lady  is 
on  foot,  and  I  think  will  come  shortly  to  a  conclusion.  It 
hath  been  heard  at  Lambeth  before  certain  Commissioners, 
twice  or  thrice,  but  a  huis  clos ;  all  the  difficulty  is,  that 
though  he  be  willing  to  confess  his  insufficiency  towards  her, 
yet  he  will  be  left  at  liberty  to  marry  any  other,  and  stands 
upon  it  that  he  is  malefactus  only  ad  illam.  Now  some 
lawyers  are  of  opinion,  that  if  she  will  swear  that  he  is  im- 
potent towards  her,  there  is  sufficient  cause  of  divorce,  which 

1  In  a  letter  to  Sir  D.  Carlcton,  10th  June,  1613,  in  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  VIII.         ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX.  249 

it  is  thought  she  will  make  no  bones  of,  being,  as  she  pre- 
sumes, provided  of  a  second;  which  I  should  never  have 
suspected,  but  that  I  know  he  (Rochester)  was  with  her 
three  hours  together  within  these  two  clays,  which  makes  me 
somewhat  to  stagger,  and  to  think  that  great  folks  will  have 
their  ends,  without  respect  of  friends  or  followers.  In  the 
mean  time,  the  lady  hath  been  visited  by  some  ancient  ladies 
and  mid  wives  expert  in  these  matters,  who  find  her,  upon 
their  oaths,  a  pure  virgin;  which  some  doctors  think  a 
strange  asseveration,  and  make  it  more  difficult  than  to  be 
discovered. 

It  was  currently  reported  and  believed,  that  Lady 
Essex,  having  obtained  permission  to  appear  veiled 
before  these  "  ancient  ladies,"  procured  a  substitute 
who  might  justify  their  verdict. 

Mr.  Chamberlain  to  Dudley  Carleton,  8th  July: — 

The  divorce  goes  not  so  fast  forward  as  was  expected. 
The  lady,  for  her  part,  hath  performed  all  that  belonged  to 
her,  and  endured  all  trials ;  but  he  is  gone  into  the  country 
with  protestation  to  stand  and  to  abide  what  the  Commis- 
sioners shall  award.  But  that  will  not  serve  the  turn,  for 
there  be  certain  proceedings  wherein  his  presence  is  neces- 
sarily required ;  so  that  it  is  thought  the  matter  will  be  pro- 
tracted to  see  if  it  will  fall  of  itself:  for  the  case  is  so  diffi- 
cult, and  of  so  dangerous  and  scandalous  consequence,  that 
there  is  no  hope  that  any  sentence  will  give  satisfaction. l 

Southampton,  writing  to  Sir  R.  Win  wood  on  the 
6th  August,  from  some  place  not  named,  where  he 
awaits  the  first  fair  wind  for  England,  says :  — 

Of  the  nullity,  I  see  you  have  heard  as  much  as  I  can 
write,  by  which  you  may  discern  the  power  of  a  king  with 

1  S.  P.  O. 


250  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  VIII. 

judges ;  for  of  those  who  are  now  for  it,  I  knew  some  of  them, 
when  I  was  in  England,  were  vehemently  against  it,  as  the 
Bishops  of  Ely  and  Coventry.  For  the  business  itself,  I 
protest  1  shall  be  glad,  if  it  may  lawfully,  that  it  may  go 
forward,  though  of  late  I  have  been  fearful  of  the  conse- 
quence, and  have  had  my  fears  increased  by  the  last  letters 
which  came  to  me :  but,  howsoever,  the  manner  of  inter- 
posing gives  me  no  cause  of  contentment. l 

On  the  9th  September,  Mr.  Chamberlain  again 
wrote  to  Sir  Dudley  Carle  ton  on  this  matter  :  — 

That  which  most  men  listen  after,  is,  what  will  fall  out 
betwixt  the  Earl  of  Essex  and  Mr.  Henry  Howard2,  who  is 
challenged  and  called  to  account  by  the  Earl  for  certain  dis- 
graceful speeches  of  him.  They  are  both  gotten  over,  the 
Earl  from  Milford  Haven,  the  other  from  Harwich,  with 
each  of  them  two  seconds.  The  Earl  hath  his  base  brother, 
and  one  Captain  Ouseley,  or  rather,  as  most  men  affirm,  Sir 
Thos.  Beaumont,  as  one  interested  in  the  quarrel;  Mr.  Howard 
hath  one  Mr.  Ball,  and  Huntington  Colbie,  esteemed  a  very 
valiant  gentleman.  The  last  news  of  them  was,  that  the 
Earl  was  at  Calais,  the  other  in  Zealand.  The  King  hath 
sent  a  post  to  Calais  to  the  Governor  to  stay  them,  and 
young  Gib  of  the  bedchamber  is  sent  with  commandment 

from  the  King  to  them  both,  if  he  come  in  time. 

« 

On  hearing  of  the  intended  duel,  the  King  imme- 
diately interfered  to  prevent  its  taking  place,  riot  only 
by  his  own  messengers,  but  through  the  Archduke's 
ambassador,  who  sent  circular  letters  to  the  Governors 
of  the  towns  in  the  Netherlands,  desiring  that  Essex 
and  Howard  should  be  arrested.  This  letter  is  in- 

1  Winwood's  Mem.  iii.  475. 

2  Henry  Howard  was  third  son  of  the  Earl  of  Suffolk. 


CuAP.VlII.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  251 

teresting,  as  it  gives  a  description  of  Essex's  person. 
Another  paper  is  appended,  signed  by  the  Earl's 
seconds,  from  which  it  appears,  that  the  King  had 
interposed  to  effect  a  reconciliation  between  the 
principals  ;  that  a  paper  was  drawn  up,  read  in  the 
presence  of  Sir  Horatio  Vere  and  Sir  John  Went- 
worth,  and  signed  by  the  seconds  ;  that  subsequently 
the  seconds  of  Mr.  Howard  put  forth  a  paper 
professing  to  be  that  one,  but  containing  a  different 
version  of  the  story,  of  course  unfavourable  to  Essex, 
who,  thereupon,  disowning  the  act  of  his  seconds, 
they  wrote  this  paper,  declaring  the  statement  of  the 
other  party  to  be  "  merely  false." 

No.  L.1 

The  Ambassador  of  the  Archduke  to . 

Monsieur  le  Conte  d'Essex,  et  le  Sr.  Henry  Howard,  fils 
de  MODS,  le  Conte  de  Suffolk,  Grand  Chamberlan  du  roy  de 
la  Grande  Bretagne,  se  sont  desfier,  et  assigner  jour  au  pays 
de  leur  Altesses,  pour  mettre  a  effet  leur  combat ;  et  parceque 
ce  sont  deux  personages  des  plus  qualifies  de  cette  couronne 

qui  ont  les  dependences il  nous  en  ay  bien  voulu 

donner  1'avertance,  et  prier  de  vouloir  faire  le  rapport  a  son 
Altesse,  affinque  promptement  soit  donne  ordre  qu'ils  soient 
arretes  prisonniers,  et  tenu  avecq  garde  selon  leur  qualites 
pour  eviter  le  mal  qui  en  pourroit  resulter,  qui  est  de  grande 
consideration. 

Le  Conte  d'Essex  est  de  moyenne  stature:  un  peu  maigre: 
clieveulx  noirs  :  sans  barbe  :  la  face  un  peu  gastee  de  petites 
verroles :  age,  de  vingt  trois  ans  ;  estant  accompagne  de  deux 
aultres, 

1  S.  P.  O. 


252  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  VIII. 

Le  Sr.  Howard  est  de  la  merne  stature  et  age :  port  ant 
long  cheveulx  couleur  de  chataigne :  le  visage  ronde :  peu  de 
barbe :  semblablement  accompagne  de  deux  aultres ;  selon 
les  advertences  que  j'ay,  ils  ont  pris  le  chemin  de  Bruxelles. 

Sur  ce,  Monsieur,  je  vous  baise  le  mains  en  grande  haste. 

De  Londres,  le  8th  Septembre,  1613. 

FERD.  DE  BOJSSEHOT. 

M.  Montmorenci,  Governor  of  Bruges,  in  a  letter 
to  King  James  of  the  18th  September1,  informs  him, 
that  on  hearing  of  the  arrival  of  His  Majesty's  mes- 
senger, the  two  parties  of  English  gentlemen  made 
their  escape,  the  one  on  horseback,  the  other  in  a 
chariot  voiturier.  Mr.  Howard  and  his  seconds,  who 
were  in  the  latter,  were  arrested  at  Courtray,  and 
he  had  little  doubt  the  other  party  would  be  cap- 
tured at  Gand.  Sir  William  Turnbull  recommended 
that  the  Governor  should  be  rewarded  with  100 
crowns,  or  an  ambling  horse,  for  having  arrested 
them. 

Declaration  of  Essex's  Seconds. 

Whereas  there  has  been  a  new  relation  of  the  quarrel  be- 
twixt my  Lo.  of  Essex  and  Mr.  Henry  Howard,  after  his 
Maj.  had  reconciled  them,  made  by  the  four  seconds  before 
Sir  Horatio  Vere  and  Sir  John  Wentworth,  and  the  same 
being  drawn  into  the  brief  by  Mr.  Horton,  one  that  was 
secretary  to  the  last  Lord  Treasurer,  and  we  setting  our 
hands  thereto,  not  reading  it,  but  only  hearing  it  read,  not 
mistrusting  anything,  but  to  find  just  dealing,  have  since 
seen  a  copy  thereof,  which  we  find  contrary  to  that  which 
was  then  agreed  upon,  and  merely  false  in  some  main  points ; 

1  S.  P.  O.     Flanders. 


CHAP.  VIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  253 

we  have  a  sight  of  the  original  copy  for  our  satisfaction,  not 
to  satisfy  the  world,  for  the  which  we  do  unjustly  suffer  a 
hard  censure. 

Be  it  known,  therefore,  to  all  men,  that  we  do  utterly 
disclaim  from  any  such  writing.  And  whereas  we  have  been 
hitherto  tender  and  sparing  of  their  reputations,  now,  find- 
ing that  they  have  put  this  trick  upon  us,  we  do  publish  to 
the  world  no  writing  but  the  first  to  be  true  —  to  which  we 
have  only  set  our  hands —  and  they  have  acknowledged  to  be 
true  before  Sir  Horatio  Vere  and  Sir  Jno.  Wentworth,  and  at 
divers  other  times  to  others ;  and  so  true,  as  they  neither  can 
nor  dare  deny  it,  in  which  is  plain  to  be  seen  they  might 
have  fought  if  they  would.  And  thus  much  we  will  be 
ready  to  justify,  upon  the  sacrament  first,  and  then  with  our 

swords.1 

WALTER  DEVEREUX. 

EICH.  OUSELEY. 

Mr.  Chamberlain  wrote,  on  the  24th  October,  that 
the  quarrel  between  Essex  and  Howard  was  com- 
pounded and  taken  up  by  the  King  himself,  but 
that  the  matter  was  not  ended ;  it  was  afterwards 
hushed  up  by  the  authority  of  the  Council,  and  in 
a  subsequent  letter  Mr.  Chamberlain  encloses  a 
proclamation  about  the  late  quarrel,  "  penned  by  the 
"  King's  own  hand." 

1  S.  P.  O. 


254  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.          CHAP.  IX. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

LIFE    OF   ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX  —  Continued. 

FURTHER   PROCEEDINGS    OP     THE    COMMISSION,    AND    SENTENCE    AN- 
NULLING  THE  MARRIAGE  OF  ESSEX. ROCHESTER  CREATED  EARL 

OF     SOMERSET,    MARRIES     LADY    ESSEX. FESTIVITIES    AND    PRE- 
SENTS   ON    THE    OCCASION. ROCHESTER    GUIDED    BY   OVERBURY. 

THEY   QUARREL. OVERBURY   IS    SENT    TO    THE    TOWER,    AND 

THERE      POISONED. SOMERSET     AND      HIS     WIFE     ARRESTED. 

THEY     ARE     TRIED     AND     CONVICTED     OF    THE     MURDER    OF     SIR 

THOMAS   OVERBURY. — THE    UNEASINESS    OF    JAMES. LORD   AND 

LADY    SOMERSET   ARE   PARDONED. 

WE  now  return  to  the  proceedings  of  the  Commis- 
sioners, the  majority  of  whom,  including  the  Arch- 
bishop, were  unwilling,  under  the  circumstances  of 
the  case,  to  sanction  the  dissolution  of  the  sacred 
bonds  of  matrimony.  They  were  tampered  with  in 
various  ways;  the  King  endeavoured  by  his  argu- 
ments to  persuade  the  Archbishop,  but  in  vain.  His 
Grace  desired  permission  to  retire  from  the  Com- 
mission ;  but  his  rank  and  authority  were  wanted, 
and  he  was  not  allowed  to  do  so.  Attempts  were 
made  to  intimidate  him,  by  throwing  out  insinuations 
of  various  kinds.  Among  other  arguments  brought 
forward  to  move  him  to  consent  to  the  dissolution 
without  farther  proof,  this  was  used  by  Sir  Daniel 
Dun  :  "  What  a  disgrace  will  this  be  to  my  L. 
"  Chamberlain  and  his  daughter,  if  it  should  not 
"  go  forward."  To  which  the  Archbishop  answered, 


CHAP. IX.          ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  255 

"  They  should  have  looked  to  that  before  they  did 
"  begin  it;  we  were  not  the  men  that  set  the 
"  matter  on  foot.  If  it  were  a  disgrace,  they  put  it 
"  on  themselves ;  but,  quoth  1,  am  I,  to  save  any  man 
"  from  disgrace,  to  send  my  soul  to  hell,  to  give  a 
"  sentence  whereof  I  see  no  ground  ?  I  will  never  do 
"  it."  And  he  kept  his  ground  right  manfully, 
against  the  obscure  hints  of  James,  the  persuasions 
of  some,  and  the  sneers  and  insinuations  of  others, 
mingled  with  threats  of  the  consequence  of  his  ob- 
stinacy; a  circumstance  reflecting  no  small  honour 
on  his  character,  in  that  age. 

He  went  farther ;  he  wrote  a  paper  of  reasons 
against  annulling  the  marriage,  in  which  he  cited  the 
authority  of  many  of  the  fathers,  and  learned  divines 
and  doctors.  He  expressed  great  displeasure  at 
the  idea  of  the  marriage  contract  being  dissolved 
by  collusion  between  the  parties.  It  pleased  the 
King  to  answer  this  paper,  who  introduced  a  new 
distinction,  which  Essex  consented  to  allow,  impoten- 
tiam  versus  Jianc :  but  the  quarrel  between  him  and 
Henry  Howard  occurring  just  then,  it  was  resolved 
not  to  examine  the  Earl  again,  lest  he  should,  in  his 
resentment,  give  such  evidence  as  would  prevent  the 
annulling  of  the  marriage  ;  and  he,  hearing  how  the 
last  admission  was  disapproved,  recalled  his  consent, 
and  it  was  settled  that  the  case  should  be  decided  on 
the  oath  of  Lady  Essex  alone. 

The  Commission  as  then  composed,  not  being  suffi- 
ciently flexible,  its  sittings  were  adjourned,  by  royal 
command,  until  the  18th  September.  In  the  interim, 


256  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  IX. 

the  Bishops  of  Winchester  and  Kochester  were  added 
to  the  number  ;  and  on  the  25th,  by  a  majority  of 
seven  to  five,  a  sentence  was  passed,  declaring  the 
marriage  "  utterly  void."  The  Archbishop,  the 
Bishop  of  London,  Sir  John  Benett,  Doctors  James 
and  Edwards,  formed  the  minority. 
Mr.  Chamberlain  writes  thus  :  — 

The  marriage  twixt  the  Earl  of  Essex  and  Lady  Frances 
Howard  is  dissolved,  and  pronounced  a  nullity,  by  the  Bishop 
of  Winchester,  who  with  the  Bishop  of  Kochester,  were  only 
supernumerary  to  the  first  commission,  and  so  cast  the 
balance  by  weight  of  number,  being  seven  to  five.  The 
morning  that  the  matter  was  to  be  decided,  the  King  sent 
express  commandment,  that  in  opening,  they  should  not 
argue,  nor  use  any  reasons,  but  only  give  their  assent  or 
dissent ;  and  in  the  sentence  there  is  no  cause  exprest,  but 
in  these  terms,  propter  latens  et  incur abile  impedimentumS 

The  sentence  was  no  sooner  pronounced,  than  the 
approaching  marriage  of  Rochester  to  Lady  Frances 
was  declared.  That  she  might  not  lose  rank  by  the 
change  of  husbands,  Rochester  was,  on  the  4th 
November,  created  Earl  of  Somerset  and  Baron  of 
Brancepeth;  and,  writes  Mr.  Chamberlain2  — 

It  is  thought  he  shall  not  stay  here,  but  ascend  one  step 
higher,  and  shortly  be  made  Marquis  of  Orkney,  that  his 
mistress  may  be  a  better  woman,  if  it  may  be,  than  she  was 
before.  The  marriage  was  thought  should  be  celebrated  at 
Audley  End  the  next  week,  and  great  preparation  there  was 
to  receive  the  King ;  but  I  hear  that  the  Queen  being  won, 

1  S.  P.  O.     To  Sir  D.  Carleton,  24th  October,  1613. 

2  S.  P.  O.     To  Sir  D.  Carleton,  22nd  November. 


CHAP.  IX.         ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  257 

and  having  promised  to  be  present,  it  is  put  off  till  Christ- 
mas, and  then  to  be  performed  at  Whitehall.  All  the  talk 
now  is  of  masquing  and  feasting  at  these  towardly  marriages, 
whereof  the  one  is  appointed  on  St.  Stephen's  day  in  Christ- 
mas, the  other  for  twelfthtide.  The  King  bears  the  charge 
of  the  first,  all  save  the  apparel ;  and  no  doubt  the  Queen 
will  do  as  much  on  her  side,  which  must  be  a  masque  of 
maids,  if  they  may  be  found,  and  that  is  all  the  charge  she 
means  to  be  at,  save  the  bride's  wedding  gown,  and  the 
marriage  bed,  wherein  she  will  not  exceed  500/.,  for  she  says 
her  maid  Drummond  is  rich  enough  otherwise,  as  well  in 
wealth  as  in  virtue  and  favor. 

30th  Dec.  1613. — The  marriage  was  upon  Sunday,  with- 
out such  bravery  as  was  looked  for.  She  was  married  in  her 
hair1,  and  led  to  chapel  by  her  bridesmen,  a  Duke  of  Saxony 
that  is  here,  and  the  Earl  of  Northampton,  her  great  uncle. 
The  Dean  of  Westminster  preached,  and  bestowed  a  great 
deal  of  commendation  upon  the  young  couple,  on  the 
Countess  of  Salisbury,  and  on  the  mother  vine,  as  he  called 
her,  the  Countess  of  Suffolk,  The  Dean  of  the  Chapel 
coupled  them,  which  fell  out  somewhat  strangely,  that  the 
same  man  should  marry  the  same  person,  in  the  same  place, 
on  the  self-same  day,  after  six  or  seven  years,  —  I  know  not 
whether,  —  the  former  party  yet  living.  All  the  difference 
was,  that  the  King  gave  her  last  time,  and  now  her  father. 
The  King  and  Queen  were  both  present,  and  tasted  wafers 
and  hippocras,  as  at  ordinary  weddings. 

I  have  little  or  no  commendation  for  the  masque,  either 
for  device  or  dancing,  only  that  it  was  rich  and  costly.  The 
masques  were,  the  Duke  of  Lennox,  the  Earls  of  Pembroke, 
Montgomery,  Dorset,  and  Salisbury,  the  Lord  Walden,  with 


1  It  was  the  custom  of  virgin  brides  to  go  to  the  altar  with  their  hair 
hanging  in  loose  curls  ;  it  was  considered  a  mark  of  no  trifling  audacity 
that  she  assumed  that  distinction. 

VOL.  II.  S 


258  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  IX. 

his  three  brethren,  Sir  Thomas,  Henry,  and  Charles  Howard, 
Lord  Scroope,  Lord  North,  and  Lord  Hay. 

The  next  day  the  Prince  and  bridegroom  ran  at  the  ring, 
and  yesternight  there  was  a  medley  masque,  of  five  English 
and  five  Scots,  who  are  called  the  high  dancers,  among  whom 
Sergeant-Major  Borde,  one  Abraham  Crummie,  and  Ach- 
muty,  that  was  at  Padua  and  Venice,  are  esteemed  the  most 
principal  and  lofty. 

The  Archbishop  was  at  the  marriage,  but  not  the  Bishop 
of  London. 

Sir  Ralph  Winwood  was  there  likewise,  and  had  a  very 
fair  pair  of  gloves,  of  three  pound  price  ;  which  he  well  de- 
served, for  he  made  a  suit  of  apparel  against  this  wedding,  of 
only  doublet,  hose,  and  cloak,  all  black,  and  without  any  kind 
of  gold,  silver,  or  embroidery,  that  cost  him  above  four  score 
pounds,  which  I  write,  that  you  may  see  how  unreasonable 
things  are  risen  here,  and  what  a  chargeable  world  we  live  in, 
He  presented  a  very  fair  basin  and  ewer,  of  225  oz.,  that  was 
given  him  by  the  States,  and  of  so  excellent  workmanship, 
that  the  goldsmiths  here  offered  201.  an  oz.  for  it.  The 
presents,  indeed,  were  more  in  number  and  value  than  ever 
were  given,  I  think,  to  any  subject  in  this  land.  It  were  too 
long,  neither  could  I,  if  I  would,  set  down  the  tenth  part  of 
them  ;  yet  for  a  taste  of  all,  you  shall  have  some  few  that  come 
to  hand. 

The  City,  the  Merchant  Adventurers,  the  East  India  Com- 
pany, the  Farmers  of  the  Customs,  sent  all  presents  of  plate  to 
a  great  value,  which  belike  were  well  taken,  for  the  Lord 
Mayor  and  Sheriffs  had  rich  gloves  sent  in  requital. 

Sir  Thos.  Lake,  six  goodly  candlesticks,  that  cost  above 
1000  marks. 

Sir  Rob.  Gary  and  Sir  Rob.  Mansfield  lighted  both  upon 
one  invention ;  which  was,  fire-shovel,  tongs,  andirons,  creep- 
ers, and  all  furniture  of  a  chimney,  of  silver. 


CHAP.  IX.          ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL  OF   ESSEX.  259 

Another  gave  a  cradle  of  silver,  to  burn  sea-coal. 

Sir  Fulke  Greville,  a  cup  of  gold. 

Sir  Chas.  Wilmot,  a  warming-pan  of  gold. 

The  Countess  of  Shrewsbury,  a  basin  and  ewer,  two  pots, 
and  some  vessel,  all  of  gold. 

The  Earl  of  Exeter,  basin  and  ewer  of  gold ;  his  lady,  a 
pot  of  gold. 

The  Lord  Admiral,  a  very  rich  basin  and  ewer  of  gold,  set 
with  stones,  that  was  given  him  by  the  King  of  Spain. 

The  L.  Privy  Seal,  plate  to  the  value  of  1500/.,  besides  a 
sword  to  the  bridegroom,  the  hilts  and  all  the  furniture  of 
gold,  curiously  wrought  and  enamelled  :  the  very  workman- 
ship cost  100  marks,  and  the  sword  5007. 

The  Earl  of  Salisbury,  one  suit  of  hangings  that  cost  his 
father  1500Z.,  and  another  suit  of  800/. 

You  may  guess  at  the  rest  by  this  scantling. 

5th  Jan.  1614. — The  Lord  Admiral's  present  proves  not 
to  be  pure  metal,  now  it  comes  to  the  touch.  The  presents 
are  not  valued  by  the  goldsmiths  at  above  12,0007.  This 
great  marriage  continues  still  in  gallantries  and  triumphs. 

The  Lord  Mayor  gave  an  entertainment  in  honour 
of  the  event,  by  royal  command ;  and  the  festivities 
terminated  with  the  presentation  of  the  "  Masque  of 
"  Flowers." 

How  little  did  the  guilty  pair  conceive,  in  this  their 
hour  of  triumph,  that  the  very  ground  they  stood  upon, 
firmly  based  as  it  seemed  on  the  favour  and  affection 
of  the  King,  was  even  then  crumbling  away  beneath 
their  feet. 

When  Carr  became,  after  the  death  of  Salisbury, 
the  de  facto  Minister,  he  called  to  his  aid  Sir  Thomas 
Overbury,  a  man  of  considerable  ability  and  knowledge 

s  2 


260  LIVES   OF    THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  IX. 

of  affairs,  by  whose  advice  he  steered  his  course. 
When,  however,  it  became  known  that  Carr  intended 
to  marry  Lady  Essex,  his  counsellor  endeavoured  to 
dissuade  him,  as  "  nothing  could  be  more  destructive 
"  to  their  hopes  than  the  committal  of  so  great  a 
41  public  injustice  as  to  marry  another  man's  wife, 
"  he  living ; "  and  begged  him  to  turn  his  thoughts 
towards  a  more  honourable  object  than  one  "  whose 
"  disloyalty  was  infamous,  and  the  brand  of  which 
"  would  mark  him  also." 

Henry  Peyton,  servant  to  Sir  Thomas  Overbury, 
gave  the  following  account  of  the  quarrel  between  his 
master  and  Rochester:  — "  In  the  quiet  of  the  night, 
"  about  a  month  before  his  master's  commitment,  he 
"  was  attending  in  the  chamber  next  the  Privy 
"  Gallery  for  his  master,  who  was  waiting  for  Lord 
"  Rochester,  who  did  not  come  in  till  two  or  three 
"  o'clock.  On  Lord  Rochester's  coming,  he  said  to 
"  Overbury,  '  What,  are  you  there  yet  ?'  To  whom 
"  Sir  Thomas  replied,  4  Am  I  here,  where  have  you 
"  been  ?  Will  you  never  leave  the  company  of  that 
"  base  woman  ?'  Which  Rochester  denying,  he  said, 
"  c  It  is  too  manifest ;  and  the  King  has  bestowed 
"  great  honor  and  gifts  on  you,  and  you  overthrow 
"  yourself  and  all  your  fortunes  by  haunting  the 
"  company  of  that  woman  ;'  and,  therefore,  seeing  he 
"  would  take  such  courses  as  to  ruin  himself  and 
a  fortunes,  desired  he  might  next  morning  have  that 
"  which  was  due  to  him  :  l  and  you  shall  stand  as 
"  you  can,  and  I  will  shift  for  myself.'  To  which 
"  Rochester  answered,  c  And  my  legs  are  straight 


CHAP.  IX.          ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  261 

"  enough  to  stand  on  mine  own/  and  so  departed  in 
"  displeasure ;  and,  as  far  as  this  deponent  knoweth, 
"  who  daily  attended  his  master,  they  were  never 
"  perfectly  reconciled."1 

Kochester  acquainted  Lady  Essex  with  all  that 
Overbury  had  said,  which  so  inflamed  the  evil 
passions  of  that  lady,  that  she  immediately  resolved 
— and  it  cannot  be  doubted  with  the  connivance,  if 
not  the  aid,  of  Rochester  —  to  remove  Overbury. 
Accordingly,  on  the  day  that  the  King  and  Queen 
accompanied  their  daughter,  the  bride  of  the  Elector 
Palatine,  to  Rochester,  Lady  Essex  sent  for  one  Sir 
David  Wood,  to  Greenwich.  Sir  David  had  quarrelled 
with  Overbury,  and  the  latter  refusing  to  meet  him 
in  the  field,  Sir  David  meant  to  "  give  him  the 
"  bastinado;"  which  Lady  Essex  hearing,  thought  he 
would  be  a  man  fit  for  her  purpose.  She  offered  him 
WOOL  to  kill  Overbury,  to  which  he  said,  that  for  all 
the  gold  in  the  world  he  would  not  be  a  hangman, 
nor  take  a  Christian's  blood ;  but  if  she  would  get 
Rochester's  promise,  under  his  hand,  or  given  before 
a  witness,  that  he  would,  after  it  was  done,  set  him 
at  liberty,  he  would  "  give  him  the  sooner  knocks  for 
"  her  sake."  She  required  time,  and  soon  after 
sent  to  him  to  say  that  could  not  be  ;  but  that  she 
would,  on  her  life,  warrant  that  he  should  be  conveyed 
away  in  safety.  To  which  he  replied,  "  that  he  might 
"  be  accounted  a  great  fool,  if,  upon  a  woman's  word, 
"  he  went  to  Tyburn."2 

This  plan  failing,  an  attempt  was  made  to  remove 

1  S.  P.  O.  2  Deposition  of  Sir  D.  W.  in  S.  P.  O. 

s  3 


262  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  IX. 

him  from  the  country,  by  offering  him  an  embassy 
to  Russia.  This  he  declined,  nothing  doubting  that 
the  friendship  of  Rochester  would  bear  him  harmless. 
So  far  from  that,  the  opportunity  was  instantly 
seized  to  commit  him  to  the  Tower  for  contempt,  on 
the  22nd  April,  1613.  Mr.  Chamberlain  says,  that 
the  King  desired  to  send  him  abroad,  "  to  remove 
"  him  from  my  L.  of  Rochester,  as  thinking  it 
"  dishonor  to  him  that  the  world  should  have  an 
"  opinion  that  Rochester  ruled  him,  and  Overbury 
"  ruled  Rochester."  l  Whatever  may  have  been  the 
motives  of  the  King,  there  is  no  doubt  that  they 
were  instilled  into  him  by  the  contrivance  of 
Northampton  and  Rochester.  Sir  Thomas  was  no 
sooner  safely  enclosed  within  the  walls  of  the  Tower, 
than  the  Lieutenant,  Sir  W.  Waad,  was  replaced  by 
Sir  Jervas  Elwes  ;  and  one  Weston,  servant  to  the  in- 
famous Mrs.  Turner,  was  appointed  to  be  keeper  of 
the  prisoner.  Weston  was  then  sent  for  by  Mrs. 
Turner,  when  Lady  Essex  asked  him  if  he  would  give 
Sir  Thomas  a  glass  of  water  which  should  be  sent 
him,  and  he  should  be  well  rewarded.  Shortly  after, 
his  son,  who  was  apprentice  to  a  haberdasher  that 
served  the  Countess  with  fans  of  feathers  and  other 
wares,  brought  him  a  glass  of  water  of  a  yellowish 
and  greenish  colour.  This  he  showed  to  the  Lieu- 
tenant, who  rebuked  him  Christianly,  and  he  cast  it 
into  a  gutter  and  brake  it.2  About  a  fortnight 

1  S.  P.  O.  29th  April,  1613. 

2  Western's  confession.    There  are  two  letters  in  the  S.  P.  O.  from  Lady 
Essex  to  the  Lieutenant  of  the  Tower,  which  she  sent  with  wine  and  jelly 
for  Overbury. 


CHAP.  IX.          EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  263 

after,  some  of  Rochester's  servants  came  to  inquire 
how  Overbury  did,  and  whether  he  would  like  tarts 
or  jelly,  which  were  sent  him  as  coming  from 
Rochester,  and  which  Weston  received  orders  from 
the  Countess  not  to  allow  any  person  but  Overbury 
to  eat. 

In  June,  Rochester  wrote  to  Overbury,  enclosing 
a  white  powder,  which  he  desired  him  to  take  with- 
out fear :  "  It  will  make  you  sick,  but  fear  not ;  I  will 
"  make  this  a  means  for  your  delivery,  and  for  the 
"  recovery  of  your  health.  " 

During  his  imprisonment,  Overbury  was  never 
allowed  to  see  any  of  his  friends,  from  which  it  may 
be  inferred  that  he  possessed  some  secret  which  it  was 
dreaded  that  he  might  divulge.  Every  article  of  his 
food  appears,  at  one  time  or  another,  to  have  been 
drugged ;  but  although  he  languished,  his  strength  of 
body  carried  him  on,  and  his  enemies  becoming  im- 
patient, a  dose  strong  enough  to  do  its  fatal  work 
was  administered  to  him  as  a  glyster  on  the  14th 
September.  He  was  buried  in  haste  and  secrecy, 
without  the  commonest  decency  being  observed.  It 
was  soon  suspected  that  Overbury  had  been  un- 
fairly dealt  with ;  but  it  was  not  until  Somerset's  in- 
fluence began  to  wane  before  the  rising  favour  of 
George  Yilliers,  that  any  body  ventured  to  attack  the 
criminals. 

Northampton  died  the  15th  June,  1614  ;  the  Earl  of 
Suffolk  became  Lord  Treasurer,  and  Somerset  suc- 
ceeded him  in  his  office  of  Lord  Chamberlain. 
George  Villiers,  a  younger  son  of  Sir  George  Villiers, 

s  4 


264  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CHAP.  IX. 

of  Brookesby,  Leicestershire,  obtained  the  office  of 
Cupbearer  to  the  King.  Tall,  well  favoured,  and 
polished  by  his  residence  at  the  French  Court,  this 
youth  immediately  attracted  the  notice  of  his  royal 
master.  In  April  of  the  following  year,  he  was 
knighted,  and  made  Gentleman  of  the  Bedchamber ; 
and  by  the  contrivance  of  the  Earls  of  Bedford, 
Pembroke,  Hertford,  and  with  the  consent  of  the 
Queen,  was  fairly  installed  as  rival  favourite. 

Then  did  Secretary  Win  wood  hint  to  James  the 
suspicions  that  existed  concerning  the  manner  of 
Overbury's  death.  Sir  E.  Coke  was  instructed  to 
investigate  the  matter,  and  the  result  was,  the  resolu- 
tion to  try  Somerset,  his  wife,  Sir  Jervas  Elwes,  Mrs. 
Turner,  Weston,  and  Franklin.  Sir  Thomas  Monson, 
who  had  recommended  "Weston  to  be  keeper  of 
Overbury,  was  arraigned,  but  his  trial  was  not 
concluded. 

Somerset  accompanied  the  King  to  Royston  one 
Friday,  and  then  taking  leave,  James  hung  about  his 
neck,  slabbering  his  cheeks,  saying,  u  For  God's  sake, 
"  when  shall  I  see  thee  again  ?  On  my  soul,  I  shall 
"  neither  eat  nor  sleep  until  you  come  again  !  "  The 
Earl  told  him,  on  Monday.  "  For  God's  sake,  let 
«  me!"  said  James;  "  Shall  I,  shall  I?"  and  lolled 
about  his  neck.  "  Then  for  God's  sake,  give  thy  Lady 
"  this  kiss  for  me," — doing  the  same  at  the  stairs'  head, 
the  middle,  and  the  foot  of  the  stairs.  Somerset  was 
not  in  his  coach  when  the  King  used  these  very  words, 
which  were  repeated  to  Sir  A.  Weldon, —  "  I  shall 
"  never  see  his  face  more."  On  the  arrival  of 


CHAP.  IX.          EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX.  265 

Somerset  in  London,  he  was  arrested,  his  wife  having 
been  so  previously  to  his  arrival.1 

At  an  inquiry  before  Lord  Zouch,  Secretary 
Winwood,  Sir  Fulke  Greville,  Chancellor  of  the  Ex- 
chequer, and  Sir  Thomas  Parry,  Chancellor  of  the 
Duchy,  Richard  Weston  had,  on  the  27th  September, 
made  a  full  confession.  Somerset  was  committed  on 
the  18th  October,  1615;  but  Lady  Somerset  being 
pregnant,  was  for  the  time  placed  under  surveillance. 
Sir  Jervas  Elwes,  Turner,  Franklin,  and  Weston, 
were  convicted  and  hanged  during  the  month  of 
November. 

On  the  6th  April,  1616,  we  learn  from  Mr.  Cham- 
berlain that  — 

The  Lady  of  Somerset  was  committed  to  the  Tower  on  so 
short  warning,  that  she  had  scant  leisure  to  shed  a  few  tears 
over  her  little  daughter  at  the  parting ;  otherwise  she  carried 
herself  every  way  constantly  enough,  saving  that  she  did 
passionately  deprecate  and  entreat  the  Lieutenant,  that  she 
might  not  be  lodged  in  Sir  Thomas  Overbury's  lodging. 

20th  May.  —  I  come  tired  from  hearing  a  piece  of  the  Earl 
of  Somerset's  arraignment,  who  is  but  now  in  the  midst  of 
his  answer,  the  proceedings  against  him  having  continued 
ever  since  ten  o'clock  in  the  morning  till  five,  that  he  began 
to  answer  for  himself.  He  denies  all,  even  his  own  letters, 
saying  they  be  counterfeited.  I  was  there  by  six  o'clock  in 
the  morning,  and  for  10s.  had  a  reasonable  place ;  but  the 
weather  is  so  hot,  and  I  grew  so  faint  with  fasting,  that  I 
could  hold  out  no  longer,  especially  when  I  heard  they  had 
sent  to  provide  torches.  More  ladies  and  great  personages 
there,  than  ever  were  seen,  I  think,  at  any  trial. 

1  Sec.  Hist,  of  the  Court  of  James  I.,  p.  411. 


266  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP. IX. 

His  lady  was  arraigned  yesterday,  and  made  shorter  work 
by  confessing  the  indictment,  so  that  all  was  over  and  we 
home  before  noon.  She  was  pity  by  her  sober  demeanor, 
which  yet,  in  my  opinion,  was  more  curious  and  confident 
than  was  fit  for  a  lady  in  such  distresses ;  and  yet  she  shed 
or  made  show  of  some  few  tears  divers  times. 

The  Earl  of  Essex  was  at  her  arraignment,  but  somewhat 
more  privately  than  this  day,  when  he  stood  full  in  his  face.1 

Lady  Somerset  wore  at  her  trial  a  dress  of  black 
tammel,  a  cypress  chaperon,  a  ruff,  and  cuffs  of  cob- 
web lawn.  While  the  indictment  was  being  read, 
she  trembled  and  shed  tears ;  at  the  name  of  Weston, 
she  concealed  her  face  with  her  fan;  and  on  being 
called  to  plead,  answered,  with  an  obeisance,  Guilty, 
"  with  a  low  voice,  but  wonderful  fearful.  "  When 
she  was  asked  whether  she  had  anything  to  say  why 
sentence  should  not  be  passed,  she  only  begged  the 
Lords  to  intercede  for  her,  but  in  so  low  a  tone,  that 
the  Lord  High  Steward  could  not  hear  her. 

The  love  of  personal  decoration,  for  which  Somerset 
was  remarkable,  displayed  itself  in  his  dress.  He 
wore,  at  his  trial,  "  a  plain  black  satin  suit,  laid  with 
"  two  satin  laces  in  a  seam ;  a  gown  of  uncut  velvet, 
"  lined  with  unshorn,  all  the  sleeves  laid  with  satin 
"  lace ;  a  pair  of  gloves  with  satin  tops  ;  his  George 
"  about  his  neck,  his  hair  curled,  his  visage  pale,  his 
"  beard  long,  his  eyes  sunk  in  his  head." 

He  pleaded  "  Not  Guilty ; "  but  on  being  asked 
whether  he  had  anything  to  say  why  judgment  of 
death  should  not  be  given  against  him,  acknow- 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  IX.          EGBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  267 

ledged  that  the  sentence  of  their  Lordships  must 
be  just. 

The  uneasiness  shown  by  James  during  Somerset's 
trial,  the  menaces  of  the  latter  while  in  the  Tower, 
and  the  efforts  of  Bacon  to  soothe  him,  have  given  rise 
to  many  comments,  and  appear  to  have  arisen  from  a 
dread  on  the  part  of  the  King,  that  some  secret, 
disgraceful  to  him,  might  be  revealed,  which  pos- 
sibly was  his  connivance  at  the  removal  of  Sir 
Thomas  Overbury. 

"  I  will  not  omit,"  writes  Mr.  Sherborne  *,  "  to 
"  acquaint  you  that  the  day  of  the  late  Earl  of 
"  Somerset's  arraignment,  His  Majesty  was  so  ex- 
"  treme  sad  and  discontented,  as  he  did  retire 
"  himself  from  kll  company,  and  did  forbear  both 
"  dinner  and  supper,  nothing  giving  him  content- 
"  ment,  until  he  had  heard  what  answer  the  said 
"  Earl  had  made.  It  shewed  something  was  feared 
"  would  in  passion  have  broken  from  him ;  but 
"  when  His  Majesty  had  notice  that  nothing  had 
"  escaped  him  more  than  what  he  was  forced  to 
u  answer  to  the  business  then  in  hand,  His  Majesty's 
"  countenance  was  soon  changed,  and  he  hath  ever 
"  sithence  continued  in  a  good  opinion." 2 

On  the  13th  July,  Lady  Somerset's  pardon  was 
signed ;  Somerset  declared  he  was  an  innocent  man, 
and  would  accept  nothing  less  than  a  reversal  of  the 
judgment.  This  could  not  be  granted,  and  although 

1  To  Sir  D.  Carleton,  May  31.,  in  S.  P.  O. 

2  See  Hallam's  Const.  Hist.  i.  347.  note,  for  other  evidences  of  the 
King's  alarm. 


268  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  IX. 

he  might  have  had  his  pardon,  with  all  his  jewels 
restored  to  him,  and  an  allowance  of  4000£.  a  year, 
Lord  and  Lady  Somerset  continued  to  live  together 
prisoners  in  the  Tower  until  18th  January,  1622, 
when  the  King,  by  order  in  Council,  set  them  at 
liberty,  confining  them,  however,  to  either  Grayes  or 
Cowsham,  two  houses  of  Lord  Wallingford's l  in 
Oxfordshire,  and  a  distance  of  three  miles  from 
either  of  them. 

James  also  promised  to  restore  Somerset's  pro- 
perty 2,  but  died  before  he  did  so ;  and  Somerset, 
vainly  petitioning  Charles  to  fulfil  his  father's  pro- 
mise, was  reduced  to  great  poverty  and  obscurity. 
The  love  which  had  caused  him  and  his  wife  "  to 
"  break  through  all  restraints  of  decency  or  shame, 
"  declined  in  the  private  life  to  which  they  were 
"  condemned,  until  they  loathed  the  sight  of  each 
"  other ;  and  for  long,  though  residing  in  the  same 
"  house,  they  lived  as  strangers  to  one  another."  8 
Lady  Somerset  was  afflicted  with  one  of  those  painful 
and  lingering  diseases  incident  to  women ;  and  on 
her  death-bed,  is  said,  in  the  trouble  of  her  mind,  to 
have  cried  out  much  upon  the  Earl  of  Essex,  whom 
she  had  so  greatly  injured. 

She  died  in  1632,  leaving  a  daughter  Anne,  then 
sixteen  years  of  age.  William  Lord  Kussell,  after- 

1  Sir  William  Knollys,  afterwards  Earl  of  Banbury,  ob.  1632,  set.  88. 

2  It  appears  that  in  the  last  year  of  his  reign,  King  James,  dissatisfied 
with  Buckingham,  renewed  his  correspondence  with  Somerset,  and  gave 
him  hopes  of  a  complete  restoration  to  favour.  —  Hallam,  Const.  Hist.  i. 
347.  note. 

3  A.  Wilson,  Life  and  Reign  of  James  I.,  p.  699. 


CHAP.  IX.         ROBELiT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  269 

wards  Earl  and  Duke  of  Bedford,  became  attached 
to  her ;  his  father,  naturally  averse  to  an  alliance 
with  the  Somersets,  desired  him  to  choose  a  wife  out 
of  any  family  but  that.  Opposition  only  strengthened 
their  attachment ;  the  King  sent  the  Duke  of  Lennox 
to  Bedford  to  intercede  for  the  young  couple,  who  at 
length  consented,  provided  Somerset  gave  a  fortune  of 
12,000£.  with  his  daughter.  To  do  this,  the  latter  was 
forced  to  sell  his  house  at  Chiswick,  his  plate,  jewels, 
and  furniture ;  but  by  reducing  himself  to  complete 
poverty,  he  secured  the  happiness  of  his  daughter, 
who  married  Lord  Eussell  in  1637,  and  became  the 
mother  of  William  Lord  Kussell,  who  died  on  the 
scaifold,  the  21st  July,  1683.  She  had  been  brought 
up  in  such  careful  ignorance  of  the  cause  of  her 
parents'  misfortunes,  that  some  time  after  her  mar- 
riage she  was  found  in  a  swoon  on  the  floor,  having 
read  in  a  pamphlet  an  account  of  the  frightful 
crimes  of  which  her  father  and  mother  had  been 
convicted.1 

The  Earl  of  Somerset  survived  his  wife  until  the 
year  1645;  he  was  buried  in  St.  Paul's,  Covent 
Garden. 

1  Pennant's  Journey >  p.  496, 


270  LIVES   OF   THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  X. 


CHAPTEE  X. 

LIFE   OF   EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX  —  continued. 

THE  ELECTOR  PALATINE  MARRIES  THE  PRINCESS  ELIZABETH.— 

THEIR  FRIENDSHIP  FOR  ESSEX. ESSEX  RETIRES  TO  CHARTLEY. 

ARTHUR  WILSON  IS  TAKEN  INTO  HIS  SERVICE.  —  SIR  WILLIAM 

SEYMOUR  MARRIES  LADY  FRANCES  DEVEREUX. ORIGIN  OF  THE 

THIRTY  YEARS'  WAR.  —  THE  ELECTOR  PALATINE  CHOSEN  KING 
OF  BOHEMIA. — -ESSEX  SERVES  IN  THE  PALATINATE. 

I  TRUST  my  readers  will  pardon  the  episode  contained 
in  the  last  chapter,  for  the  sake  of  the  moral  it  bears. 
Apparently  successful  as  were  the  Earl  and  Countess 
of  Somerset  in  their  guilty  projects,  we  are  struck 
with  the  rapidity  and  weight  with  which  retribution 
fell  on  them ;  their  passionate  and  irresistible  love 
turned  to  hatred,  each  accusing  the  other  of  being  the 
author  of  their  misfortunes,  they  ceased  to  be  even 
friends  at  the  moment  when,  shunned  by  all  the 
world  beside,  it  was  most  necessary  they  should  be 
all  in  all  to  each  other ;  and  in  this  condition,  having 
lost  all  those  worldly  advantages  for  which  they  had 
sacrificed  their  souls'  welfare,  dragged  on  for  years  a 
miserable  and  remorseful  existence. 

In  October,  1612,  Frederick,  Elector  Palatine  of  the 
Rhine,  came  over  to  England  to  espouse  the  Princess 
Elizabeth,  daughter  of  King  James,  then  in  her 
sixteenth  year.  The  Elector  was  lodged  in  Essex 


CHAP.  X.  EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  271 

House.  Great  preparations  had  been  made  to  cele- 
brate the  auspicious  event  by  a  long  series  of  festi- 
vities, when,  on  the  6th  November,  rejoicing  gave 
way  to  deep  and  universal  mourning,  occasioned  by 
the  death  of  Henry,  Prince  of  Wales,  who,  after  an 
illness  of  ten  days,  was  carried  off  by  a  low  malignant 
fever.  It  was  speedily  rumoured  that  the  Prince 
had  been  poisoned,  and  a  very  minute  account  exists 
of  a  post  mortem  examination  taken  in  consequence. 
There  does  not  appear  to  have  been  any  ground  for 
these  reports  ;  indeed,  the  practice  of  physicians  was 
so  fantastic  and  absurd,  that  one  can  hardly  believe 
that  any  patient  could  be  recovered  by  them  from 
dangerous  illness.  There  can  be  no  doubt  that  the 
heir  to  the  throne  was  attended  by  the  ablest  of  the 
faculty;  yet  we  find  that  the  remedies  considered 
most  effective,  and  the  failure  of  which  caused  the 
Prince  to  be  given  over,  were  pigeons  applied  to  the 
head,  and  a  split  cock  to  the  soles  of  the  feet. 

The  regrets  of  the  nation  for  his  loss  were  more 
lasting  and  profound  than  those  of  his  father,  who 
shortened  the  mourning  as  much  as  possible.  On 
Christmas  Day,  the  Court  was  ordered  to  mourn  in 
satin :  two  days  after  the  royal  pair  were  affianced, 
and  the  marriage  was  celebrated  on  St.  Valentine's 
Day,  1613.  From  this  time  may  be  dated  the  inti- 
macy, and  even  friendship,  which  existed  between  the 
Elector  and  his  consort,  and  Lord  Essex,  during  their 
lives. 

After  the  dissolution  of  his  marriage  in  the  autumn 
following,  Lord  Essex,  disgusted  with  the  treatment 


272  LIVES    OF   THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  X. 

he  had  experienced,  retired  to  his  house  at  Chartley. 
The  disgrace  and  ridicule  attending  the  whole  of  the 
proceedings,  must  have  been  galling  indeed  to  a  proud 
and  sensitive  spirit. 

To  repay  the  marriage  portion  of  Lady  Essex,  he 
was  forced  to  sell  the  Manor  of  Bennington,  in  Hert- 
fordshire ;  and  it  is  likely  that  he  strove  to  drown  the 
recollection  of  his  domestic  misfortunes  by  plunging 
into  dissipation,  as  Arthur  Wilson  informs  us  that  he 
cut  down  his  fine  woods  at  Adderston,  and  also 
received  pecuniary  assistance  from  his  grandmother  ; 
while  a  letter1  exists,  written  by  his  father's  old 
secretary,  Edward  Reynolds,  who  had  heard  some 
"  private  whisperings  "  that  his  Lordship  "  hath  of 
"  late  somewhat  declined  from  that  path,  wherein 
"  heretofore  he  had,  without  straying,  directed  his 
"  steps ;  and  a  little  blemished  his  honor  by  the 
"  company  of  some  persons  that  have  abused  the 
"  goodness  of  his  noble  nature."  Mr.  Reynolds, 
urged  by  the  "  true  and  everlasting  love  "  he  bore  to 
the  memory  of  Essex's  "  late  thrice  worthy  father, 
"  the  perfect  pattern  of  all  true  bounty,  honor,  and 
"  nobility,"  and  the  love  and  respect  he  had  for  the 
son,  earnestly  entreated  him,  if  there  were  "  any 
"  profane  spirits  "  that  sought  to  draw  him  to  disho- 
nourable courses,  that  he  would  have  before  his  eyes 
the  lively  image  of  his  father,  and  remember  that  he 
was  the  son  of  that  "  great  and  renowned  Earl  of 
"  Essex,  whom  all  the  world  admired,  and  whose 

1  in  s.  P.  o. 


CiiAP.X.  ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  273 

u  memory  all  England  doth,  and  ever  will,  honor  and 


reverence/'' 


From  this  period,  1614,  we  are  indebted  to  Arthur 
Wilson1  for  a  very  amusing  account  of  his  life,  in  the 
service  of  Lord  Essex  for  a  great  many  years.  The 
accident  which  introduced  him  to  that  nobleman 
deserves  a  short  notice.  Having  spent  nearly  two 
years  abroad,  instead  of  at  the  University,  Wilson,  on 
his  return,  became  a  clerk  in  the  Exchequer  Office, 
which  place  he  shortly  afterwards  lost,  and  with  a 
few  crowns  in  his  pocket,  took  a  chamber  in  Holborn, 
and  living  thriftily,  addicted  himself  to  reading  and 
poetry.  When  his  crowns  were  finished,  he  went 
home  to  his  father,  "  and  got  small  comfort  there." 
"  Yet,"  says  he,  "  something  I  got  of  him,  and  some- 
"  thing  from  him.  That  which  I  got  of  him,  he  gave 
"  me ;  that  which  I  got  from  him,  I  took.  For  once, 
"  finding  his  closet  open,  I  very  ungraciously  took 
"  from  him  ten  Barbary  ducats,  out  of  a  little  box, 
"  which  cost  me  many  a  tear  since,  when  I  seriously 
"  called  to  mind  the  injustice  and  wickedness  of  the 
"  fact."  Just  at  this  time,  when  the  chances  were 
even,  whether  Master  Wilson  would  go  to  the  gallows 
or  no,  a  relative  of  his  induced  Mr.  Wingfield,  "  a 
"  grave  gentleman,"  steward  to  the  Earl  of  Essex,  to 
take  him  down  to  Chartley. 

While  he  was  there,  the  following  event  occurred, 
which  he  relates  as  follows :  "  Toward  Michaelmas 
"(1614)  a  great  alarm  and  outcry  arose  in  the 
"  house  after  dinner ;  some  thought  it  was  fire,  some 

1  Account  of  his  own  life,  printed  in  Peck's  Desid.  Curiosa,  p.  460. 
VOL.  IT.  T 


274  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  X. 

"  thieves,  and  all  ran  hither  and  thither.  My  Lord 
"  of  Essex,  and  some  Lords  and  Gentlemen  with 
"  him,  ran  out  on  the  drawbridge,  for  the  house 
"  had  a  very  deep  moat  around  it.  I  ran  where 
"  I  saw  others  run,  into  the  laundry.  When  I  came 
"  there  I  found  the  cause.  One  of  the  laundry 
"  maids  rinsing  clothes  in  the  rnoat  upon  a  little 
"  gallery  for  that  purpose,  she  fell  into  the  water ; 
"  another  coming  to  help  her,  was  pulled  in  by 
"  her;  the  third  to  help  both,  was  pulled  in  by 
"  both,  which  caused  the  shrieks  and  noise  which 
"  begot  this  disturbance.  The  two  last  got  out  by 
"  help  of  poles  the  first  comers  reached  unto  them ; 
"  but  she  who  fell  in  first,  with  the  plunging  of  the 
"  water,  was  driven  without  reach,  or  sense  of  taking 
"  hold.  So  that  my  Lord  of  Essex,  and  all  who 
"  stood  on  the  bridge,  cried  out,  '  Now  she  sinks ! 
"  now  she's  gone!'  I  came,  as  God  would  have 
"  it,  just  as  she  was  so,  and  had  only  a  glimpse 
"  of  where  she  sunk ;  and  being  no  time  to  study 
"  what  to  do,  I  instantly,  with  a  running  lep, 
"  bounced  into  the  water.  My  plunging  then 
"  brought  her  up  again,  and  holding  her  up  with 
"  one  arm,  I  swam  with  the  other ;  the  people  drew 
"  her  out,  and  with  much  ado  recovered  her.  For 
"  this  my  Lord  of  Essex  took  me  into  liking,  and 
"  would  have  me  wait  on  him  in  his  chamber ;  and 
"  he  presently  furnished  me  with  clothes,  which 
"  begot  envy ;  and  entrusted  me  with  the  keeping 
"  of  his  private  purse." 

Had  Essex  known  the  antecedents  of  Arthur  Wil- 
son's life,  which  he  has  so  freely  confessed  to  us,  he 


CHAP.  X.          ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  275 

might  have  deferred  for  a  time  this  last  mark  of 
confidence ;  yet,  in  justice  to  him,  it  must  be  added, 
that  for  many  years  he  was  the  faithful  and  constant 
companion  of  his  master's  fortunes. 

Every  body  is  familiar  with  the  romantic  history 
of  the  attachment  and  marriage  of  William  Sey- 
mour1 and  Lady  Arabella  Stewart,  their  escape  from 
the  jealous  vigilance  of  King  James,  her  recap- 
ture, rigorous  confinement,  and  consequent  derange- 
ment. This  unhappy  victim  to  the  royal  dread 
of  an  imaginary  danger,  was  released  from  her  suf- 
ferings on  the  25th  September,  1615,  when  Seymour, 
who,  to  avoid  imprisonment,  had  remained  on  the  Con- 
tinent, was  pardoned,  and  suffered  to  return  home. 

On  the  22nd  February,  in  the  ensuing  year,  Mr. 
Chamberlain  informs  Sir  Dudley  Carleton  that  "  Sir 
"  W.  Seymour,  that  married  the  Lady  Arabella,  is  in 
"  some  forwardness  to  marry  the  Earl  of  Essex's 
"  sister."  This  was  the  Lady  Frances  Devereux, 
whose  marriage  took  place  the  3rd  March,  1617,  at 
Drayton  Basset.  Although  this  event  in  the  life  of 
his  favourite  sister  must  have  drawn  Essex  for  a 
time  from  his  retirement,  Chartley  continued  to  be 
his  permanent  abode,  where  he  occupied  himself  with 
the  affairs  of  his  county  and  the  pastimes  of  the 
chase,  to  which  he  was  devoted.  There  is  a  horse 
bridge  over  the  Trent,  at  Shugborough,  which,  accord- 
ing to  existing  tradition,  was  built  by  the  county  of 

1  Succeeded  his  grandfather  as  Earl  of  Hertford  in  1621  ;  was  created 
Marquis  of  Hertford  1642  ;  restored  to  the  dukedom  of  Somerset,  1660, 
and  died  the  same  year. 

T  2 


276  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  X. 

Stafford  to  enable  the  Earl  more  conveniently  to 
reach  his  hunting  ground  in  Cannock  Chase. 

In  1617,  the  King  made  a  progress  to  Stafford, 
where  he  was  received  at  the  gate  by  the  Earl  of 
Essex,  High  Steward  of  the  town  ;  the  King  got  out 
of  his  coach  and  mounted  a  horse  of  state,  making  the 
Earl  mount  another,  ride  before  him  "  with  his  plumes 
"  up,"  and  carry  the  sword.  At  Coventry  the  King 
knighted  Sir  Walter  Devereux,  base  brother  to  the 
Earl.1 

On  the  1st  May,  1619,  Essex  was  sent  to  meet  and 
welcome  the  Marquis  de  la  Tremouille,  Ambassador 
Extraordinary  from  the  King  of  France  ;  and  on  the 
19th  of  the  same  month,  walked  in  the  funeral  proces- 
sion of  the  Queen,  who  had  died  of  dropsy  on  the  2nd. 

An  event  was  now  at  hand  which  enabled  Essex 
to  prove  his  gratitude  to  the  Elector  Palatine  and  his 
consort  for  the  regard  which  they  evinced  towards 
him,  and  his  zeal  for  the  Protestant  religion ;  at  the 
same  time  drawing  him  from  his  life  of  seclusion  to 
indulge  his  desire  for  military  service.  This  event 
was  that  terrible  war  between  the  Protestants  and 
Roman  Catholics,  by  which  Germany  was  torn  and 
devastated  from  1618  to  1648;  in  which  all  Europe 
was  deeply  interested,  and  every  nation,  either  openly 
or  indirectly,  took  some  share. 

When  the  diet  of  1555,  called  the  "  Religious 
"  Pacification  of  Augsburg,"  confirmed  to  the  Pro- 
testants the  free  exercise  of  their  religion,  many 
points  of  dispute  between  the  parties  were  left  un- 

1  Nichol's  Prog.  James  I. 


CHAP.  X.          ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  277 

settled.  For  a  time  this  was  of  small  consequence. 
The  wise  and  mild  administration  of  Maximilian  II. 
tended  greatly  to  appease  the  enmity  of  both  sides  ; 
but,  unhappily,  that  Prince  did  not  live  long  enough 
to  cement  his  good  work,  and  dying  in  1575,  was 
succeeded  by  his  son  Rudolph,  a  weak  man,  whose 
favourite  pursuit  was  the  discovery  of  the  philoso- 
pher's stone.  When  his  brother  Mathias  rebelled, 
and  deprived  him  of  Hungary,  Austria,  and  Moravia, 
Rudolph,  to  preserve  the  loyalty  of  the  Bohemians, 
granted  to  them  a  Charter,  called  the  "  Letter  of 
"  Majesty,"  confirming  their  privileges,  and  granting 
entire  freedom  of  religion.  A  clause  of  this  Charter 
declared  that  "  the  Protestants  should  have  the  full 
"  right  to  build  new  schools  and  churches,  not  only 
"  in  the  towns,  but  in  the  country  also."  The  breach 
of  this  privilege,  backed  by  the  intolerance  of  Ferdi- 
nand of  Gratz,  gave  rise  to  the  Thirty  Years'  War. 

When  the  congregations  of  Brunau  and  Kloster- 
graben  were  about  to  consecrate  their  newly-built 
churches,  the  Roman  Catholic  clergy  seized  them, 
pulling  down  the  one  and  closing  the  other.  Re- 
monstrance was  made  to  the  Emperor,  by  whose 
order  this  violence  was  said  to  be  committed  ;  the 
imperial  answer  stated  that  His  Majesty  was  of 
opinion  the  States  had  abused  the  Charter,  and  the 
deputies  had  rendered  themselves  liable  to  be  punished 
as  rebels.  A  meeting  of  the  Protestant  nobles  in 
Prague  was  held  at  the  house  of  Count  Thurn.  It 
was  resolved,  and  a  deputation  sent  to  inform  the 
Imperial  Commissioners,  that  no  order  or  decree 

T  3 


278  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAI-.  X. 

tending  to  endanger  the  liberty  of  the  Protestant 
religion  would  be  received  or  obeyed. 

On  the  23rd  May,  1618,    the  Protestant  deputa- 
tion, attended  by  a  great  multitude  crying  out  for 
vengeance,  proceeded   to   the  Hradschin,  where  the 
Council  of  State  was  assembled  to  receive  them.    The 
determination  of  the  Protestants  was  received  with 
great  uproar;  taunts  and  recriminations  passed  be- 
tween them  and  Slawata  and  Martinitz,  the  two  most 
unpopular   of  the  Imperial  Ministers,    which   were 
abruptly  ended  by  some  one  crying  out,  "  Wherefore 
"  all  this  delay  ?     Throw  them  from  the  window  in 
"  good  old  Bohemian  fashion  ! "     By  the  excited  and 
angry   spectators   these    words   were   received   with 
loud  cheers,  and  instantly  put  in  practice  ;  the  two 
obnoxious    Commissioners,   with   the    Secretary   Fa- 
bricius,  were  hurled  from  the  window.     Happily  for 
them,  a  dunghill  lay  beneath,  at  a  depth  of  nearly 
eighty   feet,   on  which  they  fell  with  slight  injury. 
Fabricius  is  said,  indeed,  to  have  apologised  imme- 
diately to  Martinitz  for  having  taken  the  liberty  of 
falling  above  his  Excellency. 

The  Protestants  immediately  elected  a  Council  of 
Government,  expelled  the  Jesuits,  and  banished  the 
Koman  Catholic  Archbishop  of  Prague,  with  many 
of  the  clergy ;  at  the  same  time  that  they  sent 
humble  apologies  to  Vienna  for  the  violence  used, 
with  protestations  of  their  loyalty. 

In  August,  1619,  Ferdinand  of  Gratz  was  elected 
Emperor,  in  succession  to  Mathias,  who  had  died  in 
March.  At  the  same  time  that  he  received  the 


CiiAr.X.          ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  279 

Imperial  crown  at  Frankfort,  the  news  arrived  that 
he  had  lost  another  at  Prague.  The  Bohemians 
had  formally  renounced  their  allegiance,  and  pro- 
ceeded to  the  election  of  a  new  king. 

Their  choice  fell  upon  Frederick  V.,  Elector  Pala- 
tine, who,  after  some  hesitation,  accepted  the  offered 
crown.  Of  pleasing  address,  and  amiable  disposition, 
this  prince  was  quite  unequal  to  the  duty  of  a  leader 
in  the  arduous  struggle  about  to  commence.  It  is 
probable  that  a  consciousness  of  his  deficiency  made 
him  waver,  and  it  is  said  that  his  choice  was  de- 
termined by  his  high-spirited  wife,  who  declared  she 
would  "  rather  eat  black  bread  at  his  royal  board, 
"  than  feast  at  his  electoral  table."  On  the  31st  Oc- 
tober he  made  his  solemn  entry  into  Prague,  and 
was  crowned  King  of  Bohemia  on  the  4th  November. 

This  intelligence  excited  in  England  the  most  ex- 
travagant joy.  The  preachers,  with  Archbishop 
Abbot  at  their  head,  inflamed  from  the  pulpit  the 
passions  of  their  congregations,  until  all  England, 
with  one  voice,  called  upon  the  King  to  support  the 
cause  of  God  in  that  of  the  Elector.  James  was 
involved  in  a  dilemma.  On  the  one  hand,  it  was  im- 
possible for  him  to  sanction  the  doctrine  that  subjects 
might  depose  their  sovereign,  and,  therefore,  he  could 
not  support  his  son-in-law  as  King  of  Bohemia.  On 
the  other  hand,  had  he  been  so  inclined,  it  would  not 
have  been  safe,  in  the  temper  of  the  people  of  England, 
to  stand  by  and  see  the  Elector,  who  was  looked 
upon  as  the  champion  of  Protestantism,  stripped  of 
his  hereditary  dominions.  While  Spinola  was  pre- 


T    4 


280  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  X. 

paring  an  army  of  30,000  men  in  Flanders,  the  King 
continued  undecided,  and  made  no  preparations; 
contenting  himself  with  demanding,  through  his  am- 
bassador, the  object  of  the  armament,  to  which  he 
received  no  satisfactory  answer :  but  it  was  not  until 
Spinola  was  about  to  march  for  the  Palatinate,  that 
he  resolved  on  acting. 

King  James  then  adopted  a  middle  course ;  he 
granted  a  supply  of  money,  and  an  army  of  volun- 
teers, for  the  defence  of  the  Palatinate.  On  the 
6th  June,  1620,  Sir  R.  Yonge  writes  to  Lord  Zouch, 
Warden  of  the  Cinque  Ports  :  —  "  The  King  has  re- 
"  solved  to  send  4000  men  to  assist  the  King  of 
"  Bohemia ;  not  to  go  into  Bohemia,  but  to  the 
"  King's  own  country.  Sir  Horace  Yere  *,  General, 
"  Sir  John  Barclay,  his  lieutenant,  of  them  which  are 
"  presently  sent  over,  being  2000.  Of  these  2000, 
"  my  Lords  of  Oxford  2,  Essex,  Gerard  3,  Grey  4,  and 
"  Sir  Edward  Sackville  to  be  captains."  5 

1  Youngest  son  of  Geoffrey  Vere,  of  Kirby,  Essex,  who  was  third  son  of 
John,  Earl  of  Oxford.  He  was  knighted  at  Cadiz,  1596,  and  subsequently 
created  Baron  of  Tilbury. 

2  Henry  de  Vere,  tenth  Earl  of  Oxford,  who  in  his  youth  lived  a  riotous 
and  debauched  life,  though  he  afterwards  became  highly  esteemed  as  one 
of  the  leaders  of  the  Country  party.     His  early  reputation  caused  the  fol- 
lowing squib  to  be  put  forth  at  this  time  :  — 

Some  say  Sir  Edward  Cecil  can 

Do  as  much  as  any  man  ; 

But  I  say  no,  for  Sir  Horace  Vere 

Hath  carried  the  Earl  of  Oxford  where 

He  neither  shall  have  wine  nor  w — e  ; 

Now  Hercules  himself  could  do  no  more. 

3  Lord  Gerard,  of  Gerard's  Bromley,  in  Staffordshire,  extinct  1711. 

*  Henry,  second  Lord  Grey  of  Groby,  created  Earl  of  Stamford, -1628. 
5  S.  P.  O. 


CiiAi-.X.  ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  281 

The  force  that  went  over  was  only  2200  men. 
Oxford  and  Essex  had  each  a  company  of  250  men 
in  this  regiment,  with  the  promise  of  two  more 
regiments  being  sent  over  as  speedily  as  possible,  the 
command  of  which  was  to  be  given  to  those  noble- 
men. So  many  volunteers  flocked  to  Essex  out  of 
love,  that  he,  unwilling  to  refuse  any,  paid  fifty  out 
of  his  own  pocket.  In  his  company  of  300,  there 
were  above  1 00  gentlemen  of  quality. 

On  the  last  day  of  August,  this  little  force  crossed 
the  Rhine  below  Wesel,  by  a  bridge  of  boats,  and 
joining  Prince  Henry  of  Nassau,  who  had  collected 
2000  horse  and  400  musqueteers  from  the  adjacent 
garrisons,  they  proceeded  on  their  march  to  join  the 
other  Princes  of  the  Union  in  the  Palatinate.  On 
arriving  before  Coblenz,  they  made  show  as  if  they 
would  pass  the  Mosel,  but  fell  back  at  night,  crossed 
the  Rhine,  and  made  for  Frankfort  by  forced  marches 
of  "twenty  miles  a  day  and  better,  and  all  my  Lord's 
"  servants,  and  he  himself  on  foot,  to  encourage 
"  others,  did  the  same."  This  feint  was  ably  con- 
ceived and  executed  by  Prince  Henry.  Spinola,  who 
had  captured  Oppenheim,  on  learning  the  approach 
of  this  force,  fell  back  towards  Bacharach  to  inter- 
cept it,  and  was  completely  overreached.  On  hearing 
how  they  had  escaped  him,  he  made  a  rapid  march  to 
the  Main  with  all  his  horse,  and  4000  foot ;  but  at- 
tempting a  passage  where  the  water  was  too  deep, 
all  his  ammunition  was  wetted,  and  some  men  lost. 
He  was  obliged  to  retire,  and  on  the  24th  September, 
the  Dutch  and  English  passed  the  Main  by  a  ford 


282  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  X. 

near  Frankfort,  and  the  following  day  arrived  at 
Darmstadt.  Here  Prince  Henry,  who  had  acted  as 
convoy,  left  the  English,  returning  with  his  Dutch- 
men to  their  garrisons.  From  Darmstadt,  marching 
by  Bensheim  and  Worms,  the  English  joined  the 
army  of  the  Union,  under  the  leading  of  the  Mar- 
grave of  Anspach,  on  the  1st  October. 

After  a  short  rest,  the  army  marched  to  surprise 
Alzey,  which  had  been  taken  by  the  Spaniards ;  on 
their  road  thither  they  fell  in  with  Spinola,  who  with 
6000  foot,  and  2000  horse,  had  hoped  to  effect  some- 
thing by  surprise.  The  Protestant  forces  amounted 
to  6000  foot,  and  4000  horse.  The  two  armies 
drew  up  on  opposite  hills.  It  was  resolved  to  attack 
the  Spaniards.  "  The  Dutch,  in  courtesy,  yielded 
"  the  vanguard  to  the  English,  which  before  they 
"  stood  upon,  as  a  punctilio  of  honor."  The  ad- 
vanced corps  of  English  was  accordingly  drawn  out, 
and  awaited  the  order  to  attack,  which  never  arrived. 
The  slow  and  heavy  Anspach,  with  his  dull  col- 
leagues in  command,  suffered  the  Spaniards  to 
retreat  under  their  very  eyes,  without  making  the 
smallest  effort  either  to  check  them,  or  to  prevent  their 
junction  with  their  main  body  at  Oppenheim,  which 
he  might  have  done  with  ease,  being  nearer  to  that 
town  than  they  were.  "  The  Earl  of  Essex  being 
"  informed  of  this  by  some  who  knew  the  country, 
"  pressed  the  Margrave  of  Anspach  to  it,  desiring 
"  him  not  to  let  slip  an  opportunity  so  happily  put 
"  into  his  hand.  He,  not  well  pleased  at  being  urged 
"  a  thing  so  contrary  to  his  humour,  replied  angrily, 


CHAP.X.  EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF    ESSEX.  283 

"  '  There  is  a  fort  betwixt  us  and  the  town,  and 
"  we  must  pass  thither  at  the  mercy  of  their  cannon.7 
"  Sir  Horace  Vere,  hearing  this  answer,  said,  '  When 
"  shall  we  then  fight,  if  we  shun  the  cannon  ? '  But 
"  no  persuasion  can  be  prevalent,  where  power  and 
"  disaffection  join  their  force."  l 

After  this  specimen,  it  is  unnecessary  to  give  more 
particulars  of  the  conduct  of  an  army,  in  which  the 
English  force  was  but  subordinate  ;  it  may  easily  be 
believed  the  campaign  was  inglorious. 

After  harassing  their  men  with  useless  marches  and 
countermarches,  with  bivouacs  in  snow  and  frost,  the 
troops  were  put  into  winter  quarters  in  December, 
the  English  being  disposed  in  Manheim,  Heidelberg, 
and  Frankendal.  Essex,  who  had  shared  in  every 
service  in  the  field,  even  to  the  trailing  of  a  pike,  set 
off  for  England  about  Christmas,  to  press  for  the 
promised  regiments,  which,  by  the  intrigues  of  Gon- 
domar,  the  Spanish  ambassador,  had  been  retarded. 

He  took  his  way  through  France,  having  a  convoy  of 
100  horse  to  Metz ;  from  thence  his  own  train,  about 
twenty  in  number,  was  sufficiently  strong.  At  Gour* 
nay  sur  Aronde,  he  had  an  adventure,  which  we  give 
in  Arthur  Wilson's  words.  Having  arrived  at  Com- 
piegne,  he  sent  his  horses  and  most  of  his  train  on  to 
Boulogne,  riding  post  himself.  "  The  next  stage  was 
"  Gournay.  When  the  knavish  postmaster,  seeing  us 
"  likely  to  be  good  guests,  to  keep  us  there  all  night, 
"  delayed,  or  rather  refused,  us  horses,  pretending  he 

1  A.  Wilson. 


284  LIVES   OF    THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.  X. 

"  could  not  furnish  us  till  morning ;  which,  being 
"  contrary  to  my  Lord's  intention,  for  he  took  the 
"  post  road  to  make  more  haste,  not  to  hinder  him, 
"  he  was  much  troubled.  And,  as  we  were  wrangling 
"  for  this  coarse  entertainment  with  our  host,  my 
"  Lord's  horses,  the  gentlemen  with  them  having 
"  mistaken  their  way,  came  by." 

Essex  immediately  mounted  his  own  horses  to  go 
the  next  stage,  on  which,  "  the  innkeeper,  deceived  of 
"  his  prey,  fell  to  raging  and  railing ;  which  my  Lord 
"  not  brooking  (for  his  words  were  very  provoking), 
"  ran  after  him  with  a  cudgel  to  give  him  a  parting 
"  blow.  The  innkeeper's  activity  carried  him  to  a 
"  garret,  where,  thrusting  his  head  out  at  a  window, 
"  he  cried,  Murder!  Murder!  with  a  fury,  not  thinking 
"  there  were  three  stories  betwixt  him  and  his  danger. 
"  It  seems  it  was  enough  ;  for  before  we  were  got 
"  twelve  score  (paces  ?)  in  the  street,  we  found  our- 
"  selves  barricadoed  with  carts,  and  encircled  with 
"  500  people  ;  men,  women,  and  children,  with  pitch  - 
"  forks,  swords,  and  guns,  smiths  with  iron  bars,  and 
"  every  one  with  what  came  to  hand,  beset  us.  We 
"  had  each  a  case  of  pistols,  and  stood  closely  on  our 
"  guard." 

Great  noise  and  confusion  ensued,  nobody  knowing 
for  what.  No  injury  was  done  on  either  side  ;  u  but 
"  we  were  very  sensible  of  some  knocks  from  a  little 
"  hill  above  us,  by  friars,  who  filled  their  laps  with 
"  stones,  and  kindly  distributed  them  among  us." 

After  this  scene  had  continued  half  an  hour,  a 
French  Lieutenant  of  horse  came  up,  and  requested 


CHAP.X.  ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  285 

the  English  to  put  up  their  arms,  and  he  would  see 
right  done.  He  inquired  into  the  business,  and  in  a 
quarter  of  an  hour  dismissed  the  people,  and  opened 
the  road  for  Essex  and  his  party  to  proceed.  It 
should  be  added  that  the  Lieutenant  refused  to  accept 
the  reward  offered  him. 

On  his  arrival  in  England,  Essex  found  that 
Gondomar  had  so  improved  his  opportunities,  that 
the  King  was  favourably  disposed  towards  Spain.  The 
intelligence,  however,  of  the  complete  defeat  of  the 
Bohemian  army,  under  Prince  Christian  of  Anhalt, 
in  November,  the  capture  of  Prague  by  the  Imperial 
forces,  and  the  flight  of  Frederick  to  Holland,  forced 
James  to  take  steps  for  the  recovery  of  his  son-in- 
law's  hereditary  dominions. 

In  January,  1621,  an  order  in  Council  appointed  a 
committee  or  council  of  war,  "  to  consider  and  give 
"  their  advice,  how  the  service  for  the  recovery  and 
"  protection  of  the  Palatinate  may  best  be  carried 
"  on."1  The  Earls  of  Oxford,  Essex,  and  Leicester2, 
Viscount  Wilmot8,  Lords  Danvers  and  Caulfield4, 
Sir  Edward  Cecil5,  Sir  Richard  Moryson,  Captain 
John  Bingham,  with  Sir  Horace  Vere  and  Sir  Edward 

1  S.  P.  O. 

2  Robert,  younger  brother  of  Sir  Philip  Sidney,  was  created  Earl  of 
Leicester  1618,  and  died  1626. 

3  Henry,  Viscount  Wilmot,  of  Ireland,  was  created  Earl  of  Rochester 
1652.     He  was  father  of  the  celebrated  companion  of  Charles  II. 

4  Toby,  created,  in  1620,  Baron  Caulfield  of  Charlemount. 

5  Third  son  of  Thomas,  first  Earl  of  Exeter;  born  1571,  served  for 
many  years  in  the  Netherlands,  was  created  Viscount  Wimbledon  in 
1626,  and  died  1638. 


286  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.  CHAP.X. 

Conway1,    "if    they    return    into    England,"    were 
appointed  its  members. 

But  whatever  might  be  the  advice  of  the  Council, 
the  sinews  of  war  were  wanting.  By  a  voluntary 
subscription  and  a  loan,  James  had  been  enabled  to 
equip  the  small  force  sent  over  the  preceding  summer. 
There  were  no  means,  except  by  the  aid  of  Parlia- 
ment, of  raising  the  sum  necessary  to  make  British 
interposition  efficient,  either  for  action  or  negotiation. 
The  King  at  length  consented  to  call  a  Parliament. 
His  repugnance  to  this  step  arose,  not  from  any  fear 
that  supplies  would  be  refused  in  so  popular  a  cause, 
but  because  the  spirit  of  liberty  was  abroad  among 
the  people  of  England ;  and  James  dreaded  to  en- 
counter the  daring  leaders  of  the  Country  party, 
who,  unawed  by  the  threat  of  royal  displeasure,  would, 
he  was  aware,  call  loudly  for  the  reform  of  abuses. 
But  his  necessities  compelled  him  to  that  step,  and 
he  hoped,  by  concession,  to  soothe  the  refractory 
spirits  he  could  not  daunt. 

1  He  was  created,  in  1624,  Baron  Conway  of  Ragley;  his  grandson 
dying  s.  p.,  made  his  cousin  Popham  Seymour  his  heir. 


CHAP.  XI.         EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX.  287 


CHAPTER  XL 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX  —  Continued. 

PARLIAMENT   OF    1621. ESSEX    GOES    TO  HOLLAND. PARLIAMENT 

OF    1624    VOTES    SUPPLIES    FOR    THE    PALATINATE. ESSEX   COM- 
MANDS   A    REGIMENT. HE     IS     RECALLED    ON    THE    DEATH     OF 

KING   JAMES. ATTENDS    THE    PARLIAMENT   AT    OXFORD.  —  HE  IS 

APPOINTED     VICE-ADMIRAL      OF     THE     FLEET     UNDER     VISCOUNT 
WIMBLEDON. EXPEDITION    TO    CADIZ,    1625. 

THE  Parliament  met  on  the  30th  January,  1621,  and, 
for  a  time,  the  course  of  business  seemed  to  promise 
a  session  without  disagreement  between  the  King 
and  the  Houses.  The  holders  of  monopolies  by 
patent  were  punished,  Lord  Chancellor  Bacon  was 
impeached ;  but  the  debates  on  grievances,  on  privi- 
leges, and  on  supply,  occupied  so  much  time,  that 
the  patience  of  the  King  became  exhausted  towards 
the  end  of  May,  and  he  informed  the  Houses  that  he 
intended  to  adjourn  them.  Notwithstanding  so 
much  ardour  had  been  expressed  to  aid  their  fellow 
Protestants  in  the  Palatinate,  only  one  subsidy  l  had 
been  voted ;  and  foreign  affairs  had  been  almost 
forgotten,  in  matters  of  domestic  and  personal 
interest,  when,  on  the  4th  June,  previous  to  the 
adjournment,  the  Commons,  to  evince  their  zeal, 

i  A  subsidy  was  a  rate  of  four  shillings  in  the  pound  on  real  property, 
and  two  shillings  and  sixpence  on  personal  estates.  It  produced  about 
70.000/. 


288  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  XT. 

passed  a  declaration  of  their  "  general  resolution  to 
"  spend  their  lives  and  fortunes  in  the  defence  of 
"  those  of  their  religion,  and  of  the  Palatinate." 

There  being  no  hope  of  obtaining  any  reinforce- 
ment to  carry  into  the  Palatinate  this  summer,  and 
his  comrades  being  then  besieged  by  Spinola  in  the 
few  towns  that  yet  remained  to  the  Elector,  Essex, 
as  soon  as  Parliament  was  adjourned,  went  to  serve 
as  a  volunteer  under  Maurice,  Prince  of  Orange,  at 
the  "  leaguer  of  Dernick,"  in  Holland. 

Parliament  reassembled  the  20th  November,  soon 
after  which  the  Commons  sent  a  petition  to  the 
King,  remonstrating  strongly  against  the  proposed 
marriage  of  the  Prince  of  Wales  to  the  Infanta,  and 
praying  him  to  prosecute  the  war  in  defence  of  the 
Palatinate,  to  attack  Spain,  and  to  marry  Charles 
to  a  Protestant  princess.  James  sent  a  reply,  for- 
bidding them  to  meddle  in  state  affairs  ;  they  re- 
monstrated ;  an  angry  controversy  followed,  which 
the  King  ended  by  proroguing  Parliament  on  the 
19th  December,  having  a  few  days  before  sent  for 
the  Journals  of  the  House  of  Commons,  and  with  his 
own  hand  torn  out  an  obnoxious  resolution.1 

Although  the  Court  party  was  strong  in  the 
House  of  Lords  in  this  Parliament,  "  yet  there  were 
"  some  gallant  spirits  that  aimed  at  the  public 

1  Parliament  was  dissolved  in  February  following.  Some  idea  may  be 
formed  of  the  diligent  attendance  which  Lord  Essex  gave  to  his  legislative 
duties,  by  the  fact  that,  during  these  sessions,  the  House  of  Lords  sat  one 
hundred  and  ten  times,  from  which  Essex  was  absent  but  eleven ;  and 
that  he  served  on  thirteen  committees,  and  in  two  conferences  with  the 
Commons. 


CHAP.  XL        ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  289 

"  liberty,  more  than  their  own  interest."  The 
leaders  of  this  party  were  the  Earls  of  Oxford, 
Southampton,  Essex,  Warwick1,  Lords  Say2,  Spen- 
cer 3,  and  others. 

"  Essex,"  writes  the  historian  4,  who  having  spent 
many  years  in  his  service,  knew  him  well,  "  had  ever 
"  an  honest  heart,  and  though  nature  had  not  given 
"  him  eloquence,  he  had  a  strong  reason  that  did 
"  express  him  better.  His  countenance,  to  those 
"  that  knew  him  not,  appeared  somewhat  stern  and 
"  solemn ;  to  intimates,  affable  and  gentle ;  to  the 
**  females,  obligingly  courteous ;  and  though  unfor- 
"  tunate  in  some,  yet  highly  respected  of  most, 
"  happily  to  vindicate  the  virtue  of  the  sex.  The 
"  King  never  affected  him,  whether  from  the  bent 
"  of  his  natural  inclination  to  effeminate  faces,  or 
"  whether  from  that  instinct  or  secret  prediction  that 

1  Richard,  Earl  of  Warwick,  so  created  ;  eldest  son  of  Penelope  Deve- 
reux.     "  Though  he  had  all  those  excellent  endowments  of  body  and 
fortune  that  give  splendour  to  a  glorious  Court,  he  used  it  but  for  his 
recreation ;  his  spirit  aimed  at  more  public  adventures,  planting  colonies 
in  the  western  world,  rather  than  himself  in  the  King's  favor." — Life  of 
James  /.,  Wilson,  p.  736. 

2  William,  eighth  lord,  created  Viscount  Say  and  Sele,   1 624.     "  A 
seriously  subtle  piece,  averse  to  the  Court  ways,  something  out  of  perti- 
naciousness.     When  the  humor  was  a  little  allayed  by  Court  favors,  it 
appeared  afterwards  that  those  stern  comportments,  supposed  natural, 
might  be  mitigated." — Ibid. 

3  Created,  1603,  Baron  Spencer  of  Wormleighton,  a  great  agriculturist. 
He  was  saying  something  in  this  session  respecting  what  their  "  great 
ancestors  "  did,  which  displeased  the  Earl  of  Arundel,  a  man  of  arrogant 
and  imperious  character,  Avho  cut  him  short,  saying,  "  My  Lord,  when  the 
things  you  speak  of  were  doing,  your  ancestors  were  keeping  sheep." 
Spencer  instantly  retorted,  "  When  my  ancestors,  as  you  say,  were  keeping 
sheep,  yours  were  plotting  treason." — Ibid. 

4  Wilson,  p.  736. 

VOL.  II.  U 


290  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XI. 

"  divine  fate  often  imprints  in  the  apprehension, 
"  whereby  he  did  foresee  in  him,  as  it  were,  a  hand 
"  raised  up  against  his  posterity,  may  be  a  notation, 
"  not  a  determination  ;  but  the  King  never  liked 
"  him,  nor  could  he  close  with  the  Court." 

The  Country  party  in  the  Upper  House  did  not 
separate  without  letting  the  King  know  that  they 
were  not  pleased  with  his  conduct.  A  great  many 
Scotch  and  Irish  Earls  and  Viscounts  had  been 
created  by  James,  to  the  profit  of  himself  and  his 
favourites.  The  ancient  Barons  of  England  were 
greatly  discontented  at  precedence  over  themselves 
being  thus  gained ;  and  this  grievance  was  made  the 
ground  of  a  petition  to  the  King,  signed  by  thirty- 
three  Earls  and  Barons  of  England.  This  petition 
they  refused  to  deliver  to  the  Council,  or  to  the 
Prince  of  Wales,  unless  he  would  say  he  did  not 
receive  it  as  a  councillor ;  on  which  the  King  sent 
for  Lord  Oxford,  and  asked  him  for  it.  Oxford, 
according  to  previous  agreement,  said  that  he  had  it 
not ;  others  made  the  same  reply ;  and  at  length 
the  King  was  told,  that  they  were  resolved  not  to 
deliver  the  petition,  unless  they  were  all  admitted 
together ;  on  which  James,  in  great  anger,  sent 
them  away,  saying  he  would  go  to  Parliament 
himself,  and  bring  them  all  to  the  bar.  He  ulti- 
mately gave  audience  to  the  whole  of  the  petitioners, 
when  he  made  use  of  this  remarkable  expression  to 
Essex :  "  I  fear  thee  not,  Essex,  if  thou  wert  as 
"  well  beloved  as  thy  father,  and  hadst  40,000  men 
"  at  thy  heels." 


CHAP.  XI.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  291 

James  endeavoured  to  revenge  himself  on  the 
most  conspicuous  members  of  both  Houses  after  the 
dissolution.  Oxford  was  committed  to  the  Tower, 
Southampton  to  the  charge  of  the  Dean  of  West- 
minster. Of  the  Commons,  Sir  Edward  Coke,  Sir 
Robert  Philipps,  Mr.  Pym,  and  some  others,  were  im- 
prisoned ;  Sir  Dudley  Digges,  and  other  smaller 
offenders,  were  sent  into  Ireland. 

The  summers  of  1622  and  1623,  were  passed  by 
Essex  in  Holland,  where  he  served  as  a  volunteer 
under  Prince  Maurice,  and  gained  considerable  dis- 
tinction and  reputation  as  a  gallant  soldier. 

His  winters  were  spent  in  England,  either  at 
Dray  ton,  at  Chartley,  or  at  some  of  the  Earl  of 
Hertford's  houses.  Their  sports  during  this  season 
were,  hunting  abroad ;  at  home,  chess  or  catas- 
trophe. Sometimes  they  had  masques,  or  plays, 
especially  at  Drayton ;  old  Lady  Leicester,  being 
partial  to  those  amusements,  often  adorned  her  hos- 
pitality with  them. 

Essex  was  an  excellent  horseman,  and  rode  hard, 
often  riding  eighty  or  a  hundred  miles  a  day. 
Wilson  relates  an  amusing  adventure  they  once  had 
during  a  journey  from  Drayton  to  Tottenham,  ac- 
companied by  Lord  Cromwell.1  They  dined  at 
Warwick ;  "  Cromwell  had  a  constitution  that  he 
"  could  not  settle  his  stomach,  till  he  had  enough  to 
"  overlay  his  head ; "  and  as  soon  as  they  were  off 
the  stones  of  Warwick,  he  "  put  to  it  with  such  a 


1  Thomas,  fourth  lord. 
u  2 


292  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XL 

"  fury,"  that  on  coming  to  the  bridge  at  Barforcl, 
where  the  waters  were  out,  he  had  great  difficulty 
in  making  his  way  through,  while  Wilson,  whose 
horse,  "  a  fiery  nag,"  had  run  away,  "  floundered 
"  into  the  midst,"  and  was  parted  from  his  rider. 
Essex  pulled  up  and  went  quietly  through.  Having 
overcome  this  difficulty,  they  rode  for  some  miles 
as  fast  as  their  horses  "  could  ply  it;"  when  Crom- 
well's horse,  he  being  a  heavy  man,  was  scarce  able  to 
trot.  On  this,  Essex,  leaving  his  retainer  to  take 
care  of  his  friend,  rode  alone  for  Barford,  whither 
his  train  and  coach  had  preceded  him. 

The  time  of  year  was  about  Michaelmas,  and  before 
Wilson  and  his  charge  got  to  Stow-in-the-Wold, 
darkness  had  come  on.  Here  they  had  proposed  to 
halt ;  but  meeting  the  Sheriff  of  Gloucestershire,  who 
was  as  "  well  warmed  "  as  himself,  Cromwell  began 
to  quarrel  with  him,  and  Wilson,  to  separate  them, 
persuaded  his  drunken  Lordship  to  go  on  to  Barford. 
Cromwell  was  as  obstinate  as  he  was  quarrelsome, 
and  as  soon  as  they  got  on  the  downs,  insisted  on 
taking  his  own  way.  Wilson  was  obliged  to  follow 
him  ;  and  after  three  hours'  riding,  they  found  them- 
selves within  two  miles  of  the  place  they  had  started 
from,  and  returned  to  Stow  about  ten  at  night. 

In  1623,  Prince  Charles  took  his  celebrated  journey 
into  Spain,  accompanied  by  Buckingham,  who  made 
himself  odious  to  the  Spaniards,  insulted  Olivarez, 
and  then  successfully  exerted  his  influence  in  breaking 
off  the  marriage  treaty,  —  a  strong  proof  of  his  un- 


CHAP.  XL        EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  293 

limited  power  over  James,  as  the  Spanish  match 
had  been  for  years  the  object  of  his  wishes ;  with  the 
two  millions  of  dower,  he  had  expected  to  relieve 
himself  from  his  embarrassments,  and  the  breaking  it 
off  was  almost  certain  to  produce  a  rupture  with 
Spain.  By  an  untrue  statement  of  the  circumstances 
in  Parliament,  by  advocating  a  war  for  the  recovery 
of  the  Palatinate,  and  by  allying  himself  to  the 
Country  party,  Buckingham  became,  for  the  time,  a 
popular  favourite  ;  while  James,  weary  of  his  tyranny, 
was  revolving  the  means  of  freeing  himself,  which 
led  to  his  renewed  communication  with  Somerset. 

During  the  negotiations  with  Spain,  the  Imperial 
armies  had  not  been  idle.  Heidelberg  and  Manheim 
had  fallen,  and  now  Frankendal,  the  last  fortress 
remaining  to  the  Elector,  was  taken  by  the  enemy. 
To  succour  that  Prince,  had,  therefore,  become  a  task 
of  great  difficulty,  being  nothing  less  than  to  re- 
conquer the  country. 

The  Parliament  that  met  on  the  19th  February, 
1624,  immediately  voted  three  subsidies,  and  three 
fifteenths,  about  300,000/.,  for  that  purpose.  Four 
regiments  of  1500  men  each  were  equipped,  and  sent 
into  Holland  under  the  command  of  the  Earls  of 
Oxford,  Essex,  Southampton,  and  Lord  Willoughby.1 
Mr.  Locke  writes  to  Sir  D.  Carleton2,  "  There  is  a 
"  great  struggle  for  the  fourth  colonel's  place.  The 

1  Robert  Bertie,  created  by  Charles  I.  Earl  of  Lindsey,   1626,  here- 
ditary Great  Chamberlain  and  Lord  High  Admiral  of  England.     He  re- 
ceived a  mortal  wound  at  Edgehill,  23rd  Oct.  1642. 

2  24th  May,  S.  P.  O. 

u  3 


294  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XL 

"  King  at  dinner,  yesterday,  asked  if  men  were  mad 
"  to  go  into  the  Low  Countries.  The  Prince  hath 
"  the  naming  of  all  the  captains." 

A  dispute  arose  between  Oxford  and  Southampton, 
which  was  to  have  precedence ;  the  first  claiming  it 
for  the  antiquity  of  his  earldom,  his  high  hereditary 
office  of  Lord  Great  Chamberlain,  and  his  rank  of 
Admiral  at  sea ;  the  other,  as  having  been  General  of 
the  Horse  in  Ireland.  The  Council  of  War  recom- 
mended, and  it  was  ordered  by  the  King  on  the  21st 
July,  that  in  "  all  civil  and  courtly  passages  "  Oxford 
should  have  precedence ;  and  that  in  respect  of  his 
former  command,  Southampton  should  lead  "  in  all 
"  martial  and  military  passages."1 

These  troops  joined  the  army  under  Prince 
Maurice,  who,  notwithstanding  this  great  reinforce- 
ment, suffered  Spinola  to  invest  the  important  town 
of  Breda  without  hindrance,  and  failed  in  an  attempt 
to  surprise  Antwerp.  The  summer  was  wasted  ; 
and  on  the  troops  going  into  winter  quarters  at 
Eozendaal,  Maurice  went  to  the  Hague,  and  dying  in 
the  following  spring,  was  succeeded  in  his  command 
by  his  brother,  Prince  Henry.  The  English  troops 
suffered  greatly  from  fever  during  the  winter ; 
Southampton2  and  his  son,  Lord  Wriothesley,  were 
among  its  victims. 

Prince  Henry  proved   as  much   too  rash    as  his 

1  S.  P.  0. 

2  He  was  succeeded  by  his  second  son,  Thomas,  afterwards  Lord  Trea- 
surer, the  friend  of  Clarendon,  and  father  of  the  virtuous  and  heroic 
Rachel,  Lady  Russell. 


CHAP.  XI.         ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX.  295 

brother  had  been  over  cautious,  and  was  worsted  in 
an  assault  on  Spinola's  works.  The  Earl  of  Oxford, 
who  led  the  van,  although  not  wounded,  was  so 
overheated  and  fatigued,  that,  being  a  corpulent  man, 
he  presently  fell  sick  and  died. 

This  was  not  the  only  misfortune  that  befel  the 
English  troops.  In  the  autumn  of  1624,  Count 
Mansfeldt1  had  come  over  to  England  to  obtain 
assistance,  in  men  and  money,  for  the  service  of  the 
Palatine.  He  was  promised  20,000/.  a  month,  and 
12,000  men  were  raised  by  press.  Of  these  recruits 
Mr.  Chamberlain  writes  to  Sir  D.  Carleton2:  "Our 
"  soldiers  are  marching  on  all  sides  to  Dover;  God 
"  send  them  good  shipping  and  good  success.  But 
"  such  a  rabble  of  raw  and  poor  rascals  have  not 
"  lately  been  seen,  and  go  so  unwillingly,  they  must 
a  rather  be  driven  than  led.  You  may  guess  how 
"  base  we  are  grown,  when  one  that  was  prest  hung 
"  himself  for  fear  or  curst  heart ;  another  ran  into 
"  the  Thames,  and  after  much  debating  with  the 
"  constable  and  officers,  when  he  could  not  be  dis- 
"  missed,  drowned  himself.  Another  cut  off  all  his 
"  fingers  of  one  hand ;  and  another  put  out  his  own 

1  This  brillknt  adventurer  was  a  natural  son  of  Count  Peter  Mansfeldt. 
He  was  born  in  1585,  and  learned  the  art  of  war  in  Hungary ;  but,  discon- 
tented with  the  slowness  of  his  promotion,  deserted  the  Imperial  service, 
and  engaged  against   Spain  under  the  Duke  of  Savoy.     He  afterwards 
embraced  the  reformed  religion,  was  chosen  general  by  the  insurgents  of 
Bohemia,  and  forced  the  Imperial  armies  to  evacuate  that  country.     He 
next,  while  under  the  ban  of  the  Empire,  and  with  a  price  on  his  head, 
defended  the  Lower  Palatinate.     After  many  alternations  of  fortune,  he 
died  at  a  little  town  in  Bosnia,  in  1626. 

2  S.  P.  O.,  18th  December,  1624. 

u  4 


296  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XI. 

"  eyes  with  salt."  The  excesses  committed  at  Dover 
were  so  great,  that  many  soldiers  were  summarily 
executed ;  on  which  ground,  when  the  fleet  arrived 
at  Calais,  the  permission  to  land,  and  march  thence, 
which  had  been  promised,  was  withheld.  They  then 
sailed  for  Zealand,  and  after  some  delay  proceeded  to 
Gertruydenberg,  in  Brabant.  Here  they  were  not 
suffered  to  land ;  a  pestilential  disease  broke  out  in 
the  crowded  shipping,  so  fatal  in  its  attacks,  that  the 
air  was  tainted  with  the  multitude  of  putrefying 
bodies,  which  were  thrown  overboard,  and  cast  on 
shore ;  and  of  the  12,000  men  that  embarked  with 
Mansfeldt  at  Dover,  he  landed  a  bare  moiety,  and 
those  in  so  debilitated  a  condition,  that  he  was 
reduced  to  act  entirely  on  the  defensive. 

On  the  27th  March,  1625,  King  James  I.  died  at 
Theobalds.  There  is  a  letter  in  the  State  Paper 
Office,  from  Secretary  Conway  to  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
dated  the  29th  June,  inviting  him  to  England  to  take 
command  of  a  regiment.  It  seems  probable  that  an 
attempt  was  made,  under  the  new  reign,  to  attach 
Essex  to  the  Court  party.  Events  will  show  how 
completely  this  failed;  but,  in  obedience  to  the 
summons,  the  Earl  came  over  in  July,  and,  landing 
at  Margate,  waited  at  Dartford,  while  Wilson  pro- 
ceeded to  London  to  see  if  it  were  safe  to  go  to  that 
city,  where  the  plague  was  raging,  and  where  he 
found  "  nothing  but  death  and  horror, — the  very  air 
"  putrefied  with  the  contagion  of  the  dead." 

The  Court  was  at  Oatlands,  whither  Essex  pro- 
ceeded, and  accompanied  the  King  to  Oxford,  where 


CHAP.  XL    ROBERT,  THIRD  EARL  OF  ESSEX.        297 

Parliament  reassembled  on  the  1st  August,  having  been 
adjourned  from  Westminster  in  consequence  of  the 
alarming  increase  of  the  plague.  After  ten  days  of 
angry  debate,  Charles  dissolved  the  Parliament  on 
the  12th  August,  1625,  to  save  Buckingham  from 
impeachment,  the  supplies  not  having  been  voted. 

As  that  favourite  was  resolved  on  striking  a  blow  at 
Spain,  to  avenge  his  wounded  vanity,  the  equipment 
of  a  fleet  and  army  proceeded  at  Plymouth,  and  the 
King,  to  obtain  the  necessary  funds,  raised  money  by 
loan,  by  benevolences,  by  writs  of  Privy  Seal,  by 
suspending  payment  of  salaries,  and  even  by  levying 
duties  under  a  bill  which  had  not  passed  through  the 
House  of  Lords. 

The  command  of  the  expedition  was  given  to  Yis- 
count  Wimbledon,  the  Earl  of  Essex  was  Vice 
Admiral,  the  Earl  of  Denbigh1,  Eear  Admiral.  The 
force  consisted  of  10,000  troops,  embarked  in  a  fleet 
of  87  sail  of  English,  and  a  squadron  of  Dutch  ships.2 

Wilson  says  that  Essex  was  at  Tottenham,  the 
Earl  of  Hertford's  seat  in  Wiltshire,  when  he  was 
sent  for  to  go  this  voyage ;  riot  out  of  any  regard  the 
King  had  for  him,  "  but  being  a  man  beloved  of  the 
"  people,  and  the  people  not  liking  the  Duke's  exor- 
"  bitant  power  in  thrusting  the  King  on  this  war, 
"  which  tended  only  to  revenge  his  private  injuries, 
"  the  Earl  was  put  in  to  sweeten  the  business."3 

1  William  Fielding,  created  Earl  of  Denbigh,  1622.     He  was  killed  in 
action  on  the  side  of  the  King,  1643. 

2  A.  Wilson  says  120  ships  in  all. 

3  Desid.  Cur.  467. 


298  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XI. 

The  fleet  sailed  from  Plymouth  on  the  8th  October, 
with  a  fair  wind,  which,  however,  after  a  few  days, 
changed  to  N.N.W.,  and  increased  to  a  gale  in  which 
every  ship  suffered  greatly ;  one  vessel  foundered  with 
nearly  200  soldiers,  and  "  all  the  long  boats  were 
"  towed  to  pieces."  On  the  22nd,  being  in  sight  of 
Cadiz,  a  council  of  war  was  held,  at  which  it  was 
resolved  that  the  Earl  of  Essex  should  first  enter 
the  bay  with  his  squadron,  and  take  up  a  position  to 
cover  the  landing  of  the  troops  at  Port  St.  Mary's. 

The  wind  was  S.  W.,  the  weather  fine  and  clear, 
and  about  2  P.M.  Essex  got  into  the  road,  where  there 
were  lying  14  ships  under  the  Admiral  of  .Naples, 
and  12  galleys  before  Port  St.  Mary's.  They  opened 
their  fire  before  the  English  were  within  range. 
"  But  the  Earl,  contemning  a  fight  with  them  at 
"  coward's  distance,  sailed  between  the  ships  and  the, 
"  galleys,  that  he  might  bestow  his  shot  on  both  sides ;" 
and  opened  his  fire  with  such  effect,  that,  one  of  the 
galleys  being  sunk,  the  rest  made  off  up  the  river, 
while  the  ships  cut  their  cables,  and  sought  protection 
in  the  narrow  channel  leading  to  Puerto  Real. 
Essex,  though  badly  supported,  Lord  Valentia1  and 
Sir  John  Chudleigh  alone  keeping  him  company, 
chased  them  into  three  fathoms  water,  when,  his  ship 
drawing  15^  feet,  and  the  ebb  making,  he  was  forced 
to  anchor. 

Count   William   of  Nassau  was   sent  with    some 
English  colliers  to  batter  Fort  Puntal ;  but  the  next 

1  Francis  Annesley.     He  was  created  Viscount  Valentia  in  1621,  and 
died  1660.     He  was  Master  of  the  Ordnance  in  this  expedition. 


CiiAP.XI.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  299 

morning,  at  daybreak,  he  went  on  board  the  Swiftsure, 
Essex's  ship,  to  complain  that  he  was  not  supported, 
on  which  the  Earl  proceeded  to  his  assistance.  The 
Swiftsure  "  letting  fall  her  anchor  abreast  of  the  fort, 
"and  bringing  up  her  stern  with  a  warp,"  continued 
battering  till  4  p.  M.,  when  all  the  guns  of  the  fort, 
save  one,  were  dismounted. 

Sir  John  Burroughs  was  landed  with  1000  men,  to 
whom  the  fort  was  surrendered  on  terms ;  the  gar- 
rison "  marching  out  with  colors  flying,  match  in 
"  lock,  and  bullets  in  their  mouths.  When'  the 
"  Commandant  came  out,  he  asked  what  man  of 
"  quality  was  in  the  Swiftsure ;  whereupon  he  was 
"  asked,  if  he  knew  who  had  taken  Gales  before.  He 
"  answered :  Yes,  he  did  know,  it  was  the  Earl  of 
"  Essex.  On  which  he  was  told,  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
"  his  son,  is  in  that  ship.  '  Then,'  said  he, '  I  think  the 
"  devil  is  there  also;'  but  desired  he  might  have  the 
"  honor  to  go  aboard  to  see  the  Earl  and  the  ship, 
"  which  he  obtained."1 

On  the  24th,  Lord  Wimbledon  landed  the  chief  part 
of  the  army,  and,  accompanied  by  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
marched  towards  Ponte  Suazo.  Provisions  were 
forgotten  ;  the  troops,  wearied  and  in  want  of  food, 
were  halted  for  the  night  about  three  miles  short  of 
the  bridge,  in  a  place  surrounded  by  storehouses  filled 
with  wine,  which  the  soldiers  broke  open,  and  a  scene 
of  the  utmost  disorder  ensued. 

The   next   day   Lord   Wimbledon   and   his   army 

1  From  a  document  in  S.  P.  O.,  which  appears  to  be  the  diary  of  the 
master  of  the  Swiftsure. 


300  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XI. 

countermarched  to  Cadiz,  on  approaching  which 
town  a  halt  was  called,  while  the  General  recon- 
noitred the  place,  and  decided  that  it  was  useless 
to  attack  it.  He  then  marched  back  again  towards 
the  bridge  to  capture  a  few  long  boats,  after  which 
brilliant  exploit  the  army  re- embarked ;  the  fleet 
sailed  on  the  29th  October,  and  after  cruising  in  the 
track  of  the  homeward-bound  fleet  from  the  Indies 
until  the  17th  November,  returned  to  England.1 

Charles,  who  had  anticipated  a  result  both  glorious 
and  profitable,  was  filled  with  anger  and  grief  at  the 
disgraceful  end  of  this  expensive  expedition.  In- 
quiry was  made  into  the  cause  of  failure.  The  Earl 
of  Essex,  Lords  Yalentia  and  Cromwell,  with  seven 
other  Colonels,  presented  charges2  against  the  General 
at  the  council  table,  from  which  we  learn  the  in- 
efficiency of  Lord  Wimbledon  as  a  commander,  These 
charges  were  in  substance  as  follows :  that  being 
urged  to  attack  the  shipping  that  had  gone  to  Puerto 
Real,  Lord  Wimbledon  replied,  that  "  he  would  not 
"  hunt  two  hares  at  once."  When  the  army  was 
ordered  to  land,  he  gave  no  directions  about  their 
victuals,  which  being  in  the  charge  of  the  pursers,  the 
land  officers  had  no  power  to  obtain.  And  when  re- 
minded of  this  omission  after  landing,  he  gave  instant 
order  to  march,  saying,  "that  was  not  the  time  to 
"  speak  of  victuals,  the  want  of  which  must  not  make 
"  men  cowards."  He  left  no  guard  to  secure  his 

1  Lord  Essex  landed  at  Falmouth,  the  5th  December. 

2  These  charges,  and  Lord  Wimbledon's  reply,  with  a  journal  of  the 
voyage,  are  in  Harl.  MSS.  xxxvii.  3638.  6807. 


CHAP.  XI.        ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX,  301 

communication  with  Fort  Puntal,  which  might  easily 
have  been  cut  off  by  a  sortie  from  Cadiz.  Lord 
De  la  Warr '  pointed  out  this  omission.  When  he 
resolved  to  bivouac  among  the  wine  stores,  he  gave 
one  butt  of  wine  to  each  regiment,  and  omitted  the 
smallest  precaution  against  the  men  obtaining  access 
to  the  rest ;  and  did  not  even  place  a  single  outpost 
or  sentry,  or  give  a  watchword.  Lord  Essex  says, 
that  at  a  late  hour  he  went  to  the  General  to 
represent  this  state  of  things,  who  left  every  thing 
to  his  direction  and  discretion,  giving  as  a  watch- 
word, "Heaven  bless  us;"  and  that  he  contrived  to 
place  a  few  guards,  but  was  certain  that  such  was 
the  state  of  drunkenness  and  disorder,  that  500 
Spaniards  might  have  destroyed  the  whole  army. 

After  a  long  inquiry,  the  matter  was  suffered  to 
die  away  in  silence.  Essex,  who  on  his  arrival  went 
to  Hampton  Court,  where  the  King  was  residing, 
"  staid  not  long,  for  it  was  a  sphere  he  loved  not  to 
"  move  in  ;"  but  retired  to  Chartley  until  the  meeting 
of  the  new  Parliament  on  the  6th  February,  1626, 
which  he  attended  with  the  same  diligence  as  before, 
having  absented  himself  but  four  times  during  seventy- 
nine  sittings  of  the  House. 

On  the  dissolution  of  this  Parliament,  he  was 
offered  the  command  of  Yice- Admiral  in  the  fleet 
which  was  assembling  at  Portsmouth.  The  reason 
for  his  declining  to  accept  the  appointment  is  given 
in  a  published  letter.2  "  My  Lord  of  Essex  came  to 

l.  Henry,  fourth  lord,  born  1603,  died  1628. 
2  Court  and  Times  of  Charles  I.,  vol.  i.  p.  126. 


302  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XI. 

"  the  King  for  leave  to  go  to  his  charge  in  the  Low 
"  Countries.  Before,  the  Duke  had  oifered  him  the 
"  Vice  Admiralship,  but  he  refused.  The  King  asked 
"  him  why  he  would  not  accept  it;  who  answered,  he 
"  would  have  accepted  a  far  meaner  office  to  His 
"  Majesty's  service,  if  His  Majesty  himself  had  oifered 
"  it ;  but  to  receive  it  from  another  he  thought  riot 
"  so  fit,  as  for  other  reasons,  so  especially  because  he 
"  knew  not  His  Majesty's  pleasure.  Whereupon,  the 
"  King,  displeased,  bade  him  go  whither  he  would, 
"  and  come  again  when  he  sent  for  him." 

By  a  subsequent  letter  in  the  same  correspond- 
ence, we  are  informed  that  the  Earl  returned 
from  the  Low  Countries  in  November;  the  four 
regiments  there,  which  were  greatly  reduced  in  num- 
ber, being  sent  to  join  the  King  of  Denmark,  under 
the  command  of  General  Morgan. 

Essex  retired  to  Chartley,  where  he  remained  until 
the  assembling  of  a  new  Parliament,  in  1628,  called 
him  out  of  retirement. 


ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  303 


CHAPTEK  XII. 

LIFE    OF    ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX Continued. 

PARLIAMENT    OP    1628. —  EARL  OF    ESSEX  MARRIES    MISS   ELIZABETH 
PAULET.  —  ARMY  SENT    AGAINST    THE    SCOTS  COVENANTERS,   1639, 

OP  WHICH  ESSEX  IS  LIEUTENANT-GENERAL. HIS  PROCEEDINGS. 

HE    IS    UNCEREMONIOUSLY   DISMISSED    AFTER    THE    TREATY. 

PARLIAMENT    CALLED    IN    1640. THE     SCOTTISH    COVENANTERS 

INVADE  ENGLAND    IN   1641. ESSEX  AND    OTHERS    PETITION    THE 

KING     FOR    A    PARLIAMENT. COUNCIL     OF    PEERS    AT    YORK. 

COMMISSIONERS   MEET  AT  RIPON. 

THE  reader  of  English  history  is  well  aware  how 
Charles  I.  commenced  his  ill-advised  course,  by  in- 
fringing the  personal  privileges  of  both  Houses  of 
Parliament ;  how  all  his  subsequent  proceedings 
evinced  an  arbitrary  temper,  and  impatience  of 
control,  with  an  entire  want  of  sincerity,  and  stability 
of  purpose  ;  how  solemn  promises  made  under  pres- 
sure, were  deliberately  broken  when  the  pressure  was 
removed,  and  obnoxious  and  irritating  measures  were 
adopted  only  to  be  relinquished.  The  Parliament,  on 
the  other  hand,  showed  the  strongest  determination 
to  vindicate  their  own  privileges,  and  the  rights  and 
liberties  of  the  people ;  and  as  they  pursued  their 
object  coolly,  but  keenly  and  unswervingly,  every 
false  step,  and  every  ebullition  of  temper  on  the  part 
of  the  King,  only  added  to  their  strength. 

The  Parliament  of  1628  lasted  but  three  months, 


304  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XII. 

from  26th  March  to  23rd  June;  but  in  that  short 
session,  the  second  great  charter  of  English  liberty, 
the  Petition  of  Eight,  was  passed.  Had  Charles 
faithfully  adhered  to  the  assent  he  gave  to  that  bill, 
he  might  have  reigned  in  the  hearts  as  over  th£ 
persons  of  his  subjects ;  while,  by  his  actual  conduct, 
he  not  only  excited  sentiments  of  disaffection  and 
dislike  to  his  person,  but  lost  that  respect  which  men 
feel  for  constancy  of  purpose  and  resolute  conduct, 
even  when  directed  against  themselves. 

After  the  dissolution  of  the  third  Parliament  of 
Charles  L,  that  monarch  won  over  to  his  party  several 
of  the  most  eminent  among  the  leaders  of  the  Oppo- 
sition. The  Earl  of  Essex  was  not  of  the  number, 
and  during  the  years  of  misgovernment  which  fol- 
lowed, he  lived  in  retirement.  Yet  was  this  period 
an  eventful  one  for  him ;  he  was  tempted  once  more 
to  try  his  fortune  in  the  matrimonial  lottery,  and  un- 
happily with  not  much  better  success  than  on  the 
former  occasion. 

He  passed  the  winter  of  1629-30  at  Tottenham, 
the  seat  of  his  brother-in-law,  Lord  Hertford.  Among 
the  visitors  came  Miss  Elizabeth  Paulet,  daughter  of 
Sir  William  Paulet,  of  Edington,  "  a  young  gentle- 
"  woman  of  a  most  sweet  and  bewitching  countenance, 
"  and  affable  and  gentle  conversation."  Such  fair 
company  being  acceptable  at  festival  times,  Lady 
Hertford  invited  her  to  stay  all  Christmas,  and,  in 
Lent,  she  became  Countess  of  Essex. 

Arthur  Wilson  plainly  accuses  her  of  adultery; 
but,  as  he  admits  that  by  his  jealousy  of  her  influence, 


CHAP.  XII.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  305 

and  "  the  cloudy  and  discontented  countenance " 
which  he  showed,  that  he  gave  her  cause  of  offence, 
and  in  consequence  quitted  the  service  of  Lord  Essex, 
I  shall  give  the  lady  the  full  benefit  of  a  more  minute, 
though,  perhaps,  partial  account,  which  has  been  left 
by  her  second  husband. 

Sir  Thomas  Higgons  says,  that  "  after  the  marriage 
"  of  Lord  Essex,  his  servants  finding  they  no  longer 
"  had  the  same  liberty,  conceived  a  dislike  to  the 
"  Countess."  Sir  Walter  Devereux1  also  entertained 
a  mortal  aversion  to  her,  and  Sir  Thomas  charges 
them  with  conspiracy.  He  states  that,  at  a  late  hour 
one  night,  when  Essex  was  in  the  country,  they  took 
advantage  of  Mr.  Uvedale  being  in  Lady  Essex's 
apartments  to  visit  one  of  her  sisters,  broke  in,  and 
although  her  sister  and  one  of  her  maids  were  with 
her,  accused  her  of  adultery  with  Uvedale,  They 
sent  off  instantly  to  Essex,  intercepting  a  letter  which 
Lady  Essex  also  wrote  to  him.  Lord  Essex,  who 
was  credulous  and  jealous,  and  had,  from  the  conduct 
of  his  first  wife,  conceived  a  prejudice  against  women, 
was  induced  to  believe  the  tale.  When  Lady  Essex 
heard  this,  she  refused  to  see  or  write  to  him  again. 

Lady  Essex  was,  however,  with  child,  a  circumstance 
which  produced  great  irresolution  in  the  mind  of  her 
husband ;  he  at  length  said,  that  if  the  child  was 
born  by  the  5th  November,  he  would  own  it  for 
his.  Curiously  enough,  and  most  unsatisfactorily 

1  Sir  Walter  was  heir  to  the  Viscountcy  of  Hereford,  should  his  cousin 
die  without  male  issue,  and  may  therefore  be  supposed  to  have  entertained 
"a  mortal  aversion"  to  Essex's  second  marriage. 

VOL.  II.  X 


306  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  XII. 

for  a  man  who  entertained  such  suspicions,  the 
child  was  born  on  that  very  clay l ;  and  it  appears 
that  Essex  remained  in  the  conviction  that  Lady 
Essex  had  been  unfaithful.  A  letter  of  30th  March, 
16362,  informs  us,  that  articles  of  separation  were 
in  negotiation,  by  which  she  was  to  receive  1300/. 
a-year  for  life,  on  condition  that  she  gave  up  her 
jointure  and  thirds  ;  undertook  never  to  complain  or 
sue  for  alimony;  disclaimed  all  title  to  the  Earl's 
personal  estate  ;  and  never  sought  to  cohabit  again 
with  her  husband.  An  article  had  been  inserted, 
that  if  ever  u  she  had  any  child  by  my  Lord,"  she 
was  to  forfeit  the  1300£.  a-year.  It  was  so  "  set 
"  down  for  the  more  honor ;  because,  if  so  be  she 
"  should  have  any  children,  whosoever  got  them,  yet 
"  my  Lord  must  father  them  by  the  law.  This 
"  article  the  Countess  did  utterly  dislike,  and  there- 
"  fore  my  Lord  was  contented  to  desert  it." 

On  the  26th  December,  1636,  Lady  Leicester3 
writes  from  Penshurst  to  her  husband:  — "  I  forgot 
"  to  tell  you  last  week,  that  my  Lord  of  Essex's  son 
"  was  dead." 

Lady  Essex  continued  to  reside  in  Essex  House 
until  the  commencement  of  the  civil  war,  when  she 
retired  to  Oxford,  at  which  place  she  became  ac- 
quainted with  Sir  Thomas  Higgons,  whom  she  subse- 
quently married. 

1  From  the  funeral  oration  spoken  by  Sir  T.  H.  at  the  burial  of  the 
Countess,  Add.  MSS.  5830.  f.  122. 

2  Court  and  Times  of  Charles  I.,  vol.  ii.  p.  240. 

3  Sidney  Mem.  ii.  454.     Dorothy,   eldest  daughter  of  Henry,  Earl  of 
Northumberland,   and  Lady  Dorothy  Devereux,  married  liobert,  second 
Earl  of  Leicester. 


CHAP.  XII.         ROBERT.    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  307 

It  appears  from  two  letters  in  the  Earl  of  Stratford's 
State  Papers,  in  which  that  nobleman  and  Essex 
exchange  words  of  formal  courtesy,  that  in  1634,  the 
latter  passed  some  time  at  his  estates  in  Monaghan, 
which  had,  during  thirty  years  of  quiet,  vastly 
increased  in  value.1 

When,  on  the  levy  of  ship-money,  in  1635,  a  great 
fleet  was  fitted  out  professedly  to  maintain  the 
dominion  of  the  English  flag  in  the  narrow  seas, 
the  Earl  of  Essex  was  nominated  to  the  command  of 
one  squadron  of  twenty  sail,  as  Vice  Admiral,  under 
the  Earl  of  Lindsey. 

In  November,  the  King's  nephews,  Charles  and 
Rupert,  sons  of  the  unfortunate  Elector  Palatine, 
visited  England.  On  the  return  of  the  former  to  the 
Continent,  in  March,  1637,  the  Countess  of  Leicester 
writes  to  her  husband: — "  The  Elector's  going  from 
"  hence  to  Holland  is  expected  within  these  few  days. 
"  He  desires  much  to  have  my  Lord  Goring  go  with 
"  him,  but  the  King  declines  it ;  and  he  presses  much 
"  to  have  my  Lord  of  Essex  with  him  the  sea  voyage, 
"  but  that  has  been  also  refused ;  yet,  I  hear,  he  will 
"  again  move  for  that  great  happiness."2 

The  celebrated  plan  of  the  Earl  of  Strafford,  known 
by  the  name  of  Thorough,  which  was  to  make  Charles 
an  absolute  monarch,  was  defeated  by  the  King  him- 
self, who  persisted  in  forcing  on  his  Scottish  subjects 

1  It  is  stated  by  E.  P.  Shirley,  Esq.,  in  his  Account  of  the  Territory  of 
Farney,  privately  printed  in  1845,  that  in  the  year  1618,  that  barony 
liad  more  than  trebled  in  value  ;  while  the  rent  payable  by  Lord  Essex 
to  the  Crown,  was  doubled  on  the  regrant  of  those  lands  to  him  in  1621. 

2  Sidney  Mem.  ii.  450. 

x  2 


308  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.         CiiAr.  XII. 

a  liturgy  and  book  of  canons.  The  anti-episcopal 
party  in  Scotland  organised  a  determined  opposition, 
which  they  called  a  Covenant,  and  which,  from  that 
time,  gave  a  name  to  the  party.  Charles  resolved  to 
suppress  the  Covenant  by  force,  and,  to  blind  the 
Scottish  leaders  while  preparing  his  army,  made 
several  concessions  ;  a  useless  piece  of  insincerity,  for 
there  were  persons  about  him  who  imparted  to  the 
Covenanters  the  real  intentions  of  the  King. 

In  pursuance  of  this  resolution,  an  army  of  about 
6000  foot,  and  an  equal  number  of  horse,  was  raised 
in  the  spring  of  1639.  The  command  of  this  army 
was  given  to  the  Earl  of  Arundel,  of  whom  Clarendon 
says,  "  He  had  nothing  martial  about  him  but  his 
"  presence  and  his  looks,  and  therefore  was  thought 
"  to  be  made  choice  of  for  his  negative  qualities." 
Those  who  are  familiar  with  the  portrait  of  Lord 
Arundel  at  Warwick  Castle,  must  acknowledge  that 
his  appearance  is  as  fierce  as  could  be  desired  in  a 
general. 

The  Earl  of  Essex  was  made  Lieutenant-General ; 
the  same  author  calls  him  "  the  most  popular  man  in 
"  the  kingdom,  and  the  darling  of  the  sword-men, 
"  who,  between  a  hatred  and  contempt  of  the  Scots, 
"  had  nothing  like  an  affection  for  any  man  of  the 
"  nation  ;  and,  therefore,  was  so  well  pleased  with 
"  his  promotion,  that  he  began  to  love  the  King  the 
"  better  for  conferring  it  upon  him,  and  entered 
"  upon  the  province  with  great  fidelity  and  alacrity, 
"  and  was  capable  from  that  hour  of  any  impression 
"  the  King  would  have  fixed  upon  him."  AVe  shall 


CHAP.  XII.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  309 

find  in  the  sequel  another  example  of  Charles's  want 
of  judgment,  in  the  slight  he  put  upon  his  most 
popular  subject. 

To  the  Earl  of  Holland  was  given  the  command  of 
the  cavalry. 

The  Marquis  of  Hamilton  was  sent  with  3000  men 
and  a  fleet  to  annoy  the  coasts  of  his  country. 

On  the  20th  March,  the  Earl  of  Essex  received  in- 
structions to  proceed  to  the  North,  to  direct  the  Vice- 
President  to  call  out  the  forces  of  Yorkshire  and 
Durham,  and  with  them  to  proceed  with  all  diligence 
to  Newcastle,  where  Sir  Jacob  Astley  would  meet 
him,  with  whom  he  was  to  arrange  for  the  rein- 
forcing and  provisioning  of  Berwick  and  Carlisle. 
Should  the  Scots  make  any  movement  towards  the 
Border,  he  was  to  assemble  all  the  forces  of  the 
northern  counties,  and  act  as  he  should  think  most 
conducive  to  the  safety  and  security  of  the  kingdom.1 

On  receiving  his  instructions,  the  Earl  quitted 
London  for  the  North,  arrived  at  York  at  10  P.M.  on 
the  22nd,  and  thence,  after  consultation  with  the 
Vice-President  of  the  North,  proceeded  to  Newcastle, 
at  which  town  he  was  joined  by  Sir  Jacob  Astley. 
He  was  met  daily  by  persons  of  quality  out  of  Scot- 
land, who,  by  false  reports  of  the  strength  of  the 
Scottish  army,  and  their  proximity  to  Berwick, 
sought  to  delay  his  advance.  The  only  effect  pro- 
duced by  the  reports  and  advice  of  these  persons, 
was  to  cause  him  to  press  forward  more  rapidly,  so 

1  S.  P.  O. 
x  3 


310  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XII. 

that  he  reached  Berwick  sooner  than  he  had  pur- 
posed, and  marched  into  that  town  without  oppo- 
sition on  the  1st  April.  "And,"  writes  Secretary 
Coke,  who  accompanied  the  King,  to  Secretary  Winde- 
bank in  London,  "  that  noble  Earl,  by  his  resolution, 
"  good  conduct,  and  celerity,  hath  both  done  this 
"  good  service  to  His  Majesty,  and  won  himself  much 
"  honor,  and  gotten  the  soldiers'  hearts."1 

No.  LI.2 
Essex  to  Sir  F.  Windebank. 

Sir,  —  I  thought  it  my  duty  to  acquaint  you  how  far  I 
have  proceeded  in  executing  his  Maj.  commands. 

In  general  meeting  with  ill  horses  all  the  way,  I  could 
reach  the  first  night  but  to  Grantham,  where  I  found  Sir 
Will.  Ffourd;  he  told  me  the  race  was  either  the  two 
twentieth  or  three  twentieth  at  Berwick,  and  that  the  Cove- 
nanters were  gotten  between  the  Marquis  Huntly  and  Aber- 
deen. Yesterday  morning  I  met  with  a  Scotch  gentleman, 
William  Keith,  [who]  had  newly  taken  post  at  Newark  with 
the  Bishop  of  St.  Andrew's  warrant,  as  1  heard  after;  he 
told  me  no  such  thing  performed,  only  the  Earl  Hum's 
brother  had  made  a  match  for  ten  dollars,  but  was  not  run, 
and  that  no  troops  were  as  yet  marched  towards  Aberdeen. 

It  was  ten  o'clock  at  night  before  I  reached  this  town, 
there  being  no  post-horses  the  last  stage  at  Tadcaster,  and 
the  Vice-President  being  out  of  town  hindered  me  so,  that  I 
fear  I  shall  not  reach  Newcastle  to-night.  But  I  have  sent  to 
Sir  Jacob  Astley,  if  it  be  no  hindrance  to  the  employment, 
he  would  meet  me  at  Durham  ;  if  not,  I  will  presently  be 
with  him. 

1  S.  P.  0.,  2nd  April,  1639.  2  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XII.         ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX.  311 

I  spoke  this  morning  with  the  Vice-President  and  Sir 
Arthur  Ingram,  the  rest  of  the  council  being  gone  to  the 
hall.  I  find  by  the  Vice-President  the  troops  are  in  good 
readiness,  and  is  glad  to  hear  of  the  pay,  which  fully  satisfies 
him ;  but  he  fears  whether  the  train-bands  would  stir  with- 
out a  month's  pay  beforehand.  Accordingly,  it  hath  been 
certified  us,  but  no  answer  as  yet,  which  he  thinks  would 
give  great  content.  I  assured  him  in  general,  the  King  had 
taken  so  great  care  as  that  there  was  a  paymaster  coming 
post  after  me,  and  that  the  treasurer  is  upon  the  way.  Sir, 
give  me  leave  to  say  this  is  a  business  of  great  moment,  being, 
if  known,  a  leading  case  to  all  other  parts.  As  soon  as  Sir 
Jacob  Astley  and  I  meet,  I  shall  presume  to  acquaint  his 
Maj.  of  our  opinions ;  and  what  may  be  done  in  the  per- 
formance of  my  instructions,  I  hope  we  -shall  shortly  give 
good  account  of.  I  forgot  to  tell  you  the  Vice-President 
thought  an  answer  to  that  letter  would  give  great  content, 
which  was  sent  from  the  colonels  of  the  train-bands  which 
he  opposed. 

Sir,  hasting  away  with  a  fervent  desire  to  perform  my 
instructions,  and  my  eyes  full  of  dust,  pleads  for  my  pardon 
for  my  scribbling,  but  at  the  best  an  ill  scribe.  But  if  occa- 
sion be,  I  hope  to  shew  I  am  trained  to  action  [rather]  than 
to  a  pen,  and  so  being  at  all  times  ready  to  lay  my  life  at  his 
Maj.  feet,  and  am  your  servant, 

York,  this  23rd  March,  1639.  Ro.  E*SEX. 

The  King  left  London  on  the  27th  March,  "  with  a 
"  glorious  attendance  of  nobility  and  gentry,  that 
"  looked  more  like  the  pomp  and  parade  of  an 
"  Eastern  Prince,  than  the  expedition  of  an  English 
"  Monarch."  He  arrived  at  York  on  the  31st,  and 
was  shortly  after  greeted  with  the  news  of  the  occu- 
pation of  Berwick. 


312  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XII. 

Leaving  2000  men  with  8  pieces  of  artillery  in 
Berwick,  Essex  returned  to  York  on  the  10th  April, 
to  receive  further  instructions  from  the  King.  The 
Earl's  proposal  to  march  at  once  on  Edinburgh, 
which  vigorous  course  would  have  unquestionably  put 
an  end  to  the  war,  was  negatived,  or  at  least  deferred, 
thereby  giving  time  to  the  Covenanters  to  collect  their 
forces ;  and  Essex  himself  was  sent  back  to  Berwick, 
"  with  money,  orders,  men,  and  all  necessaries,  except 
"  victual  and  ordnance,  which  go  by  sea,  for  securing 
"  of  that  place."1  He  gives  the  following  account  of 
his  proceedings. 

No.  LII.2 
Essex  to  Sir  F.  Windebank. 

Noble  Sir,  —  My  brother  St,  Albans3  acquainting  me  with 
earnest  business  he  hath  to  London,  desired  me  to  convey 
this  packet  to  you,  makes  me  trouble  you  with  a  few  lines 
to  excuse  that  letter  I  sent  you  from  York.  I  coining  thither 
in  two  days,  and  hastening  to  Newcastle  to  perform  my 
master's  commands,  made  me  not  to  transcribe  my  blotted 
letter,  being  cavised  by  the  coming  in  of  deputy  lieutenants 
and  council  of  York  at  several  times  whilst  I  was  making  up 
my  despatch  ;  I  took  two  sheets  instead  of  one,  and  never 
found  it  till  I  had  ended  my  letter.  For  the  letter  I  wrote 
of,  it  came  from  the  Colonels,  and  although  His  Maj.  in 
my  instructions,  did  promise  pay  whilst  the  trained  bands 
were  employed,  yet  the  Vice-President  feared  they  would  not 

1  Mr.  De  Wic  to  Sir  F.  Windebank,  13th  April,  in  S.  P.  O. 

2  S.  P.  O. 

3  Ulick,  fifth  Earl  of  Clanrickarde,  second  Earl  of  St.  Alban's.     Ills 
mother  was  widow  of  the  late  Earl  of  Essex.     He  was  born  1604,  and 
died  1657. 


CHAP.  XII.        ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  313 

be  satisfied,  because  it  was  desired  a  month's  pay  beforehand ; 
but  now  I,  having  the  bands  of  the  Bishopric  to  march  hither, 
hath  ended  that  business.  I  being  disappointed  of  the  monies 
promised  me  at  Newcastle,  and  no  paymaster  coming  down, 
I  being  put  to  my  shifts,  could  procure  but  2700  men, 
which  made  me  rather  to  undertake  the  performance  of  it 
with  a  few  men,  than  to  draw  a  greater  number  and  not  be 
able  to  pay  them,  although  I  was  assured  by  the  Scots  in 
general  at  Newcastle,  and  in  my  first  day's  march  by  my 
Lord  Traquair  in  particular,  that  Mountrose,  with  double  my 
number,  would  take  in  Berwick  a  day  before  I  could  possibly 
get  thither  with  my  small  train  of  artillery  and  men ;  yet, 
being  unwilling  to  be  frighted  out  of  so  great  a  business  with 
words,  having  given  a  commission  to  my  Lord  Clifford  to 
raise  the  forces  of  Cumberland  and  Westmorland,  with  the 
help  of  the  Irish  and  Western  forces  for  Carlisle,  I  took  the 
nine  Bishopric's  companies  and  four  Northumberland  that 
met  me  half  way,  to  march  hither  ;  the  particulars  whereof  I 
believe  before  this  you  have  received,  since,  waiting  on  his 
Maj.  at  York,  I  am  sent  back  hither  until  my  Lord  of  Lind- 
sey's  coming.  I  promise  you  we  will  not  be  cozened  of  the 
town ;  and  if  we  should,  as  I  fear  it  not,  it  would  be  sold  so 
dear,  the  victors  shall  have  no  occasion  to  bray,  although 
all  our  men  and  officers  know  not  what  discipline  means. 
The  Scots  hath  stopped  all  comers  from  us ;  this  town  being 
fed  from  thence,  puts  us  to  a  little  strait,  till  we  can  be  pro- 
vided out  of  England.  But  I  have  stopped  all  transport  of 
coals  into  Scotland,  which  they  cannot  well  want.  Sir  W. 
Penemen's  regiment  is  now  sent  in,  so  that  the  garrison  con- 
sists of  1000  Bishopric,  1000  York,  and  30  Northumberland 
horse.  Here  are  some  men  of  quality  now  come  in  town  ; 
and  if,  at  their  importunity,  I  trouble  your  packet,  you  will 
pardon  your  humble  servant, 

Berwick,  this  15th  of  April.  Ho.  ESSEX. 


3 1 4  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XII. 

The  orders  received  by  Essex  were,  that  he  should 
make  Berwick  good  against  any  force  the  Scots  should 
send,  until  the  King's  army  were  ready,  or  the  Earl 
of  Lindsey,  who  was  appointed  Governor  of  Berwick, 
should  arrive.  This  was  no  difficult  task,  as  he  met 
with  no  enemies  "  but  what  are  constant  to  this  place, 
"  snow,  hail,  and  violent  northern  winds." 

The  King,  with  the  army,  did  not  arrive  at  Durham 
until  the  1st  May.  The  Covenanters,  whose  object 
was  to  increase  the  divisions,  of  whose  existence  in 
the  royal  councils  they  were  well  informed,  wrote 
letters  to  the  three  Generals.  Clarendon  says,  that 
they  adapted  their  styles  to  suit  the  characters  of 
these  noblemen  ;  the  letter  to  the  Earl  of  Essex  was 
written  "in  a  dialect  more  submiss  than  to  the 
"  others." 

No.  LIII.1 

The  Covenanters  to  Essex. 

Our  most  noble  Lord,  —  As  in  all  these  great  affairs  which 
have  been  so  much  noised  abroad,  of  the  liberties  of  our 
church  and  state,  our  chief  care  hath  been  to  walk  warrant- 
ably,  according  to  the  laws  that  were  still  in  force  for  that 
effect,  so  we  are  certainly  persuaded  that  amongst  ourselves, 
there  are  none  that  can  justly  complain  of  what  hath  passed. 
And  for  those  of  our  countrymen  who  are  now  in  England, 
if  they  be  of  that  number,  as  they  are  evil  subjects  to  our 
gracious  sovereign,  and  worse  compatriots  to  us,  so  of  all  the 
worst  guests  amongst  you,  while  they  endeavour  to  make  the 
remedy  of  their  evils,  and  the  scape  of  their  deserved  punish- 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XII.        EGBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  315 

mentg,  the  beginning  of  an  incurable  disease  betwixt  the  two 
nations  to  whom  this  quarrel  should  in  no  way  extend.  If 
the  informations  and  protestations  made  by  us  for  this  end, 
and  the  bond  of  our  covenant  sworn  to  God  and  man,  have 
not  cleared  all  scruples  in  the  mind  of  our  gracious  King 
hithertill,  and  of  all  good  subjects  with  you,  it  is  not  our 
fault,  but  rather  our  joint  misfortune  with  you,  that  there  be 
too  many  amongst  you  also  in  greatest  place  ancl  credit, 
whose  private  bias  runs  quite  wide  and  contrary  to  the  public 
good,  and  who  are  those  wicked  ones  rising  early  to  poison 
the  public  fountains,  and  to  sow  the  tares  of  unhappy  jea- 
lousies and  discord  betwixt  you  and  us,  before  the  good  seed 
of  love  and  respect  to  our  neighbour  nation  can  take  place 
in  your  heart.  Amongst  all  the  evils  of  this  kind  which 
daily  overtake  us,  next  to  the  present  undeserved  displeasure 
of  our  Prince  against  us,  —  which  God,  in  mercy  to  us,  will 
take  off  in  His  own  time,  —  there  could  nothing  be  fallen  so 
strange  and  unexpected  to  us,  as  the  drawing  your  forces 
together  upon  your  border,  which,  whether  to  defend  your- 
selves, or  to  annoy  us,  and  so  prepare  and  gather  those  clouds 
which  threaten  a  sore  tempest  to  both,  we,  for  our  part,  wish 
they  may  first  perish  in  the  shipwreck  who  began  first  to 
dash  the  one  nation  against  the  other.  As  for  you,  my  Lord, 
although  your  place,  person,  and  quality,  the  honor  and  re- 
putation of  your  former  life,  may  give  us  some  assurance  that 
your  Lordship  will  be  wary  to  begin  the  quarrel,  whereat  only 
enemies  to  both  the  nations  will  rejoice  and  catch  the  advan- 
tage, yet  give  us  leave  to  admire  those  groundless  fears  that 
make  you  thus  strengthen  your  borders,  or  rather  suspect 
those  pregnant  presumptions  of  a  further  project  intended 
against  this  nation  by  your  power,  which  needs  must  make 
us  bestir  ourselves  betimes  at  all  hands  for  our  safety.  God 
is  our  witness,  that  we  desire  no  national  quarrel  to  arise 
betwixt  us,  or  to  taste  of  that  bitter  fruit,  which  may  set 


316  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XII. 

both  our  and  your  children's  teeth  upon  edge ;  but  rather 
hold  ourselves  obliged,  in  conscience  of  our  duty  to  God, 
our  Prince,  and  all  your  nation,  our  brethren,  to  try  all  just 
and  lawful  means  for  the  removal  of  all  causes  of  difference 
betwixt  two  nations  who  are  yet  linked  together,  and  should 
be  still  in  all  the  strongest  bands  of  affection  and  common 
interest;  and  to  be  always  ready  to  offer  the  occasion  of 
greater  satisfaction  in  this  kind,  of  clearing  our  loyal  inten- 
tions towards  our  Prince,  to  all  whom  it  may  concern,  and 
namely  to  your  L.,  in  regard  of  your  place  and  command  at 
this  time,  by  any  means  whatsoever  should  be  thought  ex- 
pedient on  both  sides.  Thus  far  we  thought  good  to  repre- 
sent unto  your  L.,  being  occasionally  together,  so  few  of  us 
as  are  in  this  place,  for  ourselves,  and  in  name  of  the  rest  of 
our  number,  who,  together  with  us,  will  expect  your  L. 
answer,  and  rest  your  L.'s  affectionate  friends  to  serve  you, 

ARGYLE.         ROTHES.          MONTROIS. 

CASSILES.        LINDESEY.      ERSKYNE. 

LOUTHEAN.     ST.  CLAIRE.    ELCHO. 

WYMES.          BALMERINO.   FORRESTER. 

DALHOUSIE.    BURLIE. 

Mr.  Norgate,  in  forwarding  a  copy  of  this  letter, 
says,  that  "  one  Cuningham  who  brought  it,  demand- 
"  ing  an  answer,  my  Lord  replied,  he  had  no  authority 
"  to  answer  their  letters,  but  if  they  would  appear  by 
"  petition  to  the  King,  in  such  a  manner  as  became 
"  them,  he  would  be  ready  to  do  them  the  offices  of  a 
"  gentleman  of  honor."1 

On  the  9th  May,  the  royal  army  reached  Newcastle. 
"  The  Earl  of  Arundel,  Lord  General,  rode  at  their 
"  head,  gallantly  mounted  and  vested  a  la  soldado, 

1  S.  P.  O.,  4th  May. 


CHAP,  XII.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  317 

"  with  his  scarf  and  panache."  This  appears  to  be 
the  limit  of  the  noble  General's  military  utility.  On 
the  22nd,  the  King  proceeded  to  Berwick,  and  formed 
an  entrenched  camp  in  an  open  piece  of  ground 
called  the  Birks,  about  two  miles  west  of  the  town. 

Two  demonstrations  were  made  against  the  Scots, 
who,  in  number  about  3000,  ill  armed  and  undis- 
ciplined, had  advanced  under  Leslie  to  Dunse.  The 
Earl  of  Holland  commanded  on  both  occasions,  and 
on  both  occasions  retreated  as  soon  as  he  came  in 
sight  of  the  Scots,  without  firing  a  shot.  As  he  was 
received  by  the  King,  on  his  return  from  these  in- 
glorious expeditions,  with  "joy  and  satisfaction,"  he 
cannot  be  charged  with  cowardice  or  disaffection. 
He  either  acted  under  orders,  or  well  knew  his 
master's  wishes.  The  result  was,  however,  that  the 
Scots  became  more  stubborn,  while  the  royal  troops 
were  disgusted.  Had  any  serious  attack  been  in- 
tended, it  is  not,  indeed,  likely  that  Essex  would 
have  been  kept  in  the  background.  With  the  excep- 
tion of  that  nobleman,  every  one  holding  office  about 
the  King  was  desirous  of  a  pacification.  He  alone 
positively  refused  to  receive  a  visit,  or  hold  any  com- 
munication with  the  Scots,  until  peace  was  concluded. 

So  desirous  was  the  King  to  terminate  this  mock 
war,  and  so  well  were  his  wishes  backed  by  his 
courtiers,  that  on  the  18th  June,  articles  were  signed. 
The  King  gave  an  amnesty :  both  armies  were  to  be 
disbanded,  which  was  immediately  done  on  the  part 
of  the  English  ;  while  the  Scots,  who  had  throughout 


318  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XII. 

justified  their  conduct,  retained  in  pay  as  many  of 
their  officers  and  men  as  they  thought  fit. 

"  The  mischief,"  says  Lord  Clarendon,  "  that  befel 
"  the  King  from  this  wonderful  atonement,  cannot  be 
"  expressed,  nor  was  it  ever  discovered  what  prevailed 
"  over  His  Majesty  to  bring  it  so  wofully  to  pass.     All 
"  men  were  ashamed  who  had  contributed  to  it ;  nor 
"  had  he  dismissed  his  army  with  so  obliging  circum- 
"  stances   as  was  like   to  incline  them   to   come    so 
"  willingly  together,    if  there  were  occasion  to  use 
"  their  service.     The  Earl  of  Essex,  who  had  merited 
"  very   well  throughout   the  whole  affair,    and   had 
"  never  made  a  false  step  in  action  or  in  council,  was 
"  discharged   in   the    crowd   without  ordinary  cere- 
u  mony ;  and  an    accident   happening   at   the    same 
"  time,   or  very  soon  after,  .  by   the  death  of  Lord 
"  Aston,    whereby  the    command  of  the  Forest   of 
"  Needwood  fell  into  the  King's  disposal,  which  lay 
"  at  the  very  door  of  his  estate,  and  would  infinitely 
"  have   gratified    him,    was  denied  to   him,  and  be- 
"  stowed   upon   another;    all   which   wrought   very 
"  much  upon  his  rough,  proud  nature,  and  made  him 
"  susceptible  of  some  impressions  afterwards,  which 
"  otherwise  would  not  have  found  such  easy  adrais- 
"  sion."     If  King  Charles  had  no  other  talent,  he 
possessed,  in  an  unrivalled  degree,  that  of  disobliging 
those  whom  it  was  his  interest  to  conciliate. 

The  Scots  very  soon  afterwards  published  a  pro- 
test against  the  supposition,  that  in  the  late  treaty 
they  had  given  up  any  of  the  claims  advanced  by 


CHAP.  XII.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  SI  9 

the  General  Assembly,  and  the  treaty  was  burned  by 
the  hands  of  the  common  hangman.  Charles  and  his 
council  resolved  to  raise  another  army,  to  do  what 
might  have  been  so  easily  effected  in  the  spring 
of  1639,  but  for  the  King's  weakness  and  want  of  re- 
solution. 

The  late  expedition,  ineffectual  as  it  proved,  had 
exhausted,  and  even  anticipated,  the  revenues  of  the 
crown.  A  parliament  was  therefore  called,  which 
met  on  the  13th  April  1540,  and  was  dissolved  on  the 
5th  May,  because  the  Commons  debated  the  question 
whether  the  consideration  of  grievances  should  pre- 
cede the  supply. 

By  other  expedients,  Charles  contrived  to  raise  a 
supply,  but  the  delay  was  fatal.  While  he.  was 
borrowing  money,  the  Covenanters,  unanimous  and 
full  of  enthusiasm,  were  assembling.  When  Charles 
began  to  collect  his  army,  Leslie,  with  26,000  men, 
was  marching  towards  the  Border.  On  the  20th 
August  he  crossed  the  Tweed,  and  eight  days  after 
passed  the  Tyne  at  Newburn. 

Clarendon  says  it  was  a  great  pity  that  Essex  had 
not  been  appointed  General,  who,  "  though  his  ser- 
"  vices  of  the  last  summer  had  been  ill  requited, 
"  would  have  accepted  the  charge  if  offered  to  him, 
"  although  he  would  not  be  a  solicitor ;  he  would 
"  have  been  sure  to  discharge  his  trust  with  courage 
"  and  fidelity,  and  therefore  probably  with  success." 

The  Earl  of  Northumberland,  who  was  appointed, 
being  indisposed,  Lord  Con  way  was  sent  forward 


320  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP,  X IT. 

with  the  troops  already  prepared,  with  orders  to 
defend  the  passage  of  the  Tyne,  and  though  his  force 
was  greatly  inferior,  the  fords  on  that  river  were  so 
few  and  deep,  that  he  might  certainly  have  checked 
the  Scots.  But  with  scarcely  a  blow  exchanged,  the 
English  army  was  put  to  a  most  disgraceful  flight, 
Con  way  never  showing  front  again  till  he  reached 
Durham ;  from  which  place  Lord  Strafford,  who  took 
the  command,  withdrew  the  troops  to  the  border  of 
Yorkshire,  leaving  the  two  northern  counties  in  the 
hands  of  the  rebels,  who  were  in  such  distress  for 
want  of  provisions,  that  they  were  deserting  by  com- 
panies, and  must  have  disbanded,  had  they  not  effected 
the  passage  of  the  Tyne. 

The  Scottish  leaders  then  sent  a  humble  petition 
to  the  King,  who  had  arrived  at  York. 

On  the  28th  August,  a  petition  enumerating  the 
grievances'  of  the  nation,  and  praying  the  King  to 
summon  a  Parliament  as  the  only  remedy  for  them, 
was  signed  by  the  Earls  of  Bedford1,  Hertford,  Essex, 
Warwick2,  and  Bristol3,  Lords  Mulgrave,  Say  and 
Sele4,  Howard  of  Escricke5,  Bolingbroke 6,  Mande- 

1  Francis,  fourth  earl,  died  1641.     He  commenced  the  drainage  of  the 
Bedford  Level. 

2  Robert  Rich,  second  earl,  died  1658. 

3  John  Digby,   created  Earl  of   Bristol  in   1622.     He  supported  the 
Country  party  till  1642,  when  he  joined  the  King.     He  died  in  1652. 

4  William  Fiennes,  created  Viscount  Say  and   Sele,  1624.     He  died 
1662. 

5  Edward,  seventh  son  of  the  Earl  of  Suffolk,  was  created  in  1628  ; 
died  in  1675. 

6  Oliver,  Lord  St.  John  of  Bletso,  was  created  Earl  of  Bolingbroke  in 
1624;  he  died  1646. 


CHAP.  XII.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  321 

ville1,  Brooke2,  and  Paget.3  Another  petition  to  the 
same  effect  was  signed  by  10,000  citizens  of  London. 
Before  he  received  them,  Charles  had  summoned  a 
great  Council  of  the  Peers  to  meet  at  York  on  the 
24th  September. 

In  his  opening  speech  to  this  Council,  the  King 
stated,  that  he  had  ordered  writs  to  be  issued  for  a 
Parliament  to  meet  on  the  3rd  November,  and  desired 
their  advice  on  the  petition  of  the  Scottish  rebels,  and 
on  the  means  whereby  the  army  was  to  be  maintained 
until  supplies  could  be  voted  by  Parliament. 

Commissioners  were  appointed  to  meet  and  treat 
with  other  Commissioners  from  the  Scots.  To  give 
no  umbrage  to  the  latter,  the  English  Commissioners 
were  selected  from  the  •  Country  party,  the  Earl  of 
Holland,  the  only  one  of  much  interest  in  the  Court, 
being  a  determined  enemy  of  the  Earl  of  Strafford.4 

The  Commissioners  met  at  Ripon  on  the  2nd  Oc- 
tober. The  Scots  began  by  demanding  40,000/.  a- 
month  for  the  subsistence  of  their  army,  before  they 

1  Edward  Montagu,  eldest  son  of  the  Earl  of  Manchester.     He  was 
called  up  to  the  House  of  Peers  as  Lord  Kimbolton,  and  was  accused  of 
high  treason  at  the  same  time  as  the  five  members  in  1641.     After  the 
Self-denying  Ordinance  he  was   Speaker  of  the  House  of  Lords  until  the 
murder  of  Charles  I.,  from  which  time  he  never  attended  till  after  the 
Restoration.     He  died  1671. 

2  Robert  Greville,  second  lord,  was  killed  at  Lichfield  when  serving 
under  the  Parliament,  1643. 

a  William,  fifth  lord,  born  1611.  He  first  joined  the  Parliament,  but 
at  Edgehill  fought  for  the  King,  and  again  came  over  to  the  Parliament 
in  1644.  He  died  1678. 

4  Their  names  were,  the  Earls  of  Bedford,  Hertford,  Essex,  Bristol, 
Holland,  Berkshire,  Salisbury,  and  Warwick;  the  Lords  Mandeville, 
Paget,  Savile,  Dunsmore,  Howard,  Brooke,  Paulet,  Wharton. 

VOL.  II.  Y 


322  LIVES    OF    TFIE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XII. 

would  treat ;  850/.  a-day  were  agreed  upon,  but  the 
Scots  continued  to  make  difficulties  about  the  security 
of  its  payment.  On  the  26th,  a  cessation  of  arms 
was  agreed  upon,  under  conditions  strongly  demon- 
strative of  the  King's  weakness,  and  the  discussion 
of  the  treaty  was  transferred  to  London,  on  account 
of  the  approaching  meeting  of  Parliament. 


CHAP.  XIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  323 


CHAPTER  XIII. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX  —  Continued. 

THE  LONG  PARLIAMENT. EARL  OF   STRAFFORD'S   TRIAL. ESSEX  IS 

APPOINTED  LORD  LIEUTENANT  OF  YORKSHIRE  AND  LORD  CHAM- 
BERLAIN.—  THE  KING  GOES  TO  SCOTLAND,  LEAVING  ESSEX  LIEU- 
TENANT-GENERAL OF  THE  KINGDOM,  SOUTH  OF  TRENT. RETURN 

OF  THE  KING.  —  IMPEACHMENT  OF  THE  FIVE  MEMBERS. CHARLES 

LEAVES  LONDON. THE  LORD  CHAMBERLAIN  REFUSES  TO  ATTEND 

HIM. HIS  DISMISSAL. — ORDINANCE  CONCERNING  THE  MILITIA 

ESSEX  LORD  LIEUTENANT  OF  YORKSHIRE,  STAFFORDSHIRE,  MONT- 
GOMERYSHIRE, SALOP,  AND  HEREFORDSHIRE. HIS  POSITION  AT 

THIS  JUNCTURE. 

THE  Long  Parliament  met  on  the  3rd  November,  1640. 
The  position  of  parties  was  greatly  altered  in  the 
short  interval  that  had  elapsed  since  the  dissolution 
of  the  last.  The  King  had  lost  power,  popularity,  and 
respect.  Harassed  and  alarmed  by  the  spirit  which 
their  own  acts  had  so  materially  helped  to  call  up, 
he  and  his  councillors  were  without  a  plan  of  defence 
against  the  attacks  which  they  saw  impending  ;  while 
the  Country  party,  which  at  this  period  numbered  in 
its  ranks  all  the  best,  and  wisest,  and  moderate  men, 
—  Hertford,  Southampton,  Falkland,  Hyde,  all  of 
whom,  at  a  later  date,  attached  themselves  to  the  royal 
cause, — acted  with  united  energy;  and  the  Ultras, 
backed  by  the  army  of  "their  dear  brethren,"  the 
Scots,  suffered  their  countenances  to  relax  into  a 
grim  smile  of  anticipated  triumph. 

Y    2 


324  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIII. 

Charles,  shunning  the  eyes  of  his  subjects,  went 
privately  by  water  to  Westminster,  to  open  the 
session  with  a  conciliatory  speech. 

The  House  of  Commons  immediately  commenced  a 
vigorous  attack  on  the  abuses  and  grievances  of  which 
they  complained,  and  on  the  authors  and  advisers  of 
the  Church  and  State  policy. 

On  the  llth  November,  the  Earl  of  Strafford  was 
impeached  at  the  bar  of  the  House  of  Lords,  by  Mr. 
Pym,  on  behalf  of  the  Commons.  Strafford  was 
committed  to  the  custody  of  the  Gentleman  Usher, 
until  the  charges  were  brought  forward.  A  com- 
mittee of  Lords,  Essex  being  one,  was  deputed  to 
acquaint  the  King  with  the  accusation  brought  against 
his  prime  councillor. 

Clarendon  says,  that  Essex  had  openly  declared 
he  would  be  revenged  on  Strafford  for  his  rough 
treatment  of  the  Earl  of  St.  Alban's.  Whether  he 
was  influenced  by  this  feeling,  or  acted  only  in  his 
capacity  as  a  leader  of  the  Country  party  in  the 
Upper  House,  I  know  not ;  but  he  took  a  principal 
part  in  all  the  business  preliminary  to  the  trial  of  that 
nobleman  ;  moved  that  no  person  should  be  permitted 
to  visit  him  without  leave  from  the  House ;  was  on 
the  committee  for  examining  the  evidence  ;  and  took 
part  in  all  the  conferences  with  the  Commons. 

The  Earl's  trial  commenced  the  22nd  March,  1641. 
In  the  course  of  the  proceedings,  his  eloquence  and 
temper  contrasted  so  favourably  with  the  violence  of 
his  prosecutors,  as  to  gain  him  many  friends ;  which 
the  former  perceiving,  retired  to  their  House,  and 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX.  325 

passed  a  bill  of  attainder  against  Strafford,  which 
was  agreed  to  by  the  Lords  in  a  very  small  House, 
and  on  the  10th  May  received  the  royal  assent. 

The  next  day,  the  House  of  Lords  received  that 
remarkable  autograph  letter  from  the  King,  by  the 
hands  of  the  Prince  of  Wales,  in  which  he  prayed 
them  to  allow  him  to  spare  Strafford's  life.  After 
"serious  and  sad  consideration"  of  this  letter,  the 
House  deputed  twelve  Peers,  of  whom  Essex  was  one, 
to  signify  to  His  Majesty  that  neither  of  the  "  inten- 
"  tions "  expressed  in  his  letter  could  possibly  be 
advised.  They  offered  some  further  observation, 
which  Charles  interrupted,  saying,  that  what  he  in- 
tended in  his  letter  was  with  an  If;  "  If  it  may  be 
"  done  without  discontentment  to  my  people.  If 
"  that  cannot  be,  I  say  again  the  same  that  I  wrote, 
"  Fiat  Justitia."  Imprisonment  for  life  was  the  one 
"intention;"  the  other  was  expressed  in  the  well- 
known  postscript :  "If  he  must  die,  it  were  a  charity  to 
"  reprieve  him  till  Saturday,"  to  give  him  time  to 
settle  his  affairs.  The  Lords  replied,  that  "  their 
"  intention  was  to  be  suitors  to  His  Majesty,  for 
"  favor  to  be  shown  to  his  innocent  children,  that  if 
"  he  had  made  any  provision  for  them,  the  same 
"  might  hold." 

Besides  this  attempt,  Lord  Clarendon  relates  his 
own  endeavours  to  interest  Bedford  and  Essex,  the 
two  principal  men  of  that  party  in  the  House  of 
Lords,  in  favour  of  Straiford,  so  far  as  to  spare  his 
life,  to  which  the  former  seemed  well  disposed  ;  but  to 
all  Mr.  Hyde's  arguments,  Essex  turned  a  deaf  ear,  and 

Y  3  • 


326  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIII. 

made  this  reply :  —  "  Stone  dead  hath  no  fellow ;  if  he 
"  were  judged  guilty  in  a  premunire,  according  to  the 
"  precedents  cited  by  him,  or  fined  in  any  other  way, 
"  and  sentenced  to  be  imprisoned  during  life,  the 
"  King  would  presently  grant  him  his  pardon  and  his 
"  estate,  release  all  fines,  and  give  him  his  liberty  as 
"  soon  as  he  had  a  mind  to  receive  his  service,  which 
"  would  be  as  soon  as  the  Parliament  should  be 
"  ended." 

The  attachment  of  Strafford  was  followed  by  that 
of  Archbishop  Laud,  of  Lord  Keeper  Finch,  and 
Secretary  Windebank,  the  two  last  of  whom  saved 
themselves  by  flight. 

Ship-money  was  declared  an  illegal  impost,  and 
the  judgments  reversed ;  bills  were  passed  for  trien- 
nial Parliaments,  the  abolition  of  the  Courts  of  Star 
Chamber  and  High  Commission,  with  many  other 
measures,  all  tending  to  curtail  the  prerogative,  and 
establish  the  authority  of  Parliament. 

Lord  Essex,  though  a  leader  of  his  party,  was  an 
indifferent  speaker ;  he  appears  to  have  been  elected 
to  that  position  on  account  of  his  popularity,  the 
general  esteem  in  which  he  was  held,  and  his  great 
experience  in  parliamentary  business.  He  was  on 
the  committee  about  Northern  business,  the  Com- 
mittee of  Safety,  and  of  inquiry  into  the  proceedings 
prior  to  the  treaty  of  Ripon,  besides  many  others. 

On  the  8th  May,  the  two  Houses  sent  an  address 
to  the  King,  praying  him  to  appoint  the  Earl  of  Essex 
Lord  Lieutenant  of  Yorkshire,  for  that  "  out  of  the 
u  confidence  and  good  opinion  which  the  gentlemen 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  327 

"  of  that  country  had  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  and  of  his 
"  care  for  the  commonwealth,  they  will  be  ready  to 
"  serve  under  him  in  defence  thereof."  Here  again 
Charles  showed  his  remarkable  talent  for  turning 
what  might  have  been  a  favour  into  an  offence.  He 
deferred  his  answer  to  this  address,  and  gave  the  ap- 
pointment to  Lord  Savile1,  a  man  of  infamous  cha- 
racter, who  on  a  second  address  from  the  Houses,  on 
the  19th,  was  compelled  to  resign  his  new  honours, 
while  the  King  declared  his  willingness  to  confer  the 
office  upon  Essex. 

There  had  been  an  intention  of  bringing  into  office 
the  leaders  of  the  popular  party,  which  was  frustrated 
by  the  sudden  death  of  the  Earl  of  Bedford  in  May. 
In  July,  however,  Hertford,  created  a  Marquis,  was 
appointed  Governor  to  the  Prince,  Essex,  Lord 
Chamberlain,  Leicester,  Lord  Lieutenant  of  Ireland, 
Say  and  Sele,  Master  of  the  Wards.  These  ap- 
pointments, with  that  of  Oliver  St.  John  to  be 
Solicitor-General,  produced  the  effect  intended  by 
them;  and,  showing  that  Charles  was  willing  to 
select  his  advisers  from  among  the  Constitutional 
party,  the  feeling  of  animosity  towards  him  began  to 
subside. 

On  the  10th  August,  the  King  went  to  Scotland, 
leaving  the  Lord  Keeper  Littleton,  the  Earl  of  Man- 
chester, Lord  Privy  Seal,  the  Earl  of  Lindsey,  Lord 
Great  Chamberlain,  and  the  Earl  of  Essex,  Lord 

1  Thomas,  second  Lord  Savile,  first  Viscount  Castlebar  in  Ireland,  was 
created  Earl  of  Sussex  in  1644.  He  died  1646,  and  the  titles  became 
extinct  in  his  son,  1671. 

Y  4 


328  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XIII. 

Chamberlain,  Commissioners  to  give  the  royal  assent 
to  bills  during  his  absence.  Essex  was  likewise  ap- 
pointed the  King's  Lieutenant,  and  Captain  General 
of  all  forces  south  of  Trent. 

It  was  during  the  absence  of  Charles  in  Scotland, 
that  the  advancing  strides  of  what  Mr.  Hallarn  terms 
the  "  spirit  of  ecclesiastical  democracy,"  alarmed  the 
moderate  reformers  and  the  lovers  of  the  Established 
Church,  and  produced  a  schism  in  the  Constitutional 
party,  which  was  widened  by  successive  events. 

We  have  the  testimony  of  Clarendon,  that  Essex, 
although  he  continued  in  the  ranks  of  opposition,  was 
yet  a  zealous  member  of  the  English  Church :  "  He 
"  was  rather  displeased  with  the  Archbishop  than 
"  unde voted  to  the  function  ;  towards  some  of  the 
"  less  formal  prelates  he  had  great  reverence ;  and  he 
"  was  as  much  devoted  as  any  man  to  the  Book  of 
"  Common  Prayer,  and  obliged  all  his  servants  to  be 
"  constantly  present  with  him  at  it ;  his  household 
"  chaplain  being  always  a  most  conformable  man, 
"  and  a  good  scholar." 

The  feelings  which  were  fostered  by  the  extreme 
anti-episcopal  party,  gave  rise  to  acts  thus  described 
by  a  Mr.  Wiseman,  in  a  letter  to  Admiral  Sir  John 
Pennington,  of  the  7th  September1 :  "  We  have  had 
"  the  most  pestilent  libels  spread  abroad  against  the 
"  Peerage,  Lords  and  Commons  of  the  Parliament, 
"  that  they  are  fearful  to  be  named  ;  and  the  Brown- 
"  ists  and  other  sectaries  make  such  havoc  in  our 

1  S.  P.  O.  1641. 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  329 

"  churches,  by  pulling  down  of  ancient  monuments, 
"  glass  windows,  and  rails,  that  their  madness  is  in- 
"  tolerable.  I  think  it  will  be  thought  blasphemy 
"  shortly  to  name  Jesus  Christ,  for  it  is  already  for- 
"  bidden  to  bow  at  his  name  ;  though  both  Scripture, 
"  and  the  practice  of  the  Church  of  England,  do  both 
"  warrant  and  commend  it." 

Charles  returned  to  London  on  the  25th  November, 
and  the  revival  of  loyal  feelings  was  strongly  marked 
in  the   manner   of   his   reception.1     To   check  this, 
a  Remonstrance   on   the    state    of  the    nation   was 
carried  in  the  Commons  by  a  small  majority  in  a  full 
House.     One  effect  of  this  Remonstrance  was  to  rouse 
the  anger  of  the  populace  against  the  Bishops.     On 
the  return  of  the  King  from  Scotland,  and  the  con- 
sequent abrogation  of  Essex's  commission,  the  guard, 
which  by  his  order  had  protected  the  Houses,  was 
dismissed.     Mobs  of  armed  men  paraded  the  streets 
to  protect  the  Parliament,  as  they  termed  it ;  others 
assembled  at  Whitehall,  to  defend  the  King  from  any 
violence.     These  parties  came  into  frequent  collision. 
Mr.  Smith  writes  to  Admiral  Sir.  J.  Pennington  on 
the   29th    December 2 :    "  The    Prentices    and    our 
"  soldiers  have  lately  had  some  bickering,  wherein 
"  many   of  the  Prentices   were  wounded,   and  lost 
"  their  cloaks  and  hats  ;  this  was  done  yesterday  at 
"  Whitehall  Gate,  as  the  Prentices  were  coming  from 

1  He  was  feasted  with  great  pomp  and  solemnity,  see  May,  88,  89. ; 
who  also  says  the  Remonstrance  was  worded  as  tenderly  as  was  compa- 
tible with  the  utterance  of  such  disagreeable  truths. 

2  S.  P.  O. 


330  LIVES    OF    THE    EAKLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIII. 

"  demanding  an  answer  on  their  petition  lately  ex- 
"  hibited  to  the  Parliament  House.  The  soldiers  con- 
"  tinue  in  great  numbers  in  Whitehall.  These 
"  wounds  of  the  Prentices  have  so  exasperated  them, 
"  that  it  is  feared  they  will  be  at  Whitehall  this  day, 
"  to  the  number  of  10,000.  Neither  do  the  Houses 
"  and  King  agree  so  well  as  I  could  wish,  the  Jesuit- 
"  ical  faction,  according  to  their  wonted  custom, 
"  fomenting  still  jealousies  between  the  Kihg  and  his 
"  people,  and  the  Bishops  continually  concurring 
"  with  the  Popish  Lords  against  the  passing  any 
"  good  Bills  sent  from  the  House  of  Commons 
"  thither." 

The  petition  alluded  to  was  probably  that  sent 
from  the  City,  complaining  of  the  appointment  of 
Colonel  Lunsford  to  be  Lieutenant  of  the  Tower,  in 
place  of  Sir  William  Balfour. 

The  Apprentices  at  this  period  wore  their  hair  cut 
round ;  on  the  occasion  of  this  riot,  one  Captain 
Hyde,  drawing  his  sword  in  the  midst  of  the  mob, 
cried  that  he  would  crop  the  ears  of  those  round- 
headed  dogs  that  bawled  against  the  Bishops,  and 
thus  originated  the  name  of  Roundheads. 

On  the  3rd  January,  1642,  Herbert,  the  Attorney- 
General,  accused  Lord  Kimbolton,  and  five  members 
of  the  House  of  Commons,  Pym,  Hampden,  Holies, 
Haslerig,  and  Strode,  of  high  treason.  The  next 
day,  irritated  at  the  accused  persons  being  still  at 
large,  Charles  took  the  fatal  step  of  going  down  in 
person  to  the  House  of  Commons  to  demand  the 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  331 

five  members.1  That  scene  has  been  so  often 
described,  that  it  need  not  be  repeated  here ;  but 
from  the  same  letter  which  contains  an  account  of  it, 
I  have  extracted  an  account  of  the  King's  going  to 
Guildhall  the  day  after,  to  endeavour  to  reconcile  the 
citizens  to  the  violent  act  of  the  4th.2 

"  Yesterday  it  was  my  fortune,  being  in  a  coach, 
"  to  meet  the  King  with  a  small  train,  going  into 
"  the  city ;  whereupon  I  followed  him  to  Guild  Hall, 
"  where  the  Mayor,  Aldermen,  and  Common  Council 
"  were  met.  The  King  made  a  speech  to  them, 
"  declaring  his  intentions  to  join  with  the  Parlia- 
"  ment  in  extirpation  of  Popery,  and  all  schisms  and 
"  sectaries,  of  redressing  of  all  grievances  of  the 
"  subject,  and  his  care  to  preserve  the  privileges  of 
"  Parliament.  "  He  had  some  familiar  discourse  with 
a  the  Aldermen,  and  invited  himself  to  dinner  with 
"  the  Sheriff.  After  a  little  space,  a  cry  rose  up 
"  among  the  Common  Councilmen,  '  Parliament ! 
"  Privileges  of  Parliament ! '  and  presently  another, 
"  '  God  bless  the  King ! '  These  continued  a  good 
"  while,  I  know  not  which  was  loudest.  After  some 
"  knocking  for  silence,  the  King  commanded  one  to 
"  speak  if  they  had  any  thing  to  say.  One  said,  '  It 

1  It  is  to  be  remarked,  that  only  the  day  before  the  King  committed 
this  act,  which  without  strength  to  enforce  his  will  was  one  of  sheer  folly, 
he  had  refused  the  petition  of  Parliament  to  be  allowed  a  guard  for  their 
protection,  under  the  command  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  with  these  words, 
given  on  the  faith  of  a  king  — "  that  the  security  of  all  and  every  one  of 
them  from  violence,  was  and  ever  should  be  as  much  his  care,  as  the  pre- 
servation of  himself  and  his  children." — May,  p.  91. 

2  A  letter  from  Captain  Slingsby  of  the  6th  January,  in  S.  P.  O. 


332  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIII. 

"  is  the  vote  of  this  Court  that  your  Majesty  hear  the 
"  advice  of  your  Parliament.'  Another  presently 
"  answered,  '  It  is  not  the  vote  of  this  Court,  it  is 
"  your  own  vote.'  The  King  replied,  '  Who  is  it 
"  that  says  I  do  not  take  the  advice  of  my  Parlia- 
"  ment  ?  I  do  take  their  advice,  and  will ;  but  I 
"  must  distinguish  between  the  Parliament  and 
"  some  traitors  in  it,  and  those  I  will  bring  to  legal 
"  trial.'  Another  bold  fellow  in  the  lowest  rank, 
"  stood  up  on  a  form  and  cried,  '  The  Privilege  of 
"  Parliament ! '  Another  cried  out,  '  Observe  the  man, 
"  apprehend  him  ! '  The  King  mildly  replied,  '  I 
"  have  and  will  observe  the  privilege  of  Parlia- 
"  ment,  but  no  privilege  can  protect  a  traitor  from 
"  a  legal  trial ; '  and  so  departed.  In  the  outer  hall 
"  were  a  multitude  of  the  rude  people,  who,  as  the 
"  King  went  out,  set  up  a  great  cry  of  Privilege  of 
"  Parliament." 

The  House  of  Commons  adjourned  till  the  llth, 
appointing  a  committee  to  sit  daily  at  Guildhall  to 
consider  of  the  means  of  vindicating  the  privileges 
of  Parliament,  and  of  providing  for  the  safety  of  the 
kingdom.  They  did  not  omit  likewise  to  arrange  a 
triumphal  return  to  the  House  for  the  five  accused 
members. 

To  avoid  this  humiliating  spectacle,  and  even  per- 
sonal danger  from  the  tumultuous  assemblies  about 
Whitehall,  Charles  quitted  London  on  the  10th 
January,  for  Hampton  Court,  from  which  place  he 
moved  to  Windsor,  and  afterwards  to  York,  where 
he  arrived  on  the  19th  March,  accompanied  by  the 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  333 

Prince  of  Wales  arid  Duke  of  York,  the  Queen 
having  gone  over  to  Holland  with  the  Princess  Mary 
in  February,  carrying  with  her  the  Crown  jewels. 

On  the  14th  January,  the  Earl  of  Essex  acquainted 
the  House  of  Lords  that  the  King  had  commanded 
himself  and  the  Earl  of  Holland  to  attend  him  at 
Hampton  Court,  in  their  places  as  Lord  Chamberlain 
and  Groom  of  the  Stole;  on  which  it  was  resolved 
by  the  House  not  to  dispense  with  their  presence, 
which  excuse  they  made  to  the  King  for  disobeying 
the  order. 

On  the  28th  March,  Essex  laid  before  the  House 
the  following  letter  from  the  King,  repeating  his 
former  order.  Similar  letters  were  likewise  sent  to 
Lords  Holland,  Salisbury,  and  Savile,  which  were 
taken  into  consideration  as  matters  of  great  im- 
portance, and  it  was  again  resolved  that  these  Lords 
should  not  go. 

No.  LIV.1 
The  King  to  Essex. 

CHARLES  K. 

Right  Trusty,  and  Right  Well-beloved  Cousin  and  Coun- 
cillor, We  greet  you  well.  Whereas  We  are  resolved  to 
keep  Our  Easter  and  St.  George's  Feast  in  this  Our  city  of 
York ;  We  hold  it  therefore  very  requisite  and  necessary, 
that  for  Our  honor  and  service,  the  chief  officers  of  Our 
house  attend  us  here  in  person,  Our  will  and  command 
therefore  is,  that  you  repair  hither  to  Our  Court  as  soon  as 
you  may  conveniently,  to  give  your  attendance  in  the  place 
and  charge  which  you  hold  under  Us,  as  a  Prime  Officer  of 

1  Lords'  Journal,  iv.  675. 


3 3 '1  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XTIT. 

Our  house,  and  Counsellor  of  State  ;  wherein,  as  we  doubt  not 
your  ready  observance  of  this  Our  command,  so  We  shall  ex- 
pect your  present  answer  thereunto. 

Given  at  Our  Court  at  York,  the  23rd  of  March,  1642. 

This  was  followed  by  another  more  peremptory 
letter,  which  was  laid  before  the  House  by  Lord 
Essex  on  the  12th  April.  By  this  letter  it  appears, 
that  when  the  King  went  to  Hampton  Court,  he  had 
offered  to  resign  his  staff  rather  than  quit  his  par- 
liamentary duties,  and  that  the  King  refused  to 
accept  his  resignation.  This  fact,  in  some  degree, 
excuses  Lord  Essex  for  having,  as  it  were,  set  up  the 
authority  of  the  House  of  Lords  against  that  of  the 
King,  in  respect  to  an  office  in  the  royal  household. 

No.  LV.1 
The  King  to  Essex. 

Right  Trusty  and  Right  Well-beloved  Cousin  and  Councillor, 
We  greet  you  well.  We  are  so  much  unsatisfied  with  the 
excuse  you  made  for  not  obeying  Our  command,  for  your  at- 
tendance on  Us  here,  according  to  the  duty  of  your  place  in 
Our  household,  that  We  thought  good  by  these  Our  letters  to 
second  our  former  command  ;  and  that  you  may  be  the  more 
inexcusable,  We  have  accompanied  Our  said  command  with 
Our  license  and  dispensation  inclosed,  for  your  absence  from 
Parliament,  willing  and  commanding  you,  all  delays  and  ex- 
cuses set  apart,  to  attend  Us  here  before  the  18th  of  this 
month,  when  We  have  appointed  to  keep  St.  George's  Feast. 
Or,  in  case  you  shall  persist  in  your  disobedience,  We  then 
require  and  command  you  to  deliver  up  into  the  hands  of  the 

1  Lords'  Journal. 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  335 

Lord  Falkland,  one  of  Our  Principal  Secretaries  of  State, 
for  Our  use,  the  ensigns  of  your  office,  which,  when  We  last 
parted  from  Whitehall,  you  offered  to  resign  to  Us,  rather 
than  you  would  at  that  time,  as  We  commanded  you,  wait  on 
Us  so  far  as  Hampton  Court ;  but  We  did  then,  of  Our 
grace  and  favor,  wish  you  to  consider  of  it,  in  hopes  you 
would,  upon  further  consideration,  not  have  seconded  that 
disobedience. 

Given  at  Our  Court  at  York,  April  the  9th,  1642. 

Not  satisfied  with  preventing  these  noblemen  from 
giving  their  personal  attendance  on  the  King,  the  two 
Houses  passed  resolutions  that  the  Earls  of  Essex  and 
Holland  did  not  disobey  the  King  by  attending  Par- 
liament; that  the  displacing  them  was  a  breach  of 
privilege,  an  injury  to  the  Parliament  and  to  the 
whole  kingdom  ;  that  whosoever  accepted  those  offices 
should  be  considered  to  offer  an  affront  to  Parliament ; 
and  that  such  proceedings  tended  to  discourage  good 
men  from  doing  their  duty,  and  to  increase  the 
division  between  the  King  and  his  people. 

The  attempt  made  by  Charles  to  arrest  the  five 
members  of  the  House  of  Commons  who  were  most 
obnoxious  to  him,  was  retaliated  by  the  most  de- 
termined attack  yet  made  on  the  royal  prerogative, 
which  was  the  immediate  cause  of  the  civil  war.  On 
the  20th  January,  the  House  of  Lords  rejected  an 
address  to  the  King  to  place  the  Tower  of  London, 
the  forts  and  militia  of  the  kingdom,  in  such  hands 
as  Parliament  could  trust.  Essex  entered  a  protest 
against  this  vote,  which  was  signed  by  thirty-one 
other  Peers. 


336  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIII. 

The  Commons,  by  themselves,  then  addressed  the 
King.  His  answer  was  laid  before  both  Houses,  who 
voted  that  the  advisers  of  it  were  malignant,  and  the 
Lords  declared  they  would  join  the  Commons  in  a 
second  address.  The  Earl  of  Northampton1,  and 
Lord  Willoughby  of  Eresby,  were  sent  from  the 
Lords  to  present  it. 

The  Houses  immediately  proceeded  to  pass  the 
ordinance  concerning  the  militia,  and  to  nominate 
Lords  Lieutenants  for  the  several  counties.  The 
King  refused  his  assent;  Parliament  declared  that 
they  would  dispose  of  the  militia  without  the  King. 
On  the  2nd  March,  it  was  resolved,  that  "the  kingdom 
"  be  forthwith  put  into  a  posture  of  defence  by  au- 
"  thority  of  both  Houses,"  which  was  protested 
against  by  the  Earls  of  Lindsey,  Bath2,  Southampton, 
Northampton,  Lord  Willoughby  of  Eresby,  and 
others,  in  all  thirteen  Peers.  On  the  5th  March, 
the  two  Houses  passed  the  ordinance  on  their  own 
authority. 

As  the  Parliament  may  be  considered  as  having, 
by  this  act,  declared  open  war  against  the  pre- 
rogatives, if  not  the  person,  of  the  King,  we  will 
pause  for  an  instant  to  note  the  position  of  the  Earl 
of  Essex  at  this  critical  juncture,  when  he  was  about 
to  fill  so  important  a  post  as  that  of  General  of  an 
army  levying  war  against  his  Sovereign. 

The  popularity  and   influence  of  the  Earl  were 

1  Spenser  Compton,  second  Earl  of  Northampton,  died  in  1642. 

2  Henry  Bourchier,  fifth  Earl  of  Bath,  died  1654,  when  the  title  be- 
came extinct. 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  337 

so  highly  rated  by  Lord  Clarendon,  that  he  does 
not  hesitate  to  assert,  that  if  Essex  had  not  con- 
sented to  be  General,  the  Parliament  would  have 
been  utterly  unable  to  raise  an  army.  Without 
giving  credence  to  this  assertion  in  its  fullest  sense, 
this  much  must  be  conceded,  that  the  person  of 
whose  importance  such  an  opinion  could  be  advanced, 
must  have  been  a  most  desirable  ally  to  either  party ; 
and  it  might  therefore  have  been  expected  that  the 
King  would  conciliate  the  man  whose  influence  was 
sufficient  to  turn  the  scale  in  favour  of  the  party  he 
espoused.  But  in  this,  as  in  all  other  cases,  Charles 
acted  with  that  obstinate  ill  judgment  which  was  one 
of  his  characteristics,  and  precisely  in  proportion  as 
the  Earl  of  Essex  received  caresses  and  flatteries 
from  the  constitutional  party,  did  the  King  show  him 
coldness  and  disfavour. 

The  Parliament  nominated  Lord  Essex  Lord  Lieu- 
tenant of  Yorkshire,  Staffordshire,  and  Montgomery- 
shire, to  which  were  afterwards  added  Shropshire 
and  Herefordshire.  As  the  power  of  calling  the 
population  of  the  counties  to  arms  was  vested  in  the 
Lords  Lieutenants,  these  appointments  added  vastly 
to  his  dignity  and  influence.  This  power  should  un- 
questionably have  been  exercised  under  the  King ; 
but  the  party  to  which  Essex  attached  himself  was, 
at  this  time,  chiefly  engaged  in  destroying  the  pre- 
rogatives of  the  Crown. 

Yet  it  is  beyond  a  doubt,  that  between  the  opinions 
of  Essex  himself,  and  those  of  Hertford  and  the 
other  Lords  who  had  joined  the  King,  there  was  but 

VOL.  n.  z 


338  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIII. 

a  shade  of  difference ;  that  Essex  was  no  more  an 
advocate  for  the  abolition  of  royalty  and  the  destruc- 
tion of  the  Church  of  England,  than  Hertford,  Falk- 
land, and  Southampton  were  friendly  to  the  exercise 
of  arbitrary  power  by  the  King. 

Clarendon  says  that  Essex  expressed  to  his  friends 
a  desire  that  the  Parliament  should  be  more  mode- 
rate, and  that  "  the  King,  who  had  given  so  much, 
"  should  receive  some  satisfaction ; "  and  that  he 
was  prevented  from  making  any  approach  towards 
the  King  by  reports  of  hard  words  Charles  was  said 
to  have  used  concerning  him  at  York.  In  another 
passage,  the  same  author  observes,  that  Essex,  believ- 
ing he  should  be  General  in  the  Houses  as  well  as  in 
the  field,  and  be  able  to  restrain  their  passions  and 
govern  their  councils,  as  well  as  to  fight  their  battles, 
and  by  these  means  become  the  preserver  of  the  King 
and  kingdom,  launched  into  that  stormy  sea  where 
he  found  no  safe  harbour. 

Lord  Essex  might  have  been  influenced  by  the 
feelings  and  expectations  here  described,  which,  with 
our  greater  experience  of  revolutions,  appear  so 
visionary.  Where  is  to  be  found  the  man  who  can 
say  to  the  torrent  of  revolution,  Thus  far,  and  no 
farther,  shalt  thou  go  ?  To  oppose  it  is  a  vain  effort ; 
the  man  who  does  so  is  certain  to  be  overturned, 
overwhelmed,  and  lost.  Unguided,  it  rushes  impetu- 
ously on,  uprooting  all  obstacles,  until,  its  course  im- 
peded by  the  wreck  borne  on  its  own  bosom,  the 
stream  separates  into  a  thousand  channels,  each  of 
which  runs  brawling  along,  powerless  and  useless. 


CHAP.  XIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  339 

A  skilful  leader,  while  seeming  to  be  carried  with 
the  current,  may  guide  and  keep  it  within  due 
bounds,  until  it  settles  into  a  broad,  majestic,  and 
beneficial  stream. 

Rarely  may  such  a  leader  be  found,  and  certainly 
Essex  was  not  the  man  to  fill  the  post.  His  abilities 
were  not  of  a  commanding  order ;  he  was  neither  a 
skilful  tactician,  nor  a  demagogue  ;  he  was  a  proud, 
plain-dealing,  punctilious  man  of  honour,  forced  by 
circumstances  to  take  the  lead  in  a  movement  of 
which  he  did  but  half  approve.  The  result  was, 
that  instead  of  staying  or  guiding  the  torrent,  and 
saving  the  kingdom,  his  name,  his  reputation,  and  his 
influence  only  served  as  a  stepping-stone  to  those 
able  and  unscrupulous  men,  of  iron  will  and  stern 
enthusiasm,  who,  in  carrying  out  their  passionate 
declaration  of  undying  hatred  to  tyranny  and  bigotry, 
murdered  their  lawful  sovereign,  and  in  the  place  of 
the  reverential  observances  and  beautiful  prayers  of 
the  Church  of  England,  set  up  a  familiar  and  profane 
cant. 


z  2 


340  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.        CHAP.  XIV. 


CHAPTER  XIV. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX  —  Continued. 

PROGRESS   OF   EVENTS. ESSEX    APPOINTED   CAPTAIN   GENERAL     BY 

THE    PARLIAMENT. HE    IS   PROCLAIMED  A    REBEL    BY  THE    KING. 

THE    STANDARD   RAISED    BY     THE     KING.  PARLIAMENT    ARMY 

ASSEMBLES  AT  NORTHAMPTON. —ESSEX  MARCHES  TO  WORCESTER. 
—  HIS  SPEECH  TO  THE  ARMY.  —  BATTLE  OP  EDGEHILL.  —  SUB- 
SEQUENT PROCEEDINGS. ATTEMPT  TO  NEGOTIATE. — ACTION  AT 

BRENTFORD. KING  CHARLES  RETIRES  TO  OATLANDS,  AND  OX- 
FORD.—  ESSEX  ESTABLISHES  HEAD  QUARTERS  AT  WINDSOR. 

How  Lord  Essex  reconciled  his  actions  and  his. 
declaration  of  loyalty,  it  is  not  easy  to  understand. 
It  is  clear  that  for  months  past  Parliament  had  been 
attacking  the  authority  of  the  King,  and  had  denied 
him  the  exercise  of  his  irrefragable  rights  and  prero- 
gatives. In  times  of  intense  and  growing  excitement, 
such  as  we  are  now  considering,  the  minds  of  men 
are  warped  by  their  passions  and  prepossessions,  and 
as  correspondence  ceased  or  was  destroyed,  private 
opinions  are  no  longer  laid  before  us  ;  I  would  there- 
fore conclude,  that  the  ambition  of  leading  a  great 
party,  and  of  being  a  principal  means  in  humbling  the 
Sovereign  by  whom  he  conceived  he  had  been  ill-used, 
added  to  the  suspicions  he  entertained  of  Charles's 
sincerity,  led  Lord  Essex  to  adopt  a  line  of  conduct 
which  was  certainly  inconsistent  with  his  professions 


CHAP.  XIV.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  341 

of  loyalty.  It  must  be  remembered  that  the  Royal- 
ists evinced,  by  their  extreme  reluctance  to  take  arms, 
by  their  desire  of  accommodation,  as  well  as  by  the 
character  of  their  most  respected  leaders,  that  the 
cause  for  which  they  fought  was  not  so  much  that 
of  Charles  the  King,  as  of  the  constitution  of  the 
country ;  for  the  conduct  of  the  leaders  of  the  Par- 
liament could  not  but  raise  grave  suspicions  of  their 
intention  to  overturn  both  Church  and  State. 

A  brief  narration  of  events  will  bring  us  from  the 
virtual  declaration  of  war,  by  the  resolutions  of  the 
2nd  March,  1642,  to  the  actual  commencement  of 
hostilities. 

In  April,  Sir  John  Hotham,  Governor  of  Hull,  in 
which  town  there  was  a  great  store  of  arms,  refused 
to  admit  the  King  within  its  gates  ;  Charles  declared 
him  guilty  of  treason  ;  the  Parliament  voted  that  he 
had  only  acted  in  obedience  to  the  Houses,  and  that 
to  declare  him  a  traitor  was  a  high  breach  of 
privilege. 

On  the  5th  May,  Parliament  ordered  those  in 
authority  to  put  in  force  the  Militia  Ordinance. 
The  King  issued  orders  to  raise  a  guard  for  his 
person,  which  Parliament  voted  to  be  a  preparation 
for  war  against  them,  and  a  breach  of  the  trust 
reposed  in  him  by  his  people. 

On  the  3rd  June,  Parliament  sent  the  "  nineteen 
"  propositions "  to  the  King,  as  a  foundation  for 
ending  all  differences.  These  were  rejected  by 
Charles  as  subversive  of  his  regal  rights;  which, 
indeed,  they  were  so  entirely,  that  the  frarners  of 

z  3 


342  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

them  could  have  had  no  expectation  that  the  King 
would  entertain  them  favourably. 

On  the  10th  June,  the  King  issued  Commissions  of 
Array ;  and  on  the  same  day,  the  Lords  and  Commons 
at  Westminster  subscribed  money  and  horses  for  the 
public  service.  Eighteen  Peers  subscribed  10,300£., 
and  296  horses ;  the  largest  subscribers  were,  the 
Earl  of  Northumberland  2000/.,  the  Earl  of  Essex 
and  Lord  Brooke  1000/.  and  20  horses  each,  the 
Earl  of  Pembroke  WOOL  and  40  horses.  By  horses 
were  meant  horse  soldiers  fully  armed.  As  an  in- 
stance of  the  unsettled  state  of  men's  minds  up  to  this 
moment,  as  to  which  side  they  should  espouse,  it  may 
be  mentioned  that  Lord  Paget  subscribed  ten  horses, 
and  the  following  day  left  London  to  join  the  King.1 

On  the  12th  July,  after  a  long  debate,  it  was  re- 
solved that  an  army  should  be  raised  ;  that  the  Earl 
of  Essex  should  be  their  General,  with  whom  they 
would  live  and  die ;  and  that  a  petition  should  be 
sent  to  His  Majesty,  to  move  him  to  a  good  accord 
with  his  Parliament,  to  prevent  a  civil  war. 

This  petition  was  answered  by  the  King  on  the 
9th  August.  He  sent  a  letter  to  the  Speaker  of  the 
House  of  Lords,  enclosing  "a  proclamation  for  the 
"  suppressing  the  present  rebellion  under  Robert, 
"  Earl  of  Essex,  and  the  gracious  offer  of  His 
"  Majesty's  free  pardon  to  him,  and  to  all  such 
"  of  his  adherents  as,  within  six  days  after  the  date 
hereof,  will  lay  down  their  arms." 


u 


1  From  this  time  the  names  of  Royalists  or  Cavaliers,  and  Parlia- 
mentarians or  Roundheads,  came  into  general  use. 


CHAP.  XIV.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  343 

This  was  read  in  the  House  on  the  llth.  when 
Lord  Essex  rose  and  said,  that  although  it  had  pleased 
His  Majesty  to  proclaim  him  a  traitor,  yet  his  heart 
was  as  true  and  upright  to  his  King  and  country  as 
any  subject's  in  England  whatever.  And  as  the  Lords 
and  Commons  had  declared  that  they  would  assist 
him,  and  justify  his  proceedings  as  General  of  the 
army  raised  for  the  present  expedition,  so  he  would 
use  his  best  and  most  faithful  endeavours  and  skill  in 
the  managing  and  putting  in  execution  the  trust  they 
reposed  in  him,  and  that  neither  threats,  favours,  nor 
anything  else  should  divert  or  discourage  him  from 
his  intentions  in  the  behalf  of  this  cause,  though  it 
were  at  the  loss  of  his  dearest  blood.1 

The  following  day  the  Houses  passed  a  declaration 
and  resolutions  concerning  the  royal  proclamation, 
from  which  the  following  is  an  extract:  "  That 
"  whereas  the  Lords  and  Commons  in  Parliament 
"  did  formerly  choose  the  Earl  of  Essex  to  be 
"  Captain  General  of  such  forces  as  are  or  shall 
"  be  raised  for  the  maintenance  and  preservation  of 
"  the  true  Protestant  religion,  the  King's  person, 
"  the  laws  of  the  land,  the  peace  of  the  kingdom, 
"  the  liberty  and  property  of  the  subject,  and  the 
"  rights  and  privileges  of  Parliament;  this  House 
"  doth  now  declare  that  they  will  maintain  and 
"  adhere  to  him  the  said  Earl  with  their  lives  and 
"  estates  in  the  same  cause." 

1  From  a  tract  in  the  Brit.  Mus. 
z  4 


344  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

In  the  beginning  of  August,  Portsmouth,  influenced 
by  Colonel  Goring,  the  Governor,  declared  for  the 
King ;  a  blockade  by  sea  and  land  was  established 
against  the  place,  and  Goring,  disappointed  in  his 
expectation  of  being  relieved  by  the  Marquis  of 
Hertford,  was  compelled  to  capitulate.  Hertford, 
who  had  been  sent  with  a  Commission  of  Array  into 
the  West,  had  a  skirmish  with  the  Earl  of  Bedford 
near  Sherborne,  and  on  the  24th,  another  skirmish 
took  place  on  Dunsmore  Heath,  Warwickshire,  be- 
tween the  forces  under  the  Earl  of  Northampton,  and 
Lord  Brooke. 

On  the  22nd  August  the  King  raised  the  standard 
at  Nottingham,  a  ceremony  which  was  considered 
equivalent  to  a  declaration  of  war. 

On  the  15th  September,  Secretary  Nicholas, 
writing  from  Derby,  informs  Sir  William  Boswell  that 
"  the  King  marched  from  Nottingham  the  Tuesday 
"  before — the  13th, — with  500  horse,  five  regiments 
"  of  foot,  and  twelve  pieces  of  artillery.  The  trained 
"  bands  met  him  seven  miles  from  Nottingham, 
"  whereof  500  volunteered  for  the  King,  and  the  rest 
"  were  disarmed."  Charles  proceeded  to  Shrewsbury 
to  recruit  his  army,  almost  all  the  people  of  those 
parts  being  Eoyalists. 

Before  leaving  Nottingham,  Charles  made  one  more 
effort  to  negotiate  with  the  Parliament.  He  sent 
the  Earl  of  Southampton,  Sir  John  Colepepper,  and 
Sir  William  Uvedale,  with  a  proposal  to  the  Houses 
to  appoint  commissioners  on  both  sides.  The  Houses 
refused  to  treat  with  a  King  who  had  raised  his 


CHAP.  XIV.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF    ESSEX.  345 

standard  against  the  Parliament,  and  had  declared 
their  General  a  traitor. 

On  the  9th  September,  the  Earl  of  Essex  set  out 
from  Essex  House  to  assume  the  command  of  the 
Parliamentarian  army. 

He  was  attended  with  great  solemnity  to  the  out- 
skirts of  the  city  by  the  trained  bands,  and  by  many 
members  of  both  Houses.  "  But  the  love  and  wishes  of 
"  the  people  that  did  attend  him,  were  far  greater  than 
"  any  outward  signification  could  express  ;  to  whom 
"  he  seemed  at  that  time,  though  going  to  a  civil  war, 
"  as  much  an  Englishman,  and  as  true  a  patriot, 
"  as  if  he  had  gone  against  a  foreign  enemy.  Great 
"  was  the  love  and  honor  which  the  people  in  gene- 
"  ral  bore  to  his  person,  in  regard  of  his  own  virtue 
"  and  honorable  demeanor ;  and  much  increased  by 
"  the  memory  of  his  noble  father,  the  highest  ex- 
"  ample  that  ever  I  yet  read,  of  a  favorite  both  to 
"  Prince  and  people ;  of  whom  that  was  most  true 
"  which  Velleius  Paterculus  speaks  with  flattery  and 
a  falsehood  of  Sejanus,  In  quo  cum  judicio  Principis 
"  certabant  studia  populi,  the  people's  love  strove  to 
"  match  the  Prince's  judgment/' 1 

From  St.  Alban's,  where  his  head  quarters  were, 
Lord  Essex  proceeded  to  the  general  rendezvous  at 
Northampton,  at  which  place  about  20,000  men 
assembled. 

He  was  required  by  his  instructions  from  the 
Parliament  to  restrain  all  impieties  and  profaneness, 
and  all  plundering  ;  to  use  his  utmost  endeavours  to 

1  May,  162. 


346  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

rescue  His  Majesty's  person,  and  the  Prince,  and  the 
Duke  of  York,  by  battle  or  otherwise,  out  of  the 
hands  of  the  desperate  persons  then  about  them ;  to 
present  to  the  King  the  petition1  entrusted  to  him  ; 
to  offer  pardon  to  all  who  would  withdraw  from  the 
King,  excepting  the  Duke  of  Richmond,  the  Earls  of 
Bristol,  Cumberland,  Newcastle,  Rivers,  and  Car- 
narvon, Viscounts  Newark  and  Falkland,  and  Messrs. 
Edward  Hyde,  Endymion  Porter,  and  Secretary 
Nicholas ;  to  receive  contributions ;  to  protect  the 
good  people ;  to  apprehend  delinquents ;  and  to 
protect  the  persons  of  all  His  Majesty's  loving  sub- 
jects against  violence  and  rapine  by  any  Cavaliers  of 
the  King's  pretended  army. 

A  committee  of  assistance  was  also  appointed,  to 
consist  of  all  members  of  the  two  Houses  serving  in 
the  army ;  any  three,  with  the  General,  to  form  a 
quorum.  They  were  to  consult  and  advise  on  all 
matters  respecting  the  army,  borrow  money  and 
provisions,  apprehend  and  detain,  or  discharge,  all 
persons,  and  to  correspond  with  the  Houses. 

The  army  of  the  Parliament  inarched  to  Worcester, 
placing  by  the  way  garrisons  in  Coventry  and  War- 
wick. 

There  are,  in  the  State  Paper  Office,  some  letters 
in  the  form  of  a  journal,  from  one  Nehemiah  Wharton2, 

1  The  Earl  of  Dorset  wrote  to  Essex  from  Wolverhampton  on  the  16th 
October,  that  "  His  Majesty  would  not  receive  any  petition  by  the  hands 
of  such  as  he  had,  by  name,  proclaimed  traitors  ;"  and  Essex  being  the 
principal  of  those  persons,  the  petition  was  rejected. 

2  Addressed  to  Mr.  George  Willingham,   Merchant,  at  the   Golden 
Anchor  in  St.  Swithin's  Lane. 


CHAP.  XIV.       ROBEKT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  347 

a  very  zealous  Roundhead,  from  which,  being  the 
last  news-letters  I  have  seen,  and  written  in  a  most 
amusing  style,  I  shall  extract  the  account  of  the 
opening  of  the  campaign.  • 

On  Wednesday  the  14th,  our  forces  marched  into  the  field, 
and  the  Lord  General  viewed  us,  both  front,  rear,  and  flanks, 
when  the  drums  beating  and  the  trumpets  sounding,  made 
a  harmony  delectable  to  our  friends,  but  terrible  to  our  ene- 
mies; and  in  the  even  our  regiment  marched  five  miles  N.E. 
unto  Spratton,  where  we,  and  as  many  as  could,  billetted  in 
the  town  ;  the  rest  quartered  the  country.  On  Thursday, 
our  regiment  met  again,  where  those  famous  laws1  for  our 
army  were  read  and  expounded. 

Saturday  our  regiment  met  again,  and  were  mustered. 
This  even,  Captain  Francis  returning  from  London,  informed 
me  of  the  courageousness  and  constancy  of  the  city  of  London, 
and  also  of  their  constant  supplies  of  money  and  plate  ;  and 
also  told  me,  that  the  whole  city  were  now  either  real  or 
constrained  Roundheads. 

Sabbath  day  we  peaceably  enjoyed  with  Mr.  Obadiah  Sedg- 
wick,  who  gave  us  two  heavenly  sermons. 

On  Monday,  marched  through  West  Haddon,  Crick,  and 
Hill  Morton,  where  we  had  a  supply  of  drink,  which  upon  a 
march  is  very  rare  and  extraordinary  welcome,  and  came  to 
Rugby,  where  we  had  good  quarter.  The  next  day  marched 
two  miles  to  Dunsmore  Heath,  where  the  Lord  General  and 
his  regiment2  met  us,  as  also  the  Lord  of  Stamford,  Colonel 

1  Laws  and  Ordinances  of  War,  by  H.  E.  Eobert,  Earl  of  Essex,  &c., 
printed  1643. 

2  Lord  Essex  had  a  body-guard  of  100  gentlemen,  armed  as  cuirassiers, 
and  commanded  by  Sir  Philip  Stapleton.     A  volume  of  "  Banners  of  the 
Parliament  Army,"  Add.  MSS.  5247.,  gives   the  banner  of  the   Lord 
General,  an  orange  field  with  a  white  border,  a  label  on  the  field  inscribed 
with  the  motto,  Basis  virtutum  constantia.     The  gentlemen  of  the  Earl's 


348  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XIV. 

Cholmley,  and  Colonel  Hampden,  with  many  troops  of  horse, 
and  18  field-pieces,  where  we  had  tidings  that  all  the  Malig- 
nants  in  Worcestershire,  with  the  Cavaliers,  were  got  into 
Worcester,  whereupon  we  marched  six  miles  unto  Bagging- 
ton,  and  the  next  day  (21st)  quartered  before  Warwick,  till 
40  pieces  of  ordnance  with  their  carriages,  had  passed  by  ;  in 
which  time  I  viewed  the  antiquities  about  one  mile  on  this 
side  Warwick,  as  Sir  Guy,  his  cave,  his  chapel,  and  his  pic- 
ture in  it,  and  his  stables,  all  hewed  out  of  the  main  rock,  as 
also  his  garden,  and  two  springing  wells  whereat  he  drank, 
as  is  reported.  From  hence  we  marched  through  Warwick 
in  such  haste,  I  could  not  view  the  town,  but  had  only  a 
sight  of  a  castle,  which  is  very  strong,  built  upon  a  mighty 
rock,  whereof  there  are  store  in  this  country.  This  night 
we  marched  two  miles  farther  unto  Barford,  where  our 
quarter,  as  constantly  it  is  since  his  Excellency's  coming, 
was  very  poor,  many  of  our  soldiers  having  neither  beds, 
bread,  nor  water,  which  makes  them  grieve  very  strong,  for 
backbiters  have  been  seen  to  march  upon  some  of  them,  six 
on  breast,  and  eight  deep  at  their  open  order ;  and  I  fear  I 
shall  be  in  the  same  condition  ere  long,  for  we  can  get  no 
carriage  for  officers,  so  that  my  trunk  and  all  necessaries 
therein,  are  left  at  Coventry ;  and,  indeed,  our  regiment  is 
more  slighted  than  any  other,  insomuch  that  I  have  heard 
some  of  our  captains  repent  their  coming  forth. 

Thursday  morning  we  marched  in  the  front  four  miles  to- 
wards Worcester,  when  we  met  one  riding  post  from  Wor- 
cester, informing  us  that  our  troops  and  the  Cavaliers  were 
then  in  fight,  but  it  was  false,  only  to  haste  the  captains  from 
Warwick.  Upon  this  report,  our  whole  regiment  ran  shout- 
guard  wore  an  orange  scarf  across  the  breast.  The  cuirassiers  or  pis- 
toliers  were  the  first  rank  of  horsemen,  and  being  by  their  place  gentle- 
men, were  almost  always  of  good  birth  and  degree.  They  wore  armour 
down  to  the  knee,  and  bore  a  case  of  pistols,  twenty-six  inches  long,  of 
36  bore,  a  firelock,  and  a  sword. — MeyricKs  Anc.  Armour,  iii.  102. 


CHAP.  XIV.          ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  349 

ing  for  two  miles  together,  To  Worcester!  To  Worcester!  and 
desired  to  march  all  night. 

They  halted  that  night  at  Aston  Cantlow,  where 
Nehemiah  again  complains  that  he  could  get  neither 
quarters,  bread,  nor  drink.  The  following  day, 
Friday,  the  23rd  September,  his  regiment  marched  to 
within  four  miles  of  Worcester,  through  "  such  foul 
"  weather,  that  before  I  had  marched  one  mile  I  was 
"  wet  to  the  skin."  He  consequently  arrived  too  late 
to  be  present  at  the  skirmish  of  that  day,  in  which 
the  Koundheads  were  defeated.  Nehemiah,  however, 
consoles  himself  with  the  assurance  "  that  the  Lord 
"  hath  given  them  this  small  victory,  that  in  the  day 
"  of  battle  they  may  come  on  more  presumptuously 
"  to  their  own  destruction  ;  and  though,  in  that  day, 
"  I  and  many  thousands  may  be  cut  off,  I  am  con- 
"  fident  that  the  Lord  of  Hosts  will  triumph  gloriously 
"  over  these  horses  and  their  cursed  riders." 

On  the  representation  of  Colonel  Brown,  that  officer 
and  Colonel  Sandys,  with  two  regiments  and  five 
troops  of  horse1,  were  pushed  on  from  Alcester  to 
occupy  the  passage  over  the  Teme  at  Powick,  about 
a  mile  and  a  half  from  Worcester,  and  so  cut  off  Sir 
John  Byron,  who  occupied  that  city  for  the  King, 
from  receiving  supplies,  or  retreating  in  that  direc- 

1  The  horse  soldier  of  the  second  degree  was  called  a  harquebusier  or 
carbine ;  this  branch  was  generally  composed  of  yeomen,  or  the  better 
sort  of  serving  men;  they  wore  armour,  with  a  light  head-piece,  a 
"hargobus"  three  feet  three  inches  long,  of  No.  20.  bore,  and  a  sword. 
The  last  sort  were  called  dragoons;  they  were  a  kind  of  footmen 
on  horseback ;  wore  an  open  head-piece  and  a  buff  coat  with  deep  skirts ; 
their  arms,  a  sort  of  carbine  called  a  dragon,  sixteen  inches  long,  of 
musket  bore,  and  a  sword.  —  MeyricKs  Anc.  Armour. 


350  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

tion.  They  took  possession  of  Powick  bridge  on  the 
evening  of  Thursday  the  22nd,  and  remained  there 
undisturbed  till  the  following  afternoon,  when  Prince 
Rupert,  who  had  been  sent  for  by  Byron,  arrived  with 
a  body  of  700  horse ;  "  most  of  the  city,"  writes 
Nehemiah,  "  crying,  Welcome !  Welcome  !  but  princi- 
"  pally  the  Mayor,  who  desired  to  entertain  him ;  but 
"  he  answered,  God  damn  him,  he  would  not  stay, 
"  but  go  wash  his  hands  in  the  blood  of  the  Round- 
"  heads." 

The  Prince  immediately  proceeded  towards  Powick, 
where  a  skirmish  ensued,  in  which,  according  to  the 
Roundhead  version,  Colonel  Sandys  got  entangled  in 
a  lane,  of  which  the  hedges  were  lined  with  musquetry  ; 
at  all  events  they  were  completely  routed,  Colonel 
Sandys  mortally  wounded,  and  the  road  to  Ludlow 
opened  to  the  Royalists.1  On  the  24th,  the  Parliament 
forces  entered  Worcester,  having  bivouacked  the  night 
before :  "  where  we  had  small  comfort,  for  it  rained 
"  hard ;  our  food  was  fruit  for  those  that  could  get 
"  it,  our  drink  water,  our  beds  the  earth,  our 
"  canopy  the  clouds ;  but  we  pulled  up  the  hedges, 
"  pales,  and  gates,  and  made  good  fires,  his  Ex- 
"  cellency  promising  us  that  if  the  country  relieved 
"  us  not  the  day  following,  he  would  fire  their  towns; 
"  thus  we  continued  singing  of  psalms  until  the 
"  morning,  when  we  marched  into  Worcester,  the 

1  Lord  Falkland,  in  a  letter  to  the  Earl  of  Cumberland,  30th  September, 
says  that  400  Roundheads  were  killed,  taken,  or  drowned.  As  he  claimed 
but  fifty  prisoners,  the  number  is  clearly  exaggerated.  Indeed,  little 
reliance  is  to  be  placed  on  the  account  of  casualties  by  either  party. 


CriAP.  XIV.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  351 

"  rain  continuing  the  whole  day,  and  the  way   so 
"  base  that  we  went  up  to  the  ankles  in  thick  clay." 

Before  entering  Worcester,  the  Earl  of  Essex  made 
the  following  speech  to  the  army :  — 

Gentlemen  and  Fellow-soldiers :  Ye  are  at  this  time  as- 
sembled under  my  command,  for  the  defence  of  His  Majesty 
and  the  maintenance  of  the  true  Protestant  religion  ;  I  shall 
therefore  desire  you  to  take  notice  what  I,  that  am  your 
General,  shall,  by  my  honor,  promise  to  perform  toward 
you,  and  what  I  shall  be  forced  to  expect  that  you  will  per- 
form towards  me.  I  do  promise,  in  the  sight  of  Almighty 
God,  that  I  shall  undertake  nothing  but  what  shall  tend  to 
the  advancement  of  the  Protestant  religion,  the  securing  of 
His  Majesty's  royal  person,  the  maintenance  of  the  just 
privilege  of  Parliament,  and  the  liberty  and  property  of  the 
subject ;  neither  will  I  engage  any  of  you  into  any  danger : 
but,  though  for  many  reasons  I  might  forbear,  I  will,  in  my 
own  person,  run  an  equal  hazard  with  you,  and  either  bring 
you  off  with  honor,  or,  if  God  have  so  decreed,  fall  with  you 
and  willingly  become  a  sacrifice  for  the  preservation  of  my 
country. 

Likewise  I  do  promise  that  my  ear  shall  be  open  to  hear 
the  complaint  of  the  poorest  of  my  soldiers,  though  against 
the  chiefest  of  my  officers ;  neither  shall  his  greatness,  if 
justly  taxed,  gain  any  privilege ;  but  I  shall  be  ready  to  ex- 
ecute justice  against  all,  from  the  greatest  to  the  least.  Your 
pay  shall  be  constantly  delivered  to  your  commanders,  and  if 
default  be  made  by  any  officer,  give  me  timely  notice,  and 
you  shall  find  speedy  redress. 

This  being  performed  on  my  part,  I  shall  now  declare 
what  is  your  duty  towards  me,  which  I  must  likewise  expect 
to  be  carefully  performed  by  you.  I  shall  desire  all  and 
every  officer  to  endeavour  by  love  and  affable  carriage  to 


352  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

command  his  soldiers,  since  what  is  done  for  fear  is  done 
unwillingly,  and  what  is  unwillingly  attempted  can  never 
prosper.  Likewise  it  is  my  request,  that  you  be  careful  in 
the  exercising  of  your  men,  and  bring  them  to  use  their 
arms  readily  and  expertly,  and  not  to  busy  them  in  practising 
the  ceremonious  forms  of  military  discipline  ;  only  let  them 
be  well  instructed  in  the  necessary  rudiments  of  war,  that 
they  may  know  how  to  fall  on  with  discretion,  and  how  to 
retreat  with  care;  how  to  maintain  their  order,  and  make 
good  their  ground. 

Also  I  do  expect,  that  all  those  who  have  voluntarily  en- 
gaged themselves  in  this  service,  should  answer  my  expecta- 
tion in  the  performing  of  the  ensuing  articles  :  —  That  you 
willingly  and  cheerfully  obey  such  as,  by  your  own  election, 
you  have  made  commanders  over  you.  That  you  take  special 
care  to  keep  your  arms  at  all  times  fit  for  service,  that  upon 
all  occasions  you  may  be  ready  to  repair  to  your  colors  when 
the  signal  shall  be  given  by  the  sound  of  drum  or  trumpet, 
and  so  to  inarch  upon  any  service  where  and  when  occasion 
may  require.  That  you  bear  yourselves  like  soldiers,  with- 
out doing  any  spoil  to  the  inhabitants  of  the  country ;  so 
doing,  you  shall  gain  love  and  friendship,  where  otherwise 
you  will  be  hated  and  complained  of,  and  I  that  should  pro- 
tect you,  shall  be  forced  to  punish  you  according  to  the 
severity  of  the  law.  That  you  accept  and  rest  satisfied  with 
such  quarters  as  shall  fall  to  your  lot,  or  be  appointed  you 
by  your  quartermaster.  That  you  shall,  if  appointed  for 
sentries  or  perdues,  faithfully  discharge  that  duty  ;  for  upon 
fail  hereof,  you  are  sure  to  undergo  a  very  severe  censure. 
You  shall  forbear  to  profane  the  Sabbath,  either  by  being 
drunk,  or  by  unlawful  games ;  for  whosoever  shall  be  found 
faulty,  must  not  expect  to  pass  unpunished.  Whosoever 
shall  be  known  to  neglect  the  feeding  of  his  horse  with 
proper  provender,  to  the  end  that  his  horse'be  disabled,  or 


CHAP.  XIV.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  353 

unfit  for  service ;  the  party  for  the  said  default,  shall  suffer  a 
month's  imprisonment,  and  afterward  be  cashiered,  as  un- 
worthy the  name  of  a  soldier.  That  no  trooper  or  other  of 
our  soldiers  shall  suffer  his  paddee  to  feed  his  horse  in  the 
corn,  or  to  steal  men's  hay ;  but  shall  pay  every  man  Gd.  day 
and  night,  and  for  oats  2s.  the  bushel.  And  lastly,  that  you 
avoid  cruelty ;  for  it  is  my  desire  rather  to  save  the  lives  of 
thousands  than  to  kill  one,  so  that  it  may  be  done  without 
prejudice. 

These  things  faithfully  performed,  and  the  justice  of  our 
cause  truly  considered,  let  us  advance  with  a  religious 
courage,  and  willingly  adventure  our  lives  in  the  defence  of 
the  King  and  Parliament.1 

On  the  30th,  Wharton  writes  again  :  — 
Worcestershire  is  a  pleasant,  fruitful,  and  rich  country, 
abounding  in  corn,  woods,  pastures,  hills,  and  valleys,  every 
hedge  and  highway  beset  with  fruit,  but  especially  with 
pears,  whereof  they  make  that  pleasant  drink  called  perry, 
which  they  sell  for  a  penny  a  quart,  though  better  than  ever 
you  tasted  at  London.  The  city  is  more  large  than  any  I 
have  seen  since  I  left  London ;  it  abounds  in  outward  things, 
but  for  want  of  the  Word  the  people  perish.  It  is  pleasantly 
seated,  exceeding  populous,  and  doubtless  very  rich,  on  the 
east  bank  of  that  famous  river  the  Severn,  the  walls  in  the 
form  of  a  triangle,  the  gates  seven.  There  is  a  very  stately 
cathedral  called  St.  Mary's,  in  which  there  are  many  stately 
monuments ;  amongst  the  rest,  in  the  middle  of  the  quire,  is 
the  monument  of  King  John,  all  of  white  marble,  with  his 
picture  thereon  to  the  life.  Sir,  our  army  did  little  think 
ever  to  have  seen  Worcester,  but  the  providence  of  God  hath 
brought  us  hither,  and  had  it  not,  the  city  is  so  vile,  the 

1  Parl.  Hist.  ii.  1476. 
VOL.  II.  A   A 


354  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XIV. 

country  so  base,  so  papistical,  and  atheistical,  and  abominable, 
that  it  resembles  Sodom,  and  is  the  very  emblem  of  Go- 
morrah, and  doubtless  it  would  have  been  worse  than  either 
Algiers  or  Malta,  a  very  den  of  thieves,  and  a  receptacle  and 
refuge  for  all  the  hell-hounds  in  the  country. 

From  Worcester,  Essex  sent  a  detachment  under 
the  Earl  of  Stamford  to  surprise  Hereford,  in  which 
Nehemiah  Whartori  served.  He  states  that  they  got 
into  Hereford  by  telling  the  Mayor  that  Essex  was 
at  hand  with  all  his  army. 

The  city  is  well  situated  on  the  Wye,  environed  with  a 
strong  wall,  better  than  any  I  have  seen  before,  with  five 
gates,  and  a  strong  stone  bridge  of  six  arches,  surpassing 
Worcester.  In  this  city  there  is  the  stateliest  market-place 
in  the  kingdom,  built  with  columns  after  the  manner  of  the 
Exchange ;  the  Minster  every  way  exceeding  Worcester ; 
the  city  not  so  large ;  the  inhabitants  totally  ignorant  of  the 
ways  of  God,  and  much  addicted  to  drunkenness  and  other 
vices,  but  principally  unto  swearing,  so  that  the  children  that 
have  scarce  learnt  to  speak,  do  universally  swear  stoutly. 
Many  here  speak  Welsh.  Sabbath  day,  the  time  of  morning 
prayer,  we  went  to  the  Minster,  where  the  pipes  played,  and 
the  puppets  sang  so  sweetly,  that  some  of  our  soldiers  could 
not  forbear  dancing  in  the  holy  quire ;  whereat  the  Baalists 
were  sore  displeased. 

Charles  had  arrived  at  Shrewsbury  on  the  20th 
September,  and  such  was  the  zeal  of  the  .Royalists  in 
those  parts,  that  in  three  weeks  his  army  had  in- 
creased in  numbers  to  above  11,000  men.  With  this 
force  he  left  Shrewsbury  on  the  12th  October,  and 
marching  by  Bridgnorth,  Wolverhampton,  Binning- 


CHAP.  XIV.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  355 

ham,  Packington,  and  Kenil worth,  reached  South  am 
on  the  21st.1 

In  the  first  week  of  October,  Essex  pushed  forward 
his  advance  to  within  three  miles  of  Shrewsbury.  It 
is  not  quite  clear  that  he  quitted  Worcester  himself, 
as,  although  the  accounts  of  the  skirmish  at  Bridg- 
north  generally  state  that  he  was  present,  it  seems 
that  the  reports  he  sent  to  Parliament  were  dated 
from  Worcester.  On  the  10th,  a  letter  from  the  Earl 
was  read  in  Parliament,  in  which  he  stated  that  he 
had  intelligence  that  the  King  meant  to  divide  his 
army,  and  leaving  one  part  to  keep  Essex  in  play, 
inarch  with  the  other  straight  to  London.  In  con- 
sequence of  this  advice,  he  had  sent  reinforcements 
with  artillery  to  Coventry.  On  the  13th  he  had 
sent  a  strong  force  to  Bewdley  and  Kidderminster, 
and  intended  to  follow  with  the  main  body. 

Essex  did  not  receive  intelligence  of  the  King's 
march  until  the  19th,  on  which  day  Charles  was 
resting  at  Packington.  With  this  slight  advantage 
in  point  of  distance,  he  could  scarcely  have  reached 
London  before  Essex;  but  it  was  worth  the  trial,  and 
if  successful,  the  war  might  perhaps  have  terminated 
in  the  first  campaign.  His  own  wishes  were  pro- 
bably opposed  by  a  majority  of  his  followers,  who 
not  only  dreaded  any  success  which  might  be  suffi- 
cient to  restore  the  King  to  power,  which,  with  an 
army  at  his  command,  might  become  absolute,  but 
there  was  already  in  the  royal  army  a  schism,  which 

i  The  dates  of  the  royal  movements  are  throughout  this  narrative 
taken  from  the  Iter  Carolinum,  in  Gutch's  Coll.  Cur. 

A  A    2 


356  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XIV. 

throughout  the  war  prevented  unanimity  of  feeling 
and  action.  The  Earl  of  Lindsey,  whose  reputation 
as  a  soldier  was  second  only  to  that  of  Essex,  was 
General  of  the  royal  army ;  but  when  Prince  Rupert 
received  his  commission  to  command  the  horse,  his 
unwise  uncle  added  to  it  a  clause,  which  rendered 
him  independent  of  all  authority  save  the  King.  Of 
all  the  Royalist  leaders  during  the  civil  war,  none 
exercised  so  evil  an  influence  on  the  fortunes  of  the 
King  as  Prince  Rupert. 

The  Earl  of  Essex  instantly  left  Worcester  on 
learning  the  direction  of  the  King's  march ;  and  so 
rapid  was  his  advance,  that  he  was  compelled  to 
leave  behind  him  the  chief  part  of  his  artillery, 
ammunition,  and  the  baggage,  with  two  regiments  of 
foot  and  one  of  horse  to  guard  it. 

The  royal  army  advanced  from  Southam  to  Edg- 
cote,  with  the  intention  of  reducing  Banbury  on  the 
22nd,  the  same  day  on  which  Essex  reached  Kineton. 
Intelligence  having  been  conveyed  to  the  King  of 
the  vicinity  of  the  rebels,  he  turned  aside  to  meet 
them. 

On  Sunday  morning,  the  23rd  October,  1642,  the 
Lord  General,  when  going  to  church,  was  informed 
that  the  royal  army  was  in  full  march  upon  him. 
He  forthwith  drew  out  his  forces,  consisting  of  eleven 
regiments  of  foot,  forty-two  troops  of  horse,  and  700 
dragoons,  in  all  about  10,000  men,  in  the  Vale  of 
the  Red  Horse,  between  the  village  of  Kineton 
and  Edgehill.  It  was  noon  before  the  van  of  the 
royal  army  appeared  on  the  crest  of  the  hill ;  and 


CHAP.  XIV.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  357 

by  the  time  they  had  descended  and  formed  in  the 
vale  it  was  two  o'clock. 

The  Parliament  army  was  drawn  up  in  three  lines. 
Three  regiments  of  horse,  under  Sir  William  Balfour, 
covered  the  right  flank,  on  which  were  placed  the 
chief  part  of  the  field-pieces  they  had  with  them; 
on  the  left  were  twenty-four  troops  of  horse  under 
Sir  James  Kamsay.  The  Earl  of  Essex  headed  the 
centre  on  foot,  and  pike  in  hand,  until  he  was  en- 
treated to  take  a  post  more  befitting  the  chief  com- 
mander of  the  army. 

Like  his  ancient  comrade,  the  Earl  of  Lindsey  also 
led  his  infantry  on  foot.  Prince  Rupert  commanded 
the  cavalry  of  the  right  wing,  Lord  Wilmot  that  of 
the  left  of  the  royal  army. 

The  battle  was  begun  by  the  rebel  artillery,  which 
was  answered  from  the  other  side,  and  the  cannonade 
continued  for  above  an  hour.  At  the  end  of  that 
time  the  Royalists  advanced ;  the  impetuous  Rupert 
charged  the  Parliamentarian  left  so  fiercely  that  they 
broke  at  once.  Confusion  produced  a  panic  on  the 
desertion  of  Sir  Faithful  Fortescue  with  his  troop  of 
horse,  who  passed  over  to  the  royal  side;  and  the 
whole  left  wing  of  the  rebel  army  took  to  a  precipitate 
flight,  pursued  by  Rupert  and  his  cavalry,  through 
and  beyond  Kineton,  which  village  the  Prince  per- 
mitted his  men  to  plunder,  and  so  lost  the  most 
precious  hour  of  the  day,  which,  otherwise  employed, 
would  have  secured  a  decisive  victory  to  the  King  : 
for  in  the  centre  an  obstinate  and  still  doubtful 
struggle  was  going  on,  in  which,  though  the  Earl  of 

A    A    3 


358  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XIV. 

Lindsey  was  mortally  wounded,  and,  with  his  son, 
taken  prisoner,  and  the  royal  standard  was  captured, 
the  combat  had  not  taken  a  decided  turn,  when 
Sir  William  Balfour,  by  a  skilful  movement  on  the 
flank  of  the  Koyalists,  took  and  spiked  a  battery  of 
guns,  dispersed  a  regiment  of  foot,  and  charging  the 
rear  of  the  royal  centre,  completely  discomfited  them ; 
they  at  once  broke,  and  retreated  on  the  reserve, 
which  was  about  to  advance,  headed  by  the  King, 
when  Rupert,  with  his  plunderers,  reappeared  on  the 
scene,  but  too  late  to  regain  the  lost  advantages. 
Darkness  was  drawing  on,  and  friends  were  fired  on 
being  mistaken  for  foes.  After  a  short  space  the  royal 
army  withdrew,  and,  reascending  the  hill,  left  Essex 
in  possession  of  the  field  of  battle,  on  which  he 
remained  under  arms  all  night  and  part  of  the  next 
day ;  but  the  Royalists  did  not  again  offer  battle,  and 
filing  away  over  Edgehill,  were  entirely  lost  to  view 
before  evening,  when  the  Parliament  army  retired  to 
Warwick  to  recruit  and  rest. 

Thus  ended  the  first  battle  of  the  rebellion,  which 
is  remarkable  only  for  this,  that  the  loss  was  nearly 
equal  on  either  side  ;  that  though  the  Earl  of  Essex 
remained  master  of  the  field,  the  military  advantages 
to  be  taken  were  clearly  in  favour  of  the  King :  but 
as  he  did  not  seize  them,  it  must  be  fairly  termed  a 
drawn  battle.1 

The  Parliamentary  writers  almost  admit  that  their 

1  The  loss  on  both  sides  is  generally  stated  at  upwards  of  5000  killed, 
more  than  one-fifth  of  the  whole  number  engaged  ;  a  number  quite  incre- 
dible, but  much  more  than  sufficient  to  disorganize  more  veteran  armies 
than  these. 


CHAP.  XIV.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  359 

side  had  the  worst.  Whitelocke  calls  it  "  a  small 
"  victory  and  a  great  deliverance."  Ludlow  says 
that  their  army  "  returned  to  London,  not  like  men 
"  that  had  gained  a  victory,  but  as  if  they  had  been 
"  beaten." 

The  day  after  the  battle,  Essex  was  joined  by 
Hampden  with  other  regiments,  to  the  number,  ac- 
cording to  Ludlow,  of  4000  men.  It  is  clear,  there- 
fore, that  had  he  been  so  minded,  he  might  have 
followed  the  King  with  almost  a  certainty  of  defeating 
him  ;  but  this  was  only  the  first  of  many  instances  I 
shall  have  to  bring  before  the  notice  of  the  reader,  of 
Lord  Essex's  unwillingness  to  push  the  King  to 
extremities — a  half  mode  of  proceeding  which  has 
lost  him  his  character  as  a  general  in  the  eyes  of 
posterity. 

Charles  summoned  Banbury,  which  surrendered  to 
him  without  resistance,  and  from  Aynhoe,  instead  of 
proceeding  to  London,  where  the  Houses  of  Parliament 
and  the  citizens  were  in  a  state  of  the  utmost  alarm, 
he  went  to  Oxford,  losing  more  valuable  time,  and 
did  not  establish  his  head  quarters  at  Maidenhead 
until  the  8th  of  November, 

On  the  2nd  November,  Essex,  with  12,000  men, 
and  37  pieces  of  artillery,  marched  from  Northampton 
towards  London ;  on  the  5th  he  was  at  St.  Alban's ; 
and  on  the  6th,  disposing  the  principal  part  of  his 
army  about  Acton,  and  placing  a  garrison  in  Kingston 
to  keep  the  bridge,  went  the  next  day  to  London, 
where  "  he  was  joyfully  received  by  the  Parliament, 

A    A   4 


360  LIVES    OF   THE   EAKLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

"  and  thousands  of  those  that  were  well  affected  did 
"  flock  to  see  him."1 

The  Parliament  had  recovered  from  their  extreme 
panic2  on  finding  that  the  King  was  not  marching  to 
London,  and  on  the  3rd  November  the  House  of 
Commons  had  voted  a  present  of  5000Z.  to  the  Lord 
General,  with  a  letter  of  "  thanks  for  his  great  service 
"  to  the  Commonwealth."  In  a  few  days  after  his 
arrival  he  received  the  thanks  of  Parliament,  "  who 
"  having,  for  his  wisdom,  courage,  and  fidelity,  chosen 
"  him  General,  find  he  has  managed  their  service  of 
"  so  high  importance,  with  such  care,  valor,  and  dex- 
"  terity,  as  well  by  the  extremest  hazard  of  his  life, 
"  as  by  all  the  actions  of  an  expert  and  most  ex- 
"  cellent  commander,  as  doth  deserve  their  best  ac- 
"  knowledgment."3 

We  are  now  to  relate  a  circumstance  which,  whether 
intentional  or  accidental,  served  as  an  engine  of  mis- 
chief in  the  hands  of  the  extreme  levelling  party,  who, 
as  yet,  dared  not  show  themselves  openly,  and  with 
which  they  were  enabled  to  renew  and  strengthen  the 
impressions  of  Charles's  faithlessness  and  treachery. 

On  the  3rd  November,  the  two  Houses  had  voted 
a  petition  to  the  King,  in  which  he  was  prayed  to 
reside  in  some  convenient  place,  where  commissioners 

1  Perfect  Diurnal. 

2  There  is  a  letter   from  Harapden,  in   the  Ashburnham  Collection, 
showing  the  state  of  panic  that  existed.     It  is  dated  from  Northampton, 
31st  October,  to  Colonel  Bulstrode  and  others,  telling  them  the  army  is 
daily  advancing,  and  if  they  do  not  disband,  they  will  be  a  mutual  succour, 
but  if  they  disperse,  they  will  make  themselves  and  the  country  a  prey. 

3  Lords'  Journal,  v.  411. 


CHAP.  XIV.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  361 

from  the  Parliament  might  attend  him  to  treat. 
Letters  were  written  for  a  safe-conduct  to  the  bearers 
of  this  petition,  which  being  forwarded,  the  Earls  of 
Northumberland  and  Pembroke,  Mr.  Pierrepoint, 
Lord  Wenman,  and  Sir  John  Hippesley,  waited  on 
the  King  at  Colnbrook  on  the  llth  November,  to 
which  place  he  had  advanced  on  the  10th.  It  must 
be  observed  that,  on  the  advance  of  the  King,  the 
Houses  had  desired  the  Lord  General  to  cover  the 
approaches  to  London,  who  had,  in  consequence, 
posted  the  regiment  of  Denzil  Holies  in  Brentford. 

The  King  received  the  deputation  graciously,  and 
said  that  he  would  occupy  Windsor  Castle,  and  there 
receive  the  committees.  They  returned  with  this 
answer ;  on  which  Essex,  asking  in  the  House  what 
he  should  do  with  the  army,  was  directed  to  forbear 
hostilities  till  further  orders.1  The  deputation  had 
scarcely  quitted  the  royal  presence,  when  a  strong 
detachment  of  cavalry  and  artillery,  supported  by  the 
main  body  of  the  army,  advanced  from  Colnbrook, 
attacked  Brentford,  and  after  a  bloody  resistance  by 
Holles's  regiment,  which,  but  for  the  support  of 
Hampden's  and  Lord  Brooke's,  would  have  been  cut 
to  pieces,  remained  masters  of  the  town. 

The  next  morning,  the  12th,  Charles  sent  a  second 
message  to  Parliament,  to  say  he  would  receive  the 
propositions  for  peace  at  Brentford,  pretending  that 
he  had  just  heard  that  Essex  was  advancing  on  him 
with  all  his  army.2 

1  Lords'  Journal,  12th  November. 

2  Although  there  had  been  no  formal  cessation  of  arms  agreed  upon, 


362  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

The  enemies  to  peace  immediately  grasped  this 
occasion;  and  Parliament  having  desired  Essex  to 
forbear  hostilities,  they  certainly  had  some  colour  for 
their  complaints  of  treachery.  The  King  replied, 
that  he  was  informed  Essex  was  marching  against 
him,  and  he  seized  Brentford  to  prevent  his  being 
surrounded.  The  falsity  of  this  reason  almost 
induces  one  to  believe  that  it  was  an  intentional  act 
on  the  part  of  the  King ;  for  it  is  evident  that  with 
the  Parliament  forces  at  Acton,  Kingston,  and 
Windsor,  his  advance  to  Brentford  only  caused  him 
to  be  more  completely  surrounded. 

Essex,  who  was  sitting  in  the  House  of  Lords  when 
the  news  of  this  engagement  arrived,  was  ordered  to 
"  pursue  the  enemy  with  all  advantage  whatever," 
and  immediately  departed  with  the  disposable  troops. 
All  that  night,  London  was  sending  down  trained 
bands  and  volunteers  to  support  the  army.  On  the 
14th,  24,000  men  stood  in  arms  on  Turnham  Green, 
face  to  face  with  the  royal  army.1  Rushworth  says  : 
"  The  Parliament  men  and  gentlemen  that  were 
"  officers,  were  all  for  engaging,  but  the  soldiers  of 
"  fortune  were  altogether  against  it ;"  and  although 
Essex  sent  four  regiments  of  foot,  and  two  of  horse, 
to  make  a  circuit,  and  fall  on  the  King's  left  flank, 


on  which  fact  Charles  grounded  the  defence  of  his  conduct,  the  order  of 
the  House  to  Essex  shows  in  what  sense  they  understood  the  matter ; 
and  it  certainly  appears  that  the  conduct  of  the  Parliament  was  more 
creditable  than  the  King's. 

1  The  Earl  of  Essex  went  from  regiment  to  regiment  encouraging 
them,  and  when  he  had  spoken  to  each,  the  soldiers  would  throw  up  their 
caps  and  cry,  Hey,  for  old  Robin  !  —  Whitelocke,  p.  65. 


CHAP.  XIV.       EGBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  363 

while  he  attacked  in  front  at  the  same  time,  these 
troops  were  recalled  before  they  could  execute  their 
orders,  and  Charles  was  again  suffered  to  retire 
unmolested;  and  as  if  on  purpose  to  facilitate  his 
retreat,  the  garrison  of  Kingston,  3000  strong,  had 
been  withdrawn  by  London  Bridge,  leaving  open 
for  him  the  road  to  Oatlands,  where  he  remained 
some  days. 

The  good  people  of  London  during  this  day,  were 
careful  to  provide  for  the  wants  of  their  defenders. 
The  newspaper  says :  "It  was  a  wonder  to  see  how 
"  many  cart-loads  of  bread,  cheese,  and  meat,  baked, 
"  boiled,  and  roasted,  with  great  store  of  pies,  piping 
"  hot,  was  on  a  sudden  brought  out  of  every  street 
"  and  parish  to  Guildhall ;  great  quantities  of  beer 
"  were  also  sent,  besides  an  hogshead  or  two  of  sack, 
"  and  three  or  four  hogsheads  of  burnt  claret." 

The  royal  army  retreated  to  Eeading,  and  thence, 
on  the  29th  November,  to  Oxford.  On  the  25th, 
Parliament  resolved  no  more  time  should  be  spent  in 
answering  the  King,  "  whose  object  is  to  delude  us 
"  with  fair  words,  and  to  tire  us  out,  and  spend  the 
u  stock  of  the  kingdom."  On  the  28th,  Essex 
advanced  to  Windsor,  and  there  established  his  head 
quarters  during  the  winter. 

On  the  19th  December,  Charles  wrote  to  Essex 
from  Oxford,  offering  him  a  free  pardon  if  he  would 
"  forbear  to  proceed  any  further  in  this  destructive 
"  war,"  and  desiring  that  a  Committee  should  be  ap- 
pointed to  treat;  the  Earl  replied  in  the  following 
letter. 


364  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XIV. 

No,  LVI.1 
Essex  to  the  King. 

Most  gracious  Sovereign,  —  I  humbly  tender  my  service  at 
your  royal  feet,  being  willing  to  hazard  my  life  and  fortunes 
in  the  defence  of  your  Majesty. 

Whereas  you  have  been  pleased  to  declare  your  resolution 
concerning  a  treaty  of  peace,  so  has  it  been  my  desire,  ever 
since  the  beginning  of  these  differences,  to  embrace  the  same. 
But  having  such  a  great  trust  reposed  in  me,  and  committed 
to  my  charge  by  both  Houses  of  Parliament,  I  cannot  con- 
ceive but  that  I  am  bound  in  conscience,  according  to  the 
law  of  God,  to  discharge  that  trust  which  is  reposed  in  me  by 
your  great  and  honorable  council,  being  for  the  defence  of 
your  Majesty's  person,  God's  true  religion,  the  privileges  of 
both  Houses  of  Parliament,  the  liberties  of  your  good  sub- 
jects, and  the  good  of  the  Commonwealth.  If  it  be  the 
pleasure  of  that  great  council  that  hath  reposed  in  me,  to 
take  the  same  charge  from  me  again,  and  to  confer  it  upon 
some  other  honorable  person,  I  shall  willingly  surrender  up 
my  commission,  and  be  ready  to  hazard  my  life  and  fortune 
in  your  Majesty's  service  against  any  foreign  enemy.  Your 
Majesty's  most  loyal  subject,  ESSEX. 

During  the  winter,  another  ineffectual  attempt  was 
made  to  negotiate ;  both  King  and  Parliament  re- 
quiring certain  conditions  which  the  other  was  not 
willing  to  concede.  It  is  probable  that  there  was  no 
sincere  desire  for  peace  on  the  part  of  the  majority  of 
the  House  of  Commons ;  but  the  general  feeling  of 
the  country,  shown  by  the  multitude  of  petitions,  was 
so  strongly  in  favour  of  it,  that  they  could  not  treat 
it  with  neglect.  A  cessation  of  arms,  while  nego- 
tiations were  pending,  was  agreed  upon. 

1  From  a  collection  of  tracts,  Brit.  Mus. 


CHAP.  XV.       EGBERT,    THIED   EAEL    OF   ESSEX.  365 


CHAPTER  XV. 

LIFE    OF   EOBEET,    THIED   EAEL   OF   ESSEX Continued. 

THE    CAMPAIGN   OF     1643. 10,000/.    A   YEAR   VOTED   TO   ESSEX. — 

HIS  LETTERS   RECOMMENDING   PEACE  AND   DEMANDING   MONEY. 

DEBA.TE  ON  THEIR  BEING  READ SITUATION  OF    THE   ROYALISTS. 

—  SIR  WILLIAM  WALLER'S  EXPEDITION  AND  DEFEAT.  —  JEA- 
LOUSY BETWEEN  ESSEX  AND  WALLER.  —  PROCEEDINGS  IN  PAR- 
LIAMENT.  THE  KING  BESIEGES  GLOUCESTER,  WHICH  PLACE  IS 

RELIEVED     BY    ESSEX. CIRENCESTER     SURPRISED. BATTLE     OF 

NEWBURY.  —  ESSEX  RECEIVES  THE  THANKS  OF  PARLIAMENT.— 
HE  DESIRES  LEAVE  TO  RESIGN  HIS  COMMISSION.  —  SOLEMN  LEAGUE 
AND  COVENANT. 

THE  campaign  of  1643  opened  with  the  siege  of 
Reading,  before  which  town  the  Earl  of  Essex,  with 
an  army  of  16,000  foot  and  3000  horse,  sat  down  on 
the  1 5th  of  April,  the  day  on  which  the  truce  expired. 
Unwilling  to  subject  the  place  to  an  assault,  the 
horrors  of  which  he  had  witnessed  in  his  continental 
service,  Essex  admitted  the  garrison  to  easy  terms  at 
the  expiration  of  twelve  days,  during  which  he  had 
repulsed,  with  great  slaughter,  an  attempt  of  the 
Royalists  to  relieve  the  garrison.  This  acquisition 
was  a  source  of  much  distress  to  the  Parliament  army, 
for  an  epidemic  broke  out  among  the  troops,  which 
destroyed  great  numbers ;  while  the  discontent  of  the 
soldiers  at  not  being  permitted  to  sack  Reading,  was 
increased  by  their  pay  being  greatly  in  arrears,  for 
the  Parliament  at  that  time  was  in  financial  dif- 


366  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XV. 

faculties.  Many  desertions  took  place,  and  a  mutiny 
broke  out,  which  was  repressed  by  measures  of  great 
severity. 

On  the  30th  April,  the  House  of  Commons  had 
voted  that  the  estates  of  the  malignant,  Lord  Capel, 
should  be  granted  to  the  Earl  of  Essex ;  but  the 
Lords  appearing,  by  their  constant  adjournment  of 
the  question,  to  be  unwilling  to  reward  the  Earl  in 
this  manner,  resolutions  passed  both  Houses  in  the 
end  of  May,  to  the  following  effect : — That  whereas 
Robert,  Earl  of  Essex,  General  of  the  forces  raised 
by  the  Parliament,  "  hath  been  plundered,  robbed, 
"  and  spoiled  of  his  goods  and  estates,  amounting  to 
"  a  great  value,  by  divers  traitors  and  rebels,  who, 
"  by  colour  of  His  Majesty's  authority,  have  levied 
"  war  against  the  King,  Parliament,  and  Kingdom : 
"  and  whereas  the  debts  due  unto,  and  the  rents  of 
"  the  said  Earl,  are,  by  warrant  from  William  Curn- 
"  berford,  the  pretended  High  Sheriff  of  the  county 
"  of  Stafford,  commanded  to  be  paid  to  himself,  who 
"  thereby  suggest eth  to  derive  his  power  for  doing 
"  thereof  by  special  command  from  His  Majesty, 
"  styling  the  said  Earl  an  active  rebel,"  &C.1  The 
Parliament  taking  this  into  consideration,  ordered 
that  10,000/.  per  annum  should  be  paid  to  the  Earl, 
out  of  the  monies  raised  on  the  sequestered  estates  of 
u  notorious  delinquents."  When  it  is  recollected  that 
the  Parliament  were  at  this  time  unable  to  pay  their 
troops,  it  will  not  be  expected  that  the  payment  of 
this  large  sum  to  Essex  would  be  very  regular ;  and 

1  Commons'  Journal,  iii.  95. 


CHAP.  XV.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   Of   ESSEX.  367 

we  shall  find,  at  a  later  date,  that  it  was  never  paid 
at  all. 

In  compliance  with  the  desire  of  the  citizens  of 
London,  who,  as  they  were  to  raise  the  means  of 
paying  the  army,  exercised  an  influential  voice,  but 
in  opposition  to  his  own  judgment,  Essex  marched  to 
Thame  in  June,  with  a  view  of  proceeding  to  the 
siege  of  Oxford.  But,  aggravated  by  continued  heavy 
rains,  the  sickness  increased  there  to  such  a  degree, 
and  so  wasted  his  army,  that  he  became  quite  in- 
capable of  acting  offensively ;  and  giving  up  all  idea 
of  besieging  Oxford,  withdrew  to  Great  Brickhill  in 
the  beginning  of  July,  from  which  place  he  wrote  the 
following  letters. 

No.  LYII.1 

Essex  to  the  Speaker  of  the  House  of  Commons* 

Mr.  Speaker,  —  I  would  have  given  you  the  true  relation  of 
the  skirmish  on  Sunday  last,  between  some  of  the  horse  and 
the  enemy  near  Buckingham,  but  Sir  Philip  Stapleton  and 
Colonel  Goodwin  being  then  upon  the  place,  I  refer  the 
relation  thereof  unto  them ;  since  when,  being  informed  that 
the  King  had  sent  more  forces  to  Buckingham  to  maintain 
that  place,  and  bring  these  parts  into  contribution,  where 
the  enemy  staid  until  the  army  came  within  two  miles  of 
them,  and  then  made  haste  away  towards  Banbury,  not- 
withstanding they  had  persuaded  the  people  that  they  would 
not  quit  the  place  till  they  had  beaten  ire  out  of  the  country. 
I  then  understanding  that  they  were  fled,  held  it  not  fit  to  go 
to  the  town  with  my  army,  but  sent  Colonel  Middleton  with 

1  Rushwortb,  vi.  290. 


368  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP. XV. 

some  horse  to  clear  that  town  and  coast,  which  they  did ;  and 
then  advised  where  to  quarter  with  most  conveniency  for  our 
army,  and  most  ready  for  the  enemy,  the  Queen's1  forces  being 
like  to  join  with  them  very  suddenly. 

And  that  our  army  may  the  better  serve  the  Parliament 
and  city,  and  counties  adjacent,  and  be  more  safely  supplied 
with  money  from  London,  and  lie  most  conveniently  to  join 
with  the  forces  of  the  Lord  Grey  in  Northamptonshire,  I 
was  advised  to  march  to  Great  Brickhill,  as  the  most  fit 
place  for  all  purposes,  the  enemy's  chief  strength  being  in 
horse.  And,  this  army  being  recruited  with  neither  horses, 
arms,  nor  saddles,  it  is  impossible  to  keep  the  counties  from 
being  plundered,  nor  to  fight  with  them  but  when  and  where 
they  list ;  we  being  forced,  when  we  move,  to  march  with  the 
whole  army,  which  can  be  but  slowly,  so  that  the  counties 
must  suffer  much  wrong,  and  the  cries  of  poor  people  are 
infinite. 

If  it  were  thought  fit  to  send  to  His  Majesty  to  have 
peace,  with  the  settling  of  religion,  the  laws  and  liberties  of 
the  subject,  and  to  bring  unto  just  trials  those  chief  delin- 
quents that  have  brought  all  this  mischief  to  both  kingdoms ; 
and,  as  my  Lord  of  Bristol  once  spoke  in  Parliament,  how 
we  may  be  secured  to  have  these  things  performed  hereafter ; 
or  else,  if  His  Majesty  shall  please  to  absent  himself2,  there 
may  be  a  day  set  down  to  give  a  period  to  all  these  unhappy 
distractions  by  a  battle,  in  which,  when  and  where  they  shall 
choose,  that  may  be  thought  any  way  indifferent,  I  shall  be 
ready  to  perform  that  duty  I  owe  you ;  and  the  propositions 
to  be  agreed  upon  between  His  Majesty  and  the  Parliament, 
may  be  sent  to  such  an  indifferent  place,  that  both  armies 


1  The  Queen  was  on  the  march  from  York. 

2  Martyn,  speaking  of  this  part  of  Essex's  letter,  said,  if  the  King 
would  not  withdraw,  but  put  his  finger  to  be  cut,  what  was  that  to  them. 
— Merc.  Aulicus. 


CHAP.  XV.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  369 

may  be  drawn  near  the  one  to  the  other,  that  if  peace  be  not 
concluded,  it  may  be  ended  by  the  sword ;  no  officers  of  the 
army  to  be  of  the  Committee,  nor  no  intercourse  to  be 
between  them.  Sir,  I  am  your  assured  friend, 

Great  Brickhill,  9th,  July  1643.  ESSEX. 

No.  LVIII.1 

Essex  to  William  Lenthil,  Esq.)  Speaker  of  the  House  of 
Commons. 

Sir, — Not  having  as  yet  received  any  commands  from  the 
Parliament  how  to  regulate  this  army  in  my  advancing,  since 
my  last  letter  to  you,  and  intelligence  being  brought  that 
Prince  Rupert  and  his  plundering  army  is  returning  towards 
Oxford,  I  shall  be  enforced  as  soon  as  the  army  is  paid,  which 
will  be  to-morrow  night  (sic  in  orig.).  I  shall  advance,  God 
willing,  at  farthest  on  Friday.  I  have  often  desired  that  a 
Committee  of  both  Houses  might  be  sent  to  be  a  witness  of 
our  integrity  to  the  service  of  the  State,  and  must  acknow- 
ledge the  great  favor  both  Houses  shewed  this  army  in 
appointing  a  Committee  to  come  down2 ;  but  then  both  armies 
being  afoot,  I  thought  it  dangerous  for  their  passage,  and  not 
knowing  how  the  great  affairs  of  the  kingdom  may  dispense 
with  many  from  the  service  of  the  Houses.  If  it  may  stand 
with  the  convenience  of  the  House  of  Commons,  I  shall 
entreat  the  favor  that  Sir  Henry  Yane  the  younger  may  be 
an  eye  witness  of  our  actions 3,  he  being  an  intimate  friend  of 
mine,  and  who  by  his  constant  carriage  in  the  Parliament, 
which  hath  gotten  him  a  good  repute  in  all  places,  may  be  a 
true  testimony  of  our  actions ;  it  being  of  huge  advantage  to 
keep  a  good  correspondence  betwixt  the  Parliament  and  their 

1  Tanner  MSS.  62.  106. 

2  Essex  had  asked  for  this  committee,  but  when  on  their  journey,  he 
sent  to  advise  them  to  halt  for  the  reasons  stated  in  the  letter. 

3  Sir  H.  Vane  was  subsequently  sent. 

VOL.  II.  B  B 


370  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

servants  the  army.  Pie  is,  besides,  a  man  I  put  so  much 
trust  in,  as  that,  if  he  pleaseth,  I  shall  go  hand  in  hand  with 
him  to  the  walls  of  Oxford.  If  any  supplies  come  down, 
they  would  be  both  welcome  and  needful ;  however,  God 
willing,  the  army  shall  be  led  on  to  the  most  advantage  our 
judgment  shall  guide  us  to.  It  is  in  God's  hands  to  give  the 
victory.  Sir,  I  am  your  assured  friend, 

Brickhill,  this  12th  July,  1643.  ESSEX. 

No.  L1X.1 

Essex  to  the  Speaker. 

Sir,  —  I  should  not  so  often  trouble  you  in  your  great 
affairs,  but  that  I  could  not  discharge  the  duty  I  owe,  holding 
so  great  a  charge  as  I  do,  but  to  acquaint  you,  that  unless 
present  order  be  taken  for  the  supplying  the  army  with 
money,  their  necessities  are  so  great,  it  will  be  impossible 
for  me  to  keep  them  together.  For  besides  their  former 
arrears,  they  are  now  three  weeks  without  pay ;  many  sick 
men  recover,  but  finding  no  money  they  have  small  comfort. 
I  am  now  marching  to  a  fresh  quarter,  where,  if  they  may 
have  pay,  recruits,  and  clothing,  most  of  them  being  almost 
naked,  and  our  soldiers  not  drawn  away  with  new  levies,  I 
doubt  not  but  in  a  short  time  to  have  a  considerable  army. 
Sir,  I  am  your  assured  friend, 

Uxbridge,  this  6th  August,  1643.  ESSEX. 

One  of  the  newspapers  informs  us,  that  on  the  first 
of  these  letters  being  read  in  the  House  of  Commons, 
there  was  a  vehement  debate ;  the  "root  and  branch" 
men  were  beginning  to  show  themselves  in  their  true 
colours.  Essex,  with  his  desire  to  obtain  peace,  and 
to  avoid  bloodshed,  was  far  too  moderate,  while  his 

1  Tanner  MSS.  62.  233. 


CHAP. XV.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  371 

rank  was  an  additional  objection  against  him.  Vassall, 
member  for  London,  moved  that  "  the  General  be 
"  pressed  to  speak  more  plainly,  and  that  if,  after 
"  the  expense  of  2,000,000/.  of  treasure  without  any 
"  effect,  he  had  a  mind  to  lay  down  arms,  he  should 
"  let  them  know  it,  and  there  wanted  not  as  good 
"  soldiers  as  he  to  take  them  up." l  This  motion, 
though  dropped  at  the  time,  was  very  popular  in  the 
City,  where  Sir  William  Waller  was  generally  desig- 
nated as  the  new  General,  whose  successful  expedition 
to  the  West  had  not  then  been  cut  short  on  Roundway 
Down.  As  if  to  render  impossible  a  reconciliation 
with  the  King,  the  Commons  had,  on  the  22nd  May, 
impeached  the  Queen  of  high  treason ;  but  the  Lords 
did  not  enter  into  the  question,  which  was  dropped. 

The  result  of  the  debate  was  a  resolution  that  as, 
by  the  royal  proclamation  of  the  20th  June2,  their 
existence  as  a  Parliament  was  ignored,  and  con- 
sequently they  could  not  treat  with  the  King  as  a 
Parliament,  and  that  they  had  bound  themselves 
never  to  lay  down  arms  as  long  as  the  Papists  were 
protected,  an  answer  should  be  sent  to  the  Lord 
General  to  satisfy  him,  and  they  would  recruit  his 
troops  as  he  desired. 

Yet  the  affairs  of  the  Parliament  were  never  so 
low,  nor  those  of  the  King  in  so  prosperous  a  con- 
dition, as  they  were  at  this  juncture.  From  Ux- 

1  Collection  of  newspapers,  Brit.  Mus. 

2  Warning  His  Majesty's  good  subjects  not  to  be  misled  by  the  votes, 
orders,  and  pretended  ordinances  of  the  Houses,  and  offering  pardon 
to  those  who  would  repair  to  him. — Rushworth,  vi.  331. 

B  B    2 


372  LIVES    OF    THE    EAKLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

bridge,  Lord  Essex  conducted  his  wasted  and  "al- 
"  most  naked "  army  into  quarters  about  Kingston 
on  Thames,  where  we  will  leave  them  for  a  time  to 
notice  the  situation  of  the  royalist  forces,  and  the 
expedition  of  Sir  William  Waller. 

In  the  North,  Newcastle  was  victorious  over 
Fairfax;  in  the  West,  Lord  Stamford  had  been 
completely  defeated  by  Sir  Ralph  Hopton  at  Stratton, 
the  result  of  which  was  the  fall  of  Exeter  to  Prince 
Maurice,  who,  with  Hertford  and  Hopton,  remained 
masters  of  the  Western  Counties. 

Henrietta  Maria  had  landed  in  Yorkshire  in 
February,  bringing  with  her  supplies  of  money  and 
munitions  of  war.  Want  of  ammunition  had  pre- 
vented the  Oxford  army  from  acting  early  in  the 
season ;  a  supply  sent  by  the  Queen  from  York 
removed  that  difficulty,  and  at  length,  having  col- 
lected an  army,  she  proceeded  to  join  her  husband, 
who  met  her  at  Edgehill  on  the  13th  July.  She 
brought  him  3000  foot,  30  troops  of  horse,  6  guns, 
2  mortars,  and  150  waggons  loaded  with  stores,  and 
arrived  at  Oxford  the  same  day  as  the  news  of  the 
victory  on  Roundway  Down. 

Although  Reading  had  surrendered,  the  garrison 
of  3000  men  had  been  permitted  to  rejoin  their 
colours  ;  the  loss  of  that  town  may,  therefore,  be  con- 
sidered to  have  added  to  the  King's  strength. 

The  defeat  of  Waller  was  followed  by  the  capture 
of  Bristol,  which  place  was  shamefully  surrendered 
by  Nathaniel  Fiennes  to  Prince  Rupert  on  the  27th 
July. 


CHAP.  XV.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  373 

A  great  loss  had  been  sustained  by  the  rebels  on 
the  18th  June,  in  the  person  of  John  Hampden,  one 
of  the  most  distinguished  and  esteemed  of  that  party. 
Prince  Rupert  had  made  one  of  those  rapid  guerilla 
expeditions  for  which  he  was  celebrated,  and  had 
beaten  up  a  rebel  post  at  Chinnor  during  the  night. 
On  his  return  towards  Oxford,  hotly  pursued,  he 
was  forced  to  turn  and  face  the  enemy  at  Chalgrave 
field.  In  the  skirmish  which  ensued,  the  great  patriot 
fell  mortally  wounded. 

Sir  William  Waller,  after  taking  Chichester,  had 
been  detached  from  Lord  Essex's  army  into  the 
West.  He  defeated  Lord  Herbert,  and  took  in  suc- 
cession Malmesbury,  Tewkesbury,  Chepstow,  Mon- 
mouth,  Hereford,  and  Leominster,  overrunning  the 
country  and  raising  contributions.  Having  notice 
that  Prince  Maurice,  Hertford,  and  Hopton,  whose 
head-quarters  were  at  Wells,  intended  to  cut  him  off, 
he  returned  to  Bath  ;  many  skirmishes  took  place  ; 
at  length  an  indecisive  action  was  fought  on  Lans- 
down,  after  which,  Maurice  and  Hertford  went  to 
Oxford,  Hopton  to  Devizes,  in  which  town  Waller 
was  besieging  him,  when  Lord  Wilmot  arrived  from 
Oxford  with  1500  horse  and  two  guns,  and  on 
the  13th  July,  a  battle  was  fought  on  Roundway 
Down,  in  which  Sir  William  Waller  was  completely 
defeated;  his  men  threw  away  their  arms  and  fled, 
and  Waller  himself  escaped  to  Bristol  without  the 
shadow  of  an  army,  leaving  artillery,  baggage,  and 
ammunition  to  the  Royalists. 

Sir  William  Waller  had  treated    his  enemy  with 

B  B  3 


374  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

the  greatest  contempt,  having,  in  his  vain-glorious 
confidence,  written  to  the  Parliament  that  "  their 
"  work  was  done,  and  by  the  next  post  he  would 
"  send  the  number  and  quality  of  his  prisoners." 
The  extreme  party,  who  perceived  Essex  would 
never  go  the  length  they  desired,  had  already 
planned  the  setting  up  an  independent  General, 
and  had  selected  Waller.  The  latter,  after  his 
defeat,  complained  that  he  had  been  "  sacrificed  by 
"  Essex,  who,  jealous  of  the  great  things  he  had 
"  done,  which  eclipsed  his  own  glories,  had,  although 
"  lying  with  his  whole  army  within  ten  miles  of 
"  Oxford,  suffered  the  whole  strength  of  that  place 
"  to  march  thirty  miles  to  destroy  him,  without 
"  sending  out  a  party  to  follow  them,  or  to  alarm 
"  Oxford,  which  would  have  caused  their  recall." 

Waller's  charge  was  so  remote  from  the  truth,  that 
Essex  had  actually  intended  a  diversion  in  his  favour. 
On  the  13th  July,  a  letter  from  the  Earl  was  read  in 
the  Houses,  in  which  he  said,  that  "hearing  the 
"  King's  forces  were  preparing  to  make  head  against 
u  Sir  William  Waller,  enraged  at  his  late  success,  he 
"  was  paying  the  troops  with  the  money  just  arrived, 
"  and  meant  to  advance  on  Oxford  next  Saturday." 
It  was  too  late  when  he  wrote  the  letter  to  have 
afforded  any  succour.1 

Nevertheless,  Waller  was  received  by  his  friends 
with  open  arms ;  and  the  citizens  resolved  that  he 
should  command  an  army  raised  by  them,  while 

1  Perfect  Diurnal,  13th  July. 


CHAP.  XV.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  375 

injurious    reports  were    put   in   circulation   against 
Essex. 

Lord  Essex  had  no  sooner  placed  his  army  in  a 
convenient  situation  for  recruiting  and  clothing,  than 
he  sent  some  of  the  principal  officers  to  the  House  of 
Lords  with  a  report  of  the  state  of  the  troops,  and 
their  requisitions.  He  stated,  out  of  6000  foot 
there  were  at  least  one  half  sick  and  disabled  by  want 
of  pay  and  clothing ;  that  since  the  last  muster  the 
horses  had  diminished  in  number  from  3000  to  2500; 
that  recruits  of  horses  had  been  often  asked  for1,  but 
never  sent ;  that  men  deserted  from  his  army  to  go 
to  the  new  one  under  Waller,  where  they  hoped  for 
better  food  and  clothing ;  that  great  scandals  had 
been  put  upon  the  Lord  General,  the  officers,  and 
army,  through  false  suggestions  and  misunderstand- 
ing, poisoning  the  affections  of  the  people,  and 
hindering  recruits  and  contributions. 

He  therefore  demanded  immediate  payment  of 
arrears,  and  regular  payment  for  the  future ;  that 
clothing  should  be  sent ;  that  800  horses  should  be 
sent  forthwith,  and  a  monthly  supply  of  200  in 
future ;  that  the  new  raised  men  should  not  be  put 
into  the  new  army  until  the  old  were  recruited  ;  that 
all  who  entertained  deserters  should  be  punished ; 
that  those  who  were  guilty  of  scandal  against  his 
Excellency,  the  officers,  and  army,  should  be  severally 
punished ;  that  his  Excellency  having,  by  an  ordi- 

1  Besides  his  own  letters,  there  was  one  from  the  council  of  war 
of  his  army  to  the  Speaker  of  the  House  of  Lords,  of  19th  July. — 
Parl.  Hist.  iii.  155. 

B  B  4 


376  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

nance  of  both  Houses,  the  sole  power  to  grant  com- 
missions, that  none  should  be  granted  save  by  him ; 
that,  it  having  been  reported  that  the  losses  in  the 
West  had  been  occasioned  by  his  Excellency,  the 
loss,  and  the  cause  of  it,  should  be  thoroughly  in- 
quired into. 

The  Lords  passed  resolutions  to  the  above  effect, 
which  being  sent  down  to  the  Commons,  that  House 
agreed  to  all  except  the  last,  and  vindicated  the 
character  of  the  Lord  General  from  all  aspersions. 
On  the  resolution  to  inquire  into  the  loss  at  Round- 
way  Down,  they  divided,  and  rejected  the  motion  by 
fifty- one  votes  to  thirty. 

On  the  5th  August,  the  Lords  voted  to  petition 
the  King  for  peace,  on  account  of  the  miseries  en- 
tailed upon  the  country  by  the  civil  war,  and  sent 
down  resolutions  to  that  effect  to  the  Commons, 
which  passed  by  a  majority  of  twenty- nine.  But  the 
Common  Council  sending  a  petition  to  the  Lower 
House  against  peace,  they  reconsidered  the  question, 
and  again  divided  in  favour  of  peace,  by  a  majority 
of  nine.  The  war  party  were  not  satisfied,  and 
affecting  to  doubt  the  rectitude  of  the  tellers,  insisted 
on  dividing  again  ;  during  the  interim  they  whipped 
in  nine  votes  for  their  side  of  the  question,  which 
was  thus  lost  by  two  votes,  and  so  was  destroyed  the 
hope  of  accommodation  between  the  King  and  Par- 
liament. This  was  a  remarkable  crisis,  for  the  mi- 
nority proposed  to  seek  the  protection  of  Lord  Essex 
and  the  army.  Their  design  got  wind,  and  Pym  and 
Say  and  Sele  were  beforehand  with  them,  arid  so  in- 


CHAP.  XV.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  377 

fluenced  Lord  Essex,  that,  when  applied  to  by  his 
friends,  he  replied  that  he  could  not  conscientiously 
act  against  those  from  whom  he  received  his  com- 
mission. The  Earls  of  Bedford,  Holland,  Portland  \ 
Clare2,  Lords  Con  way  and  Lovelace3,  immediately 
left  London  and  repaired  to  Oxford,  where,  by  a 
most  singular  want  of  policy,  they  were  so  coldly 
received,  and  so  scornfully  treated,  that  with  the 
exception  of  Portland  arid  Lovelace,  who  had  always 
been  considered  Royalists,  the  whole  of  these  noble- 
men had  returned  to  the  Parliament  by  April  of  the 
following  year. 

As  soon  as  Bristol  had  surrendered  to  Rupert,  the 
King  marched  into  the  West,  and  on  the  9th  of 
August  laid  siege  to  Gloucester.  It  was  soon  resolved 
by  the  Houses  to  relieve  that  city  ;  the  recruiting 
of  Essex's  army  now  went  on  in  earnest,  and  the 
shops  of  London  were  ordered  to  be  closed  until 
Gloucester  was  relieved.  After  much  intriguing,  it 
had  been  ordered  that  Sir  William  Waller  should 
receive  his  commission  from  the  Earl  of  Essex,  and 
the  army  of  the  latter  was  to  be  reinforced  by  some 
of  the  City  regiments,  which  Waller  had  hoped  to 
obtain  in  independent  command. 

It  was  not  possible  for  the  King  to  have  committed 
a  greater  error  than  he  did  in  attacking  Gloucester. 
Inspirited  by  their  late  successes,  sanguine  for  the 
future,  his  army  was  as  much  strengthened  morally, 

1  Jerome  Weston,  second  earl,  succeeded  in  1634,  died  1662. 

2  John  Holies,  second  earl,  succeeded  1637,  died  1665. 

1  John  Lovelace,  second  lord,  succeeded  1634,  died  1670. 


378  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

as  the  Parliament  army  was  enfeebled  by  sickness 
and  discords.  He  ought  to  have  attacked  London  ; 
had  he  once  struck  down  the  head,  the  members 
would  soon  have  fallen. 

On  the  15th  August,  Lord  Essex  mustered  his 
army  on  Hounslow  Heath  ;  there  were  3500  foot, 
and  2500  horse.  He  was  afterwards  joined  by  five 
regiments  of  foot  and  one  of  horse  from  the  City. 
Brackley  Heath  was  appointed  the  general  rendezvous, 
at  which  place  his  force  was  further  augmented  by 
Lord  Grey  and  Colonel  Harvey,  with  4000  horse  and 
foot,  arid  a  large  number  of  volunteers.  His  army 
must  now  have  amounted  to  upwards  of  15,000  men. 
On  the  2nd  September  he  moved  from  Aynhoe, 
directing  his  march  by  Chipping  Norton  and  Stow 
on  the  Wold.  The  cavalry  of  Lord  Wilmot  out  of 
Oxford,  and  subsequently  Prince  Rupert,  who  had 
been  detached  from  the  royal  army  on  the  report  of 
his  advance,  constantly  hung  upon  Essex's  army,  and 
by  frequent  skirmishes  with  the  rebel  horse,  endea- 
voured to  check  the  advance  of  the  main  body  led 
by  Essex  in  person,  but  without  effect. 

On  the  5th  September,  on  the  heights  above  Prest- 
bury,  Lord  Essex  displayed  his  army,  and  fired  four 
pieces  of  ordnance,  as  a  signal  to  the  besieged  that 
relief  was  at  hand.  That  night  the  royal  army 
burnt  their  huts,  raised  the  siege  of  Gloucester,  and 
retired  to  Sudeley,  and  afterwards  to  Eveshain. 

On  the  8th,  Essex  entered  Gloucester,  and  was 
received  with  great  rejoicings ;  for,  obstinate  as  had 
been  the  defence,  the  resources  of  the  besieged  were 


CHAP.  XV.         ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  379 

nearly  exhausted,  and  they  could  not  have  anticipated 
the  celerity  and  vigour  with  which  the  march  of  the 
relieving  army  had  been  executed.  After  two  days' 
rest,  Essex  took  his  army  to  Tewkesbury,  to  cover 
Gloucester  while  the  place  was  being  revictualled. 
From  Tewkesbury  he  wrote  the  following  letter. 

No.  LX.i 

Essex  to  the  Speaker  of  the  House  of  Commons. 

Sir, — I  will  not  trouble  you  with  the  particulars  of  our 
march ;  you  shall,  God  willing,  hear  that  more  at  large  here- 
after. You  may  be  certified  only  hereby,  that  the  first  time 
the  enemy  appeared  before  us,  was  at  Aynhoe  on  the  Hill, 
with  a  very  great  body  of  horse,  which  Colonel  Middleton 
faced  more  than  a  whole  day  with  but  two  regiments,  and 
in  campania,  and  skirmished  very  often  with  them.  The 
enemy  faced  us  afterwards  at  Stow  on  the  Wold,  with  about 
4000  horse,  and  retreated  before  us  two  days  together,  with- 
out engaging  himself  more  than  by  small  skirmishes.  Upon 
Tuesday,  in  the  evening,  the  King's  forces  seeing  us  ap- 
proach, raised  their  siege  from  before  Gloucester,  whither  it 
pleased  God  we  came  very  seasonably,  for  the  Governor  had 
not  above  two  or  three  barrels  of  powder  left ;  yet  had  he 
managed  his  business  with  so  much  judgment  and  courage, 
that  the  enemy  not  knowing  of  such  want,  had  but  small 
hope  of  obtaining  their  desires.  We  now  stay  here  only  for 
the  relieving  of  Gloucester  with  victual  and  other  provisions, 
of  which  there  is  an  extraordinary  scarcity. 

That  which  I  must  press  you  with  earnestly  at  this  time 
is,  first,  that  there  be  a  sudden  provision  of  8  or  10,000/.  to 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  218. 


380  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

be  sent  to  that  garrison,  without  which,  there  will  be  an  im- 
possibility of  maintaining  it  this  winter,  the  discontent  of  the 
inferior  officers  and  common  soldiers  being  very  great,  for 
want  of  their  pay  and  arrears ;  they  at  this  time  justly  ex- 
pecting rather  reward  for  their  good  service,  than  want  of 
what  is  their  due.  The  second,  that  the  1000  foot  which 
the  Parliament  is  already  engaged  by  promise  to  send,  may 
speedily  march  thither,  without  which  they  will  not  be  able 
to  fetch  any  provisions  from  the  country,  but  the  enemy  will 
be  master  to  the  very  gates.  The  third,  that  Sir  William 
Waller  may  be  speedily  sent  down  into  these  parts,  which  is 
the  only  means  to  preserve  those  friends  you  have  here ;  for 
mine  own  army  is  in  such  extreme  necessity  for  want  of  pay, 
being  now  in  an  enemy's  country,  and  at  this  time  within 
four  or  five  miles  of  the  King's  army,  where  no  provision  can 
be  had  but  for  ready  money,  and  so  little  hope  have  I  of  a 
supply  from  you,  that,  unless  we  can  presently  fight,  I  must 
be  immediately  necessitated  to  draw  into  some  other  place, 
which  may  be  nearer  supplies,  and  have  a  more  free  inter- 
course to  London. 

Your  assured  friend, 
Tewkesbury,  10th  Sept.,  1643.  ESSEX. 

On  the  receipt  of  this  letter,  resolutions  were 
immediately  passed  in  compliance  with  the  two  first 
of  the  requisitions  ;  the  third  was  passed  over  without 
notice. 

While  lying  at  Tewkesbury,  Essex  was  informed 
that  a  body  of  royalist  troops,  with  a  convoy  of  pro- 
visions, was  at  Cirencester.  He  made  a  show  of 
throwing  a  bridge  over  the  Severn,  and  sent  a  de- 
tachment to  Upton,  making  a  feint  as  though  he  in- 
tended an  attack  on  Worcester,  Having,  by  this 
manoeuvre,  deceived  the  royalist  commanders,  he  made 


CHAP.  XV.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  381 

a  long  and  rapid  march  to  Cirencester,  fell  upon  that 
place  at  one  o'clock  in  the  morning,  surprised  and 
entirely  destroyed  two  regiments  there,  and  capturing 
all  the  officers  and  the  colours,  300  men,  400  horses, 
and  40  loads  of  provisions,  which  seasonably  supplied 
the  wants  of  his  army. 

From  Cirencester,  the  army  proceeded  by  easy 
marches  towards  Hungerford.  In  passing  Albourne 
Chase,  the  rear-guard  was  attacked  with  great  vigour 
by  the  royal  horse  under  Prince  Rupert,  who  had 
been  sent  in  pursuit  as  soon  as  the  real  direction  of 
Essex's  march  had  been  ascertained.  Considerable 
loss  was  sustained  by  both  sides  in  the  skirmishing 
which  ensued;  but  no  other  result  followed,  and 
Essex  pursued  his  march  to  Hungerford,  and  thence, 
on  the  19th  September,  to  Newbury. 

On  arriving  within  two  miles  of  Newbury,  that 
place  was  found  to  be  occupied  by  the  whole  royal 
army;  which,  marching  by  Wantage,  had  reached 
Newbury  about  two  hours  before.  The  rebel  army 
passed  the  night  under  arms.  The  King,  who  had 
possession  of  the  town,  and  a  clear  road  in  his  rear  to 
Oxford,  resolved  not  to  fight  but  on  advantageous 
terms;  while  Essex,  between  whom  and  his  supplies 
the  royal  army  had  interposed,  was  equally  determined 
to  force  the  passage, 

At  daybreak  on  the  20th,  the  Earl  of  Essex,  at  the 
head  of  his  own  regiment  and  two  brigades  of  in- 
fantry, commenced  the  action  by  forcing  the  rising 
ground,  called  Bigg's  Hill,  about  three  quarters  of  a 
mile  from  the  town.  This  spot  appears  to  have 


382  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XV. 

become  the  focus  of  the  battle  ;  and  for  many  hours 
the  possession  of  it  was  obstinately  contested.  The 
left  of  the  rebels,  and  right  of  the  royal  army,  were 
placed  in  the  small  enclosures  and  swampy  ground 
between  the  village  of  Enburne  and  the  river  Kennet, 
where  they  could  not  act  except  as  skirmishers.  The 
rebel  right,  under  Major-General  Skippon,  extended 
from  Bigg's  Hill,  along  the  valley  to  Newbury  Wash, 
crossing  the  high  road,  and  covering  the  approach  of 
their  artillery  under  Sir  John  Meyrick. 

Prince  Rupert,  at  the  head  of  the  royal  cavalry, 
displayed  his  usual  impetuous  valour;  and  several 
times  during  the  day,  the  rebel  horse,  under  Sir 
Philip  Stapleton,  were  forced  to  seek  shelter  in  the 
rear  of  their  foot,  and  there  reform  their  broken 
masses;  but  all  attempts  to  shake  the  infantry  of 
Essex's  army  were  defeated.  In  vain  did  Rupert  lead 
up  his  choicest  horsemen  against  them.  The  front 
ranks  presented  an  impenetrable  array  of  pikes1;  while 
the  rear  ranks,  with  their  matchlocks,  repaid  with  in- 
terest the  fire  from  the  carbines  and  pistols  of  the 
Cavaliers.  The  combat  did  not  cease  until  the  shades 
of  night  rendered  it  impossible  to  distinguish  friend 
from  foe,  when  the  Royalists  drew  back  on  the  town. 
The  rebels  maintaining  the  ground  on  which  they 
fought,  prepared  for  a  renewal  of  the  battle  on  the 
morrow ;  but  during  the  night  the  King  withdrew 

1  The  pike  was  fourteen  or  fifteen  feet  in  length.  It  may  not  be 
uninteresting  to  the  reader  to  be  informed  that  there  is  in  the  United 
Service  Museum,  a  revolving  pistol  of  the  time  of  Charles  I.,  which  acts 
on  a  principle  identical  with  those  supposed  to  be  lately  invented  by 
Colonel  Colt  of  the  United  States. 


CHAP.  XV.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ES^SEX.  383 

his  army,  leaving  open  the  road  to  Reading,  and  thus 
tacitly  admitting  that  he  was  worsted.  Lord  Essex 
arrived  at  Reading  on  the  22nd,  and  after  resting  his 
army,  proceeded  to  Windsor. 

Before  he  quitted  the  field  of  battle,  he  took 
measures  for  the  interment  of  the  slain,  by  issuing 
the  following  order  to  the  minister,  Mr.  Fulke,  and 
the  constables  of  the  parish  of  Enburne. 

These  are  to  will  and  require,  and  straightly  charge  and 
command  you  forthwith,  upon  sight  hereof,  to  bury  all  the 
dead  bodies  lying  in  and  about  Enburne  and  Newbury  Wash, 
as  you,  or  any  of  you,  will  answer  the  contrary  at  your  ut- 
most peril. 

Dated  the  21st  of  September,  1643.  ESSEX. 

The  loss  on  the  side  of  the  Parliament  in  the  battle, 
was  stated  to  be  500  men  ;  that  of  the  Royalists  was 
considerably  greater,  the  rebel  artillery  having  been 
advantageously  placed  and  well  served,  while  that  of 
the  King  was  not,  according  to  Clarendon,  made  use 
of  during  the  day.  While,  on  the  rebel  side,  few 
officers,  arid  none  of  note,  were  slain,  Charles  had  to 
lament  the  loss  of  above  twenty  officers  ;  among  them 
the  Earls  of  Carnarvon1  and  Sunderland2,  and  most 
of  all,  Lucius  Viscount  Falkland3,  a  man  whose 
patriotism  and  virtues  cast  over  the  cause  he  had 

1  Robert,  second  Lord  Dormer,  created  Earl  of  Carnarvon,  1628  ; 
extinct  in  his  son,  1709. 

2  Henry,  third  Lord  Spencer  of  Wormleighton,  was  born  1620;  mar- 
ried,  1639,  Lady  Dorothy  Sidney, — Waller's  Sacharissa;  went  with  the 
Country  party  till  "  they  asked  things  that  did  deny  themselves  ; "  was 
created  Earl  of  Sunderland,  1643. 

3  Lucius  Carey,  second  viscount,  born  1610. 


384  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XY. 

espoused,  a  lustre  fully  equal  to  that  which  the  other 
side  had  received  from  John  Hampden.  The  number 
of  men  killed  on  the  King's  side  cannot  be  ascer- 
tained, the  accounts  being  so  understated  by  his 
partizans,  and  exaggerated  by  his  adversaries,  as  to 
be  unworthy  of  credit. 

On  the  26th  September,  the  Lord  General  being  at 
Essex  House,  the  two  Houses  waited  upon  him,  to 
offer  their  thanks  for  the  great  services  he  had 
rendered.  In  the  House  of  Lords,  he  presented 
several  colours  captured  from  the  King's  army,  one 
of  which  had  upon  it  "  a  picture  of  the  Parliament 
"  House,  with  two  traitors'  heads  at  the  ends  of  it, 
"  and  this  motto,  Ut  extra  sic  intra"  Another  re- 
presented a  Cavalier  in  pursuit  of  a  Roundhead,  the 
latter  crying,  Quarter ;  the  Cavalier  replying,  Qui  se- 
quitur  vincit.1 

It  has  been  stated,  that  Sir  William  Waller  received 
his  commission  from  the  Lord  General.  Essex  had 
been  induced  to  sign  a  commission,  in  which  he  left 
blank  the  space  for  the  name,  which  was  filled  up  by 
the  authority  of  Parliament.  It  gave  powers  to 
Waller,  which  rendered  him  in  some  degree  indepen- 
dent of  his  superior.  On  the  5th  October,  Essex 
remonstrated  against  the  inconvenience  of  Waller's 
army  being  quartered  with  his,  unless  it  were  subject 
to  his  orders.  He  declared  to  a  Committee,  sent  to 
confer  with  him  on  the  subject,  that  he  considered 
Waller's  commission,  as  it  was  penned,  to  be  incom- 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  233. 


CHAP.  XV.        ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  385 

patible  with  his  own ;  and  that  he  was  resolved,  if  he 
continued  to  hold  his  office,  that  he  would  grant 
commissions  and  command  the  army  as  heretofore  ; 
and  he  further  "  desired  leave  to  resign  his  commis- 
"  sion,  and  retire  beyond  seas,  in  regard  to  Sir  William 
"  Waller's  commission,  and  of  the  many  discourage- 
"  ments  he  had  received  in  being  General."1  The 
Houses  were  not  yet  prepared  to  dispense  with  the 
name  and  service  of  Lord  Essex ;  they  therefore 
ordered  that  Waller  should  give  up  his  commission, 
and  receive  another  from  the  Lord  General ;  and  that, 
instead  of  receiving  his  orders  from  the  two  Houses, 
he  should  receive  them  from  the  Lord  General. 
Essex's  army  was  moved  to  St.  Alban's,  Waller's 
quartered  at  Colnbrook.  The  following  letter  from 
Essex  shows  that  he  looked  upon  Sir  William  Waller 
as  a  rival  set  up  against  him,  and  that  he  was  deter- 
mined to  resist  the  efforts  of  Waller's  friends  to 
make  him  independent  of  himself. 

No.  LXI.2 
Essex  to  the  Speaker. 

Sir, — -I  received  an  order  the  last  night,  to  desire  me 
forthwith  to  send  a  commission  to  Sir  William  Waller,  to 
command  the  forces  of  Kent,  Surrey,  Sussex,  and  Hamp- 
shire, according  to  an  ordinance  of  both  Houses.  I  am  so 
ready  for  the  advancement  of  the  present  service  he  is  now 
engaged  in,  and  my  will  to  satisfy  the  desire  of  the  honorable 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  242.  2  Tanner  MSS.  62.  490. 

VOL.  II.  C  C 


386  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.         CHAP.  XV. 

House  of  Commons,  as  that  I  have  sent  down  a  commission 
accordingly.  But  finding  expressions  in  that  order,  that 
might  intimate  a  neglect  in  me,  and  being  confident  of  my 
own  integrity  to  serve  both  Houses,  and  to  preserve  the  good 
opinion  of  the  House  of  Commons,  I  shall  acquaint  you  that 
I  sent  a  commission  by  Mr.  Nicols,  which  he  kept  some  days, 
and  then  wrote  earnestly  to  me  for  another  more  ample ;  I, 
wondering  why  he  should  keep  it  so  long,  and  then  send  for 
another,  deferred  my  resolution  until  I  came  up ;  but  this 
order  intervening,  prevented  me  of  asking  the  reason.  It  is 
true  the  commission  was  not  according  as  I  usually  grant 
them,  but  it  gave  him  full  authority  for  the  present  service. 
For  the  reasons  of  my  limitations  in  the  former  commission, 
I  forbear  to  give  them  ;  but  whensoever  the  Houses  shall 
command  me,  I  shall  be  ready  to  make  it  appear  I  did  no 
more  than  I  ought  to  do,  having  received  so  great  a  trust 
from  the  Parliament,  in  the  discharge  of  my  duty,  and  then 
to  submit  to  their  further  pleasures. 

Sir,  I  desire  you  to  believe  it  shall  be  my  greatest  care 
so  to  carry  myself,  as  that  I  may  give  a  real  account  of  my 
actions,  whensoever  it  shall  please  the  Parliament  to  require  it. 

The  charge  I  took  was  not  by  my  seeking,  I  knowing  my 
own  imperfections,  but  not  in  the  least  way  of  fidelity  and 
constancy.  And  it  was  a  great  encouragement  to  me,  the 
noble  and  free  offers  of  both  Houses  to  live  and  die  with  me, 
which  hath  put  a  great  confidence  in  me,  that  I  shall  never 
want  your  just  protection  and  assistance ;  and  that  you  will 
take  care  of  that  army  that  hath  shewed  so  much  faithful- 
ness and  resolution  in  your  services,  and  that  God  hath  been 
pleased  of  his  infinite  goodness  so  to  protect.  And  for  my 
own  part,  I  am  every  day  so  confirmed  in  the  justness  of  the 
cause,  that  let  the  strength  I  have  be  never  so  weak,  I  shall 
never  desert  the  cause  as  long  as  I  have  any  blood  in  my 
veins,  until  this  kingdom  may  be  made  happy  by  a  blessed 


CHAP.  XV.        ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  387 

peace,  —  which  is  all  honest  men's  prayer,  —  or  to  have  an 
end  by  the  sword,  which  is  the  intention  of  your  assured 
friend,  ESSEX. 

Essex  House,  this  2nd  of  January,  1644. 

At  the  time  that  the  affairs  of  the  Parliament  bore 
an  unfavourable  aspect,  during  the  preceding  summer, 
certain  commissioners  had  been  sent  to  Scotland  to 
negotiate  a  Treaty  of  Assistance.  As  a  preliminary 
measure,  a  Solemn  Mutual  League  and  Covenant  was 
entered  into  by  the  two  nations.  This  Covenant, 
which  at  first  presented  difficulties,  owing  to  the 
intolerance  and  obstinacy  of  both  Presbyterians  and 
Independents,  was  at  length  drawn  up  in  terms 
sufficiently  ambiguous  for  each  party  to  interpret 
them  according  to  its  own  views.  It  was  passed  by 
the  General  Assembly,  and  sent  to  London  on  the  18th 
August,  and,  with  some  trifling  alterations,  passed 
by  both  Houses.  The  contracting  parties  bound 
themselves  to  the  preservation  and  reformation  of 
true  religion,  to  the  extirpation  of  popery,  prelacy 
(by  which  was  meant  church  government  by  arch- 
bishops, bishops,  and  all  ecclesiastical  officers  depend- 
ing on  the  hierarchy),  superstition,  heresy,  schism, 
and  profaneness,  to  preserve  the  rights  and  privi- 
leges of  Parliament  and  the  liberty  of  the  kingdoms, 
to  discover  and  bring  to  condign  punishment  all  in- 
cendiaries and  malignants,  and  to  assist  and  defend 
all  who  entered  into  this  League  and  Covenant. 

The  Covenant  was  solemnly  taken  by  the  House  of 
Commons  in  St.  Margaret's  Church  on  the  22nd 
September,  and  by  the  House  of  Lords  on  the  16th 

cc  2 


388  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XV. 

October.  The  Earl  of  Northumberland,  and  some 
other  Peers,  who  desired  not  the  ascendancy  of  either 
Presbyterian  or  Independent  doctrines,  absented 
themselves  from  the  ceremony  ;  but  Northumberland 
subscribed  the  Covenant  on  the  30th,  and  his  ex- 
ample was  followed  by  most,  if  not  all,  of  the  others. 

By  the  Treaty  of  Assistance,  the  Scots  agreed  to 
send  an  army  of  18,000  foot  and  3000  horse,  with  a 
train  of  artillery,  into  England ;  for  the  services  of 
this  army  the  Parliament  at  Westminster  agreed  to 
pay  30,000£.  a  month,  with  100,000/.  as  an  advance, 
besides  a  recompense  at  the  establishment  of  peace. 
By  the  end  of  the  year  1643,  this  formidable  re- 
inforcement to  the  enemies  of  the  King  was  as- 
sembled, under  the  Earl  of  Leven,  at  the  appointed 
rendezvous  on  the  Borders. 

Sir  William  Waller  was  sent  to  besiege  Arundel 
Castle,  Lord  Essex's  army  was  brought  back  to 
Windsor,  and  the  Earl  of  Manchester,  who  com- 
manded an  army  raised  in  the  Eastern  Counties, 
occupied  Newport  Pagnel. 


CHAP.  XVI.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  389 


CHAPTER  XVI. 

LITE    OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX  —  continued. 

THE  KING  CALLS  A  PAKLIAMENT  AT  OXFORD,   IN   JANUARY,    1644. 

AN   ATTEMPT  TO  NEGOTIATE    FAILS. NEGLECTED    STATE  OF    THE 

ARMY. OPENING    OF    THE     CAMPAIGN. ESSEX    AND     WALLER 

ADVANCE   ON   OXFORD. THE    KING   RETREATS,    AND  IS    PURSUED 

BY  WALLER. ESSEX   MARCHES    INTO  THE  WEST. HIS    LETTERS, 

DETAILING   HIS    PROCEEDINGS. HIS    DISSATISFACTION.  —  HE    IS 

REPRIMANDED   IN   A   LETTER   FROM   THE    SPEAKERS. 

THE  King's  exchequer  was  at  this  time  very  much 
exhausted.  With  a  view  to  devise  the  means  of 
replenishing  it,  and  to  avert  the  danger  threatened 
by  the  newly  formed  alliance  between  the  Parliament 
and  the  Scots,  Charles  summoned  a  Parliament,  or 
Convention,  of  the  Lords  and  Commons  attached  to 
the  royal  cause,  to  meet  at  Oxford  on  the  22nd 
January,  1644.  Forty-three  Peers,  and  one  hundred 
and  eighteen  members  of  the  House  of  Commons, 
attended  this  summons ;  twenty-nine  Lords,  and 
fifty-seven  Commoners,  were  absent  on  the  King's 
service. 

The  first  act  of  the  Oxford  Parliament  was  an 
attempt  to  open  a  negotiation  for  peace  by  the 
mediation  of  the  Earl  of  Essex.  On  the  30th  Ja- 
nuary, the  Lord  General  presented  to  the  House  of 
Lords  a  packet  he  had  received  from  Oxford.  A 
Committee  being  appointed  to  open  it,  the  contents 

c  c  3 


390  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVI. 

were  found  to  be  a  letter  from  the  Earl  of  Forth  to 
Essex,  enclosing  a  parchment1  signed  by  all  the  Lords 
and  Commons  at  Oxford,  expressing  their  desire  for 
peace;  but  as  this  document  was  not  addressed  to 
the  Parliament,  they  recommended  that  it  should  be 
left  to  the  Lord  General  to  reply  to  it,  which  he  did 
in  the  following  letter. 

No.  LXII.2 
Essex  to  the  Earl  of  Forth. 

My  Lord, — I  received  this  day  a  letter  of  the  29th  inst. 
from  your  Lordship,  and  a  parchment  subscribed  by  the 
Prince,  the  Duke  of  York,  and  divers  Lords  and  Gentlemen ; 
but  it  neither  having  address  to  the  two  Houses  of  Parlia- 
ment, nor  therein  there  being  any  acknowledgment  of  them, 
I  could  not  communicate  it  to  them. 

My  Lord,  the  maintenance  of  the  Parliament  of  Eng- 
land, and  of  the  privileges  thereof,  is  that  for  which  we  are 
all  resolved  to  spend  our  blood,  as  being  the  foundation 
whereon  all  our  laws  and  liberties  are  built. 

I  send  your  Lordship  herewith  a  National  Covenant,  so- 
lemnly entered  into  by  both  the  kingdoms  of  England  and 
Scotland,  and  a  declaration  passed  by  them  both  together, 
with  another  declaration  by  the  kingdom  of  Scotland.  I  rest 
your  Lordship's  humble  servant,  ESSEX. 

Essex  House,  January  30th,  1644. 

Charles  then  addressed  himself  to  the  Parliament : 
some  expressions  in  his  letter  were  voted  to  be  in- 
sulting ;  the  attempt  at  negotiation  failed,  and  both 

1  This  document  is  printed  in  Parl.  Hist.  iii.  210. 

2  Lords1  Journal. 


CHAP.  XVI.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  391 

parties  prepared  for  a  renewal  of  hostilities  under 
feelings  of  increased  bitterness.  These  efforts  to 
obtain  peace  had  not  been  overthrown  without  much 
debating  in  the  House  of  Commons,  and  a  dispute 
with  the  Lords,  who  had  refused  to  concur  with 
certain  resolutions  of  the  Commons ;  indeed,  the 
pecuniary  affairs  of  the  Parliament  were  not  in  so 
flourishing  a  condition  as  to  justify  their  obstinacy 
in  continuing  the  miseries  of  civil  war.  The  con- 
sciousness of  the  more  violent  and  unscrupulous 
members  that  their  offences  could  never  really  be 
forgotten,  must  have  strengthened  their  animosity 
towards  the  King,  and  their  resolution  to  continue 
the  war. 

In  February,  the  Lord  General  presented  to  the 
Lords  a  letter  from  General  Skippon,  the  Lieutenant 
General  of  his  army,  stating  that  the  troops  were  in  a 
state  of  mutiny  for  want  of  pay.  On  the  8th  April,  he 
put  in  a  declaration  of  his  own,  containing  a  powerful 
remonstrance  against  the  neglected  condition  in  which 
his  army  was  left.  He  stated  that,  through  the  army 
not  having  been  recruited,  he  was  unable  to  take  ad- 
vantage of  the  late  victory1  obtained  by  Sir  W. 
Waller  and  Sir  W.  Balfour  over  Lord  Hopton ; 
that  had  they  been  beaten,  there  was  no  army  to 
fall  back  upon;  that  Newark2  was  not  taken,  Lin- 
colnshire lost,  Gloucester  not  supplied ;  that  the 
enemy,  through  his  weakness,  had  been  enabled  to  ex- 

1  On  the  29th  March,  near  Alresford,  Hants. 

"  Newark  was  besieged  in  the  beginning  of  March,  and  relieved  on  the 
21st  by  Prince  Rupert,  who  forced  Sir  J.  Meldrum  with  3000  men  to 
surrender  upon  terms. 


c  c  4 


392  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVI. 

tend  their  quarters ;  and  that  last  week  "  there  was 
"  but  a  step  between  us  and  death,  or,  what  is  worse, 
"  slavery." 

"  For  my  part/'  he  continues,  "  as  I  first  engaged 
"  myself  in  this  cause,  and  undertook  this  service 
"  with  an  honest  and  single  heart,  without  any 
"  particular  end  of  my  own,  but  merely  to  serve 
"  my  country,  and  defend  religion  and  liberty,  in 
"  which  cause  both  Houses  of  Parliament,  and  the 
"  good  party  of  the  whole  kingdom,  have  solemnly 
"  protested  to  live  and  die  with  me,  which  hath  kept 
"  up  my  spirits  all  this  while,  and  would  not  suffer 
"  me  to  lay  down  my  commission,  notwithstanding 
"  all  my  discouragements, — I  being  not  conscious  to 
"  myself  of  giving  the  least  offence  to  any,  unless  it 
"  were  for  executing  my  place  as  General  in  that  my 
"  conscience  told  me  was  my  duty, —  so  I  shall  be 
"  ready  still  to  prosecute  it  with  the  utmost  of  my 
"  endeavours,  and  desire  no  longer  to  live  than  I 
"  shall  be  faithful  in  it;  and  though  you  have  been 
"  pleased  to  reduce  my  army  to  7500  foot  and  3000 
"  horse1,  when  my  Lord  of  Manchester  is  allowed  an 
"  army  of  14,000 2,  and  receives  an  allowance  of 
"  34,000£.  a  month  for  the  pay  of  it,  since  it  is  done 
"  by  you  I  submit,  and  with  them,  or  a  lesser  number, 
"if  it  be  your  pleasures,  I  will,  as  I  have  several 
"  times  already,  adventure  my  life  for  the  service  of 
"  this  cause."3 

1  By  an  ordinance  of  March  26. 

2  This  force  had  been  raised  in  the  associated  counties  in  the  end  of 
1643,  and  was  confirmed  by  an  ordinance,  May  15.  1644. 

3  Lords1  Journal. 


CHAP.  XVI.      ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  393 

This  remonstrance  being  considered,  a  committee 
of  both  Houses  went  the  next  day  to  the  City  to  urge 
an  advance  of  men  and  money.  The  Earl  of  Warwick 
and  Sir  Henry  Vane  having  spoken,  were  followed  by 
the  Earl  of  Essex  in  these  words :  — 

"  My  Lord  and  Gentlemen,  —  You  have  understood 
"  by  a  noble  Lord,  my  Lord  Admiral,  and  this  noble 
"  gentleman  of  the  House  of  Commons,  the  desire  of 
"  both  Houses  of  Parliament ;  they  have  acquainted 
"  you  what  the  King's  intention  is,  to  draw  all  his 
"  forces  together,  and  what  the  Parliament  doth 
u  intend  in  drawing  all  the  forces  they  can  south- 
u  ward,  and  what  great  victory  God  hath  given 
"  Sir  William  Waller  and  Sir  William  Balfour ;  so  I 
"  am  only  to  take  this  opportunity  to  give  you  all 
"  acknowledgments  and  thanks  for  those  great  aids 
"  that  I  have  had  always  to  go  along  with  me ;  for  I 
"  must  needs  acknowledge  that  most  of  the  things 
"  that  have  been  done  by  me,  especially  the  business 
"  at  Gloucester,  have  been  done  by  your  help.  I 
"  should  desire  the  like  still,  and  what  shall  come  to 
"  me  I  shall  use  with  good  respects,  and  venture  my 
"  life  with  them.  I  should  have  been  very  glad  that 
"  my  army  had  been  in  that  case,  that  I  might  not 
u  have  needed  to  take  any  of  you  from  your  own 
"  houses,  knowing  how  much  you  have  already  been 
"  at,  both  in  your  estates  and  blood,  in  the  service  of 
u  religion  and  of  this  cause  ;  but  whatsoever  forces 
"  you  please  to  draw  out,  I  shall  venture  my  life  with 
"  them,  and  be  ready  to  make  a  quick  end  of  this 


cause." 


394  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVI- 

In  the  beginning  of  January,  the  name  of  Lord 
Essex  had  been  added  to  the  "  Assembly  of  learned 
u  and  godly  divines  and  others,"  which  was  ap- 
pointed to  settle  the  liturgy  and  government  of  the 
Church  of  England.  Shortly  afterwards,  a  committee 
of  members  of  both  Houses  was  appointed,  whose 
duty  was,  jointly  with  the  commissioners  sent  from 
Scotland,  to  consult,  direct,  and  manage  all  the 
affairs  of  the  two  kingdoms  for  carrying  on  the  war 
to  the  best  advantage,  and  keeping  up  a  good  in- 
telligence between  the  two  nations,  and  to  correspond 
with  foreign  states.  The  Earls  of  Northumberland, 
Essex,  Warwick,  and  Manchester ;  Viscount  Saye 
and  Sele ;  Lords  Wharton  and  Roberts ;  Honourable 
William  Pierpoint ;  Sirs  H.  Vane,  sen.  and  jun., 
Philip  Stapleton,  William  Waller,  Gilbert  Gerrard, 
William  Armyn,  Arthur  Haslerig ;  Oliver  St.  John, 
John  Crew,  Robert  Wallop,  Oliver  Cromwell,  Samuel 
Brown,  and  John  Glynne,  the  Recorder,  Esqs,,  —  were 
appointed  members  of  this  Committee.1  From  the 
order  and  letter  books  of  this  Committee, — which 
remained  in  the  custody  of  John  Milton,  their  secre- 
tary, until  the  Restoration,  were  then  taken  from 
him,  and  are  now  in  the  State  Paper  Office, — the  chief 
part  of  the  correspondence  and  information  respect- 
ing this,  the  last  campaign  of  Lord  Essex,  has  been 
extracted. 

The  first  meeting  of  the  Committee  took  place  at 
Essex  House,  on  the  18th  February,  1644.  An  oath 

1  The  Earl  of  Loudon,  Sir  Archibald  Johnston  of  Waristoun,  and 
Mr.  Robert  Barclay,  were  the  Scots  members. 


CHAP.  XVI.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX.  395 

of  secrecy l  was  administered  to  each  member ;  a  chair- 
man was  chosen  every  fortnight,  Northumberland 
being  the  first ;  and  a  minister  was  appointed  to  pray 
daily  at  the  meeting  and  rising  of  the  Committee. 
Lord  Essex  appears  to  have  attended  the  meetings 
almost  every  day  until  he  went  to  join  the  army. 

In  the  account  of  this  campaign,  which,  in  its  com- 
mencement, promised  so  auspiciously,  and  terminated 
so  disastrously,  for  the  army  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  it 
will  be  my  endeavour  to  show  that  his  march  into 
the  West  was  not  the  great  error  that  has  been 
commonly  supposed ;  and  that  his  failure  arose  partly 
from  the  fact  of  Sir  William  Waller2  being  drawn  off 
from  his  attendance  on  the  royal  army,  and  partly 
from  the  jealousy  which  that  General  and  his  friends 
entertained  of  Lord  Essex;  but,  perhaps,  in  a  still 
greater  measure,  from  the  general  movements  of  the 
armies  being  directed  by  a  Committee  sitting  in 
London,  a  course  pregnant  with  evil,  on  which 
Whitelocke3  justly  observes :  "  that  it  was  thought 
"  strange,  at  that  time,  that  the  Committee  of  both 
u  Kingdoms  should,  at  that  distance,  take  upon  them 
u  to  give  particular  orders  for  the  services  arid  march 
"  of  their  armies,  and  not  rather  leave  it  to  the  chief 
"  commanders  that  were  upon  the  place,  who,  upon 
u  every  motion  of  the  enemy,  might  see  cause  to 
"  alter  their  counsels.  This  increased  the  jealousies 

1  The  House  of  Lords  rejected  the  oath  of  secrecy,  but  it  is  entered 
in  the  Order  Book. 

2  Waller  was  certainly  disabled  for  a  time,  after  his  defeat  at  Cropredy 
Bridge,  by  the  mutiny  and  disorganization  of  his  army. 

3  Mem.  p.  90. 


396  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.          CHAP.  XVI. 

"  between  the  Lord  General  and  Waller,  both  gallant 
"  men  ;  but  the  General  thought  himself  undervalued, 
"  and  Waller  too  much  exalted." 

When  Charles  received  intelligence  that  the  army 
of  the  Parliament  was  about  to  take  the  field,  he 
withdrew  the  garrison  from  Heading,  destroying  the 
works,  and  concentrated  his  army  about  Wantage, 
Faringdon,  and  Abingdon. 

On  the  14th  May,  Essex  and  Waller  left  London  to 
commence  operations,  the  army  of  Essex  being  at 
Beaconsfield,  that  of  Waller  at  Farnham.  On  the 
25th,  the  royal  troops  evacuated  Abingdon  at  the 
approach  of  Essex's  advanced  guard,  who  occupied 
that  town  in  person  the  following  day.  Sir  William 
Waller  at  the  same  time  approaching  Wantage,  the 
royal  army  fell  back  on  Oxford  and  Woodstock, 
covering  the  bridges  over  the  Isis  and  Charwell. 
Essex  crossed  the  Thames  at  Sandford,  and  displaying 
his  army  on  Bullington  Green,  within  sight  of  Oxford, 
as  though  he  intended  an  attack  on  the  city1,  ex- 
tended himself  along  the  east  bank  of  the  Charwell, 
and  taking  up  his  quarters  at  Islip.  some  skirmishing 
took  place  at  Gosford  Bridge.  In  the  mean  time, 
Waller  had  advanced  to  Abingdon,  where  an  attempt 
was  made  by  the  King  to  surprise  him  in  a  night 
attack,  and  defeat  his  army  before  Essex  could  recross 
the  Thames.  This  being  repulsed  with  loss,  it  was 

1  That  an  attack  on  Oxford  was  not  seriously  intended,  is  shown  by  a 
letter  from  the  Committee  of  both  Houses,  dated  Derby  House,  31st  May, 
in  which  they  "  concur  with  his  Excellency  in  the  danger  of  trinketing 
(i.  e.  meddling)  with  Oxford."  They  also  forwarded  him  some  inter- 
cepted letters. 


CHAP.  XVI.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  397 

resolved  that  the  King  should  immediately  leave 
Oxford,  which  he  did  on  the  3rd  June ;  and  marching 
by  Bourton  on  the  Water,  and  Evesham,  arrived  at 
Worcester  on  the  6th. 

On  the  same  day  that  the  King  evacuated  Oxford, 
Essex  passed  the  Charwell,  and  Waller  forced  the 
passage  of  the  Isis  at  Newbridge.  Advancing  by 
Woodstock,  Essex  halted  on  the  6th  June  at  Chipping 
Norton,  on  which  day  Waller,  marching  through 
Witney  and  Burford,  arrived  at  Stow  on  the  Wold. 

The  intercepted  letters  sent  to  Essex  on  the  30th, 
as  mentioned  in  a  note,  contained  intelligence  of  the 
extreme  distress  to  which  the  garrison  of  Lyme  was 
reduced ;  and  the  Committee  earnestly  urged  the 
General  to  send  relief  to  that  place.  At  a  Council  of 
War  it  was  resolved,  that  as  Waller's  army  had  lighter 
artillery  and  fewer  carriages,  he  should  go  in  pursuit 
of  the  King,  while  Essex  should  relieve  Lyme. 
Against  this  decision  Waller  remonstrated  vehemently, 
urgirfg  that  the  West  was  assigned  to  him  by  the 
Committee.  Essex  ordered  him  peremptorily  to 
march  according  to  the  decision  of  the  Council  of 
War,  which  he  was  compelled  to  obey,  but  sent 
complaints  to  his  friends  productive  of  much  subse- 
quent mischief. 

No.  LXIII.1 

Essex  to  the  Right  Honourable  the  Committee  of  both  King- 
doms, at  Derby  House. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — I  have  received  your  letter 
of  the  1st  June,  and  therein  a  direction  to  acquaint  you  with 

1  S.  P.  O. 


398  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVI. 

the  state  of  the  army,  which  I  conceive  I  shall  do  best  by 
sending  your  LL.  this  abstract  of  the  last  musters,  whereby 
you  may  make  a  near  computation  of  our  strength.  My  en- 
deavour hath  been  to  fight  the  King's  army,  in  pursuit 
whereof  I  have  advanced  as  far  as  Islip.  My  army  came 
not  all  in  till  twelve  of  the  clock  on  Wednesday  night,  where, 
for  the  most  part,  we  have  been  and  yet  are  in  skirmish 
upon  the  several  passes  of  the  river  of  Charwell,  and  some- 
times the  service  hath  been  hot.  It  appears  that  the  enemy 
declining  to  fight,  hath  endeavoured  to  stop  us  of  passing  that 
river,  and  consequently  of  forcing  him  to  fight,  or  retire 
further.  But  I  hope  that  if  Sir  Wm.  Waller,  according  to 

orders  which  I  have  already  sent  him on  the  other 

the  river,  I  shall  be  able  to  give  some  farther  ac- 
count of  service  upon  them,  if  by  the  want  of  money  and 

ammunition  I  be  not  hindered,  having  already them 

both,  which  I  earnestly  recommend  to  your  especial  care, 
and  remain  your  Lordship's  humble  servant, 

Islip,  2nd  June,  1644.  ESSEX. 

P.S.  The  Dutch  ambassadors  came  this  day  from  Oxford, 
and  made  very  affectionate  expressions  to  myself  and  the 
council  of  war,  of  their  desires  to  do  their  utmost  service  in 
procuring  a  peace  between  the  King  and  Parliament.  The 
answer  that  we  gave  them  I  will  not  now  trouble  you  with, 
intending  to  send  it  up  to  you  very  shortly  by  Sir  John 
Bampfield. 

No.  LXIV.1 
Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  Since  my  last,  the  enemy 
hath  drawn  all  his  forces,  both  horse  and  foot,  from  the 
passes  of  the  river  near  Oxford,  and  for  aught  that  I  can 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XVI.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  399 

understand  from  all  prisoners  and  scouts,  they  are  in  a  very 
ill  condition  if  they  do  not  help  themselves.  By  passing  to 
and  from  the  river,  our  horses  have  been  upon  very  great  duty. 
Commissary  General  Beloe  having  been  upon  duty  in  the 
field  ever  since  Thursday  till  this  night,  and  finding  by  this 
morning  that  the  enemy  was  retreating,  fell  upon  their  rear, 
and  took  40  or  50  prisoners,  whereof  one  gentleman,  a  great 
papist  and  of  great  estate,  Sir  W.  Spencer.  To-morrow 
morning,  God  willing,  I  have  appointed  to  march  by  break 
of  day,  and  then  I  shall  be  able  to  give  your  Lordships  a 
further  account.  Captain  Fleming  killed  at  Woodstock  a 
quartermaster  of  the  Prince  Charles  hand  to  hand,  and  all 
he  said  after  he  was  wounded,  and  before  he  died,  was,  "  The 
devil  take  all  the  papists  that  had  brought  him  to  this."  Sir 
Charles  Blunt  having  stroke  an  officer  of  the  trained  bands 
of  Oxford,  he  killed  him  near  the  King.  We  had  not  staid 
here  this  long,  notwithstanding  the  enemy's  endeavour  to  stop 
the  passes,  had  Col.  Harvey  come  up  to  us  sooner,  till  whose 
arrival  we  were  not  provided  for  the  service,  which  now  we 

shall  be. 

Your  Lordships'  humble  servant, 

Islip,  3rd  June,  1644.  ESSEX. 

No.  LXV.1 

Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  The  relief  of  Lyme,  which 
you  so  earnestly  recommended  to  me,  hath  taken  up  the  best 
of  my  care  and  endeavours  to  fulfil,  which,  next  unto  fighting 
with  the  King's  army,  I  suppose  to  be  of  most  instant  con- 
cernment. The  King  is  now  fled  rather  than  gone  with  an 
army,  having  left  his  many  and  weighty  carriages  at  Ox- 
ford, and  is  so  much  made  up  of  lighthorsemen,  as  an  army 

1  S.  P.  O. 


400  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVI. 

with  carriages  must  come  much  behind  him.  I  have  there- 
fore applied  myself  to  the  relief  of  Lyme,  which,  seeing  you 
so  recommended  it  to  me,  I  durst  not  undertake  with  less 
than  my  army.  And  in  case  the  King  should  not  with  his 
army  go  westward,  your  wisdom  and  care  will  provide  for 
what  may  tend  to  the  safety  of  these  parts  ;  my  desires  being 
only,  to  the  best  of  my  understanding,  to  approve  myself  for 
the  advancement  of  the  public  service,  and  of  my  being  your 
humble  servant, 

Chipping  Norton,  6th  June,  1644.  ESSEX. 

It  is  a  singular  circumstance,  and  deserving  of 
mention,  that,  at  this  very  time,  while  Lord  Essex 
was  apparently  the  most  determined  enemy  to  the 
King,  he  should  be  a  petitioner  to  the  Parliament  for 
the  King's  sister,  as  appears  by  the  following  letter. 

No.  LXVI.1 
Essex  to  the  House  of  Lords. 

My  Lords, — It  hath  pleased  the  Queen  of  Bohemia  to 
write  to  me,  and  to  make  known  her  necessities  to  be  so 
great,  that  she  wants  wherewith  to  defray  the  charge  of  her 
house.  Your  Lordships  know  how  much  this  kingdom  is 
concerned  in  honor  to  see  that  a  prince  of  her  birth  and 
near  alliance  to  this  Crown,  should  not  fall  into  a  condition 
so  much  below  herself ;  wherefore  I  beseech  your  Lordships 
to  take  it  into  consideration,  and  if  you  think  fit,  to  commu- 
nicate it  likewise  unto  the  honorable  House  of  Commons ; 
and  I  doubt  not,  but  though  the  burden  and  charge  of  the 
kingdom  be  now  very  great,  yet  some  honorable  provision 
will  be  made  herein.  I  hope  your  Lordships  will  pardon 
this  boldness  in  me  in  respect  of  that  which  I  owe  to  that 

1  Lords'  Journal. 


CHAP.  XVI.   ROBERT,  THIRD  EARL  OF  ESSEX.       401 

Princess,  for  whose  sake,  and  in  whose  service,  I  had  the 
honor  first  to  bear  arms.  And  if  my  intercession  may  in 
any  way  advantage  her,  I  shall  take  it  for  a  great  favor  done 
to  your  Lordships'  most  humble  servant, 

Abingdon,  27th  May,  1644.  ESSEX. 

This  letter,  and  the  feelings  which  prompted  it, 
would  not  have  tended  to  lessen  the  jealousy  with 
which  Essex  was  then  regarded,  as  an  avowed  advo- 
cate for  peace  and  a  friend  to  royalty,  which  feeling 
had,  but  a  few  days  before  the  above  letter  was 
written,  caused  orders  to  be  sent  to  him,  that  if  the 
King,  as  was  then  thought  probable,  threw  himself 
on  the  protection  of  Essex,  he  was  to  take  no  steps 
whatever  except  by  the  authority  of  Parliament ;  so 
fearful  were  they  of  his  giving  the  King  terms  which 
they  would  think  too  favourable,  but  which  they 
might  be  forced  to  accept. 

That  the  narrative  of  Essex's  march  into  the  West 
may  not  be  broken,  we  will  first  notice  the  proceedings 
of  the  King  and  Sir  William  Waller.  Clarendon  says, 
that  the  sole  object  of  the  King  was  to  avoid  his 
enemies.  He  moved  from  Worcester  to  Bewdley,  at 
which  place  he  arrived  on  the  llth;  Waller,  having 
taken  Sudeley  Castle,  being  the  same  day  at  Evesham. 
On  hearing  whither  the  King  was  gone,  and  con- 
cluding that  he  intended  to  proceed  to  Shrewsbury, 
and  perhaps  join  Prince  Kupert,  who  had  been  sent 
to  relieve  York  and  fight  the  combined  armies,  he 
advanced  to  Stourbridge.  The  King  immediately 
retrograded  by  Worcester  and  Broadway  to  Burford  ; 
and  leaving  Oxford  on  his  right,  reached  Buckingham 

VOL.  II.  D  D 


402  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVI. 

on  the  22nd,  creating  great  alarm  in  the  associated 
counties.  Waller  appears  to  have  made  no  efforts  to 
overtake  the  King  when  he  heard  of  his  evasion,  but 
proceeded  to  Gloucester,  and  thence  to  Kineton,  at 
both  which  places  he  received  reinforcements,  and 
on  the  28th  was  at  Banbury.  The  next  day,  he 
attacked  the  royal  army  at  Cropredy  Bridge,  and 
was  worsted  with  considerable  loss  of  men,  and  eight 
guns.  The  King's  army  drew  off  the  next  day  to 
Deddington,  and  so  again  to  Evesham ;  while  Waller, 
whose  conduct  is  quite  unaccountable,  except  on  the 
ground  that  his  troops  were  mutinous,  went  to 
Northampton,  leaving  the  King  to  follow  his  march 
unimpeded,  although  much  weaker  than  himself  in 
men1  and  artillery.  Charles  proceeded  leisurely  by 
Cirencester,  Badminton,  Bath,  Wells,  Ilchester,  Chard, 
and  Honiton  to  Exeter,  where  he  arrived  on  the  26th 
July,  and  where  we  will,  for  the  present,  leave  him. 

On  the  8th  June,  the  Committee  wrote  to  Essex 
that  they  were  very  much  in  the  dark,  and  desired  to 
know,  by  the  bearer,  what  were  his  intentions,  and 
what  appeared  to  be  those  of  the  enemy.  Two  days 
later,  when  they  must  have  been  aware  that  the  two 
armies  were  proceeding  in  execution  of  the  reso- 
lutions of  the  6th,  they  again  wrote  to  him,  that  the 
House  of  Commons  had  resolved  that  it  was  more 
convenient  for  Waller  to  go  into  the  West,  and  for 

1  Waller  reported  on  the  5th  June,  that  the  King  had  1500  foot  and 
3000  horse,  and  on  the  17th,  that  the  King  was  gone  to  Burford,  and, 
there  being  nothing  for  him  to  do,  he  was  resolved  to  march  immediately 
into  the  West.  —  Letter-Book  of  the  Committee. 


CHAP.  XVI.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX.  403 

him  to  be  employed  elsewhere ;  but  that  to  avoid 
giving  encouragement  to  the  enemy,  he  was,  fbr  the 
present,  to  remain  where  he  was.  They  hoped  he  had 
sent  a  considerable  body  of  horse  to  relieve  Lyme, 
and  begged  that,  if  not  already  sent,  he  would 
do  so  forthwith. 

No.  LXVIL1 
Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  By  all  informations,  the  city 
of  Oxford  was  in  great  want  of  victuals,  and  might  easily 
have  been  reduced,  if  the  present  necessity  of  following  the 
King's  flying  army  and  relieving  the  West  could  have  spared 
my  army  and  Sir  Wm.  Waller's  forces,  but  by  reason  of 
the  rivers  less  force  could  not  have  done  it,  but  would  have 
left  some  side  open  for  victuals  to  come  in.  Your  Lordships 
will  understand,  by  Sir  Arthur  Heselrigge,  that  all  the 
King's  foot  he  had  left  went  to  Herefordshire,  which,  in  all 
likelihood,  is  for  Bristol.  For  raising  of  horse,  I  believe 
Captain  Grenvile,  with  a  little  encouragement,  will  be  able 
to  make,  by  his  own  and  Capt.  TyrelPs  troops,  a  regiment 
to  be  employed  as  you  shall  please ;  but  for  sending  horse 
from  my  army  till  I  see  what  force  is  like  to  be  raised  by 
the  enemy  in  the  West,  and  Sir  Wm.  Waller's  forces  being 
so  far  parted  that  our  horse  continually  decay  both  with 
marching  and  duty,  I  cannot  spare  any.  The  packet  for 
the  Prince  Elector  I  have  sent,  according  to  your  Lordships' 
commands,  to  Oxford.  Concerning  the  Northampton  forces, 
I  do  not  know  how  they  may  return,  but  with  much  danger; 
and,  my  Lords,  I  do  desire  your  Lordships  to  take  it  into 
consideration,  that  when  I  departed  the  city,  I  was  promised 
my  Lord  Grey's  regiment  of  horse,  and  Col.  Purefoy's,  the 

1  S.  P.  O. 

D  D   2 


404  LIVES    OF    THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVI. 

last  of  which  I  was  content  to  spare  for  Gloucester,  but  since 
he  is  returned  home,  who  your  Lordships  may  please  to 
employ  about  Oxford,  Northampton,  or  where  else,  such  as 
are  most  likely  to  do  service  :  but  I  do  not  understand  how 
it  is  possible  for  my  horse  to  break  through  Prince  Maurice, 
his  army  of  horse  and  foot ;  and  if  they  could,  and  should 
join  with  the  men  of  Lyme  in  pursuit  of  Prince  Maurice,  I 
know  not  what  my  army  should  do  without  horse  the  whilst, 
or  how  the  horse  should  ever  return  to  my  foot  again ;  for 
if  the  enemy  break  down  apace,  my  horse  are  shut  up  for 
ever.  I  am  commanded,  therefore,  by  the  discipline  of  war 
and  rules  of  reason,  to  march  further  with  my  foot,  for  fear 
my  horse  should  receive  a  blow  ;  I  must  not  retreat,  for 
then  the  enemy  will  be  encouraged  and  strengthened.  Sir 
Ralph  Hopton  will  have  time  to  raise  men  and  money,  and 
my  foot,  who  have  cheerfully  undergone  this  march  for  the 
recovery  of  the  West,  will  be  quite  disheartened  if  once  we 
come  to  face  about;  they  will  certainly  be  like  a  routed 
army,  broken  all  to  pieces,  and  melted  after  they  are  broken. 
Moreover,  you  are  misinformed  concerning  the  strength  of 
the  enemy ;  for  there  is  a  party  of  horse  and  foot  gone  to 
them  with  monies  from  Salisbury  within  these  two  days,  and 
they  may  draw  out  some  from  Weymouth,  Bristol,  &c.,  and 
make  them  dragooners,  to  cut  us  off  in  the  strait  passes, 
when  they  perceive  we  have  sent  none  but  horse.  The 
enemy's  strength  of  horse  is  far  beyond  that  which  you  speak 
of,  and  we  hear  that  Hopton  marcheth  toward  them  with 
some  horse  and  2000  foot,  most  of  them  newly  raised.  I 
shall  not  stand  to  dispute  how  well  Sir  William  Waller  is 
beloved  in  the  West ;  you  know  something  of  Bristol  and 
Plymouth.  I  am  sure  the  Lord  Roberts  is  not  hated  there ; 
he  hath  your  ordinance  for  Cornwall.  He  is  the  more  deeply 
engaged,  because  he  hath  a  considerable  estate  in  those  parts; 
and  he  is  entrusted  with  a  higher  place  in  the  army  than  the 
major  of  a  brigade.  He  is  cordially  tender  of  the  good  of  his 


CHAP.  XVI.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  405 

country,  and  the  western  gentlemen  understand  their  own 
interest  so  well,  that  they  will  not  be  displeased  with  an 
army  which  adventures  itself  for  their  relief  without  putting 
them  to  any  extraordinary  charge.  If  Sir  William  Waller 
go  thither,  he  will  indeed  free  them  from  paying  contribution 
to  the  enemy,  but  will  command  them  to  pay  contribution  to 
himself;  though  I  know  he  hath  received  large  sums  already 
from  the  western  gentlemen  for  the  paying  of  two  or  three 
regiments,  which  have  done  them  but  little  service  as  yet, 
the  other  regiments  under  his  conduct  being  paid  by  the  city 
of  London,  or  the  associated  counties. 

For  my  own  part,  I  am  resolved  not  to  spoil  the  western 
countries,  because  I  go  to  relieve  them,  and  that  is,  as  I 
conceive,  the  way  to  reduce  them.  I  respect  not  pay,  and 
am  ready  to  serve  the  State  and  the  West,  though  it  cost 
me  dear :  yet  I  am  confident  they  will  not  suffer  us  to  perish 
in  their  service.  Sir  William  Waller  is  engaged  to  look  to  the 
associated  counties  by  ordinance  of  Parliament,  and  his  faith 
past  to  those  distressed  counties.  Now  there  are  two  con- 
siderable garrisons  in  those  counties,  Basing  and  Winchester, 
which  are  not  yet  removed.  He  will  do  well  to  perform  what 
he  hath  already  undertaken,  before  he  undertake  a  new 
business.  He  was  engaged  in  pursuit  of  the  King's  army, 
and  his  care  for  the  present  should  be  to  hinder  the  levying 
of  forces  and  raising  of  monies  in  Worcestershire;  if  you 
think  fit  to  call  him  off,  he  will  be  sooner  at  Oxford  than  we 
can  possibly  be,  and  then  he  may  help  Major  Browne  to 
beleaguer  Oxford.  When  that  service  is  ended,  Major 
Browne  may  requite  him,  and  help  to  clear  Sir  William's 
associated  counties,  for  Oxford  is  Sir  Wm.  Waller's  direct 
way  to  Basing  and  Winchester. 

Pardon  me,  if  I  make  bold  to  order  and  direct  my  own 
major,  for  in  truth  I  do  not  see  how  Sir  Wm.  Waller  can 
take  care  of  all  the  counties  along  the  sea  side,  from  Dover 

D  D    3 


406  LIVES   OF   THE   EAKLS   OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVI. 

to  St.  Michael's  Mount :  he  refused  to  protect  a  county  or 
two,  and  said  that  was  only  to  lie  at  receipt,  and  yet  he 
thinks  it  service  honorable  enough  for  his  General.  If  you 
think  fit  to  set  him  at  liberty  and  confine  me,  be  pleased  to 
make  him  General  and  me  the  major  of  some  brigade,  that 
my  soldiers  may  have  free  quarter,  free  plunder,  and  fair 
contributions  besides,  as  his  have,  without  control. 

Finally,  that  army  which  hath  the  greatest  strength  of 
foot  will  be  most  able,  by  God's  blessing,  to  reduce  the 
West ;  and  I  believe  that  I  have  the  most  resolute  foot  in 
Christendom,  Take  heed  how  you  disaffect  them,  for  if  you 
lose  them,  either  by  commanding  me  to  lie  still,  or  putting 
them  on  ordinary  services  which  are  below  them,  you  will 
repent  too  late,  and  I  too  soon.  If  you  encourage  me  to 
advance  farther  into  the  "West,  I  hope  in  a  reasonable  time 
to  relieve  Lyme  and  distress  Weymouth ;  but  if  you  call 
back  Sir  Wm.  Waller  from  pursuing  the  King,  and  stop  me 
in  my  march  to  the  West,  we  are  like  to  lose  the  benefit  of 
both  armies  this  summer;  because  we  are  put  upon  cross 
services,  which  lie  far  out  of  our  way,  and  are  denied  the 
benefit  of  those  fair  opportunities  which  God  hath  put  into 
our  hands.  Consider  what  I  have  said,  and  if,  by  following 
your  advice,  the  West  be  not  reduced,  Hopton's  army  be 
recruited,  and  Lyme  lost,  let  not  the  blame  be  laid  upon 
your  Lordships'  innocent,  though  suspected  servant, 

ESSEX. 
Blandford,  14th  June,  1644,  six  in  the  morning. 

No.  LXVIII.1 

Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — In  your  letters  dated  May 
30th,  you  desired  me  to  send  such  a  strength  to  the  West  as 
might  be  able  not  only  to  relieve  Lyme,  but  to  recover  the 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XVI.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  407 

whole  West  again,  by  preventing  the  levies  of  men  and 
money  now  raising  by  a  new  association  in  those  parts,  and 
this,  as  you  then  assured  me,  was  the  joint  request  of  the 
western  gentlemen ;  and,  for  your  satisfaction  and  theirs,  I 
resolved  to  march  away  with  my  whole  army  westward,— 
a  strength  little  enough,  in  my  judgment,  to  effect  what  you 
desired,  and  I  acquainted  you  with  my  resolution  in  my 
next  letters  in  answer  to  yours.  I  conceived  that  you  were 
not  displeased  with  my  march,  because  you  were  silent  for 
eight  days  together,  and  your  silence  seemed  to  me  no  less 
than  an  approbation ;  but  now  I  am  marched  up  as  far  as 
Blandford  in  Dorsetshire,  you  direct  me  to  make  a  stand, 
and  send  away  a  considerable  party  of  horse  for  the  relief  of 
Lyme.  Give  me  leave  to  believe  you  are  uninformed  of 
late,  or  else  I  had  not  received  such  an  unexpected  counter- 
mand, after  my  unwearied  endeavours  in  the  pursuance  of 
such  instructions  as  I  received  from  your  own  hands. 

For,  first,  Lyme  cannot  be  relieved  by  a  party,  and  if  it 
could,  that  party  must  principally  consist  of  foot,  for  horse 
can  do  very  little  service  in  those  narrow  passages ;  yet,  con- 
trary to  my  own  opinion,  and  the  judgment  of  the  Council  of 
War,  I  have  sent  some  horse,  and  you  shall  see  cause ;  for  the 
Northampton  troop,  although  they  be  civil  men,  and  pass 
upon  their  duty,  yet,  if  your  Lordships  will  be  pleased  to 
recall  them,  upon  notice  thereof  from  your  Lordships,  I  shall 
discharge  them.  Concerning  that  information  of  the  King's 
drawing  towards  Northampton,  there  is  little  danger  of  that, 
seeing  they  are  gone  quite  another  way.  Whereas  you  in- 
tended to  send  ammunition  to  Aylesbury,  I  now  desire,  as  I 
have  formerly  written,  that  ammunition  and  money,  which  I 
much  need,  may  be  sent  to  Southampton,  whence,  by  the 
help  of  Col.  Norton,  it  may  be  safely  conveyed  to  me,  which 
I  earnestly  desire  to  have.  Your  Lordships'  humble  servant, 

Lamborne,  10th  June,  1644,  on  my  march.          ESSEX. 

D  D    4 


408 


LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CIIAP.  XVI. 


No.  LXIX.1 
Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  Although  I  have  just 
grounds  to  conceive  that  what  benefit  soever  is  received  by 
me  or  this  army  would  be  but  little  valued,  yet  nothing 
shall  make  me  neglect  my  duty,  which  makes  me  acquaint 
your  Lordships  that  the  town  of  Lyme,  which  has  shewed 
so  great  constancy  and  valor  in  maintaining  their  obedience 
to  the  Parliament,  is  now  relieved.  In  what  extremity  they 
were,  your  Lordships  may  perceive,  by  the  copy  of  the  letter 
I  received  from  the  Earl  of  Warwick,  which  is  here  inclosed. 

As  I  was  marching  to  Amesbury  on  the  llth  of  this 
instant,  I  sent  the  General  and  Lieut.-General  of  the  horse, 
hearing  that  the  enemy  was  possessed  of  Salisbury,  where 
they  put  them  in  such  a  fright  that  they  never  staid  till  they 
came  to  Blandford,  to  which  place  I  sent  the  Lieut.-General 
and  Commissary-General  of  the  horse,  with  near  1000  horse ; 
but  they  being  sent  out  in  the  night,  one  regiment  of  the 
strongest,  not  being  in  the  way,  did  not  come  till  the  fight  was 
done :  but  400  of  my  horse  put  the  Queen's  regiment,  and 
others  that  made  up  near  1500,  as  all  in  these  parts  report  it, 
to  such  a  plight,  as  that  they  ran  to  this  town ;  but  the  towns- 
men, who  are  exceeding  well  affected  to  the  Parliament,  kept 
them  out,  and  they  never  staid  till  they  came  to  Sherborne. 
My  Lords,  I  have  only  one  humble  request  to  your  Lord- 
ships, that  you  will  give  my  Lord  Admiral  encouragement 
for  his  great  and  indefatigable  care  he  has  taken  for  that 
town  of  Lyme,  which  has  been  a  great  means  of  the  pre- 
servation of  it. 

My  Lords,  I  never  came  in  any  parts  in  my  life  where  I 
found  more  real  expressions  of  their  affections,  and  doubt  not 

1  S.P.O. 


CHAP.  XVI.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  409 

that  if  I  may  have  no  hindrance  from  above,  I  shall  quickly 
reduce  these  parts  to  the  Parliament's  service.  Your  Lord- 
ships by  this  time  know,  that  from  whence  Sir  Wm.  Waller 
is,  that,  notwithstanding  your  directions  to  him,  both  Lyme 
would  have  been  lost  and  an  army  raised  before  he  would 
have  come  for  the  relief  of  the  one  or  the  prevention  of  the 
other.  And,  for  my  sending  a  party  of  horse  for  the  relief 
of  Lyme,  whosoever  gave  your  Lordships  that  information 
were  in  a  great  error,  it  being  an  impossible  thing  to  have 
been  done.  My  Lords,  I  am  your  LL.'s  humble  servant, 
Dorchester,  16th  June,  1644,  ESSEX. 

past  one  in  the  morning. 

This  letter  was  acknowledged  by  the  Committee 
on  the  12th  June,  when  they  gave  the  General 
orders  to  march  into  Oxfordshire  and  straiten  Ox- 
ford, to  facilitate  its  fall,  for  which  purpose  they 
were  preparing  forces  in  London.  They  must  have 
been  aware  that  he  would  be  too  far  advanced  to 
obey  these  directions  without  the  worst  result.  His 
next  letter  is  a  reply  to  theirs  of  the  10th  June,  and 
contains  an  indignant  remonstrance  against  the  treat- 
ment he  has  experienced. 

Prince  Maurice  had  not  awaited  an  attack  from 
Essex ;  on  the  15th  June,  having  information  that 
that  nobleman  was  at  Dorchester,  he  raised  the 
siege  of  Lyme,  and  retired  to  Exeter. 

Within  a  few  days  afterwards,  Weymouth,  Mel- 
combe  Eegis,  and  Sarfoot  Castle,  were  surrendered 
by  the  Royalists,  and  Essex  wrote  a  letter  to  the 
Speaker  of  the  House  of  Lords,  giving,  in  detail, 
reasons  why  his  army  should  not  be  recalled  from 
advancing  into  the  West ;  and,  said  he,  "  if,  after  all 


410  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.        CHAP.  XVI. 

"  my  sad  consultations,  faithful  endeavours,  and,  by 
"  God's  blessing,  happy  success,  you  shall  call  me 
"  back  as  one  that  is  not  fit  to  be  trusted  any 
"  further  in  a  business  of  such  high  concernment, 
"  I  will  come  and  sit  in  Parliament,  as  not  knowing 
"  any  military  employment  which  is  worthy  of  my 
"  presence."  The  unanimous  opinion  of  a  joint 
Council  of  War  of  land  and  sea  officers  was,  that  it 
would  be  exceedingly  prejudicial  to  the  cause  were 
he  to  retreat. 

There  was  a  good  deal  of  angry  debating  on  this 
subject,  in  the  course  of  which  his  friends  insinuated 
that  more  care  was  taken  of  Waller's  army  than  of 
the  Lord  General's,  and  that  the  necessary  supplies 
were  purposely  withheld  from  the  latter ;  while  the 
opposite  party  asserted  that  Lyme  might  have  been 
relieved  by  a  party  of  horse,  without  the  whole  army 
being  carried  so  far.  In  the  end,  it  was  resolved 
that  he  should  proceed  to  follow  up  the  advantages  he 
had  gained,  and  the  resolution  was  made  known  to 
him  in  the  following  severe  letter  of  reprimand. 

No.  LXX.1 
The  Speakers  of  both  Houses  of  Parliament  to  Essex. 

My  Lord, — We  are  commanded  by  the  two  Houses  of 
Parliament  to  acquaint  your  Lordship,  that  the  Committee 
of  both  Kingdoms  have  reported  to  them  the  designs  of  carry- 
ing on  the  war,  with  the  letters  sent  to  your  Lordship  in 
prosecution  of  those  designs,  and  the  several  answers;  and 
that  they  are  of  opinion,  if  the  resolution  of  the  Houses  and 

1  Rushworth,  vi.  683. 


CHAP.  XVI.        EGBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  411 

the  direction  of  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms  had  been 
followed,  the  public  affairs  had  been  in  a  better  condition 
than  now  they  are,  especially  in  these  parts. 

And  we  are  also  to  let  your  Lordship  know,  that,  in  your 
letters  to  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms,  of  the  14th, 
16th,  and  17th  of  this  instant  June,  and  that  other  to  the 
Houses,  there  are  many  expressions  might  well  have  been 
forborne,  and  do  not  question  but  you  do  now  wish  they  hajd 
not  been  written. 

But  to  make  the  best  use  of  their  affairs  as  they  now 
stand,  they  find  themselves  necessitated  to  use  new  counsels, 
and  would  have  your  Lordship  to  take  all  advantages  on  the 
enemy,  and  use  your  best  endeavours  for  reducing  the  West. 

And  although  they  find  themselves  much  discomposed  by 
your  Lordship's  going  into  the  West,  in  respect  of  the  pay  of 
the  army,  yet  the  Houses  are  in  present  consideration  thereof1, 
and  will  endeavour  to  settle  it  to  the  satisfaction  of  both 
armies,  and  do  expect  that  such  directions  as  your  Lordship 
shall  from  time  to  time  receive  from  them,  or  the  Committee 
of  both  Kingdoms,  be  for  the  future  observed.  And  this 
being  all  we  are  commanded  to  signify  unto  your  Lordship, 
we  remain,  my  Lord,  your  Lordship's  humble  servants, 

GREY  OF  WARKE. 

6th  July,  1644.  W.  LENTHAL. 

1  On  the  3rd  July,  20,000?.,  with  shoes  and  other  supplies,  were  sent  to 
Arundel  to  be  shipped  from  Portsmouth  for  the  use  of  Lord  Essex's  army. 


412  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF  ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIT. 


CHAPTER  XVII. 

LIFE    OF   EOBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX Continued. 

GOOD  CONDUCT   AND  DISCIPLINE    OF    ESSEX'S  ARMY  COMPARED  WITH 

OTHERS.  —  THE   QUEEN   LEAVES   EXETER. LETTERS  REPORTING 

THE    ADVANCE    INTO    DEVONSHIRE. THE    COUNCIL    OF    WAR   DE- 
TERMINES TO  GO  INTO  CORNWALL. ESSEX   IS    PURSUED    BY   THE 

KING. MOVEMENTS  IN  SUPPORT  OF  ESSEX. THE  KING  WRITES 

TO    ESSEX.  —  BLOCKADE    OF    THE    REBEL   ARMY   IN   LESTWITHIEL 
AND    FOWEY.  —  CAPITULATION. 

ONE  of  the  causes  of  complaint  which  Lord  Essex 
had  against  Sir  William  Waller,  was,  what  he  termed, 
raising  contributions  from  the  country,  —  in  other 
words,  plundering.  We  have  already  seen  how 
careful  Essex  was  to  mitigate  the  horrors  and 
miseries  of  war  in  this  respect,  even  to  the  occasional 
discontenting  of  his  troops ;  and  we  have  it  on  the 
authority  of  Lord  Clarendon,  that  by  "his  great 
"  civility  and  affability  towards  all  men,  and  the 
"  very  good  discipline  in  his  army,  he  wrought 
"  very  much  upon  the  people,  insomuch  that  his 
"  forces  rather  increased  than  diminished.  It  can 
"  hardly  be  imagined  how  great  a  difference  there 
"  was  in  the  humor,  disposition,  and  manner  of  the 
"  army  under  Essex,  and  the  other  under  Waller,  in 
"  their  behaviour  and  humanity  towards  the  people, 
"  and,  consequently,  in  the  reception  they  found 
"  among  them."  It  is  not  at  all  improbable  that, 


CHAP.  XVII.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  413 

among  his  other  reasons  for  undertaking  the  Western 
service  himself,  Essex  may  have  been  influenced  by  a 
desire  to  spare  the  inhabitants  of  that  part  of  the 
country,  as  yet  comparatively  untouched,  from  the 
tender  mercies  of  Waller  and  his  "  ungentlemanly 
"  and  barbarous  "  troops. 

The  Queen  had  some  time  previously  been  sent  to 
Exeter  for  security,  where,  on  the  16th  June,  she 
gave  birth  to  a  Princess.1  On  hearing  of  the  advance 
of  Essex,  she  sent  to  him  for  a  safe-conduct  to  Bath 
or  Bristol ;  to  which  he  replied,  that  if  Her  Majesty 
pleased,  he  would  not  only  give  her  a  safe-conduct, 
but  accompany  her  himself  to  London,  where  she 
might  have  the  best  advice  for  her  health,  but  as  for 
the  other  places,  without  directions  from  the  Par- 
liament, he  could  not  comply  with  Her  Majesty's 
desires.  Henrietta  declined  to  avail  herself  of  the 
Earl's  obliging  offer,  and  shortly  afterwards  pro- 
ceeded to  Falmouth,  and  embarked  for  France. 

The  letters  of  Lord  Essex  will  best  relate  his 
proceedings  during  his  advance  towards  Exeter. 

No.  LXXL2 

Essex  to  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — Part  of  the  enemy's  forces 
having  been  against  Barnstaple,  the  success  whereof  your 
Lordships  will  see  by  the  enclosed,  hath  caused  me  to  send 
a  party  of  horse  and  foot  for  their  relief,  and  I  am  advancing 
with  the  rest  of  the  body  myself  to  Tiverton,  and  so  to  steer 
my  course  according  to  the  intelligence  I  have  from  them. 

1  Afterwards  Duchess  of  Orleans.  2  S.  P.  O. 


414  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS   OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVII. 

Her  Majesty  has  left  Exeter,  and,  as  my  intelligence  is,  bends 
for  Pendennis  Castle,  and  Prince  Maurice  has  left  Kerton, 
and  goes  farther  towards  Cornwall.  Unless  necessity  compels 
me,  I  shall  be  forced  to  stay  some  short  time  hereabouts,  to 
raise  the  country,  and  to  furnish  the  army  with  what  your 
Lordships  have  said  is  coming  down ;  wherein  I  intend  to 
expect  their  love,  rather  than  use  much  exaction,  knowing 
that  it  is  much  more  for  the  service  of  the  Parliament  to  gain 
their  affection,  than  using  any  compulsory  way.  I  find  a 
great  affection  in  the  country  to  the  Parliament,  and  to  free 
themselves  from  their  Egyptian  slavery  ;  but  there  is  a  great 
want  of  arms,  and  the  gentlemen  being  not  yet  come  down 
from  London,  which  would  be  a  great  encouragement  to  them. 
Here  is  yet  but  few  of  the  gentlemen  of  power,  but  Col. 
Were,  whom  I  find  both  very  ready  and  well  beloved  in  the 
county.  In  a  short  time  I  shall  be  ready  to  give  you  a  more 
exact  account  of  our  affairs  than  now  I  can.  Your  humble 
servant, 

Collumpton,  3rd  July,  1644.  ESSEX. 

No.  LXXII.1 

Essex  to  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  Although  the  counties  of 
Somerset  and  Devon  shew  great  affection  for  the  Parliament, 
and  to  be  rid  of  the  Egyptian  slavery,  yet  there  are  two 
things  great  hindrances  to  the  aid  we  should  have  of  the 
country.  The  first  is  their  desire  to  serve  under  their  own 
countrymen,  and  not  to  be  listed  in  my  army,  and  those  few 
country  gentlemen  that  are  here  wanting  arms  to  arm  them ; 
so  that  although  there  be  multitudes  of  bodies  of  men  appear, 
yet  little  use  can  be  made  of  them  for  the  present,  till  arms 
and  the  gentlemen  who  have  the  power  over  them  be  come 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAI-.  XVII,      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  415 

down.  The  second  is,  the  garrisons  of  the  enemy  keep  the 
country  greatly  in  awe,  both  for  hindering  of  contribution, 
and  their  rising  in  Somersetshire,  Bristol,  Bridgewater,  Castle 
of  Taunton,  and  Castle  of  Dunster.  For  the  preventing  of 
these  inconveniences  I  have  taken  the  best  care  I  can,  my 
army  being  much  divided;  the  Lord  Roberts  being  still  with 
three  regiments  of  foot  and  two  of  horse  at  Barnstaple ;  a 
regiment  of  foot  and  a  troop  of  horse  at  Weymouth ;  Sir 
Kobt.  Pye  with  three  troops  of  horse  at  Taunton,  to  secure 
Lieut.  Col.  Blake  in  raising  of  Col.  Popham's  regiment,  and 
to  prevent  mischief  by  the  castle.  Sir  Kobt.  Pye,  with 
his  great  care  and  industry,  hath  reduced  the  Castle  of 
Taunton.  I  shall  forbear  to  write  any  particulars  of  it  to 
you,  herein  being  enclosed  the  articles  of  surrender,  and 
what  was  found  in  the  castle ;  jt  being  so  well  provided,  that, 
next  to  the  blessing  of  God,  nothing  but  their  own  panic 
fears  could  have  made  us  masters  of  it,  which  is  of  great  con- 
cernment to  us,  it  being  the  only  strength  we  have  in  these 
two  counties.  As  soon  as  the  convoy  is  returned  which  is 
sent  to  Lyme  for  the  money,  I  hope  we  shall  give  a  good 
account  of  our  forwardness  to  serve  the  Parliament,  and  not 
to  neglect  any  care  or  hazard  that  may  reduce  these  parts 
to  the  full  subjection  of  the  Parliament. 

Until  of  late,  that  necessity  hath  pressed  the  army  for  want 
of  pay,  I  am  confident  never  people  suffered  less  by  an  army 
whilst  I  could  make  any  shift  for  their  subsistence ;  but  I 
must  confess  this  country  hath  suffered  somewhat  of  late  for 
want  of  the  soldiers'  pay ;  but  now  money  is  coming  down,  I 
doubt  not  but  the  countries  will  find  it  rather  an  ease  than  a 
burthen  by  the  army.  When  the  convoy  brought  those  few 
to  Bridgewater  which  were  left,  the  commanders  there  sent 
out  this  scandalous  relation  concerning  the  armies  in  the 
North,  by  which  you  may  see  they  have  no  way  to  keep 
their  plundering  army  on  foot,  but  by  raising  those  lying 


416  LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVII. 

reports;  and  yet  that  part  which  concerns  Cols.  Popham 
:md  Ludlow,  though  the  strength  they  are  said  to  have  was 
false,  yet  the  want  was  too  true :  the  design  I  was  ignorant 
of,  I  never  having  heard  from  them  since  Sir  Will.  Waller's 
brigade  and  I  parted.  My  Lords,  I  must  crave  pardon  for 
my  tediousness,  and  rest  your  humble  servant, 

Tiverton,  10th  July,  1644.  ESSEX. 

No.  LXXIII.1 
Essex  to  the  Committee  of  loth  Kingdoms. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  I  must  take  it  as  a  great 
favor  from  you  the  importing  to  me  the  news  of  the  great 
victory2  obtained  in  the  North,  which  is  a  great  comfort  to  all 
honest  men,  and  a  terror  to  the  malignant.  And  yet  they 
have  the  impudence  to  make  triumphs  in  all  their  quarters, 
especially  at  Exeter,  and  give  it  out  that  the  triumph  which 
I  made  here  was  only  to  deceive  the  country.  Whereupon 
I  sent  them  the  information  that  came  from  his  Excy.  the 
Earl  of  Leven  and  the  rest  of  the  commanders- in-chief 
there,  with  this  offer  to  Sir  John  Berkeley  and  the  rest  of 
the  Council  of  War  at  Exeter,  that  if  their  news  proved 
true  of  the  routing  of  our  forces  the  2nd  of  this  month,  I 
would  pass  my  honor  to  deliver  up  Weymouth  and  Melcombe 
Regis  into  their  hands,  so  that  the  chief  commanders  in  the 
West  would  engage  themselves,  upon  their  honors,  that  if 
Prince  Rupert  were  routed  the  same  day,  they  would  deliver 
into  my  hands,  for  the  Parliament's  use,  Exeter;  which  I 
sent  yesterday  by  a  trumpeter,  being  our  public  day  of 
thanksgiving,  who  is  not  yet  returned — I  being  unwilling  to 

1  S.  P.  O. 

*  The  great  victory  was  that  of  Marston  Moor,  fought  on  the  2nd  July, 
in  which  Prince  Rupert  was  defeated  with  immense  loss  by  the  English 
and  Scots  armies  under  Manchester,  Fairfax,  and  Leven. 


CHAP.  XVIT.      ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  417 

let  that  false  report  be  spread  in  these  parts,  knowing  that 
they  have  no  other  way  to  keep  up  their  party,  but  by 
spreading  of  those  false  rumours  to  uphold  their  courage. 

The  20,0007.  is  come  safe  to  the  army,  and  if,  by  your 
Lordships'  care,  the  army  be  provided  with  continual  pay,  I 
doubt  not  but  to  give  a  very  good  account  both  of  our  actions 
against  the  enemy,  and  civility  to  our  friends,  which  other- 
wise, let  the  officers  take  what  care  they  can,  soldiers  cannot 
be  kept  from  plundering.  Necessity  hath  compelled  us  to 
stay  a  longer  time  here  than  we  intended,  as  well  for  the 
extremity  the  soldiers  were  in  for  want  of  pay  after  their 
long  and  continual  marches,  and  my  army  being  so  divided 
for  the  assistance  of  the  country,  and  in  hope  the  gentlemen 
would  have  come  down  to  assure  those  counties  with  raising 
of  forces,  whilst  I  was  in  other  parts ;  for  whilst  I  am 
marching  farther  up  into  Devonshire,  Sir  Ralph  Hopton 
would  be  at  liberty  to  raise  forces  in  Somerset  and  Dorset : 
but  if  any  of  the  Somersetshire  gentlemen  would  come  down, 
I  am  confident  that  county  would  quickly  shew  their  affec- 
tions to  the  Parliament.  Whereas  information  was  given 
that  upon  the  relief  of  Lyme,  there  would  be  1000  or  1200 
to  join  with  this  army,  the  regiments  of  Col.  Popham 
and  Col.  Were  were  not  above  200  men  in  all.  I  find 
the  counties  generally  willing,  but  their  hindrance  is  want  of 
arms.  Upon  the  hanging  of  Capt.  Howard  taken  at  Barn- 
staple,  (formerly  employed  under  Capt.  Pym,  who  had  a 
troop  in  the  west  county,)  who,  being  a  lieutenant,  ran  away 
with  twenty  horse  at  one  time,  they  hanged  Capt.  Turpin  on 
Saturday,  a  sea  captain  taken  in  seeking  to  relieve  Exeter, 
and  since  condemned  by  Justice  Heath1,  by  oyer  and  terminer, 
but  had  been  held  a  prisoner  ever  since ;  and  at  my  being 

1  Chief  Justice  Heath  was  impeached  by  the  Commons  on  the  receipt 
of  this  letter. 

VOL.  II.  E  E 


418  LIVES   OF  THE  EAELS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

here  they  sent  to  exchange  him  for  Sergeant-Major  Willis, 
which  exchange  was  so  unreasonable  as  I  refused  it,  not 
thinking  they  had  been  so  bloody-minded  to  execute  a  man 
in  cold  blood  that  had  been  so  long  condemned.  I  am  in- 
formed it  was  by  Prince  Maurice's  command ;  but,  if  it  please 
God,  I  may  have  time  to  make  them  repent  it.  My  Lords, 
if  your  Lordships  would  take  it  into  your  care  to  have  Col. 
Weyms  speedily  exchanged,  it  would  be  a  great  advantage 
to  Sir  Will.  Waller's  army,  which  otherwise  his  train  of 
artillery  may  be  in  some  disorder.  And,  besides,  I  have  had 
very  good  intelligence  that  when  he  was  brought  to  the  King, 
he  told  him  he  had  not  as  yet  disposed  of  his  place,  which 
makes  me  believe  that  no  act  will  be  left  untried  to  win  him 
to  them.  And  though  I  hope  his  own  honor  will  preserve 
him,  yet  a  man  of  his  abilities  is  not  to  be  lost.  My  Lords, 
to  end  where  I  began,  with  the  great  blessing  of  which  God 
has  given  us  in  the  North,  it  is  not  one  of  the  least  comforts 
that  this  blessing  befel  us  where  the  forces  of  the  two  king- 
doms were  united  together.  My  Lords,  I  am  your  humble 
servant, 

Tiverton,  15th  July,  1644.  ESSEX. 

My  Lords, — The  garrison  at  Wareham  were  very  forward, 
and  marched  very  far  into  the  country  both  with  horse  and 
foot ;  but  the  Governor  of  Weymouth  fell  upon  them  after 
they  had  come  to  the  turnpikes  of  Dorchester,  killed  and 
took  about  eight  score  of  them,  whereof  six  or  eight  were 
mere  Irish  rebels,  which  he  has  since  hanged,  and  is  gone 
before  Wareham ;  but  I  have  advised  him,  in  seeking  to  take 
that,  he  should  not  neglect  the  care  of  Weymouth. 

The  following  reply  was  made  by  Sir  John  Berkely 
to  the  proposal  of  Essex. 


CHAP.  XVII.      ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF  ESSEX.  419 

No.  LXXIV.1 

Sir  John  Berkely  to  Essex. 

My  Lord, — In  the  posture  we  are,  it  is  very  possible  I  may 
be  deceived  in  our  intelligence,  and,  considering  the  practice  of 
some,  not  impossible  but  your  Lordship  may  be.  I  am  confi- 
dent your  Lordship  hath  no  intention  to  abuse  the  people  ;  I 
am  most  sure  I  have  not.  It  must  be  acknowledged  your  news 
is  very  unpleasant  to  men  of  my  affection,  and  will  not  prove 
very  prosperous  to  those  of  your  Lordship,  if  I  am  not  mis- 
taken in  them,  or  my  arguments  of  them.  I  still  incline  to 
believe  our  own,  but  not  to  that  degree  of  difference  as  there 
is  between  Exeter  and  Weymouth ;  however,  I  shall  receive 
the  assurance  of  either  with  the  most  equal  mind,  and  in  the 
worst  event  shall  never  want  the  satisfaction  of  having  dis- 
charged my  duty  to  my  country  with  an  heart  as  much  un- 
touched by  private  ends  as  any  man's  living,  and  as  much 
your  loving  humble  servant, 

JOHN  BERKELY. 

On  the  16th  and  17th  July,  the  Committee  wrote 
to  Essex  informing  him  that  the  King  had  marched 
westward,  and  that  they  had  directed  Sir  William 
Waller  to  send  a  strong  detachment  towards  Dor- 
chester. On  receiving  this,  Essex  must  have  felt 
secure  that  the  hopes  which  he  expressed  in  the 
following  letter  were  realised,  and  that  he  might 
safely  march  westward  without  fear  of  being  cut  off. 

No.  LXXV.2 
Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — My  Lord  Koberts  returned 
from  Barnstaple  yesternight,  and  we  were  resolved  to  have 

1  Rushworth,  vi.  686.  2  S.  P.  O. 

£  E    2 


420  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

marched  this  day  toward  Prince  Maurice,  and  so  westward ; 
but  upon  notice  the  King  was  come  to  Bath,  a  council  of 
war  was  called  yesternight,  and  had  a  long  and  serious 
debate,  whether  we  should  continue  in  our  former  resolutions, 
or  turn  back  and  march  towards  the  King.  It  seemed  a 
business  of  so  great  consequence,  that  we  staid  here  this  day 
to  take  it  into  consideration,  and  for  further  intelligence ; 
but  having  little  more  of  the  last  to  ground  upon,  we  have 
taken  resolution  to  continue  our  former  purposes,  having 
had  several  messages  from  Plymouth  of  the  great  distress 
they  are  likely  to  be  in  if  not  suddenly  relieved,  being  in 
great  want  of  money  to  pay  their  soldiers  and  forage  for 
their  horses,  which  are  kept  in  by  the  enemy  from  going 
abroad;  hoping  that  Sir  Win.  Waller  with  his  army  and 
additional  forces  will  take  care  of  the  King's  army.  And  if 
I  returned,  all  these  parts  would  have  turned  against  us. 
Now  these  armies  are  all  in  these  parts,  little  contribution  can 
be  expected ;  therefore  I  hope  your  Lordships  will  take  care 
for  the  present  pay  of  the  army  that  it  may  subsist,  other- 
wise we  shall  be  brought  into  present  extremities.  I  hope 
there  shall  be  nothing  left  undone  by  us,  that  may  give  real 
testimony  of  our  true  hearts  and  readiness  to  adventure  our 
lives  in  the  service  of  the  Parliament.  I  have  sent  your 
Lordships  here  inclosed  a  letter  I  have  received  from  the 
Earl  of  Forth,  a  paper,  and  mine  answer  to  it.  My  Lords, 
I  am  your  Lordships'  humble  servant, 

Tiverton,  18th  July,  1644.  ESSEX. 

I  believe  by  my  going  farther  westward,  the  passage  will 
be  straitened  for  expresses,  whereby  I  shall  not  be  able  to 
send  to  your  Lordships  so  often  as  I  would. 

The  letter  from  the  Earl  of  Forth  enclosed  a  copy 
of  a  message  from  the  King  to  the  Houses,  con- 
taining propositions  for  peace,  the  original  of  which, 


CHAP.  XVII.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX.  421 

it  was  intimated  to  Essex,  was  placed  in  the  hands 
of  the  French  agent  for  delivery.  Notwithstanding 
this,  the  House  of  Commons,  on  the  flimsy  ground 
that  they  only  received  a  copy  of  the  message, 
refused  to  consider  it,  and  took  no  notice  whatever 
of  its  having  been  forwarded  to  them. 

Prince  Maurice  had  retreated  before  the  approach 
of  Essex ;  the  latter  made  a  feint  from  Tiverton,  as 
if  he  would  return  towards  the  King,  which  drew 
Maurice  east  again,  and  he  suffered  some  loss  in  a 
skirmish  between  Oakhampton  and  Exeter. 

In  the  mean  time,  Lord  Hopton  had  joined  the 
King,  and  information  arrived  that  the  united  force 
was  marching  westward.  The  Council  of  War  as- 
sembled at  the  head-quarters  of  Lord  Essex  to  con- 
sider these  three  points;  whether  he  should  march 
to  encounter  the  King ;  whether  he  should  sit  down 
before  Exeter ;  or  whether  he  should  proceed  to  re- 
lieve Plymouth,  and  thence  into  Cornwall.  They 
decided  upon  the  last,  because,  if  Grenvile,  who  was 
before  Plymouth,  were  routed,  the  King  could  get 
no  recruits  there;  because,  Cornwall  being  Lord 
.Roberts'  country,  it  was  probable  great  numbers 
would  come  in  to  Essex ;  and  lastly,  because  it  was 
supposed  that  Waller,  or  some  other  force,  was  sent 
into  the  West,  in  the  King's  rear,  and  would  cut  him 
off.  The  last  reason  was  undoubtedly  good,  and  had 
such  a  force  been  sent  as  Essex  desired,  and  as  the 
Committee  informed  him  they  had  ordered,  the  result 
would  have  been  very  different. 

At  the  same  time,  considering  the  jealousy  that 


£  £ 


422  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

then  existed  between  the  extreme  party  in  Parliament 
and  Essex — the  former  believing  that  Essex  had  re- 
solved not  to  fight  any  more  against  the  person  of  the 
King  —  that  General  cannot  be  acquitted  of  great 
want  of  caution  in  marching  into  a  cul-de-sac  before 
he  had  accurate  intelligence  that  Waller  was  on  the 
King's  track.  On  the  other  hand,  it  seems  extremely 
probable  that  the  Parliament  purposely  kept  back 
that  force,  in  order  that  Essex  might  be  compelled  to 
fight  the  King,  little  dreaming  how  great  an  injury 
they  were  inflicting  on  themselves. 

This  view  is  borne  out  by  Lord  Holies1,  who  tells 
us  that  the  violent  faction,  having  failed  in  an  en- 
deavour to  win  Essex  by  large  and  splendid  promises, 
if  he  would  unite  himself  to  the  "  godly  party,"  were 
resolved  to  ruin  him ;  that  when  Essex  proceeded  to 
the  relief  of  Lyme,  and  sent  Waller  after  the  King, 
some  of  that  party  went  so  far  as  to  say,  that  it  were 
better  Lord  Essex  and  his  whole  army  should  be  lost 
than  that  the  Parliament  should  be  disobeyed,  and 
that,  if  they  could  prevent  it,  neither  he  nor  his  army 
should  be  cared  for  any  more.  Therefore,  the  Com- 
mittee of  both  Kingdoms,  in  which  they  had  a  ma- 
jority, were,  for  a  long  time,  inattentive  to  the 
repeated  demands  of  Essex  for  a  diversion  to  be 
made  in  his  favour,  by  pressing  the  rear  of  the 
King's  army,  which  might  easily  have  been  done  in 
time  to  save  him,  and  "  did  most  wilfully,  maliciously 
a  and  treacherously,  suffer  General  and  army  to  be 
"  lost." 

1  Mem.  of  Denzil  Lord  Holies,  in  Select  Tracts  relating  to  the  Civil 
Wars,  p.  265. 


CHAP.  XVII.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  423 

No.  LXXVI.1 
Essex  to  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — I  being  drawn  to  this  place 
for  the  relief  of  Plymouth,  which  by  God's  blessing  is  now 
relieved,  and  being  advised  to  march  yet  further  westward 
into  Cornwall  to  clear  that  county,  and  to  settle  the  same 
in  peace,  I  have  thought  fit  to  send  you  Sir  Philip  Staple- 
ton,  and  with  him  Mr.  Herbert,  one  of  the  commissioners 
appointed  for  my  army,  to  give  you  an  account  both  of  the 
condition  of  my  army,  and  of  the  state  of  these  western 
counties ;  and  I  shall  desire  you  to  advise  with  them  in  the 
recommending  of  such  things  unto  the  House,  as  you  shall 
think  requisite  for  the  advancement  of  the  service. 

My  Lords,  in  the  night  I  received  your  Lordships'  letters2 
concerning  Guernsey  and  Jersey,  and  am  ready  with  my 
life  and  force  to  act  for  their  relief;  but  in  regard  of  my  great 
distance  and  the  condition  of  things  here,  I  refer  it  to  those 
gentlemen  to  inform  your  Lordships  further  therein. 

My  Lord,  your  humble  servant, 

Tavistock,  26th  July,  1644.  ESSEX. 

On  the  day  the  above  letter  was  written,  King 
Charles  arrived  at  Exeter,  where  he  was  joined  by 
Prince  Maurice;  their  united  forces  amounted  to 
about  8500  foot,  and  5000  horse,  with  which  he 
immediately  pushed  on,  after  a  day's  rest,  in  order  to 
destroy  the  army  of  Lord  Essex  before  the  expected 
arrival  of  Sir  William  Waller.  He  advanced  by  Oak- 
hampton,  Lifton,  and  Trecarrol,  to  Liskeard,  where 
he  arrived  on  the  6th  August. 

On  the  approach  of  Essex,  Sir  Richard  Grenvile 

i  S.  P.  O.  2  Of  the  17th  July. 

£  £    4 


424 


LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 


had  raised  the  siege  of  Plymouth,  and  retired  into 
Cornwall,  whither  the  Earl,  misled,  as  appears  from 
the  next  letters,  by  false  information,  followed,  in 
expectation  that  the  country  would  rise  in  favour  of 
the  Parliament,  whereas  it  proved  that,  with  few 
exceptions,  Cornwall  was  entirely  Royalist.  He 
then,  for  the  reasons  which  he  assigns,  retired  from 
Bodmin  to  Lestwithiel. 


No.  LXXVIL1 

Essex  to  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — After  the  relief  of  Plymouth, 
having  no  committees  sent  down  from  the  Parliament  to 
advise  us  what  course  we  might  take  to  be  most  beneficial 
for  their  service,  we  called  a  council  of  war  to  consult  about 
it,  and  by  the  persuasions  of  the  western  men  assuring  us 
there  was  no  other  way  of  reducing  the  West  to  the  obedience 
of  the  Parliament  than  by  clearing  of  Cornwall,  and  they 
undertaking  that  we  should  want  no  victuals,  and  that  a 
great  part  of  the  country  stood  well  affected,  we  marched  to 
Bodmin.  But  hearing  of  three  armies  against  us,  the  King, 
Palsgrave  Maurice,  and  Hopton  marching  from  the  East, 
and  nobody  that  we  can  learn  attending  on  them;  the 
county  unanimously,  unless  some  few  gentlemen,  rising 
against  us,  we  must  expect  another  upon  our  backs  from  the 
West ;  and  the  soldiers'  great  necessity  for  wanting  bread, 
hath  forced  us  to  choose  this  place  to  make  good  till  we  can 
be  provided  with  victuals  from  Plymouth  or  hereabouts  to 
enable  us  to  march,  and  then  we  shall  sell  our  lives  at  as  dear 
a  rate  as  may  be,  never  seeing  soldiers  more  willing  to 
undertake  any  thing,  nor  to  undergo  their  wants  with  more 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XVII.       ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  425 

patience.  There  is  some  flying  report  in  the  county  that 
Sir  Wm.  Waller  should  be  advancing  into  these  parts ;  but 
understanding  by  your  last  letters  of  the  17th  of  last  month, 
that  your  Lordships  had  appointed  him  to  send  only  a  party, 
and  that  to  advance  no  further  than  Dorchester,  makes  us 
that  we  can  trust  in  nothing  at  present  but  God's  blessing, 
the  courage  of  our  officers  and  soldiers,  and  our  faithfulness 
to  the  cause.  Your  Lordships'  humble  servant, 

Lestwithiel,  4th  August,  1644.  ESSEX. 

We  learn  from  the  Journals  of  Parliament,  that  on 
the  17th  July1,  a  letter  had  been  read  from  Waller, 
stating  his  intention  to  march  to  the  West  in  pursuit 
of  the  King,  and  that  the  Houses  ordered  that  he 
should  not  do  so.  As  the  army  of  Sir  William 
Waller,  after  his  defeat  at  Cropredy  Bridge,  became 
disorganized,  a  mutiny  breaking  out,  and  men  de- 
serting in  numbers,  while  the  City  regiments  returned 
home  on  the  12th,  I  am  inclined  to  suppose  this 
letter  was  intended  to  deceive  the  Essex  party,  and 
that  he  was  well  aware  he  would  be  prohibited  from 
moving. 

It  was  not  until  the  middle  of  August,  when  letters 
arrived  from  Essex  showing  but  too  clearly  the 
difficulties  lie  was  in,  that,  too  late  to  be  of  any 
service,  General  Middleton  was  despatched  with 
about  2500  horse,  and  orders  to  straiten  the  King's 
quarters,  and  to  divert  his  forces,  to  assist  the  Lord 
General,  and  keep  up  a  communication  with  him. 

1  Both  Waller  and  Middleton  wrote  letters  to  the  Parliament,  in  which 
they  called  "  the  God  of  Heaven  to  witness  that  they  desired  nothing  so 
much  as  to  march  to  the  relief  of  the  Western  army  ; "  yet  they  did  not 
move.— Whitelocke,  101,  102. 


426  LIVES   OF   THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

Waller,  who  was  at  the  same  time  ordered  to  prepare 
to  march  into  the  West,  answered  that  he  was  willing 
to  march,  but  wanted  horses.  These  orders  were 
given  on  the  23rd ;  on  the  28th  Middleton  was  at 
Honiton.  The  Earl  of  Manchester  was  at  the  same 
time  ordered  to  draw  to  the  southward  to  support 
the  movement.  Had  this  been  done  at  the  beginning 
instead  of  the  end  of  August,  it  is  probable  the  King 
might  have  been  crushed  in  the  West,  as  completely 
as  his  army  was  destroyed  in  the  North  ;  but  it  was 
then  too  late. 

As  the  indignities  which  Essex  had  sustained  from 
his  employers  were  publicly  known,  Charles  deter- 
mined to  make  an  attempt  to  detach  him  from  the 
cause  of  the  Parliament.  With  his  own  hand  he 
wrote  such  a  letter  to  the  Earl,  that  for  him  to  have 
entered  into  some  further  correspondence  would  cer- 
tainly have  been  pardonable ;  nothing  can  more 
strongly  demonstrate  the  rigid  sense  of  honour,  and 
unswerving  conduct  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  than  his 
reception  of  this  letter,  "under  all  the  circumstances 
of  his  ardent  desire  for  peace,  and  his  sensitive 
feeling  that  Manchester  and  Waller  had  been  unduly 
favoured,  and  his  own  authority  ill-supported.  He 
appears  rather  to  have  been  affronted  at  an  attempt 
to  tamper  with  him,  and  answered  sullenly,  "  That 
"  according  to  his  commission,  he  would  defend  the 
"  King's  person  and  posterity,  and  the  best  advice  he 
"  could  give  him  was  to  go  to  his  Parliament." 
Lord  Essex's  nephew  was  the  bearer  of  the  letter. 


CHAP.  XVH.       ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  427 

No.  LXXVIII.1 
Essex  to  the  Speaker  of  the  House  of  Lords. 

Right  Honorable,  —  My  Lord  Beauchamp  going  for 
France,  desired  to  see  me  before  he  went ;  and,  at  his  coming, 
brought  me  this  enclosed  letter  from  the  King,  to  which  I 
answered,  that  as  I  had  received  my  trust  from  both  Houses 
of  Parliament,  so  I  could  not  give  any  answer  without  their 
direction;  and  touching  that  passage  of  His  Majesty  for 
preparation  by  my  Lord  of  Hertford's  letter,  I  received 
none ;  but  when  my  sister  Hertford  wrote  to  me  about  her 
son's  journey,  she  sent  me  the  copy  of  that  which  the  King 
sent  to  the  Parliament  by  the  French  agent,  and  was  sent 
me  by  my  Lord  of  Forth,  which  I  also  sent  to  the  Committee 
of  both  Kingdoms. 

I  have  not  time  to  write  more,  we  having  the  forces  of  the 
King,  Prince  Maurice,  and  Lord  Hopton  before  us,  and 
Sir  Richd.  Greenvile  behind  us,  and  may  be  joined  ere  this 
come  to  Foy.  As  there  shall  any  thing  happen,  I  shall  give 
your  Lordships  advertisement.  My  Lord,  I  am  your  humble 
servant,  ESSEX. 

Lestwithiel,  8th  Aug.  1644. 

I  have  sent  you  here  inclosed  a  letter  we  cannot  decipher. 

No.  LXXIX.2 

The  King  to  Essex  (enclosure). 

Essex, — I  have  been  very  willing  to  believe,  that  whenev 
there  should  be  such  a  conjuncture,  as  to  put  it  in  your  power  to 
effect  that  happy  settlement  of  this  miserable  kingdom,  which 
all  good  men  desire,  you  would  lay  hold  of  it.     That  season 
is  now  before  you ;  you  have  it  at  this  time  in  your  power 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  670.  2  Ibid. 


428  LIVES   OF  THE  EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

to  redeem  your  country  and  the  crown,  and  to  oblige  your 
King  in  the  highest  degree;  an  action  certainly  of  the 
greatest  piety,  prudence,  and  honor  that  may  be,  and  such  an 
opportunity  as  perhaps  no  subject  before  you  ever  had,  or 
after  you  shall  have,  to  which  there  is  no  more  required,  but 
that  you  join  with  me  heartily  and  really,  in  the  settling  of 
those  things  which  we  have  both  professed  constantly  to  be 
our  only  aims. 

Let  us  do  this,  and  if  any  be  so  foolishly  unnatural  as  to 
oppose  their  King's,  their  country's,  and  their  own  good, 
we  will  make  them  happy,  by  God's  blessing,  even  against 
their  wills. 

To  this,  the  only  impediment  can  be,  want  of  mutual  con- 
fidence. I  promise  it  to  you  on  my  part ;  and  as  I  have 
endeavoured  to  prepare  it  on  yours  by  my  letter  to  Hertford 
from  Evesham,  I  hope  this  will  perfect  it,  when,  as  I  here 
do,  I  have  engaged  to  you  the  word  of  a  King,  that  you 
joining  with  me  in  that  blessed  work,  I  shall  give  both  to 
you  and  your  army  such  eminent  marks  of  my  confidence  and 
value,  as  shall  not  leave  a  room  for  the  least  distrust  amongst 
you,  either  in  relation  to  the  public  or  to  yourself,  unto 
whom  I  shall  then  be,  your  faithful  friend, 

CHARLES  E. 

If  you  like  of  this,  hearken  to  this  bearer,  whom  I  have 
fully  instructed  in  particulars;  but  this  will  admit  of  no 
delay.  C.  E. 

Liskeard,  6th  August,  1644. 

The  King,  on  finding  Essex  obstinate  in  his  re- 
fusal to  treat,  called  a  council  of  war,  to  decide 
whether  he  should  force  the  Earl  to  fight;  it  was 
determined  to  await  the  junction  of  Sir  Richard 
Grenvile,  in  the  mean  time  pushing  forward  the 
horse  to  straiten  the  quarters  of  the  Earl.  This  was 


CHAP.  XVH.      ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL  OF  ESSEX.  429 

done  on  the  following  day,  and  the  King  removed 
his  head  quarters  to  Boconnoc,  a  house  belonging  to 
Lord  Mohun,  within  three  miles  of  Lestwithiel. 
From  that  place  another  attempt  was  made  to  open 
a  negotiation  with  Essex  by  the  principal  officers  of 
the  royal  army,  which  has  excited  the  indignation 
of  Lord  Clarendon,  although  the  promoters  obtained 
the  sanction  of  the  King.1 

This  letter  was  enclosed  in  the  following  one  from 
the  two  generals  of  the  King's  army,  and  sent  over 
with  a  trumpet  to  the  Earl  at  Lestwithiel. 

No.  LXXX.2 

Prince  Maurice  and  the  Earl  of  Brentford  to  Essex. 

My  Lord,  —  Notwithstanding  the  small  satisfaction  His 
Majesty  hath  received  from  your  Lordship  to  his  late  letter, 
he  is  yet  pleased  to  give  us  and  the  commanders  and  officers 
of  both  armies  leave  to  send  to  your  Lordship  this  enclosed, 
with  the  assurance  that  this  shall  serve  for  a  safe-conduct  to 
all  such  persons  as  shall  be  appointed  by  your  Lordship  to 
meet  us  as  desired.  Your  Lordship's  humble  servants, 

MAURICE. 

Boconnoc,  9th  August,  1644.  BRENTFORD. 

The  enclosed  letter,  which  was  signed  by  eighty- 
six  officers  of  the  royal  armies,  after  stating  that  the 
King's  leave  had  been  obtained  to  send  that  letter, 
hinted  that  doubts  of  the  King's  sincerity  in  the 

1  The  King's  consent  to  this  letter  was  obtained  with  difficulty ;  it 
appears  to  have  originated  with  Wilmot  and  other  mutinous  and  dis- 
affected persons  in  the  royal  army. — See  Hallam,  Const.  Hist.  i.  583.,  note. 

2  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  671. 


430  LIVES   OF  THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

performance  of  his  promises,  was  the  cause  of  Essex's 
refusal  to  treat  with  him  ;  and  they  declare,  on  their 
faith  and  honour,  their  resolution  to  maintain  with 
their  lives  whatever  the  King  shall  promise.  They 
desired  that  Essex  and  six  others  should  meet  their 
General  with  an  equal  number,  to  consider  the  means 
of  reconciling  the  national  quarrel. 

To  this  the  Earl  returned  the  following  concise 
reply. 

No.  LXXXI.1 
Essex  to  Prince  Maurice  and  the  Earl  of  Forth. 

My  Lords, — In  the  beginning  of  your  letter,  you  express 
by  what  authority  you  send  it.  I,  having  no  power  from 
the  Parliament  who  employed  me,  to  treat,  cannot  give  way 
to  it  without  breach  of  trust.  Your  humble  servant, 

Lestwithiel,  10th  Aug.,  1644.  ESSEX. 

Had  Lord  Essex  been  a  less  scrupulous  traveller 
in  the  paths  of  truth  and  honour,  and  by  entering 
into  a  negotiation  at  this  time,  turned  the  tables  on 
those  who  were  betraying  him,  it  is  difficult  to 
imagine  what  might  have  been  the  result.  Since  the 
victory  of  Marston  Moor,  the  Independents  had 
spoken  more  openly,  and  had  shown  that  their  views 
extended  to  the  abolition  of  monarchy  and  nobility, 
and  had  thus  widened  the  breach  between  themselves 
and  the  moderate  party ;  that  is,  all  who  desired  to 
reform,  but  not  to  overturn,  —  a  definition  which 
included  very  many  of  the  King's  adherents.  The 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  671.  Essex  addressed  the  Earl  of  Forth,  as 
though  he  did  not  recognise  the  title  of  Earl  of  Brentford,  newly  conferred 
on  him. 


CHAP.  XVII.      ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF  ESSEX.  431 

Scots  had  also  discovered  that,  in  the  eyes  of  the 
"  godly,"  a  Presbyterian  was  but  little  better  than  an 
Episcopalian.  The  country,  harassed  and  impo- 
verished, longed  for  peace.  There  was  one  stumbling- 
block  in  the  King's  way,  ever  recurring  and  forcing 
itself  on  the  minds  of  men,  which,  probably  more 
than  any  army  the  Parliament  could  bring  into  the 
field,  obstructed  his  approach  to  that  desired  goal ; 
the  doubt  whether  any  promise,  however  solemn,  any 
stipulation,  however  binding,  would  be  faithfully 
adhered  to  by  Charles  the  King,  when  firmly  re- 
seated on  his  throne. 

Well  might  the  Parliament,  on  the  receipt  of  these 
letters,  vote  their  thanks  to  the  General  for  his 
fidelity  in  this  affair,  conscious  as  they  must  have 
been,  how  ill  his  honourable  conduct  had  been  re- 
quited. 

On  the  approach  of  Sir  Richard  Grenvile  from  the 
West,  shortly  after  the  above  correspondence  had 
passed,  the  combined  operations  for  the  blockade  of 
Lord  Essex  were  carried  on  with  greater  vigour  than 
might  have  been  anticipated,  from  the  quarrels  and 
jealousies  that  existed  among  the  royal  commanders. 
The  two  following  letters  from  the  Earl  recount  his 
proceedings. 

No.  LXXXIL1 

Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  The  last  letter  I  received 
from  your  Lordships  was  of  the  1 7th  of  the  last  month,  since 

1  S.  P.  O. 


432  LIVES   OF   THE  EARLS   OF  ESSEX.     CHAP.  XVII. 

which  time  I  have  made  several  despatches  to  you,  and  shall 
omit  no  occasion  whereby  I  may  shew  obedience  to  the  Par- 
liament. The  two  last  letters  were  sent  by  the  way  of  my 
Lord  Admiral.  The  first  was  His  Majesty's  letter  to  me,  the 
second  was  that  from  all  the  officers  of  the  King's  army ;  and 
now  I  send  you  the  originals  of  some  scattered  papers  that 
were  thrown  upon  the  heath  by  the  enemy's  horse.  Braver 
men  than  are  here  I  never  knew,  this  army  being  environed 
by  four  armies,  in  great  want  of  victuals,  and  the  county 
consists  so  upon  passes,  that  we  can  neither  force  them  to 
fight  but  when  they  list,  nor  march  off.  And  for  aught  I 
can  perceive,  their  intention  is  to  starve  us ;  yet  both  horse 
and  foot  keep  their  courage  and  constancy,  for  all  the  great 
extremity  they  are  put  to.  The  foot  as  yet  never  came  to 
fight  on  either  side ;  but  for  our  horse,  they  skirmish  daily, 
and  we  beat  them,  though  they  be  three  for  one.  Intelli- 
gence we  have  none,  the  country  people  being  so  violent 
against  us,  that  if  any  of  our  scouts  or  soldiers  light  in  their 
hands,  they  are  more  bloody  than  the  enemy.  What  forces 
come  to  the  enemy's  assistance,  we  can  never  come  to  have 
notice  of;  here  are  some  skippers  that  are  newly  taken  that 
are  come  from  the  coast  of  Brittany,  who  speak  of  14,000  or 
15,000  men  preparing  there  to  come  over,  but  I  can  give 
but  little  credit  to  it,  knowing  how  the  French  are  engaged 
in  war ;  only  the  King  staying  in  this  country,  and  forsaking 
all  the  rest  of  his  counties,  that  he  hath  some  foreign  hopes 
either  from  France  or  Ireland.  If  any  forces  had  followed 
the  King,  as  we  expected  when  we  came  into  these  parts, 
by  human  reason  this  war  would  have  had  a  quick  end; 
but  since  we  are  left  to  the  providence  of  God,  I  cannot 
despair  of  His  mercy,  having  found  so  much  of  it  in  our 
greatest  straits.  My  Lords,  I  am  your  Lordships'  humble 
servant, 

Lestwithiel,  16th  Aug.  1644.  ESSEX. 


CHAP.  XVII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  433 

No.  LXXX1II.1 
Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  The  time  I  have  now  will 
not  permit  me  to  write  long  lines ;  but  because  I  know  not 
what  reports  may  be  made,  I  have  thought  fit  to  despatch 
the  messenger  to  your  Lordships  with  this  only. 

The  enemy  on  Wednesday  last  set  upon  us  in  several 
quarters,  gained  nothing,  but  possessed  themselves  of  an 
house  and  an  old  castle2,  which  some  Devonshire  foot  quitted 
without  dispute ;  not  very  considerable,  but  that  it  causeth 
the  duty  to  be  harder.  The  Sergeant  Major-General,  en- 
deavouring to  regain  the  castle  with  some  of  my  own  foot, 
who  behaved  themselves  as  bravely  as  ever  I  saw  men, 
was  shot  through  his  buff  coat  by  the  short  ribs  without 
any  hurt,  thanks  be  to  God ;  and  with  another  shot  he  had 
his  glove  torn,  and  the  skin  of  his  hand  only  raised.  Yester- 
day there  was  little  done,  only  some  pelting  in  some  of  the 
guards.  The  enemy  has  now  made  a  work,  and  boasts  they 
will  beat  us  out  of  our  quarters ;  but,  by  the  mercy  of  God, 
who  has  been  so  often  abundantly  gracious  to  us,  and  in 
whom  we  trust,  what  they  get  of  us  shall  be  at  so  dear  a  rate 
that  they  will  be  much  weakened.  Our  soldiers,  both  horse 
and  foot,  are  very  cheerful  and  resolute.  I  marched  into 
these  parts  by  the  advice  and  at  the  desire  of  some  in  this 
army  that  are  of  this  country  and  also  of  Plymouth,  and 
for  no  ends  of  my  own,  and  had  there  been  forces  awaiting 
on  the  King,  I  should  not  have  doubted  of  giving  a  good 
account  of  the  war,  had  they  been  but  4000  horse  and 
dragoons.  But  besides  the  King's  army,  with  Hopton's 
coming  up  to  Prince  Maurice  and  Grenvile,  the  country 
itself  is  exceedingly  malignant,  that  they  add  much  to  the 

1  S.  P.  O.  8  Restormel, 

VOL.  II.  F  F 


434  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVII. 

enemy's  strength.  This  country  is  full  of  passes,  which 
causeth  the  duty  to  be  much  the  harder.  Whereas  it  was 
reported  that  the  Plymouth  forces  were  1500,  they  are  not 
above  600  foot,  and  between  200  and  300  horse ;  all  these 
foot  I  am  fain  to  quarter  at  Fowey  and  thereabouts,  with 
some  of  their  horse  for  guarding  of  provisions.  If  there  come 
not  forces,  this  army  will  be  in  much  hazard,  for  besides  the 
powerful  enemy  we  have  to  deal  withal,  we  are  to  keep 
Fowey  and  the  passages  of  the  river.  The  ways  in  this 
country  being  so  strait,  and  no  turnings  for  an  army,  that 
they  who  are  first  in  them  must  either  beat  the  other  and 
make  their  way  through,  or  be  starved.  This  messenger 
very  diligently  came  hither  with  his  letters  when  the  enemy 
was  first  drawing  down  to  us,  and  has  been  an  eyewitness 
of  all  that  hath  happened  since,  and  is  able  to  give  your 
Lordships  an  account  thereof.  There  came  another  at  the 
same  time  who  had  lately  expressed  himself  concerning  the 
backwardness  of  this  army,  but  before  he  had  scarce  delivered 
his  message,  he  went  his  way  without  taking  leave. 

Your  Lordships'  humble  servant, 
Lestwithiel,  23rd  Aug.,  1644.  ESSEX. 

Grenvile  had  taken  possession  of  a  seat  of  Lord 
Roberts',  about  three  miles  above  Lestwithiel,  called 
Lanhydroc,  and  also  of  Resprin  Bridge,  by  which  he 
communicated  with  the  royal  head-quarters  at 
Boconnoc. 

On  the  East,  the  King  commanded  all  the  passages 
over  the  river  from  Boconnoc  to  Fowey,  and  gained 
possession,  without  fighting,  of  a  house  of  Lord 
Mohun's  facing  the  town,  and  of  a  small  fort  on  the 
eastern  promontory  of  the  river  mouth,  commanding 
the  entrance,  which  was  only  half  a  musket-shot 


CHAP.  XVII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  435 

across.  These  important  posts  had  been  evacuated 
by  a  rebel  detachment  on  the  approach  of  the 
Royalists. 

In  another  letter  Essex  writes,  that  from  Wednes- 
day, the  21st,  to  Friday,  the  30th  of  August,  his 
troops  were  in  continual  fight  on  the  west,  and 
always  repulsed  the  attacks  of  the  enemy;  but, 
nevertheless,  the  material  advantages  were  on  the 
King's  side,  whose  cavalry  had  extended  from  St. 
Blazey  to  Polkerris,  and  threatened  the  communication 
between  Lestwithiel  and  Fowey. 

Tidings  arrived  that  the  forces  coming  to  his  relief 
had  been  defeated;  a  check  received  by  Middleton 
near  Bridgewater,  had  been  thus  magnified,  and  all 
hope  of  succour  was  destroyed.  Their  forage  was 
almost  consumed;  provisions  for  but  a  few  days 
remained.  Essex  resolved  that  the  horse,  2500  in 
number,  under  Sir  William  Balfour,  should  force 
their  way  through  the  King's  army.  Goring,  the 
General  of  the  King's  horse,  was  in  the  midst  of  a 
debauch  with  his  boon  companions,  when  intimation 
was  brought  to  him  of  the  march  of  Balfour,  with 
orders  for  him  to  pursue  the  fugitives.  He  treated 
the  alarm  with  ridicule,  and  the  orders  with  contempt ; 
so  that  the  daring  feat  of  breaking  through  the 
enemy's  lines,  was  executed  with  scarcely  the  inter- 
ruption of  a  musket-shot  during  the  night  of  the  30th. 

On  the  31st,  the  infantry  retreated  from  Lestwithiel 
to  Fowey;  the  rear-guard  commanded  by  Skippon 
was  fighting  all  day  with  the  royal  troops,  which 
marched  in  pursuit,  as  soon  as  it  was  known  that 

FF    2 


436  LIVES   OF   THE    EARLS   OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVII. 

Essex  had  evacuated  Lestwithiel.  Notwithstanding 
all  his  gallantry,  the  Major-General  was  forced  to 
abandon  four  guns  on  the  retreat.  On  the  west, 
however,  matters  were  in  a  far  worse  condition ;  for 
the  regiments  of  Colonels  Weare  and  Butler  had  taken 
to  flight,  and  left  Menabilley  undefended. 

On  the  morning  of  Sunday,  the  1st  of  September, 
Mr.  Dean  came  to  the  Earl  of  Essex,  "  two  hours 
u  after  day,  and  told  me  that,  if  they  should  offer  to 
"  move  any  of  the  army  from  their  posts,  they  would 
"  never  stand,  and  that  he  thought  they  should  all  be 
"  surrounded  before  noon.  Upon  these  considerations 
"  I  thought  it  fit  to  look  to  myself,  it  being  a  greater 
"  terror  to  me  to  be  a  slave  to  their  contempts,  than 
"  a  thousand  deaths."1 

Sending  to  the  Major-General  a  recommendation  to 
retire  to  the  posts  of  Menabilley  and  Polkerris,  or,  if 
he  were  unable  to  do  so,  to  make  the  best  terms  he 
could,  Essex,  accompanied  by  Lord  Roberts  and  some 
other  officers,  embarked  in  a  boat  at  Fowey,  and  pro- 
ceeded to  Plymouth. 

No.  LXXXIV.2 

Essex  to  General  Skippon. 

Sir, — I  had  sent  to  you  before  this,  but  that  the  wind 
blew  so  stiff  no  boat  can  put  to  sea;  but  I  write  this,  that 
upon  the  first  opportunity  it  may  come  to  your  hands.  Sir, 
be  assured  no  worldly  thing  should  have  made  me  quit  so 
gallant  men,  but  the  impossibility  of  subsisting  after  I  heard 

1  Letter  of  Essex  to  Sir  Ph.  Stapleton,  in  Rush-worth,  vi.  703. 
*  Ibid.  704. 


CHAP.  XVII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  437 

that  those  regiments  I  put  most  trust  in,  namely,  my  own, 
the  Lord  Roberts',  and  Colonel  Butler's,  had  quitted  their 
posts  on  Gallant  side,  and  so  that  way  was  opened  for  the 
enemy  to  cut  off  all  provisions  from  you  that  should  come 
from  Menabilley  Bay  and  Polkerris ;  and  that  you  were 
unable,  according  to  my  desire,  to  draw  up  thither,  for  fear 
your  men  should  quit  their  colors,  if  moved.  Sir,  if  you 
live,  I  shall  take  as  great  care  of  you  as  of  my  father,  if 
alive ;  if  God  otherwise  dispose  of  you,  as  long  as  I  have  a 
drop  of  blood,  I  shall  strive  to  revenge  yours  on  the  causers 
of  it.  The  horse  are  come  safe  ;  nothing  but  fear  of  slavery 
and  to  be  triumphed  on,  should  have  made  us  have  gone. 
Sir,  I  am  yours  till  death, 

Plymouth,  2nd  Sept.,  1644.  ESSEX. 

P.  S. — Upon  notice  that  you  subsist,  and  how  long  you 
can,  no  hazard  shall  be  let  slip. 

General  Skippon  had  not  waited  to  hear  from  the 
Earl  at  Plymouth.  As  soon  as  he  received  his 
message  on  the  morning  of  the  1st,  he  called  a  Council 
of  War,  and  addressed  them  as  follows:  — 

"  Gentlemen,  —  You  see  our  General  and  some 
"  chief  officers  have  thought  fit  to  leave  us,  and  our 
**  horse  are  got  away ;  we  are  left  alone  upon  our 
"  defence.  That  which  I  propound  to  you  is  this : 
"  that  we,  having  the  same  courage  that  our  horse 
"  had,  and  the  same  God  to  assist  us,  may  make  the 
"  same  trial  of  our  fortunes,  and  endeavour  to  make 
"  our  way  through  our  enemies  as  they  have  done ; 
"  and  account  it  better  to  die  with  honour  and  faith- 
"  fulness,  than  to  live  dishonourable." 

1  Rushworth,  vi.  704. 
r  r  3 


438  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

But  few  of  the  Council  agreed  in  opinion  with  the 
gallant  old  General,  and  a  treaty  of  capitulation  was 
resolved  on  ;  and  not  only  resolved,  but,  on  the  very 
same  day,  terms  were  signed  by  the  Generals  of  both 
armies.  By  them  the  rebels  agreed  to  give  up  all 
their  artillery  and  arms1,  excepting  the  swords  and 
pistols  of  officers ;  on  which  they  were  to  be  con- 
voyed by  the  royal  troops  in  safety  to  Poole, 
agreeing  not  to  bear  arms  again  before  they  arrived 
at  Southampton. 

One  is  struck  by  the  remarkably  easy  terms  granted 
in  capitulations,  as  much  as  by  a  certain  want  of 
vigour  and  energy  in  pressing  their  adversaries, 
which  is  observable  on  both  sides.  It  would  seem 
they  never  forgot,  up  to  this  time  at  least,  that 
they  were  brethren  fighting  against  brethren.  In 
the  relation  just  ended,  another  question  arises ; 
what  was  the  Earl  of  Warwick2  doing  at  Plymouth 
with  the  fleet,  when,  within  thirty  miles  of  him,  was 
the  army  of  his  party  in  a  state  of  distress,  which  the 
presence  of  a  few  men-of-war  off  Fowey  would  have 
relieved  at  once  ? 

Essex  did  not  write  an  account  of  his  disasters  to 
the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms;  his  indignation 
against  that  board  was  only  shown  in  his  letter  to 

1  Thirty-eight  guns,  including  the  four  captured,  and  about  6000  stand 
of  arms,  fell  to  the  royal  army  by  this  capitulation. 

*  Whitelocke,  p.  102.,  says  that  Warwick  made  "  a  gallant  attempt  to 
relieve  Fowey,  but  extremity  of  weather  would  not  suffer  him  to  land 
one  man;"  but  surely  if  Lord  Essex  could  leave  Fowey  in  an  open  boat, 
the  same  means  might  have  embarked  a  portion  at  least  of  the  army,  had 
the  fleet  been  off  Fowey. 


CHAP.  XVII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL   OF   ESSEX.  439 

Sir  Philip  Stapleton,  which  was  read  in  Parliament. 
In  it  he  says :  "  How  our  poor  army  was  neglected 
"  and  oppressed,  is  well  known  to  you,  and  shall  be 
"  to  the  world ;  for  never  were  so  many  gallant 
"  and  faithful  men  so  long  exposed  without  succor." 
And  again  he  says,  "  this  business  shall  not  sleep,  if 
"  it  be  in  my  power.'' 

Colonels  Weare  and  Butler  were  accused  of  having 
caused  the  late  disaster  by  their  misconduct;  the 
regiment  of  the  former  having  quitted  its  post  on 
the  30th,  and  Butler,  who  had  been  a  prisoner  in 
the  royal  camp,  and  was  only  exchanged  two  days 
before,  was  accused  of  having  tampered  with  the 
army  on  his  return,  by  spreading  certain  reports. 
Both  were  committed  to  the  Tower. 

An  inquiry  into  the  reasons  why  Waller  or  a  com- 
petent force  was  not  sent  into  the  West  on  the  King's 
going  there,  instead  of  lying  idle  about  Abingdon, 
being  by  no  means  agreeable  to  his  party,  it  was 
stifled  by  sending  to  Essex  the  following  letter  from 
the  Parliament. 

No.  LXXXV.1 

The  Speakers  to  Essex. 

My  Lord, — The  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms  having 
acquainted  the  Houses  of  Parliament  with  your  Lordship's 
letters  from  Plymouth,  they  have  commanded  us  to  let  you 
know  that,  as  they  apprehend  the  misfortunes  of  that  acci- 
dent, and  submit  to  God's  pleasure  therein,  so  their  good 
affections  to  your  Lordship,  and  their  opinion  of  your  fidelity 


1  Lords'  Journal,  vi.  699. 
r  r4 


440  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVII. 

and  merit  in  the  public  service,  is  not  at  all  lessened ;  and 
they  are  resolved  not  to  be  wanting  in  their  best  endeavors 
for  the  repairing  of  this  loss,  and  drawing  together  such  a 
strength  under  your  command,  as  may,  with  the  blessing  of 
God,  return  our  affairs  to  a  better  condition  than  they  are  now 
in  ;  to  which  purpose  they  have  written  to  the  Earl  of  Man- 
chester to  march  with  all  possible  speed  towards  Dorchester 
in  Dorsetshire  with  all  the  forces  he  can  of  horse  and  foot. 
Sir  Will.  Waller  is  likewise  ordered  to  march  speedily  unto 
Dorchester  with  all  his  horse  and  foot. 

The  Houses  have  appointed  6000  foot  arms,  500  pair  of 
pistols,  and  6000  suits  of  clothes,  shirts,  &c.,  to  meet  your 
Lordship  at  Portsmouth,  for  the  arming  and  encouragement 
of  your  forces;  and  they  are  confident  your  Lordship's 
presence  in  those  parts,  for  bringing  the  forces  together  in  a 
body,  and  disposing  of  them,  will  very  much  conduce  to  the 
public  advantage.  Your  Lordship's  most  affectionate  friends, 

GREY  OF  WARKE. 

Westminster,  7th  Sept.  1644.  WM.  LENTHAL. 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  411 


CHAPTEK  XVIII. 

LIFE   OF   ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX — Concluded. 

MOVEMENTS  OF  THE  ROYAL  ARMY. PROCEEDINGS  OF  LORD  ESSEX. 

HIS  ILLNESS.  —  SECOND  BATTLE  OF  NEWBURY. CONSULTATION 

AT  ESSEX  HOUSE  CONCERNING  CROMWELL. SELF-DENYING  ORDI- 
NANCE.  ESSEX  RESIGNS  HIS  COMMISSION. HIS  CONDUCT  AS 

GENERAL.  —  SEQUESTRATED  LANDS  ASSIGNED  TO  HIM.  —  PROPOSAL 

TO  MAKE  ESSEX  AND  OTHERS  DUKES. HIS  ILLNESS  AND  DEATH. 

—  LORD  CLARENDON'S  CHARACTER  OF  LORD  ESSEX.  —  HIS  FUNE- 
RAL. —  LITIGATION  ABOUT  HIS  WILL. 

IN  a  few  days  after  the  capitulation  of  General 
Skippon,  the  royal  army  commenced  its  march,  and 
arrived  on  the  10th  September  before  Plymouth ;  a 
summons  was  sent  to  Lord  Roberts,  who  remained 
in  command  of  the  garrison,  which  being  rejected 
by  him,  several  unsuccessful  attempts  were  made  to 
take  the  town  by  assault ;  on  this  Charles  raised  the 
siege,  and  continued  his  march  to  Exeter,  at  which 
place  he  arrived  on  the  17th.  Goring,  who  had  been 
detached  against  Barnstaple  and  Ilfracombe,  took 
those  places  on  capitulation,  the  garrisons  marching 
out  with  the  honours  of  war,  and  having  a  convoy  to 
Portsmouth ;  the  ordnance,  amounting  to  seventy 
pieces,  being  left  to  the  Royalists. 

The  King  having  summoned  the  Oxford  Parliament 
to  assemble  on  the  9th  November,  slowly  pursued  his 
march  in  that  direction;  Waller,  who  had  joined 


442  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XVIII. 

General  Middleton,  and  the  horse  under  Balfour, 
retreating  before  him.  The  King  was  at  Salisbury 
on  the  15th  October,  and  arrived  at  Newbury  on  the 
22nd. 

The  Earl  of  Essex,  who  had  proceeded  by  sea  from 
Plymouth  to  Portsmouth,  wrote  from  the  latter  place, 
on  the  llth  September,  that  he  was  collecting  his 
forces  again ;  and  on  the  14th  he  says,  "  Our  poor 
"  naked  foot  came  the  last  night  to  Southampton 
"  and  thereabouts.7'  He  also  says,  in  reference  to 
the  orders  which  had  been  given  to  Waller  to  march 
to  his  relief,  and  to  the  assurance  he  had  received 
from  the  Committee  that  "  nothing  should  be  wanting 
"  that  might  contribute  to  his  Lordship's  speedy  as- 
"  sistance," — "I  hope,  hereafter,  those  who  have  dis- 
"  obeyed  your  commands  shall  be  questioned  ;  for  if 
"  they  had  been  put  in  execution,  the  war  had  been 
"  ended  before  now,  and  I  not  put  to  so  shameful  a 
"  retreat, — it  being  never  before  this  time  in  the 
"  enemy's  power  to  have  the  least  advantage  over 
"  my  army."1 

The  jealousy  entertained  against  Essex  was,  for  the 
moment,  quelled  by  the  disastrous  event  which  had 
been  its  result,  and  the  Parliament  exerted  them- 
selves to  recruit  and  arm  his  men  with  so  much 
diligence,  that  on  the  17th  October  he  was  again 
enabled  to  take  the  field,  and  on  the  21st  he  was  joined 
near  Basingstoke  by  Manchester  and  Waller,  while 
5000  men  of  the  City  trained  bands  were  on  their 

1  Letter-book,  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XVIII.       ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL  OF    ESSEX.  443 

march  towards  him.  At  this  critical  moment,  when 
the  King  was  ^within  a  few  miles  of  Essex,  and  a 
decisive  action  looked  for,  an  indisposition,  which 
had  been  gradually  growing  upon  him,  increased  to 
such  an  extent,  that  he  was  compelled  to  quit  the 
army,  and  go  to  Reading. 

The  cause  of  his  retirement  from  the  head  of  the 
army  at  this  critical  juncture,  is  satisfactorily  ac- 
counted for  by  Sir  John  Meyricke,  who,  writing  to 
Sir  Samuel  Luke  from  Reading,  on  the  26th  October, 
says :  "  I  am  much  troubled  to  tell  you  that  my 
"  Lord  General  is  now  at  Reading,  and  fallen  ex- 
"  treme  ill  of  an  impost ume  in  his  back  parts,  much 
"  to  be  feared,  unless  timely  prevented,  will  turn  to  a 
"  fistula ;  that  it  should  please  God  to  visit  him  at 
"  this  time,  troubles  his  mind  extremely,  and,  I  fear, 
"  may  endanger  his  life,  but  God's  will  must  be."  1 

The  illness  of  Essex  being  reported  to  the  Houses 
on  the  26th,  the  following  letter  was  addressed  to 
him  by  their  order. 

No.  LXXXVI.2 

The  Committee  to  Essex. 

My  Lord, — We  are  very  sorry  to  hear  of  your  Lordship's 
indisposition,  and  that  you  have  by  so  long  striving  against 
it,  so  much  increased  it.  We  are  sensible  of  the  want  of 
your  presence  at  the  army,  yet  desire  your  Lordship,  however, 
to  take  special  care  of  your  health,  that  you  may  preserve 
yourself  both  to  your  friends  and  the  public.  We  send  this 
messenger  express  to  be  certified  of  your  health,  and  desire 

1  Ashburnham  MSS.  2  S.  P.  O. 


444  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

your  Lordship  to  despatch  him  immediately  with  the  state 
of  it. 

Derby  House,  26th  Oct.  1644. 

No.  LXXXVIL1 
Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen, — It  is  a  comfort  to  me  in  this 
sad  time  of  mine  affliction  in  mind  and  body,  to  see  that  I  am 
continued  in  your  care,  being  at  this  present  so  useless  a 
servant  to  the  State. 

The  particulars  of  my  disease  I  shall  crave  pardon  that  I 
defer  the  account  of  till  Doctor  St.  John,  old  Mr.  Bowden  of 
Reading,  and  Langley  mine  own  chirurgeon,  shall  set  down 
the  true  state,  as  much  as  they  can  perceive  of  it  as  yet ; 
only  thus  much,  I  think  it  has  been  much  occasioned  (the 
inconveniency  I  am  like  to  suffer)  by  striving  so  long  with 
it,  thinking  it  the  greatest  worldly  misfortune  that  would 
have  befallen  me  at  this  present :  but  it  is  God's  doing,  and 
I  must  with  all  humility  submit  to  his  pleasure ;  so  acknow- 
ledging your  Lordships'  great  favor  in  sending  hither,  I  rest, 
my  Lords,  your  Lordships'  most  humble  servant, 

Reading,  27th  Oct.  1644.  ESSEX. 

On  the  day  the  above  letter  was  written,  the  second 
battle  of  Newbury  was  fought ;  the  absence  of  the 
Lord  General,  whose  superior  rank  was  acknowledged 
by  all,  produced  results  of  the  highest  importance. 

The  jealousies  entertained  towards  each  other  by 
the  Generals  of  the  rebel  army,  were  so  well  known, 
that  the  Committee  had  written  letters  to  the  prin- 
cipal commanders,  urging  them  to  forget  their  ani- 

1  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  445 

mosities,  and  for  the  sake  of  the  common  cause  to 
act  with  zeal  and  unity. 

To  a  want  of  the  agreement  thus  urged  upon  the 
commanders,  may  be  ascribed  the  indecisive  result  of 
the  battle,  in  which  the  army  of  the  Parliament, 
although  greatly  superior  in  numbers  to  that  of  the 
King,  not  only  gained  no  material  advantage,  but  on 
the  following  day,  when  Charles  had  retired,  leaving 
his  artillery  and  wounded  in  Dennington  Castle,  they 
suffered  a  repulse  before  that  castle ;  and  on  the  9th 
November,  the  rebel  leaders  having  passed  the 
interim  in  accusations  and  recriminations  at  Newbury, 
the  King,  joined  by  his  horse  under  Rupert  and 
Northampton,  relieved  Dennington  before  their  eyes, 
removed  his  artillery  to  Oxford,  and  offered  battle, 
which  was  declined.  The  Committee  of  the  Two 
Kingdoms  replied  to  the  despatch  of  Manchester, 
Waller,  and  Balfour,  reporting  these  facts,  that  they 
were  "  sorry  to  hear  the  enemy  met  not  that  opposi- 
"  tion  that  was  expected  from  an  army  that  God  had 
"  blessed  lately  with  so  happy  a  victory."  Essex, 
who  had  arrived  in  London  the  day  before,  attended 
this  meeting  of  the  Committee  on  the  10th. 

The  Parliament  was  justly  displeased,  and  ordered 
an  inquiry  into  the  conduct  of  the^  Generals,  and  the 
state  of  the  army,  while  they  kept  their  monthly  fast 
with  more  than  usual  strictness. 

In  the  House  of  Commons,  Cromwell  accused 
Manchester  of  disaffection,  and  of  studiously  avoiding 
all  opportunities  of  obtaining  victory  over  the  King's 


446  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVIII. 

forces1 ;  while  Manchester  retorted  on  him  in  the 
Upper  House,  with  a  charge  of  disobedience  of  orders 
on  the  day  of  Newbury,  which  prevented  a  decisive 
victory  being  gained.  It  appears  that  Cromwell 
already  aimed  at  supreme  power,  and  that  he  had 
sounded  Manchester,  who  proved  deaf  to  his  persua- 
sions, and  refused  to  betray  the  trust  reposed  in  him 
by  the  Parliament ;  his  overthrow  was  therefore  re- 
solved on,  with  the  rest  of  the  moderate  leaders. 

The  following  is  the  last  letter  written  by  the 
Lord  General  before  his  return  to  London. 

No.  LXXXVIII.2 

Essex  to  the  Committee. 

My  Lords  and  Gentlemen,  —  I  received  the  enclosed  from 
Major-General  Browne,  and  very  readily  recommend  his 
requests  to  your  Lordships,  desiring  such  stragglers  as  can  be 
apprehended  may  be  made  exemplary. 

I  give  your  LL.  many  thanks  for  your  enquiry  after  my 
recovery,  which  I  thank  God  begins,  though  with  a  small 
progress ;  I  can  now  sit  up  half  an  hour  or  an  hour  in  a  day 
without  much  pain.  My  Lords,  I  am  your  LL.  most  humble 
servant,  ESSEX. 

General  Browne's  letter  stated,  that  four-score 
troopers  had  run  away  from  Abingdon  to  London, 
pretending  their  want  of  pay,  whereas  they  were  not 
more  than  four  or  five  weeks  in  arrear.  He  begs 

1  The  resolution  not  to  fight  on  the  9th  November,  was,  however, 
taken  in  a  full  council  of  war,  Cromwell  being  one  of  its  members. — Lud- 
low,  i.  132.  Baillie,  ii.  76. 

«  S.  P.  O. 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  447 

that  "  they  may  be  made  exemplary  in  punishment, 
"  who  never  were  nor  will  be  serviceable  as  soldiers." 
The  jealousies  and  quarrels  of  the  commanders  pro- 
duced their  usual  effect ;  the  troops  became  discon- 
tented and  mutinous,  and  many  desertions  took  place. 
The  Committee,  in  their  letters  to  Essex,  deplore  his 
absence  from  the  army,  and  desire  him  to  order  all 
officers  to  remain  with  their  respective  charges,  on 
pain  of  death. 

We  will  now  proceed  to  relate  the  origin  and 
progress  of  the  celebrated  Self-denying  Ordinance, 
which,  by  removing  from  civil  offices  and  military 
commands  all  the  moderate  men,  enabled  Oliver 
Cromwell  to  plant  his  foot  firmly  on  the  ladder  to 
power,  which  he  climbed  so  successfully  and  so 
rapidly,  that  in  a  few  short  months,  to  use  the  words 
of  Mr.  Hallam,  "  Fairfax  and  Cromwell  triumphed, 
"  not  only  over  the  King  and  the  monarchy,  but  over 
"  the  Parliament  and  the  nation."1 

Of  the  two  parties  into  which  the  rebels  were 
divided  in  November,  1644,  the  Presbyterians  were 
the  most  numerous ;  but  the  Independents  not  only 
possessed  the  most  able  and  energetic  leaders,  but  all 
the  most  popular  preachers  belonged  to  that  party : 
hence  they  made  up  in  influence  what  they  wanted 
in  numbers. 

The  conduct  of  the  army  at  Newbury  had  been 
submitted  to  a  Committee ;  and  it  soon  became  known 
that  the  Independents,  who  scouted  the  idea  of  peace, 

1  At  the  battle  of  Naseby,  14th  June,  1645. —  Const,  Hist.  i.  592. 


448 


LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVIII. 


were  resolved  to  get  rid  of  Essex  and  the  other 
advocates  for  it,  and  that  this  Committee  recom- 
mended that  the  army  should  be  remodelled,  thus 
solving  their  chief  difficulty,  which  was  the  mode  of 
setting  aside  the  Earl  of  Essex  without  giving  offence 
to  him  and  to  the  army,  in  which  he  was  much  be- 
loved. Cromwell  was  as  popular  with  one  portion  of 
the  army,  as  Essex  was  with  the  other ;  and  on  the 
former  insinuating  some  misconduct  on  the  part  of 
Essex's  own  army  at  Newbury,  the  Earl  conceived  a 
jealousy  of  his  intentions,  and  a  consultation  was  held 
at  Essex  House,  late  one  night,  in  the  beginning  of 
December.  The  Scots  Commissioners,  Whitelocke, 
Maynard,  Denzil  Holies,  Sir  Philip  Stapleton,  Sir 
John  Meyricke,  and  some  other  friends  of  Essex  were 
present.1 

Lord  Loudon,  Chancellor  of  Scotland,  opened  the 
proceedings  in  a  speech  specially  addressed  to 
Whitelocke  and  Maynard,  in  which  he  desired  their 
opinions,  whether  Lieutenant  General  Cromwell 
ought  not  to  be  proceeded  against  as  an  incendiary, 
as  that  term  was  understood  in  the  Solemn  League 
and  Covenant. 

Both  Whitelocke  and  Maynard  replied  to  the  same 
effect :  that  they  considered  Cromwell  to  be  a  man 
of  quick  and  subtle  parts,  who  had  lately  gained  no 
small  interest  in  the  House  of  Commons,  while  he 
had  some  friends  in  the  House  of  Peers,  and  was 
of  ability  to  manage  his  defence  to  the  best  advantage ; 

1  Whitelocke,  116. 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  449 

that  it  would  be  necessary  to  have  clear  proof  that 
he  had  raised  the  fire  of  contention  in  the  State,  which 
was  their  definition  of  the  word  incendiary,  before 
proceeding  against  him,  and  that  such  persons  as  the 
Chancellor  of  Scotland  and  the  Lord  General  ought 
not  to  appear  in  it,  if  there  was  any  doubt. 

This  advice  was  followed,  and  the  matter  dropped ; 
but  Whitelocke  says,  there  was  cause  to  believe 
some  person  present  had  informed  Cromwell  of 
what  passed,  who,  perceiving  the  danger  to  him- 
self of  further  delay,  lost  no  time  in  prosecuting  his 
plans. 

On  the  9th  December,  the  House  of  Commons 
resolved  itself  into  a  Committee  of  the  whole  House, 
to  consider  the  sad  condition  of  the  kingdom  by  the 
continuance  of  the  war,  and  how  the  war  should  be 
effectually  prosecuted,  if  the  negotiations  then  pend- 
ing did  not  come  to  a  successful  issue.  For  a  con- 
siderable time  silence  prevailed,  each  waiting  for  his 
neighbour  to  break  it.  At  length  Cromwell  rose, 
and  made  a  speech,  in  which  he  declared  the  general 
belief,  that  those  in  command  and  in  high  places 
desired  nothing  less  than  a  termination  of  hostilities, 
in  order  that  they  "  might  be  continued  in  grandeur" 
and  power.  He  therefore  urged  the  necessity  of 
putting  the  army  on  "  another  method.'* 

After  a  debate,  it  was  moved  by  Mr.  Zouch  Tate, 
and  resolved,  that  during  this  war  no  member  of 
either  House  should  have  any  military  command,  or 
hold  any  civil  office,  under  the  Parliament.  A  Com- 

VOL.  n.  G  G 


450  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

mittee  was  appointed  to  prepare  an  ordinance  in  the 
terms  of  the  resolution.1 

Some  of  the  movers  of  this  resolution  confessed 
that  their  object  was  to  remove  the  Lord  General, 
who  would  otherwise  obstruct  their  designs ;  he 
being  a  favourer  of  peace,  and  too  strong  a  supporter 
of  monarchy,  nobility,  and  other  old  institutions, 
which  they  desired  to  alter.2 

Cromwell  was  not  sure  of  his  majority,  and  reli- 
gion was  called  in  to  exert  herself  in  his  favour. 
The  House  ordered  a  fast,  and  agreed  to  the  preachers 
proposed  by  the  Independents.  The  fast  was  ob- 
served by  the  House  in  Lincoln's  Inn  Chapel,  no 
strangers,  not  even  the  officers  of  the  House,  being 
admitted,  that  the  preachers  might  speak  more  freely 
respecting  the  Self-denying  Ordinance,  on  which  they 
were  to  implore  a  blessing. 

On  the  17th  December,  the  Ordinance  was  re- 
ported to  the  House,  and  a  proviso  that  it  should  not 
extend  to  the  Earl  of  Essex  rejected  by  a  majority  of 
seven.3 

On  the  21st  December,  the  Ordinance  was  sent  to 
the  Lords;  and  so  impatient  were  the  Commons, 
that  three  days  afterwards  they  sent  a  message, 
desiring  the  Lords  to  expedite  the  measure.  It  was 
referred  to  a  select  Committee,  composed  of  Essex, 

1  Commons'  Journal,  iii.  718.     Parl.  Hist.  iii.  326. 
8  Whitelocke,  118. 

3  The  numbers  were,  on  the  question  that  this  proviso  should  be  added 
to  the  Ordinance  — 

Yeas  93.    Tellers,  Sir  Ph.  Stapleton  and  Mr.  Holies. 

Noes  100.       "        Sir  H.  Vane,  junior,  and  Sir  J.  Evelyn,  junior. 


CHAP.  XVIII.    ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  451 

Warwick,  Denbigh,  Manchester,  and  six  other  Peers. 
On  their  report  a  conference  was  demanded,  and  the 
Lords  gave  their  reasons  for  not  assenting  to  the 
Ordinance :  that  it  deprived  the  Peers  of  the  honour 
of  serving  their  country,  which  in  all  ages  had  been 
their  constant  practice,  and  laid  a  blot  on  them,  by 
treating  them  as  incapable  and  delinquent  persons, 
who  had  highly  demerited  ;  that  it  only  excepted 
such  few  of  the  Gentry  and  Commons  of  England  as 
were  members,  therefore  the  case  was  not  alike 
between  the  two  Houses. 

The  Lower  House  refused  to  take  these  reasons  into 
consideration,  alleging  that  a  breach  of  privilege  and 
of  the  custom  of  Parliament  had  been  committed  by 
the  Lords,  in  sending  down  reasons  unaccompanied 
by  the  Ordinance  and  the  proposed  amendments. 

The  Lords  demanded  another  conference,  in  which 
they  stated  that  they  found  the  Commons  had  quite 
mistaken  the  matter  of  the  former  conference ;  that 
the  Lords  considered  the  Ordinance,  as  it  stood, 
was  unfit  to  be  passed,  and  had  prepared  no  amend- 
ments ;  that,  on  a  former  occasion,  the  Commons 
having  complained  that  the  Lords  had  rejected  an 
ordinance  concerning  an  oath  of  secrecy  to  be  taken 
by  the  Committee  of  both  Kingdoms,  without  giving 
their  reasons,  they  had,  on  this  occasion,  demanded  a 
conference,  to  afford  them  that  satisfaction. 

On  the  13th  January,  1645,  Mr.  Pierrepoint,  ac- 
companied by  the  whole  House,  being  sent  up  with  a 
message  to  urge  the  immediate  passing  of  the  Ordi- 

G  G   2 


452  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

nance,  the  question  was  put,  and  the  Ordinance 
thrown  out,  in  a  House  of  nineteen  Peers,  besides  the 
Speaker.1 

The  next  move  of  the  Independents  in  the  House 
of  Commons,  was  a  resolution  by  vote  of  the  21st 
January,  that  Sir  Thomas  Fairfax  should  be  ap- 
pointed to  command  all  the  forces  on  the  new  esta- 
blishment. It  is  to  be  inferred,  from  the  numbers  on 
this  division,  that  some  means  had  been  used  to  inti- 
midate the  moderate  party,  and  deter  them  from 
voting.2  They  also  proceeded  in  the  new  modelling 
of  the  army,  which  was  to  consist  of  6000  horse,  1000 
dragoons,  and  14,000  foot.  To  this  Ordinance  the 
Lords  proposed  amendments,  which  were  agreed  to 
by  the  Commons  on  the  17th  February,  and  Sir 
Thomas  Fairfax  was  sent  for,  and  complimented  by 
the  Speaker  on  his  appointment. 

But  although  the  army  in  the  field  was  thus 
placed  under  Fairfax's  command,  Essex  was  not  yet 
superseded  in  his  office  of  Lord  General,  and  the  forts 
and  garrisons  were  under  his  orders.  The  House  of 
Commons,  on  the  25th  February,  reappointed  the 
former  Committee  to  prepare  another  Self-denying 
Ordinance,  similar  to  the  former  one.  This  was 
passed  with  much  less  opposition  than  before,  and 
sent  to  the  Lords  on  the  31st  March.  St.  John, 
Whitelocke,  Pierrepoint,  and  Crewe,  who  had  been 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vii.  113.  115.  117.  129.    Commons'  Journal,  iii.  726. ; 
iv.11.13.  16,  17. 

2  Noes  69.    Tellers,  Sir  Ph.  Stapleton,  Mr.  Holies. 

Ayes  101.       "        Sir  H.  Vane,  junior,  Lt.  Gen.  Cromwell. 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  453 

thought  to  belong  to  Essex's  party,  appeared  in 
favour  of  the  Ordinance.  Some  who  were  for  peace, 
but  thought  that  it  could  never  be  obtained  until 
they  had  completely  vanquished  the  King,  followed 
the  same  course.  The  Scots  Commissioners,  influenced 
by  the  Marquis  of  Argyle,  who  had  formed  a  friend- 
ship for  Sir  H.  Vane,  had  slackened  in  their  opposi- 
tion. The  determined  advance  of  the  Independent 
leaders,  Fiennes,  Vane,  Cromwell,  Haslerig.  Martin, 
towards  their  goal,  probably  had  its  effect  in  making 
the  undecided  and  the  timid  fall  back. 

About  the  same  time,  an  ordinance  conferring 
additional  powers,  and  the  command  of  the  forts  and 
garrisons,  on  Sir  Thomas  Fairfax,  was  sent  to  the 
Lords,  who  made  several  amendments,  and  added  a 
clause  to  it  concerning  the  safety  of  the  King's 
person.  The  Houses  were  again  brought  into  collision 
by  this ;  but  the  Lords  persisted,  and  appointed  a 
Committee  to  give  their  reasons  for  adhering  to  the 
additional  clause ;  when,  on  the  1st  April,  the  Earl 
of  Essex  cut  away  the  difficulty,  by  desiring  that  he 
"  might  have  leave  to-morrow  to  present  and  deliver 
"  up  his  commission,  so  there  would  be  no  obstacle 
"  to  the  passing  of  the  clause  placing  the  forts  and 
"  garrisons  under  the  command  of  Sir  Thomas 
"Fairfax."1 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vii.  298.  Whitelocke,  p.  140.,  says  :  "  Some  of  Essex's 
friends  were  against  his  laying  down  his  commission,  but  others  told  him 
that  mischiefs  and  contests  might  arise  if  he  kept  it,  whereof  himself  was 
sensible ;  and  as  he  had  great  stoutness  of  spirit,  so  he  had  great  goodness 
of  nature  and  love  to  the  public,  which  persuaded  him  to  lay  down  his 
commission." 

Q  O    3 


454  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XVIII. 

This  he  did  on  the  2nd  April,  giving  in  with  it  the 
following  declaration  :  — 

Having  received  this  great  charge  in  obedience  to  the  com- 
mand of  both  Houses,  and  taken  their  sword  into  my  hand,  I 
can  with  confidence  say,  that  I  have,  for  now  almost  three 
years,  faithfully  served  you,  and  I  hope  without  loss  of  any 
honor  to  myself  or  prejudice  to  the  public,  supported  therein 
by  the  goodness  of  God,  and  the  fidelity  and  courage  of  a 
great  many  gallant  men,  both  officers  and  soldiers ;  but  I  will 
neither  trouble  you  nor  myself,  by  repeating  either  the  diffi- 
culties or  danger  we  have  overcome,  or  the  service  I  have 
done  you. 

I  see,  by  the  now  coming  up  of  these  ordinances,  that  it  is 
the  desire  of  the  House  of  Commons  that  my  commission 
may  be  vacated ;  and  it  hath  been  no  particular  respect  to 
myself,  whatever  is  whispered  to  the  contrary,  that  hath  made 
me  thus  long  omit  to  declare  my  readiness  thereto,  it  being 
not  unknown  to  divers  men  of  honor,  that  I  had  resolved  it 
after  the  action  of  Gloucester,  but  that  some  importunities, 
pressed  on  me  with  arguments  of  public  advantage,  and  that 
by  those  of  unquestionable  affection,  overruled  me  therein. 
I  do  now  do  it,  and  return  my  commission  into  those  hands 
that  gave  it  me ;  wishing  it  may  prove  as  good  an  expedient 
to  the  present  distempers  as  some  will  have  it  believed,  which 
I  shall  pray  for  with  as  hearty  a  zeal  as  any  that  desire  my 
doing  this  which  now  I  do. 

I  think  it  not  immodest  that  I  intreat  both  Houses,  that 
those  officers  of  mine  which  are  now  laid  by,  might  have  their 
debentures  audited,  some  considerable  part  of  their  arrears 
paid  them  for  their  support,  and  the  remainder  secured  them 
by  the  public  faith,  and  that  those  of  them  that  remain  ques- 
tioned, may  be  brought  to  some  speedy  trial,  whereby  they 
may  receive  either  the  punishment  or  the  justification  that 
is  due  to  them ;  under  which  notion  I  remember  only  three, 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  455 

of  whom  I  must  testify,  that  they  frankly  and  courageously 
have  adventured  their  lives  and  lost  their  blood  lor  the 
public,  and  that  with  continued  fidelity  for  aught  ever  I 
could  observe. 

My  Lords,  I  know  that  jealousies  cannot  be  avoided  in  the 
unhappy  condition  of  our  present  affairs ;  yet  wisdom  and 
charity  should  put  such  restraints  thereto,  as  not  to  allow  it 
to  become  destructive.  I  hope  that  this  advice  from  me  is 
not  unseasonable,  wishing  myself  and  my  friends  may, 
among  others,  participate  the  benefit  thereof ;  this  proceeding 
from  my  affection  to  the  Parliament,  the  prosperity  whereof 
I  shall  ever  wish  from  my  heart,  what  return  soever  it  brings 
me,  I  being  no  single  example  in  that  kind  of  that  fortune  I 
now  undergo.1 

What  the  motives  may  have  been  which  actuated 
Lord  Essex  on  this  occasion,  we  have  no  means  of 
judging ;  but  it  is  evident,  from  the  above  declaration, 
that  he  was  not  well  satisfied  with  the  treatment  he 
had  experienced.  Having  gained  their  end,  his  ad- 
versaries had  no  objection  to  bestow  on  him  the  most 
flattering  expressions  of  their  gratitude ;  perhaps 
they  were  surprised  at  having  so  easily  gained  the 
victory.  The  two  Houses  waited  on  him  the  next 
day  at  Essex  House,  to  thank  him  for  his  patriotism, 
with  the  highest  encomiums  on  his  conduct,  and  the 
strongest  expressions  of  their  sense  of  his  past 
services. 

The  soldiers  who  had  served  under  the  immediate 
command  of  Lord  Essex,  did  not  at  all  approve  of 
this  change  of  generals.  Their  love  for  him  was 
known,  and  any  danger  arising  from  the  measure  had 

1  Lords'  Journal,  vii.  300. 
G  G  4 


456  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XVIII. 

been  provided  against,  by  dividing  his  army  into 
small  detachments.  The  horse,  which  were  quartered 
in  Hertfordshire,  made  some  show  of  resistance l ;  on 
which  Oliver  St.  John  proposed  to  "  cut  them  to 
"  pieces,"  and  indeed  is  said  to  have  written  privately 
to  the  Hertfordshire  Committee,  desiring  they  would 
raise  the  country  and  destroy  those  men.  But  the 
Parliament  was  not  so  violent  arid  bloodthirsty ;  and 
sending  down  some  of  their  old  officers,  who  bore  the 
earnest  desire  of  Lord  Essex  to  the  soldiers,  that  they 
would  submit  to  the  ordinance,  and  serve  the  newly- 
appointed  officers  as  faithfully  as  those  who  had  been 
removed,  the  insubordinate  regiments  were  persuaded 
to  give  their  obedience  to  the  newly  appointed  officers. 
The  Earls  of  Denbigh,  Manchester,  and  Warwick, 
followed  the  example  of  their  chief.  A  Committee 

1  This  was  not  the  only  portion  of  his  army  that  was  inclined  to  rebel 
against  the  ordinance,  as  appears  by  the  following  extracts  from  corre- 
spondence in  the  Ashburnham  Collection,  which  thus  afford  an  additional 
proof  of  the  disinterested  and  patriotic  conduct  of  Essex.  Had  he 
thought  proper  to  head  these  troops,  what  might  have  been  the  result  ? 
Sir  Sam.  Luke  writes  from  Newport  Pagnell,  of  which  place  he  was  the 
Governor,  on  the  25th  February  :  —  "  Sir  Thomas  Fairfax  has  arrived  in 
London,  who  hath  the  nomination  of  his  own  officers.  My  L.  General 
continues  still  as  he  did,  and  nothing  is  farther  acted  for  the  removing  of 
him.  There  have  been  great  mutinies  and  discontents  amongst  his  sol- 
diers, insomuch  as  they  have  refused  to  march  with  Sir  Will.  Waller. 
They  sent  down  Sir  Will.  Balfour  and  Major- General  Skippon  to 
them,  to  see  if  they  could  persuade  them."  Again,  Captain  Oxford  to 
Sir  S.  Luke : — "  His  Excellency's  army  not  only  denieth  marching  with  Sir 
William  Waller,  but  is  coming  with  a  hasty  retreat  to  this  place ;  what 
the  event  will  be,  God  knows.  Sir  W.  Waller  sent  up  word  to  the 
House,  that  so  soon  as  the  Newport  men  knew  they  were  to  march  under 
him,  1 00  of  them  ran  away."  A  detachment  of  300  men  had  been  sent 
from  Newport  a  short  time  before. — Ashburnham  MSS.  229.  of  Stowe 
Catalogue. 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF    ESSEX.  457 

was  appointed  to  consider  what  mark  of  honour 
should  be  set  upon  the  Earl  of  Essex,  to  remain  as  a 
testimony  to  posterity,  and  an  acknowledgment  from 
the  Parliament  of  the  great  and  faithful  services  he 
had  done ;  as  well  as  to  consider  the  services  of  the 
other  officers  who  had  been  set  aside. 

On  their  report,  it  was  ordered  that,  for  the  future, 
the  10,000/.  a-year  formerly  voted,  should  be  paid  to 
Essex  in  equal  quarterly  payments,  and  that  the  sum 
of  4300£.  arrears  of  his  entertainment  on  the  esta- 
blishment should  be  paid  up. 

With  respect  to  the  negotiations  for  peace,  to  which 
reference  has  been  made,  it  is  only  necessary  to  state, 
that  Commissioners  on  both  sides  met  at  Uxbridge  on 
the  30th  January,  1645.  The  Parliamentary  Com- 
missioners were  directed  to  devote  three  days  to  each 
of  the  following  subjects,  —  Religion,  Militia,  and 
Ireland :  to  make  and  receive  all  communications  in 
writing :  and  only  to  treat  during  twenty  days.  As 
there  was  no  serious  intention  on  the  part  of  the 
prevailing  party  in  Parliament  to  make  peace,  it  is 
needless  to  say  that  the  time  expired  without  that 
result  being  attained. 

It  was  by  no  means  the  intention  of  Cromwell  and 
his  friends  that  he  should  obey  the  Self  denying  Ordi- 
nance ;  before  it  passed,  therefore,  he  was  sent  on 
service  into  the  West ;  and  when  the  day  was  ap- 
pointed on  which  the  officers  were  to  give  up  their 
commissions,  Fairfax  desired  that  Cromwell  might  be 
permitted  to  remain  with  him  a  few  days,  and  shortly 
after,  in  a  second  letter,  that  he  might  be  permitted 


458  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

to  serve  out  the  campaign.  On  the  llth  May,  the 
House  ordered  that  he  should  retain  his  appointment 
forty  days  longer;  on  the  18th  June,  he  was  con- 
tinued for  three  months ;  on  the  8th  August,  for 
four  months  ;  on  the  17th  October,  for  four  months  ; 
and  on  the  23rd  January,  1646,  for  six  months ;  each 
of  these  periods  commencing  at  the  expiration  of  the 
former.  Before  the  periods  of  time  so  voted  were 
completed,  the  army  ruled  the  country,  and  Cromwell 
ruled  the  army. 

Although  I  have  from  time  to  time,  in  the  course 
of  this  narrative,  expressed  opinions  respecting  the 
conduct  of  the  war  by  the  Earl  of  Essex,  it  will  be 
desirable  here,  at  the  termination  of  his  services,  to 
make  a  few  observations. 

It  has  been  the  custom  of  all  writers  on  this 
period,  to  pass  by  the  Earl  with  a  few  slighting 
remarks  on  his  slowness,  his  want  of  energy,  his  in- 
competence as  a  general ;  a  custom  so  invariable, 
that  I  incline  to  believe  later  authors  have  followed 
like  sheep  in  the  track  of  their  predecessors,  without 
making  any  investigation  for  themselves. 

Lord  Essex  was  certainly  not  one  of  those  brilliant 
meteors  which  occasionally  shoot  across  the  intellec- 
tual atmosphere,  and  which  were  wholly  wanting  in 
the  days  of  Charles  I. ;  but  if  he  were  of  so  dull  a 
nature  and  so  mean  a  capacity  as  the  above  epithets 
would  imply,  how  did  it  occur,  that  from  amongst 
others  of  equal  rank,  of  equal  experience,  of  equal 
and  of  greater  wealth,  he  was  unanimously  and  un- 
hesitatingly selected  by  the  Parliament  and  people  of 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF   ESSEX.  459 

England  as  their  General  ?  —  or  how  can  we  give  any 
credit  to  that  assertion  of  Clarendon,  that  unless  Essex 
had  accepted  the  command,  the  Parliament  would  have 
been  unable  to  raise  an  army  ?  Had  he  been  able  so 
completely  to  deceive  the  people  at  first,  surely  he 
could  not  have  retained  till  his  death  such  influence 
as  the  following  passage  indicates :  "  He  was  the 
"  head  of  our  party  here,  kept  all  together,  who  now 
"  are  like  by  that  alone  to  fall  to  pieces.  The  House 
"  of  Lords  absolutely,  the  City  very  much,  and  many 
"  of  the  Shires,  depended  on  him."  1 

Had  he  been  so  incompetent  a  general,  it  could 
not  have  needed  "  cunningly  to  contrive  a  side  wind 
"  to  remove  him  from  his  commands,"  in  which  words 
Whitelocke 2  designates  the  Self-denying  Ordinance 
and  its  main  object. 

Was  he  feeble  because  he  never  crushed  the  King's 
army,  as  unquestionably  he  might  have  done;  or 
because  he  was  neither  an  Independent  in  religion, 
nor  a  republican  in  politics  ? 

The  conduct  of  Lord  Essex  in  the  first  Scots 
insurrection,  in  1639,  and  in  the  brilliant  exploit  of 
relieving  Gloucester,  are  sufficient  to  show  that  the 
want  of  energy  in  pressing  Charles,  did  not  arise 
from  any  natural  defect.  By  what  means  he  pro- 
posed to  obtain  peace  and  a  constitutional  govern- 
ment, how  he  proposed  to  limit  the  royal  preroga- 
tives claimed  by  Charles,  cannot  be  known ;  he  had 
not  a  ready  tongue,  and  writing  was  little  practised 
during  the  Civil  War.  But  we  are  told  that  some 

1  Baillie,  ii.  234.  2  P.  118. 


460  LIVES    OF    THE    EAHLS    OF    ESSEX.       CHAP.  XVIII. 

members  had  begun  to  conceive  they  never  should 
have  peace  until  the  King  were  in  their  hands,  and 
on  that  account  voted  for  changing  the  managers  of 
the  war;  it  is  therefore  evident  that  Essex  was  for 
treating  with  the  King  while  free. 

It  certainly  does  appear  strange,  that  the  Earl  of 
Essex  should  so  completely  have  made  himself  the 
champion  and  leader  of  rebellion,  as  he  did,  by  ac- 
cepting the  post  of  Captain-General  of  the  rebel 
armies  which  he  occupied,  and  thereby  seem  to  defy 
the  King's  anger  and  power,  and  yet  retain  so  much 
loyalty  and  respect  for  that  King,  as  to  avoid  in  every 
possible  way  being  personally  opposed  to  him,  or 
pressing  him  to  defeat  and  humiliation.  It  was  im- 
possible for  him  to  reconcile  the  two  lines  of  conduct; 
had  he  subdued  the  King,  he  was  aware  there  would 
be  little  security  against  the  utter  extinction  of  the 
kingly  office,  while  it  was  equally  certain,  that  until 
he  was  defeated,  it  would  be  impossible  to  treat 
effectually  with  Charles. 

He  consequently  failed,  like  moderate  men  in  all 
revolutions,  and  was  succeeded  by  leaders  who  had 
none  of  the  scruples  which  held  him  back,  and  who 
inflamed  the  minds  of  their  followers  to  a  pitch  of 
frantic  enthusiasm. 

The  order  and  discipline  maintained  in  the  army 
under  his  immediate  command,  cannot  be  too  highly 
commended.  Kapine  and  violence  were  as  little 
known  among  his  troops  as  among  those  of  Cromwell 
at  a  later  period,  who  has  been  so  much  bepraised  for 
it ;  and  respect  and  regard  consequently  attended 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  461 

Essex  in  all  the  countries  through  which  he  marched, 
which  certainly  is  more  than  can  be  said  for  the 
other. 

On  the  26th  September,  1645,  an  ordinance  was 
passed1,  entirely  altering  the  manner  in  which  Lord 
Essex  was  to  receive  the  annuity  of  10,000£.,  so 
frequently  voted  and  so  badly  paid,  as  appears  by  the 
preamble. 

"  The  Lords  and  Commons,  calling  to  mind  the 
"  heroic  valor,  prudent  courage,  and  unspotted  fide- 
"  lity  of  Robert,  Earl  of  Essex,  in  discharging  the 
"  high  and  important  command  of  Captain-General  of 
"  the  Forces  raised  by  the  Parliament ;  and  that, 
"  although  by  an  ordinance  of  the  26th  May,  1643, 
"  the  said  Lords  and  Commons,  taking  notice  of  the 
"  great  losses  and  sufferings  of  the  said  Earl,  both  in 
"  his  personal  and  real  estate,  and  of  his  faithful 
"  service  both  to  the  Parliament  and  Kingdom,  did 
"  order  and  ordain,  that  10,000£.  per  annum  should 
"  be  paid  to  the  said  Earl  and  his  assigns,  out  of  the 
"  monies  raised  by  seizing  and  sequestering  the 
"  estates  and  goods  of  delinquents,  yet  the  same  hath 
"  not  been  paid  to  the  said  Earl,  as  in  right  it  ought 
"  to  have  been." 

They  proceed  to  order  that  the  arrears  shall  be 
paid  immediately  after  the  payment  of  5000/.,  due  to 
"  our  brethren  of  Scotland,"  and  shall  in  future  be 
paid  in  four  quarterly  payments.  For  this  payment 
they  assign  the  following : 

1  Commons'  Journal,  iv. 


462  LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

Manors,  lands,  tenements,  and  hereditaments,  late  parcel  of 

the  estates  of  Arthur,  Lord  Capel1,  a  delinquent  in  arms 

against  the  Parliament,  viz  :  — 
The  mansion  houses  of  Cayshebury  and  Little  Haddam,  with 

the  parks  and  lands  adjoining  ; 
The  manor  of  Cayshoe  ; 

The  rectory  and  parsonage  impropriate  of  Watford  ; 
The  lands  called  Langley  Park ; 
The  manors  of  Parkbury,  Walkerne,  and  the  third  part  of 

Bushey,  all  in  Herts,  and  of  the  clear  yearly  value  of 

7807.  above  all  charges  and  reprizes. 

Also,  the  manors  of  Rayne,  Stebbing,  Barking  Park,  Por- 
ter's Hall,  Berwick  Berners ; 
The  farm  of  Blake  End,  all  in  Essex,  and  of  the  value  as 

above,  of  4507. 
Also,  the  manors  of  Gooderstone  with  Oxberrow,  and  Little 

Framisham,  Norfolk,  of  the  value  of  1007. 
Also,  the  manors  of  Icklinghani  Berners,  and  Aspall  Ston- 

ham,  Suffolk,  value  607. 

Also,  lands  at  Warden  Abbey,  Bedfordshire,  value  2507. 
And,  houses  in  Whitefriars,  807. 
Also  the  following,  late  the  property  of  Sir  John,  Sir  Thomas, 

and  Sir  Charles  Lucas,  knights ;  viz. :  — 
St.  John's  Abbey,  Colchester; 
The  manors  of  Shenfield,  Mile  End,  Greensted,  Fordham, 

Lexden,   Horseley,  in  Essex,  being  of  the  clear  yearly 

value  of  11007. 
Also,   late    the    property  of   Thomas    Fanshawe,    Esq.,    of 

Barking : — 
The  late  dissolved  abbey  of  Barking ; 

1  Was  it  by  way  of  retribution,  that  the  title  of  Earl  of  Essex  —  which 
from  the  Conquest  had  been  held  by  the  ancestors  of  the  Devereux,  with 
the  exception  of  the  short  period  during  which  Thomas  Cromwell  bore 
the  title — was,  after  the  Restoration,  bestowed  on  Lord  Capel  ? 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  463 

The  manors  of  Jenkins  and  Porters,  of  the  value  of  600/. 
Also,  late  the  property  of  William  Peter,  Esq.,  the  manors 

of  Stanford  Rivers,  and   South  Okenden,  Essex,  of  the 

value  of  600/. 
Also,  Glemham  Hall,  Suffolk,  late  the  property  of  Sir  Thos. 

Glemham,  value  6007. 
Also,  late  the  property  of  the  Earl  of  St.  Alban's,  a  papist, 

Somerhill  or  Tonbridge,  Kent,  and  Barley,  Herts,  value 

4:201. 

The  other  5000/.  was  to  be  paid  quarterly,  out  of 
the  treasury  at  Guildhall ;  and  if  the  lands  produced 
less  or  more  than  5000/.,  the  Earl  was  to  make  it 
known,  that  he  might  receive  the  deficiency,  or  refund 
the  surplus. 

It  appears  that  the  tenants  on  some  of  the  estates 
were  not  disposed  to  be  thus  summarily  transferred 
to  a  new  lord  by  an  order  of  Parliament ;  for  on  the 
5th  December  it  was  reported,  that  some  of  the 
committees  in  those  counties  where  the  above  lands 
were  situated,  refused  to  obey  the  ordinance. 

On  the  24th  November,  1645,  the  House  of 
Commons  resolved  itself  into  a  Committee,  which  sat 
from  day  to  day  urjtil  the  2nd  December,  to  consider 
and  resolve  on  certain  propositions  to  the  King,  for  a 
safe  and  well-grounded  peace.  Amongst  these  reso- 
lutions were  the  following,  which  afford  curious 
ground  for  speculation  on  the  motives  of  their  origi- 
nators :  that  the  Earls  of  Northumberland,  Essex, 
Warwick,  and  Pembroke,  should  be  created  Dukes ; 
Manchester  and  Salisbury,  Marquises ;  Viscount 
Say  and  Sele,  Ferdinando  Lord  Fairfax,  Lords 
Roberts,  Wharton,  Willoughby  of  Parhain,  to  be 


464  LIVES   OF   THE   EAELS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

created  Earls  ;  Denzil  Holies,  a  Viscount ;  Sir  Thomas 
Fairfax,  Sir  William  Waller,  Lieutenant  General  0. 
Cromwell,  Sir  Henry  Yane,  sen.,  Sir  Philip  Stapleton, 
and  Sir  Arthur  Haslerig,  to  be  created  Barons.  That 
the  case  of  the  four  Dukes  and  of  Lord  Manchester  be 
referred  to  a  Committee,  to  consider  of  some  means 
for  the  support  of  their  honours.  That  estates  in 
land  should  be  given  in  fee  simple  of  the  following 
value :  — 

To  Sir  Thos.  Fairfax  £5000  per  annum. 

To  Lt.  Gen.  Oliver  Cromwell  -            2500           „ 

To  Sir  Will.  Waller  2500           „ 

To  Sir  Ph.  Stapleton  2000 

To  Sir  A.  Haslerig  -  2000 

To  Sir  Wm.  Brereton       -  1500 

To  Maj.  Gen.  Philip  Skippon  -            1000 l         „ 

The  King  desired  to  treat ;  the  Houses  refused  to 
enter  into  negotiations,  but  resolved  to  proceed  by 
acts  of  Parliament,  of  which  seven  were  proposed. 

1.  For  settling  Presbyterian  government,  and  ex- 

tirpating Episcopacy. 

2.  For  prosecuting  the  war  against  the  Irish  rebels. 

3.  For  the  militia  to  remain  in  the  power  of  the 

Parliament. 

4.  For  the  payment  of  the  debts  of  the  kingdom. 

5.  For  bringing  delinquents  to  punishment. 

6.  That  no  honours  be  given,  but  to  such  as  have 

testified  their  affections  to  the  public. 

7.  Concerning  the  privileges  of  London.2 

1  Commons'  Journal,  iv.  354.  360.  2  Whitelocke,  190. 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL    OF   ESSEX,  465 

Messages  from  the  King,  and  answers  from  the 
Parliament,  on  the  question  how  the  arrangements 
for  peace  were  to  be  made,  passed  between  Oxford 
and  London  from  time  to  time,  until  May,  1646,  in 
the  beginning  of  which  month  Charles  gave  himself 
up  to  the  Earl  of  Leven,  at  Newark. 

There  remains  but  little  to  say  of  the  Earl  of 
Essex,  during  the  brief  remnant  of  his  life.  He  con- 
tinued, after  his  resignation,  to  be  a  member  of  the 
Committee  of  both  Kingdoms,  and  was  a  member  of 
the  Committee  for  managing  the  Admiralty  affairs, 
The  Journals  show  that  he  was  a  constant  and 
regular  attendant  in  Parliament  until  the  4th  Sep- 
tember, the  last  day  that  he  appears  to  have  been 
present.  If  we  may  judge  from  the  expressions  of 
Baillie  and  Whitelocke,  he  appears  to  have  united 
himself  to  the  Presbyterians,  and  was  the  head  of 
that  party  which  opposed  the  extreme  measures  and 
doctrines  of  the  Independents,  and  which,  at  his 
death,  seems  to  have  found  no  member  of  sufficient 
weight  to  succeed  him  as  their  leader. 

Ludlow  is  the  only  writer  who  assigns  any  cause 
for  his  last  illness :  it  is  stated  by  him,  that  Lord 
Essex  died  of  a  fever,  brought  on  by  over-exertion 
in  the  chase  of  a  stag,  in  Windsor  Forest.1  He  had 
the  satisfaction  of  being  attended  by  his  sister  and  his 
dearest  friends  during  his  last  hours.  Lady  Hert- 
ford had  been  permitted  to  come  to  London  from 
Oxford  in  May,  and  in  July,  Lord  Hertford  had  leave 

1  Ludlovv's  Mem.  i.  185. 
VOL.  II.  H    H 


466  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF    ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

to  reside  at  the  Earl  of  Essex's  house  at  Eltham,  or 
where  else  he  pleased ;  and  the  Earl  of  Holland's  hand 
was  so  fast  locked  in  the  dying  grasp  of  his  cousin, 
that  he  extricated  it  with  difficulty.  He  departed 
this  life  at  Essex  House,  on  the  14th  September,  1646  ; 
and  the  following  day  both  Houses  of  Parliament, 
after  voting  that  they  should  attend  his  funeral,  ad- 
journed out  of  respect  to  the  memory  of  the  deceased. 

I  believe  that  the  character  of  the  Earl  of  Essex 
will  have  been  elevated  in  the  mind  of  the  reader 
of  the  foregoing  pages,  above  any  former  impression 
he  may  have  entertained ;  I  shall  not,  therefore, 
run  the  risk  of  weakening  that  impression,  by  en- 
tering into  any  summary  of  his  character,  but  con- 
tent myself  with  giving  some  extracts  from  Lord 
Clarendon's  account,  who  cannot  be  suspected  of  any 
bias  in  his  favour,  and  who  points  out  his  failings  and 
weaknesses  with  great  distinctness. 

"  He  was  of  a  rough  proud  nature,  the  most 
"  popular  man  of  the  kingdom,  and  the  darling  of  the 
"  swordmen.  His  pride  and  ambition  were  not 
"  accompanied  with  any  ill  nature,  and  he  had  a 
"  faithfulness  and  constancy  in  his  nature,  which 
"  always  kept  him  religious  in  matters  of  trust ;  in 
"  a  word,  he  might  be  imposed  on  in  his  understand- 
"  ing,  but  could  not  be  corrupted  by  hopes  or  fears. 
"  He  was,  in  his  friendships,  just  and  constant,  and 
"  would  not  have  practised  foully  against  those  he 
"  took  to  be  enemies.  He  was  more  the  idol  of  the 
"  people,  than  the  idolater  of  them.  A  weak  judg- 
"  ment,  and  a  little  vanity,  will  hurry  a  man  into  as 


CHAP.  XVIII.     ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  467 

"  unwarrantable  and  as  violent  attempts,  as  the  most 
"  insatiable  ambition  will  do.  His  vanity  disposed 
"  him  to  be  his  Excellency,  and  his  weakness  to 
"  believe  he  should  be  General  in  the  Houses,  as  well 
"  as  in  the  field.  The  new  doctrines  and  distinctions 
"  of  allegiance,  and  of  the  King's  power,  were  too 
"  hard  for  him,  and  did  intoxicate  his  understanding, 
"  and  made  him  quit  his  own  to  follow  theirs,  who, 
"  he  thought,  wished  as  well  as,  and  judged  better 
"  than,  himself.  He  was  no  good  speaker ;  but 
"  having  sat  long  in  Parliament,  and  being  well 
"  acquainted  with  the  order  of  it,  spoke  better  there 
"  than  any  where  else  ;  and  was  always  heard  with 
"  attention  and  respect,  and  had  much  authority  in 
"  the  debates.  He  was  as  much  devoted  as  any  man 
"  to  the  Book  of  Common  Prayer,  and  obliged  all  his 
"  servants  to  be  constantly  present  with  him  at  it. 
"  None  were  more  disposed  than  the  Earl  of  Essex  to 
"  take  away  the  Bishops'  votes,  and  all  temporal 
"  privileges  and  power,  believing  that  it  would  do  the 
"  Church  no  harm,  if  the  Bishops  had  fewer  diversions 
"  from  their  spiritual  charges." 

On  the  1st  October,  the  House  of  Commons  voted 
that  5000/.  should  be  paid  to  the  executors  of  the 
late  Earl,  out  of  the  rents  assigned  to  him,  to  discharge 
his  debts  and  the  expenses  of  his  funeral ;  and  on  the 
20th  October  it  was  resolved,  that  all  the  members 
should  meet  at  Essex  House  at  10  o'clock  on  the 
22nd,  having  previously  divided  on  the  question, 
whether  the  Earl  of  Hertford,  or  any  other  person 
who  had  borne  arms  against  the  Parliament,  should 

HH    2 


468  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XVIII. 

be  permitted  to  attend  the  funeral.1  The  Lords 
ordered,  that  those  Peers  who  had  not  time  to  provide 
themselves  with  robes,  might  be  absent  if  they 
pleased.  They  also  issued  an  "  order  to  the  Stewards 
"  and  Constables  of  Westminster,  at  their  perils,  to 
"  pave  and  cleanse  the  streets  from  Temple  Bar  to  the 
"  west  end  of  the  Abbey  Church,  against  the  day  of  the 
"  funeral,  that  the  Lords,  Commons,  and  all  others  in 
"  that  procession,  might  pass  in  the  streets  without  in- 
"  convenience,  by  reason  of  the  foulness  of  the  ways." 
They  likewise  appointed  two  heralds  to  officiate  as 
Clarencieux  and  Norroy,  and  directed  the  Justices  to 
call  out  such  of  the  trained  bands  of  Westminster  as 
they  chose,  to  prevent  the  disorder  likely  to  occur  by 
the  concourse  of  people.2 

There  are  several  printed  accounts  of  the  ceremony 
of  the  funeral,  from  which  I  have  made  some  extracts. 
He,  or  rather  his  effigies,  lay  in  state  for  many  days 
in  the  great  room  in  Essex  House,  in  white  boots, 
scarlet  breeches,  a  buff  coat  (the  same  he  wore  at 
Edgehill),  in  his  Parliamentary  robes,  with  his  sword 
by  his  side,  his  General's  staff  in  his  hand,  his  coronet 
on  his  head. 

At  the  upper  end  of  the  Abbey,  where  the  commu- 
nion table  stood,  a  hearse  was  erected,  "  with  a  canopy 

1  Ayes  36.    Tellers,  Sir  Ph.  Stapleton,  Mr.  Whitelocke, 
Noes  48.        "       Sir  W.  Array n,  Mr.  Bond. 

The  House  of  Commons  likewise  ordered  that  4500/.,  arrears  of  annuity 
payable  to  the  Countess  of  Essex,  and  charged  on  the  Staffordshire  estates, 
should  be  sequestrated,  and  paid  to  the  executors,  who  were  to  give  500/. 
to  Major-  General  Mathews,  and  the  rest  among  the  servants  of  the  Earl 
as  a  reward  and  recompense. — Commons'  Journal,  iv.  679. 

2  Lords'  Journal,  viii.  533.     Commons'  Journal,  iv.  696.  699. 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  469 

"  on  pillars  about  twelve  feet  high,  gilt  with  gold,  and 
"  hung  with  velvet,  ornamented  with  the  escocheons  of 
"  arms  of  the  Earl."  The  Abbey  was  hung  with  black, 
and  the  pavement  and  seats  covered  with  black,  from 
the  belfry  to  the  upper  end. 

A  grave  was  dug  in  St.  John  Baptist's  Chapel, 
where  Bohun,  Abbot  of  Westminster,  had  been  buried 
(temp.  Rich.  II.),  whose  crosier  was  dug  up  in  making 
the  vault,  which  was  two  and  a  half  yards  long,  one 
and  a  half  yard  wide,  and  of  height  proportioned, 
was  arched  over  with  freestone,  and  lay  next  by  the 
side  of  Lord  Hunsdon's  vault.1  A  curtailed  account 
of  the  funeral  procession  and  ceremony  is  placed  in 
the  Appendix2,  and  will  be  interesting  to  the  curious 
in  such  matters,  as  affording  an  example  of  the 
ceremonial  observed  in  a  state  and  military  funeral 
of  the  utmost  magnificence  at  that  period. 

After  the  ceremony,  the  hearse  and  effigies,  with 
the  standard,  guidon,  banners,  great  banner,  bannerets 
and  hatchments,  with  eight  pieces  of  armour  placed 
about  the  hearse,  were  placed  at  the  upper  end  of  the 
Church,  where,  it  was  ordered,  they  should  stand  as 
they  were  set  up  in  the  chancel,  for  a  month  after  the 
funeral.  They  were  not  removed  immediately  on  the 
expiration  of  the  term ;  and  on  the  26th  November, 
some  evil-disposed  persons  concealed  themselves  in  the 
Abbey,  when  it  was  locked  up  at  night,  and  destroyed 
and  defaced  the  effigies,  cutting  and  hacking  all  the 

1  From  the  Perfect  Relation  of  the  memorable  Funerals  of  Robert,  Earl 
of  Essex  and  Ewe,  &c.  1646. 

2  (G.) 

H  H    3 


470  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.     CHAP.  XVIIL 

clothes,  excepting  the  robes,  which  were  thrown  on 
the  ground,  breaking  the  sword,  and  throwing  down 
the  hatchments.  The  same  persons  also  defaced  and 
injured  the  monument  of  William  Camden,  but  did 
no  further  mischief.  An  inquiry  took  place  without 
eliciting  anything,  and  the  violence  was  ascribed, 
according  to  the  opinions  of  people,  either  to  the  In- 
dependents, or  to  "  prelatical  persons  and  Jesuited 
"  Cavaliers.'' 

On  the  day  after  the  funeral,  Sir  Walter  Deve- 
reux,  Bart.,  of  Castle  Bromwich,  took  his  seat  in 
the  House  of  Peers  as  fifth  Viscount  Hereford,  the 
titles  of  Earl  of  Essex  and  Viscount  Bourchier  being 
extinct,  and  the  baronies  of  Ferrers  of  Chartley, 
Bourchier,  and  Lovaine,  falling  into  abeyance  be- 
tween the  Marchioness  of  Hertford  and  Sir  Robert 
Shirley,  son  of  Lady  Dorothy  Devereux. 

There  was  a  great  deal  of  litigation  about  the 
property  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  whose  will  was  proved 
and  administered  by  order  of  Parliament ;  disputed, 
and  after  the  Restoration  reversed.  I  have  not  been 
able  to  discover  the  decree  of  the  Court ;  but  what- 
ever may  have  been  the  law  of  the  case,  it  is  quite 
evident,  from  the  original  will  itself,  which  I  have 
examined,  and  from  other  evidence,  that  the  Earl 
never  intended  to  alienate  from  the  family  of  Deve- 
reux the  estates  in  Herefordshire,  which  had  been 
in  their  possession  from  the  reign  of  John,  if  not 
earlier. 

The  original  will  is  preserved  among  the  archives 


CHAP.  XVIII.      EGBERT,    THIRD    EARL    OF    ESSEX.  471 

of  the  Court  of  Delegates,  by  which  Court,  in  1663, 
sentence  was  given  in  favour  of  Lady  Hertford,  then 
Duchess  of  Somerset,  in  her  suit  against  the  Earl 
of  Northumberland1  and  others,  executors  of  her 
brother's  will. 

The  will,  after  reciting  certain  deeds  by  which  the 
estates  were  vested  in  trustees,  for  the  use  of  the 
Earl  of  Essex,  leaves  a  blank  for  the  disposition, 
which  is  filled  in  by  the  Earl's  own  handwriting,  in 
these  words  :  "I  bequeath  the  lands  of  Herefordshire 
"  to  my  dear  sister  the  Marquis  of  Hertford,  for  her 
"  natural  life ;  the  inheritance  to  Sir  Walter  Deve- 
"  reux,  and  his  heirs  male,  for  want  of  such,  to 
"  return  as  it  is  formerly  settled  by  deed.  For 
"  Essex  House,  and  the  tenements,  to  my  nephew, 
"  Sir  Charles  Shirley,  and  his  heirs  male,  and  for 
"  want  of  them,  to  my  nephew  Eobin,  and  if  both 
"  lines  fail,  to  my  sister  Hertford's  issue." 

It  appears  from  this  extract,  which  does  not  agree 
with  the  words  immediately  preceding,  that  Essex 
intended  Lady  Hertford  to  enjoy  for  her  life  the 
whole  of  his  property,  excepting  Essex  House,  and 
that  all  the  rest,  with  the  exception  of  the  Hereford- 
shire estates,  was  bequeathed  absolutely  to  her. 

We  find  by.  the  Journals2,  that  on  the  17th  Oc- 
tober, 1646,  complaint  was  made  of  the  conduct  of 

»  The  will  was  dated  the  4th  of  August,  1642,  and  Algernon,  Earl  of 
Northumberland,  Robert,  Earl  of  Warwick,  John  Hampden,  and  Oliver 
St.  John  were  appointed  executors. 

2  Commons'  Journal,  iv.  696. 

H  H    4 


472  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS  OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

certain  persons  at  Essex  House.  Mr.  Devereux  be- 
ing examined,  stated  that  he  went  to  Essex  House 
that  morning,  and  desired  Mr.  Isharn1  to  deliver  to 
him  an  indenture  or  conveyance  concerning  some 
lands  which  were  entailed  on  him  ;  that  Mr.  Isham 
told  him  it  was  no  longer  in  his  power,  for  that  my 
Lady  Marchioness  of  Hertford  had  sent  for  him  up 
into  her  chamber  about  midnight,  and  that  not  only 
the  writings,  but  likewise  all  the  monies,  amounting 
to  3 TOO/.,  and  the  goods  there,  were  seized  and  taken 
out  of  his  possession. 

The  House  ordered  that  all  the  papers,  money,  &c. 
should  be  delivered  to  Northumberland,  Warwick, 
and  St.  John ;  but  Mr.  Devereux  never  recovered  his 
deed  of  entail ! 

We  come  now  to  some  curious  details  about  the 
will,  for  which  I  am  indebted  to  the  depositions 
and  briefs  in  the  subsequent  suits,  which  are  pre- 
served in  the  old  library  at  Longleat.  The  will  was 
written  on  two  sheets  of  paper,  stitched  together  with 
black  thread,  the  marks  of  which  in  the  corners  of 
the  two  sheets  are,  at  this  day,  distinctly  visible. 
In  1644,  or  1645,  some  discontent  arose  in  Essex's 
mind  against  St.  John,  which  probably  was  caused 
by  the  part  the  latter  took  in  the  Self-denying 
Ordinance ;  he  also,  being  on  the  committee  at  Gold- 
smiths' Hall,  seems  to  have  put  some  difficulties  in 
the  way  of  Essex's  obtaining  payment  of  his  arrears, 
which  the  Earl  took  very  unkindly,  and  from  that 

1  Zacheus  Isham  was  solicitor  and  treasurer  of  the  household  to  the 
Earl. 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,    THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  473 

time,  till  his  death,  St.  John  never  visited  Essex,  nor 
did  he,  as  formerly,  consult  St.  John. 

One  day,  coming  home,  he  called  for  his  will  to  be 
brought  to  him,  saying  that  he  had  trusted  St.  John, 
but  would  do  so  no  longer,  and  now  revoked  the 
trust;  he  then  tore  asunder  the  two  sheets,  and 
gave  one  to  his  Secretary  to  be  copied,  and  put 
the  other  in  his  pocket.  It  was  the  custom  of  Lord 
Essex  to  call  for  one  Wren,  his  barber,  and  deliver 
to  him  such  papers  out  of  his  pocket  as  he  had  least 
occasion  for,  to  be  laid  by ;  and  there  were  at  Eltham, 
where  Essex  had  a  house,  and  where  he  often  went 
to  hunt,  some  trunks  full  of  such  papers,  among 
which  was  discovered  that  sheet  of  the  will  which  he 
had  put  in  his  pocket.  The  two  sheets  were  brought 
together  again,  and  after  the  case  had  been  heard  by 
Sir  Nathaniel  Brent,  was  referred  to  a  Committee  of 
the  House  of  Commons,  and,  on  their  report,  the 
executors  were  ordered  to  administer. 

After  the  restoration  of  Charles  II.,  the  Duchess  of 
Somerset  sent  a  petition  to  the  King,  stating  that  she 
had  lost  a  very  great  inheritance  from  her  brother,  and 
without  his  royal  grace  was  likely  to  be  defrauded  of 
his  personal  estate  also.  The  petition  goes  on  to 
state,  that  after  the  death  of  the  Earl  of  Essex, 
Oliver  St.  John  had  set  up  a  cancelled  will,  whereby 
he,  and  others  by  his  persuasion,  possessed  them- 
selves of  all  her  brother's  personal  estate,  valued  at 
30,00(W.  That,  for  fifteen  years,  she  had  opposed 
the  probate  of  the  said  will  in  the  Prerogative  Court, 
the  Court  of  Chancery,  and  the  King's  Bench,  in 


474  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII, 

which  last  she  got  a  verdict ;  and  since  His  Majesty's 
restoration  she  had  thrown  over  the  pretended  will 
in  the  Prerogative  Court,  and  had  been  sworn  ad- 
ministratrix. The  prayer  of  the  petition  was,  that 
St.  John  should  be  called  on  to  return  by  a  certain 
day,  or  in  default,  the  forfeiture  he  would  suffer 
might  repair  the  losses  she  had  sustained  by  him.1 

Long  before  the  final  decision  of  the  case,  a  division 
of  the  property,  at  least  in  name,  had  been  agreed 
upon,  which  was  ultimately  carried  out. 

The  Marchioness  of  Hertford  had,  for  her  moiety, 
Drayton  Basset  in  Warwickshire,  Pembridge,  Earl's 
Land,  Lyon's  Hall,  Murcuth,  Webley,  Byford,  Bo- 
denham,  Fanhope,  Koss  and  Ross  Foreign  in  Here- 
fordshire, Llanthomas  in  Brecknockshire,  estates  in 
Pembroke  and  Cardigan,  Essex  House,  and  a  moiety 
of  the  barony  of  Farney,  Monaghan. 

Sir  Robert  Shirley  had,  the  Chartley  estate,  New- 
castle under  Lyne,  the  tenements  adjoining  Essex 
House,  and  the  other  moiety  of  Farney,  with  a  rent- 
charge  out  of  the  lands  of  Hafodwyn,  Blaenarion, 
and  Penarth,  in  Cardiganshire. 

The  executors  of  the  Duchess  of  Somerset  sold 
Essex  House,  the  Pembrokeshire  estates,  and  Llan- 
thomas, to  pay  her  debts,  legacies,  and  funeral  ex- 
penses. The  other  part  of  her  property  was  be- 
queathed by  her  to  Thomas  Thynne,  of  Longleat, 
the  husband  of  her  grand-daughter,  Lady  Frances, 
daughter  of  Heneage  Finch,  second  Earl  of  Win- 

1  From  the  copy  of  the  petition  at  Longleat. 


CHAP.  XVIII.      ROBERT,   THIRD   EARL   OF   ESSEX.  475 

chelsea.  Thomas  Thynne  was  created  Viscount 
Wey mouth  in  1682,  and  was  succeeded  by  his 
nephew,  the  ancestor  of  the  Marquis  of  Bath,  the 
present  possessor  of  these  estates.  The  other  moiety 
has  become  divided  between  two  branches  of  the 
Shirley  family,  the  Earl  Ferrers,  and  Evelyn  John 
Shirley,  Esq.,  of  Eatington,  Warwickshire. 

I  trust  I  have  not  wearied  the  reader  with  this 
sketch  of  the  manner  in  which  the  possessions  of  the 
Earls  of  Essex  went  to  enrich  other  families.  It  is 
not  uninteresting  to  mark  the  singular  accidents  by 
which  wealth  is  occasionally  both  accumulated  and 
dissipated. 

My  task  is  done,  and  I  take  my  leave  of  the  reader, 
and  of  my  subject,  with  one  of  the  epitaphs  written 
for  the  great  monument  it  had  been  intended  to  erect 
to  the  memory  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  but  which  the 
events  of  a  revolutionary  war  soon  banished  from  the 
memory  of  men ;  no  line  marks  the  spot  beneath 
which  his  ashes  rest. 

Let  no  rude  foot  presume  to  tread, 
But  with  great  awe  upon  this  dead, 
Lest  that  his  genius  rise  from  hence 
And  terrify  his  insolence. 
But,  reader  know,  whoe'er  thou  be, 
Here  Essex  sleeps,  whose  ancestry 
Were  famous  worthies ;  all  their  worth 
Was  joined  in  him,  and  at  his  birth 
The  heavenly  motions  did  agree 
Their  best  infusements  all  should  be 


476  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX.      CHAP.  XVIII. 

Injected  in  him,  that  his  fame 
Might  be  his  heir,  and  keep  his  name 
Alive  on  earth,  and  equalize 
His1,  whose  resoundeth  to  the  skies.2 

1  Achilles. 

2  Vol.  669.  f.  10.     Public  Acts  and  Orders,  British  Museum. 


APPENDIX. 


(A.) 

THE  State  Paper  Office  contains  a  volume,  "131.  Ireland," 
of  the  accounts  of  the  Earl  of  Essex  for  the  half-year  from 
April  to  November,  1575,  audited  by  Thomas  Jenison,  the 
Queen's  auditor  of  accounts,  of  the  most  remarkable  interest 
and  curiosity.  It  contains,  besides  the  accounts  of  the  Irish 
expedition,  that  of  William  Barroll,  the  receiver  of  the  Earl's 
estates  in  England.  It  appears  from  these,  that  while  the 
income  of  the  Earl  of  Essex  was  about  49007.,  his  current 
expenditure  was  6500/.,  besides  all  warlike  stores,  provisions, 
buildings,  &c.,  not  included  in  these  accounts. 

Some  extracts  may  prove  interesting :  — 

£      s.    d. 

A  year's  rent  of  Bugbrook,  Northampton     -  64     1  4-£- 

Hallingbury,  Essex  72     6  8 

Tollesbury,  Essex  -             -  132  13  4 

Wakering,  Great  and  Little  133   19  10 
Newington,  Clifton,  Brayfield, 

Bucks    -  62  15  6 

Cotesbach,  Leicestershire    -  28     0  0 

Bodenham,  Hereford  50     0  0 

Keyston,  Huntingdon  47     2  10 

Chartley,  Stafford  -             -  120     0  0 

Bennington,  Hertford          -  19911  6 
Sale  of  forty  acres  of  wood  in  the  Park  of 

Tollesbury,  Essex  87   16  0 
From  the  Earl  of  Huntingdon,  in  full  pay- 
ment  of  the    purchase  of  the   manor    of 

Newbold,  Leicester          -  -  -     1000     0  0 


478  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX. 

£     s.  d. 
The  contra  account  is  very  long  and  curious : 

For  my  Lord  of  Hereford,  two  plain  shirts       -  1   10  0 
A  pair  of  green  velvet  garrigascons  with  gold 
lace,  and  a  pair  of  parnescie  stockings  to  the 

same                                                                     -  3   12  0 

A  tasta  hat  with  a  lace                                         -  Oil  0 

Two  pair  of  garters     -                                        -  0     6  0 
A  doublet  of  canvass,  cut,  laid  with  green  lace, 

lined  with  green  taffeta  sarsenet                      -  0  18  6 

Mr.  Walter  Devereux : 

A  coat  of  popingay  green,  laid  over  with  lace  -  1     1  0 

Necessaries  for  the  said  Lord  of  Hereford,  Mr. 
Walter  Devereux,  and  Gabriel  Montgomery : 

A  dozen  handkerchiefs                                          -  1     0  0 

A  trunk  to  put  all  their  said  apparel  in             -  0  12  0 

Nine  pair  of  Spanish  leather  shoes       -             -  0     9  0 

A  dozen  pair  of  socks                             -             -  0     4  0 

Bedding  and  furniture  for  chamber  against  the  Earl 
his  coming  to  the  Court  out  of  Ireland,  viz. : 

One  bristle  tick                                                    -  1   12  0 

Eleven  stone  of  down                                        -  4  15  0 

Bristles  tick  ready  made                      -             -  7160 
Four  score  stone  of  feathers  for  the  same  beds, 

at  4s.  the  stone      -                                        -  16     0  0 

Six  pounds  of  down  for  pillowbers     -  0     6  0 

One  covering  of  leaves,  1 6  ells                         -  228 

Three  coverings  of  wool  silks,  16  ells              -  350 

Two  large  Spanish  blankets  -  1   12  0 

Four  pair  of  white  blankets  -  3     2  0 

Two  fine  quilts  of  carded  wool                         -  220 

One  leather  chair      -  0  15  0 

Two  close  stools        ~             -             -             -  0  17  8 


APPENDIX.  479 

£    s.    d. 
A  bedstead  of  walnut-tree     -  -       1   14     0 

Two  pair  of  coarse  sheets       -  -       1     4     0 

Three  dozen  napkins  -       1116 

Apparel  for  the  Earl : 

Six  shirts  whereof  one  black  worked  -  -       9  12     4 

Three  handkerchiefs  -  -       5     9     4 

Three  pair  of  bands  and  ruffs  -       400 

Russet  satin,  12s.  6d.  per  yard 

Black  velvet,  1 5s.  „ 

Jeane  damask,  12s.  6d.     „ 

Uncut  velvet,  II.  Is.         „ 

Black  lace  double  wreathed,  2s.  per  oz. 

Russet  and  black  tuft  lace,  3s.        „ 

Carnation  stitching  silk,  2s.  „ 

Three  pair  silk  garters  with  parchment  lace    -       210 

Three  dozen  gloves   -  -  1   15     4 

A  velvet  hat  with  a  band       -  1     5     0 

Furring  a  damask  gown  with  black  coney,  and 

10  dozen  and  seven  coney  skins  to  do.          -       409 
A  pair  of  pantufles  of  Spanish  leather  -       030 

A  chain  weighing  5|  oz.  at  21.  15s.  the  oz.      -     19     4     3 
Two  pair  of  gilt  spurs  -       0160 

A  rapier,  girdle,  and  dagger  -  1   14     0 

A  gelding  bought  at  Penkridge  fair   -  -     1 1     0     0 

Two  saddles  of  Spanish  leather,  whereof  one 
guarded  and  seated  with  velvet,  with  gilded 
buckles,  studs,  and  other  furniture  -  9  10  0 

Allowance  to  the  Countess  of  Essex,  per  an- 
num, for  her  private  expenses  -  200  0  0 

From  the  Irish  accounts  of  wages,  victuals,  &c. : 

s.    d. 

Wages.  —  Nich.  Malbie,  Serjeant  Major  5     0  per  diem. 

Edw.  Goodrich,  Scout  Master  3     0         „ 


480  LIVES    OF   THE    EAKLS    OF    ESSEX. 

Wages.  —  Thos.  Oldfield,  Curate  Knock-  s.     d.  per  diem. 

fergus  -  -10,, 

Fras.  Jawdrell,  Apothecary  10  „ 
Wm.  Norreys,  Captain  of  100 

horse                                         -  4     6         „ 

George  Devereux,  do.  50  horse  30         „ 

John  Norreys,  Captain  200  foot  60         „ 

George  Bourchier,  do.  100  foot  30         „ 

Horse  soldiers  -  0  llf  „ 
Foot  do.  -  -06,, 
Francis  Drake,  Captain  of  the 

Falcon                                     -  42     0  per  mens. 

Pilot   -                                        -  15     0 

Boatswain                                     -  11     8         „ 

Mariner  6     8         „ 

£  s.     d. 

Wheat,  102  quarters,  cost  125  11     2 

Barley  or  beare,  80  quarters  -       58  11     8 

Beeves,  398  324  5  10 

Muttons,  1046  -     157  11     2 

Porkes,  46    -  -       19  8     0 

Lambs,  172|  8  14     9 

Kids,  38  1  16     4| 

Sack,  3  butts,  59  gallons        -  -       43  12     2 

Gascony  wine,  6  tuns,  1  gall.  -       79  10     0 

Aquavits,  12  gall.     -  400 

Beer,  32  tons,  3  hhds.  -       78  9  10 

Cheate  bread,  639  doz.  -       34  12     2 

Manchets,  130  doz.    -  920 

Biscuit,  1500  Ibs.      -  10  17     9 

There  are  several  items  of  which  the  quantities  are  not 
given,  but  the  totals,  they  being  for  the  same  period  of  time, 
afford  curious  points  of  comparison  of  prices ;  as  — 


APPENDIX.  481 

£  s.  d. 

Butter  for  the  same  period,  cost  -       50  10  6 

Groceries  and  confectionary  -                           -150910 

Sauces,  as  vinegar,  salad  oil  -                                    14  18  9| 

Fruits  and  herbs  -       15  12  1 J 

Poultry  -       75  7  8} 

Fresh  fish     -  19  9  2£ 

Suet  and  neats'  tongues  7  12  2 

Eggs  9  19  1 

Milk  1  17  3 

Soap  4  1  6 

Salt  -       46  17  9 

Coals  -       15  10  10 

Wood  -       39  0  0 

There  is  another  account  by  the  Auditor,  in  July,  1573, 
declaring  the  provisions  for  warlike  purposes,  ships,  victuals, 
necessaries  for  fortification  and  ordnance,  which  at  that  time 
had  cost  15,154/.  17s.  9d.,  to  be  equally  divided  between  the 
Queen  and  the  Earl. 

(B.) 

(Lansd.  MSS.  23.  67.) 

Expenses  of  the  Funeral  of  Walter  Devereux,  Earl  of  Essex. 

£     s.    d. 
Forty  men's  charge  for  46  days,  to  and  for  the 

21  Nov.,  at  12  d.  per  man,  per  day  -  92     0     0 

Fire,  candle,  and  drink,  for  them1  that  ward  by 

day,  and  watch  by  night      -  800 

1  Since  this  work  went  to  press,  I  have  received  an  extract  from  an 
ancient  Welsh  MS.  styled  "  Llyfr  Silin  "  (the  Book  of  Silin),  for  which 
I  am  indebted  to  W.  W.  L.  Wynne,  Esq.,  of  Sion,  near  Oswestry,  by 
which  it  appears  that  the  body  of  the  Earl  of  Essex  was  conveyed 
through  Harlech.  The  difficulty  of  such  an  undertaking  as  a  funeral 
progress  from  Holyhead  over  the  Carnarvonshire  and  Merionethshire 
Mountains  at  that  period,  will  account  for  the  long  interval  between  the 
death  and  burial  of  Lord  Essex,  and  the  first  item  in  this  account  pro- 
bably gives  us  the  time  occupied  in  the  journey. 
VOL.  II.  I  I 


482 


LIVES    OF   THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX. 


For  the  charge  of  three  days  for  200  persons,  to 

be  found  honorably  in  household 
To  be  given  in  alms     - 
To  the  church  and  singing  men 
Forty  poor  men's  gowns  - 

Hire  of  bays  for  church,  hearse,  and  street 
Timber  frame  of  the  hearse 
The  heralds  and  painters 
Riding  charge  of  officers  going  and  coming 
Carriage  down  of  all  stuff 
"Wages  of  thirty  gentlemen  for  half  a  year,  at 

61.  12s.  4d.  the  year 
Twenty  yeomen   for  half  a   year,  at  47.  the 

year 
Charge  of  finding  the  office 

Black. 

Chief  mourner's  black 

The   Earl    and   his   company's 
black 

My  lady's  black 

Mr.  Vernon  and  Mr.  Devereux 

Other  principal  mourners'  and  of- 
ficers' black,  in  number  14 

Twenty  gentlemen  mourners,  in 
gowns  of  4  yards  each,  at  8s.  4d. 
per  yard 

The  Bishop,  8  yards 

One  hundred  yeoman's  coats,  at 

Twenty-six  gentlemen  in  cloaks 

of  3  yards  each,  at  13s.  4c?.     - 

Black  for  the  hearse,  40  yards 

at  7s.  - 


100 
40 
10 
40 
10 
4 

200 
40 
20 


40 
13 


d. 

0 
0 
0 
0 
0 
0 
0 
0 
0 


-     100     0     0 


£ 

s. 

d.~ 

24 

0 

0 

40 

0 

0 

50 

0 

0 

12 

0 

0 

84 

0 

0 

>     405     0     0 

53 

6 

8 

8 

0 

0 

66 

8 

4 

52 

0 

0 

15 

0 

0_ 

£1122     6     8 


APPENDIX. 


483 


This  charge,  considering  the  value  of  money,  appears  enor- 
mous, but  probably  was  not  so  for  the  funeral  of  an  Earl.  The 
charges  of  the  Earl  of  Leicester's  funeral  amounted  to  40007. 

(C.) 

(Lansd.  MSS.  23.  66.) 
Abstract  of  the  Will  of  Walter  Devereux,  Earl  of  Essex. 

An  imperfect  will  is  in  the  Prerogative  Court  of  the 
Diocese  of  Dublin;  in  which,  dated  June  14.  1576,  he 
desired  to  be  buried  at  the  nearest  church. 

Appoints  thirty  feoffees,  by  whom  all  injuries  and  damage 
to  be  recompensed ;  to  pay  debts  and  legacies,  the  following 
lands  are  devised  to  them,  till  the  heir  be  22  years  of  age. 


Com.  Hereford. 


Com.  Pembroke. 


Com.  Brecknock. 
Com.  Stafford. 

Com.  Leicester. 


Com.  Middlesex. 
Com.  Warwick  and 

Leicester. 
Com.  Huntingdon. 
Com.  Suffolk." 


The  manors  of  Webley,  Lionhales, 
Moorcourt,  and  Byford  ;  one  garden 
in  Hereford,  and  one  in  the  parishes 
of  Dilwyn  and  Pewen,  called  Hide- 
fields. 

The  manors  Lantefey,  Talbenny,  Lan- 
goney,  Hodgeston,  and  Mancloug- 
hor,  and  lands  in  Gildeford. 

The  manor  of  Pipton. 

The  manors  of  Chartley,  Hukston, 
Frodeshall,  and  Gaiton. 

The  manors  of  Cotesbach,  Shawell, 
Twycross,  and  two  granges,  called 
Newhouse  and  Pinnewall. 

Tenements  in  Long  Lane,  London. 

The  manor  and  monastery  of  Merevale. 

The  manor  of  Keyston. 
The   manors   of   Bilston,    Drinkeston, 
Shelland,  and  Louvaines. 
ii  2 


484 


LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX. 


Remainder  to  Robert,  Viscount  Hereford,  and  the  heirs 
male  of  his  body  ;  for  default  of  such  heirs  male,  to  Walter 
Devereux,  second  son,  and  his  heirs  male  ;  for  default  of  such 
heirs,  to  the  heirs  male  of  the  body  of  the  said  Earl ;  and  for 
default  of  such  heirs  male,  to  the  right  heirs  of  the  said  Earl 
for  ever. 

For  jointure  and  dower  to  the  Countess  : 
Com.  Hertford.  The  manor  and  park  of  Bennington, 

and  two  tenements  in  Hitchin. 

The  manor  of  Dimmock. 

The  manor  and  seignory  of  Monkton. 

The  manor  of  Llanthomas. 

The  manors  of  Oldhall,  Bourchier's 
Hall,  in  Tollesbury,  and  the  granges 
called  Baker's,  Goldanger,  and 
Swaines  in  Wyvenho. 

To  the  Countess  for  life,  and  after  her  decease  to  the 
feoffees,  till  the  heir  be  22  :  remainder  as  before. 

To  descend  to  the  Lord  Hereford  by  cause  of  inheritance 
without  remainder  or  entail  : 


Com.  Gloucester. 
Com.  Pembroke. 
Com.  Brecknock. 
Com.  Essex. 


Com.  Bucks. 


Com.  Essex. 


Com.  Northampton. 
Com.  Brecknock. 
Middlesex. 


The  manors  of  Newington,  Clifton,  and 

Brayfield. 
The  manors  of  Wakering,  Little  Wa- 

kering,  Hallingbury  Bourchier,   the 

park  of  Hallingbury,  a  farm  called 

Motes. 

The  manor  of  Bugbrook. 
The  manor  of  Penkelley. 
Lands  at  Charing  Cross,  purchased  of 

George  Carlton. 


The  feoffees  to  have  the  Earl's  leases  of  the  parsonages  of 
Lantefey  and   Worthem   in   Pembrokeshire,  and  Colwich, 


APPENDIX.  485 

Stafford,  and  the  pastures  of  Utceter  Moors,  and  Mowhed, 
Stafford,  and  Strata  Florida,  Cardigan,  till  the  heir  be  22, 

To  Walter  Devereux,  second  son,  were  left  the  manors 
of  Bodenham  and  Woodhouse,  co.  Hereford,  for  life,  with  re- 
mainder to  the  heir  apparent  as  before. 

Legacies. 

To  the  Countess,  all  plate,  jewels,  and  household  stuff 
which  is  in  her  possession. 

To  the  ladies  Dorothy  and  Penelope  Devereux  for  their 
advancement  in  marriage,  20007.  each,  to  be  paid  on  their 
reaching  21  years,  or  within  a  year  after  marriage;  in  the 
mean  time,  1007.  a  year  to  each,  for  their  maintenance.  If 
one  of  them  die  before  payment  of  the  legacy,  Walter  De- 
verux  to  have  it ;  if  both  die,  the  second  to  determine.  If 
Walter  Devereux  die  before  he  is  22,  that  legacy  also  to  de- 
termine. Walter  Devereux  to  have  507.  a  year  for  his  edu- 
cation till  he  is  22. 

His  brother  George  Devereux,  to  enjoy  Lantefey,  till  the 
conditions  agreed  between  them  be  executed ;  afterwards,  he 
and  his  wife  to  have  a  pension  of  1007.  a  year.  A  legacy  to 
his  brother  of  3007. 

To  his  sister  Vernon,  1007.,  and  a  basin  and  ewer. 

To  Edward  Waterhouse,  1007.  for  a  monument,  2007.  for 
other  purposes,  a  scarlet  bed  with  the  furniture,  and  the 
Earl's  picture. 

To  Gabriel  Montgomery,  400  crowns. 

To  Mrs.  Clifford's  daughters,  4007. 

To  his  servants,  a  year's  wages,  3007.,  and  above  the  year's 
wages,  6207. 

To  Captain  Malbie,  the  leases  of  Lecale. 

To  Kobert  Harrison  and  his  wife,  and  to  the  longer  liver 
of  them,  57.  a  year. 

To  Thos.  Asheton  for  his  life,  407.  a  year. 

ii  3 


486 


LIVES    OF   THE   EARLS    OF   ESSEX. 


If  the  Countess  refuse  the  lands  assigned  her,  and  claim 
the  benefit  of  the  dower,  to  forfeit  the  legacy,  the  same  to 
accrue  to  the  heir  apparent.  For  administration  of  all  goods 
not  devised,  appoints  his  two  sons  executors. 


The  Names  of  the 

Will.,  Lord  Burghley. 

Thos.,  Earl  of  Sussex. 

Henry,  Earl  of  Northumber- 
land. 

Edw.,  Earl  of  Rutland. 

Henry,  Earl  of  Huntingdon. 

Anthy.,  Viet.  Montague. 

Edwin,  Bishop  of  London. 

Robt.,  Bishop  of  Winchester. 

Arthur,  Lord  Grey. 

Chas.,  Lord  Howard  of  Ef- 
fingham. 

Sir  Francis  Knollys. 

Sir  Jas.  Croft. 

Fras.  Walsingham. 

Sir  Walter  Mildmay. 


Feoffees. 

Sir  William  Devereux. 
Sir  Andrew  Corbet. 
Sir  John  Savage. 
Sir  Will.  Drury. 
Gilbert  Gerrard. 
Thos.  Bromley. 
George  Bromley. 
Robt.  Corbet. 
George  Fetipais. 
Edw.  Waterhouse. 
Richard  Broughton. 
Thos.  Asheton. 
Thos.  Newport. 
John  Steadman. 
Walter  Barroll. 
Thos.  Rawlins. 


In  a  schedule  he  appointed  his  lands  in  Ireland  to  be  held 
the  same  way :  the  necessary  buildings  and  fortifications  to 
be  made  under  the  advice  of  the  Lord  Deputy ;  bequeathed 
1000/.,  or  as  much  more  or  less,  as  Lord  Burghley  and  the 
Earl  of  Sussex  shall  think  good,  to  fortify  some  principal 
place. 

Totals  of  Debts. 

To  Her  Majesty      -  -      £6000 

To  his  creditors        -  7000 

Legacies  under  the  will  6420 

£19,420 


APPENDIX. 


487 


(D.) 

(Lansd.  MSS.  25.  f.  45.) 

The  Charge  of  the  Right  Honorable  Robert  Earl  of  Essex, 

from  the  22nd  Sept.  1577,  to  the  Annunciation  of  our  Lady, 

1578,  disbursed  by  Thos.  Newport  and  others. 


Household  charge  at 
Chartley. 


Expense  from  Chart- 
ley  to  the  Court. 


Wages  due  at  Christ- 
mas 


Before     the      Earl's 
coming  to  London. 


Sithence   the    Earl's 
coming 


£     s.     d. 
In     weekly    charge     of 

household  for  the  Earl 
and  his  servants,  from 
the  22nd  Sept.  till  the 
12th  Jan.,   15  weeks, 
about  47.  the  week      -     60     0     0 
Charge  of  the  Earl  in  his 
journey  from  Chartley 
to  London,  and  from 
thence   to   the  Court, 
and  his  servants  during 
their  attendance  as  ap- 
peareth  by  the  accounts 
of  Thomas  Newport  -     29  17     3 
Robert   Wright,  school- 
master for  one  quarter      500 
Piliard   the    Frenchman 

for  the  like  -       2  10     0 

Edward    Wright,    tutor 

for  the  like  -       0  13     4 

Apparel  bought  by  Mr. 
Barroll  since  the  death 
of  the  late  Earl,  and 
other  necessaries  for 
the  now  Earl  -  -  15  13  4 
Of  Thomas  Tennant,  at 
the  Falcon,  Ludgate 
Hill,  a  felt  hat  lined 
with  velvet  0  11  0 

ii  4 


488 


LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX. 


Extraordinary  charge. 


d. 

6 
0 

0 
0 


Renewing  a  velvet  cap  0  4 
For  new  lining  his  hat  0  1 
Of  Mrs.  Coxton  in  Essex 

side,  four  shirts  at  10s.       20 
Six  handkerchiefs  at  20d.       0  10 
Of  Peter  Hoxton,  mil- 
liner of  Fleet  Bridge, 

two  pairs  of  socks  -  010 
A  pair  of  hose  of  race  -  194 
Given  to  Mrs.  West  for 

the  Earl's  lodging,  and 

some  charge  defrayed 

at  Somerset  House  -  200 
Spent  by  the  Earl  in 

little    rewards,    play, 

&c.,    at   his  being   at 

Hampton  Court  -  300 
Given  to  the  Earl  si- 

thence,  and  to  Wright, 

tutor,  to  defray  sundry 

trifling    charges,    and 

play  ing  money  sithence 

his  coming  to  London       300 
Disbursed  to  Wright,  tu- 
tor, towards  his  charge 

in  his  sickness,  by  the 

Earl's  commandment  -       200 
For  the  accidents  of  ar- 
mory -       040 
For  the  seal  of  arms       -       250 
Washing   for    the    Earl 

during   his    abode    in 

London     -         -         -       1   15     0 


APPENDIX.  489 

(Lansd.  MSS.  25.  f.  46.) 

The  Parcels  which  my  Lord  of  Essex  bought  at  his  Entrance 
in  the  Chamber  at  Cambridge. 

£  s.     d. 

Imprimis,  twenty  yards  of  new  green  broad  say es  2  16     0 
Item,  the  frame  of  the  south  window  in  the  first 

chamber                                                                 -  0  6     4 
For  more  glass  in  the  same                                      -040 

For  forty  foot  of  quarters  under  the  hangings      -  0  2     0 
Paid  to  Mr.  Bird  at   my   entrance   for  parcels 

which  appertain  his  proper  bill  and  acquittance  100 

Two  casements  with  hingells  in  the  south  window  026 

New  hangings  in  the  study  of  painted  cloth          -  0  16     0 

For  painting  both  chamber  and  study  overhead   -  0  5     0 

Shelves  in  the  study                                   -             -  0  1     0 
A  conveyance  into  the  bed-chamber  out  of  the 

study                                                                      -  0  2     6 
A  place  making  for  the  trindle  bed  to  draw  through 

the  wall                                                                  -  0  1     4 
For  boarding  a  place  for  fuel,  and  making  a  light 

into  it  -060 

A  table  in  the  study                                               -  0  3     4 

Furniture  in  the  little  study                                   -  0  1     6 

Little  irons  to  hold  open  the  casements  with         -  0  0     8 

My  part  of  the  door  between  Mr.  Forcet  and  me  0  3     6 

A  rest  at  the  chimney    -                           -             -  0  0     4 

A  footstool  at  the  window            -             -             -  0  0     4 

Two  shelves  more  in  the  frame  of  the  study         -  0  1     0 
Item,    a   lock   and   three   keys   to   the   outward 

chamber                                                                 -  0  3     4 

A  table  in  the  bed-chamber                                     -  0  2     6 

Summa  totalis                                                    -  ^  0  10 
Signed,  GERVASIUS  BABINGTON. 


490  LIVES    OF   THE   EAKLS    OF   ESSEX. 

£     s.    d. 
For  painted  cloths  in  the  chamber,  and  painting 

the  bed-chamber  -  1   18     4 

For  a  settle  in  the  chamber  0     8     0 
For  a  great  green  cloth  curtain  in  the  chamber 

window  -  -  0     6     0 

For  two  tables  and  two  forms  in  the  chamber       -  1     0     0 

For  curtain-rods  in  all  the  windows  *•  0     2     0 

For  a  piece  of  new  painted  cloth  in  the  chamber  -  0     3     0 

For  iron  holding  open  the  casements  -  0     0     6 

For  painting  the  study   -  -  0     0     6 

For  a  great  desk  of  shelves  for  books  in  the  study  070 
For  a  little  window  and  casements,  a  shelf  with 

two  ledges  and  hingells  in  the  study     -  -  0     7     0 

For  a  lock  on  the  study  door       -  -  0     1     8 

For  a  green  cloth  in  the  study  window    -  -  0     2     0 

For  a  shelf  in  the  study  006 
For  making  the  door  betwixt  Mr.  Babington  and 

me,  my  part    -  -  0     3     6 

For  removing  the  falling  door      -  -  0     2     0 

For  a  little  window  in  the  upper  chamber  -  0     1.0 

For  mending  the  boards  in  the  outward  chamber  008 

For  another  key  to  the  outward  chamber  -  0     0     8 

£4  19     4 
EDWARD  FORGET. 

Defrayed  for  the  Right  Honorable  the  Earl  of  Essex,  from  the 
Feast  of  St.  John  the  Baptist,  A°.  Dom\  1577. 

£    s.    d. 

Five  pair  of  shoes  -     0     5     0 

One  pair  of  winter  boots  -     0     6     0 

For  my  Lord  at  the  salting  according  to  custom     070 
For  arrows  for  my  Lord  -     0     2     6 

For  three  frames  of  wainscot  for  maps     -  -     0     4     6 


APPENDIX.  491 

£  s.  d. 

For  rushes  and  dressing  of  the  chamber  -             -  0  4  0 
For  horsehire  for  those  that  attended  on  my  Lord 

at  several  times                          -             -             -  0  1 9  0 

His  Lordship's  commons  for  the  quarter  -             -  2  14  0 

His  Lordship's  sizing       do.         -                           -  1  15  0 

His  Lordship's  breakfast  do.                                    -  1  3  0 

Meat  on  feasting  nights  and  times  extraordinary  150 

To  the  laundress  for  his  washing                            -  0  6  8 

The  same  for  Mr.  Montgomery  -                           -  0  3  4 

For  my  Lord  to  the  chief  reader                            -  0  2  0 

For  the  Book  of  Johan.  Bodm.  de  politica            -  0  5  0 

For  Ramus'  logic  with  a  commentary      -             -  0  1  8 

For  Ramus  on  Tully's  orations   -                           -  0  4  0 

For  Sturmius  de  elocutione                                     -  0  4  0 

For  Questiones  Bezae  theologicae                             -  0  1  8 

For  Grimalius  de  optimo  senatore                           -  0  2  4 

For  Isocrates  in  Greek   -                           -             -  0  4  0 

For  the  Chronicles  of  Holinshed                            -  1  6  0 

For  a  standing  desk  for  my  Lord  his  study           -  0  6  0 

For  amending  the  glass  windows  and  casements  -  0  3  0 

To  the  barber  for  his  Lordship's  trimming            -  0  2  0 

For  a  broad  riding  hat    -                                          -  0  8  0 
For  the  carriage  of  his  Lordship's  trunk,  with  his 

apparel  from  London  to  Cambridge  -  -  0  2  4 
For  two  dozen  of  trenchers  -  -  0  0  10 
For  a  load  of  wood  and  the  cutting  of  the  same  -  0  510 
For  a  load  of  coals  -  0  18  0 
For  ink  and  quills  -  0  0  6 
For  the  carriage  of  my  Lord,  his  stuff  from  Cam- 
bridge to  Keyston  -  -  -  0  2  4 
For  the  board  of  his  Lordship's  two  servants  in 

the  town  for  half  a  year                                      -  9  0  0 


492  LIVES   OF   THE   EARLS   OF   ESSEX. 

(Lansd.  MSS.  25.  f.  52.) 

The  Charge  of  the  Earl  of  Essex  for  One  whole  Year,  from  the 
\\th  January,  1577,  to  the  16th  January,  1578,  as  follows. 

£    s.    d. 
His  diet  and  his  company  before  his  going  to 

Cambridge  for  seventeen  weeks,  ending  17th 

May,  1577,  at  47.  the  week-  -  68  0  0 

Their  diet  at  Mr.  Clifford's  for  seventeen  weeks, 

ending  23rd  January,  1578,  at  33s.  4d.  28  6  8 

His  servants'  wages  before  going  to  Cambridge 

and  other  extraordinary  necessaries  -  -  1728 

Apparel  made  at  London  this  year  -  88  0  3 

Beady  money  delivered  to  Mr.  Wright  his  tutor 

to  be  by  him  employed  for  the  Earl  -  -  117  0  0 

Books  bought  for  the  Earl  -  7110 

Linen  bought  for  the  Earl's  chamber  -  900 

Beady  money  delivered  to  the  Earl's  own  hand 

in  the  said  time       -  -       17   13     4 

£352  14     7 


(Lansd.  MSS.  25.  f.  48.) 
Expense  for  my  Lord  of  Essex  his  Commons,  and  his  People, 


for  Eight  Days. 

£    s.    d. 

Friday  night.  —  Eggs  2d  -| 

Butter  6d  1 0     1     4 

Plaice  6d  J 

Saturday,  dinner. — Mutton       -  9d- 

Butter  8d 

Eggs  2d 

Mackerel     -  5d  '  ( 

Plaice  5d 

Chicken       -  6d  •- 


APPENDIX. 


493 


£   s.     d. 


Supper.  —  Eggs                       2d^ 
Mackerel    -           4d 

Mutton       -         12d 

-026 

Eabbits       -           8d 

Conger                   4d_ 

Sunday,  dinner.  —  Mutton       -         12di 
Beef                     12dJ 
Supper.—  -Veal                      18d-» 
Lamb                   16d  | 
Pigeons       -         12d 
Eabbits       -           8dJ 

020 
>0     4     6 

Monday, 

dinner.  —  Mutton        -     2s    Od  1 
Lamb           -12. 

032 

Supper.  —  Mutton       -14' 
Lamb          -14. 

•028 

Tuesday, 

dinner.—  Beef            -26' 
Mutton       -10. 

,036 

Supper.—  Mutton       -     0  10  - 
Lamb          -     0  11 
Eabbits       -     0  10  . 

027 

Wednesday, 

dinner.  —  Mutton       -12- 
Eggs            -     0     4 
Mackerel     -     0     4 

0     2     1 

Butter         -     0     3  • 

Supper.  —  Mutton        -     0     8 
Plaice          -     0     6 

JO     1     2 

Thursday,  dinner.  —  Mutton        -     2     0 
Beef            -     2     4 

JO     4     4 

Supper.  —  Veal            -     1     4 
Mutton       -     1     9 

JO     3     1 

Friday,  dinner.  —  Mutton 

020 

494                  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF  ESSEX. 

£  s.  d. 

For  the  whole  week. — Bread  -     0  6  10 

Drink  -     0  5  2 

Coals  -     0  5  8 

Wood  -     0  1  4 

Candles       -  -     0  0  11 


Total      -  -£2  15     9 


(Lansd.  MSS.  25.  f.  55.) 

A  Tailor's  Bill  at  Easter,  1577. 

£    s.    d. 
For  my  Lord  and  Mr.  Japarell's  doublets,  one  ell 

of  canvass  -  -010 

Ij  oz.  of  lace  for  the  same  doublets  -     0     3     6 

5  doz.  of  buttons  for  the  same,  5d.  per  doz.  -     0     2     1 

fib.  of  bombast  for  the  same  -     0     1     0 

2  oz.  of  lace  -     0     4     0 

Linen  linings  for  them  two  pair  of  hose  -     0     3     4 

2£  yards  of  cotton  for  the  said  hose  -     0     1     8 

2  oz.  of  silk  for  two  doublets,  and  2  cloths  and  hose     038 
For  pinching  and  cutting  of  my  Lord's  doublet 

and  hose  -  -     0     1      6 

For  making  my  Lord's  doublet    -  -     0     3     0 

For  making  of  his  L.'s  hose  -050 

For  making  of  his  L.'s  cloak       -  -     0     7     0 

For  making  of  Mr.  Japarell's  doublet,  hose,  and 

cloak  -  -  -     0     8     0 

£249 


APPENDIX.  495 

(E.) 

Instructions  and  Articles  set  down  by  us  Robert  Earl  of 
Essex,  and  Charles  Lord  Howard,  High  Admiral  of 
England,  Generals  of  Her  Majesty's  forces  in  this  action, 
both  at  sea  and  land,  to  be  observed  by  every  Captain 
and  Chief  Officer  of  the  navy,  as  they  will  answer  it 
at  their  perils ;  and  that  every  ship's  Company  may  not 
be  ignorant  thereof,  we  do  hereby  straightly  charge  and 
command  all  Captains  to  give  order  that  at  service  time 
they  be  openly  read  twice  every  week.  —  (S.  P.  O.) 

IN  primis,  that  especial  care  be  taken  to  serve  God  by  using 
of  common  prayer  every  day  twice  except  urgent  cause 
enforce  the  contrary;  and  that  no  man,  soldier,  or  other 
mariner  do  dispute  of  matters  of  religion  unless  it  be  to  be 
resolved  of  some  doubts,  and  in  such  case  that  he  confer  with 
the  minister  of  the  army,  for  it  is  not  fit  that  unlearned  men 
should  openly  argue  of  so  high  and  mystical  matters ;  and  if 
any  person  shall  forget  himself  and  his  duty  herein,  he  shall 
upon  knowledge  thereof  receive  open  punishment  to  his 
shame,  and  after  be  banished  the  army ;  and  if  any  shall 
hear  it,  and  not  reveal  it  to  the  General  or  to  his  Captain,  or 
to  some  other  especial  officer,  whereby  the  knowledge  thereof 
may  come  to  the  General,  he  shall  likewise  receive  punish- 
ment, and  be  banished  the  army. 

Item,  to  forbid  swearing,  brawling  and  dicing,  and  such  like 
disorders  as  may  breed  contentions  and  discords  in  the  ships ; 
wherein,  for  avoiding  God's  displeasure,  and  all  the  incon- 
veniences] that  come  thereof,  picking  and  stealing  shall  be 
severely  punished,  and  if  the  fault  be  great,  the  General  shall 
be  acquainted  therewith,  that  martial  law  may  be  inflicted 
upon  the  offenders.  Great  care  to  be  taken  to  preserve 
victuals,  and  to  observe  such  orders  therein  as  shall  be  given 
by  particular  directions  from  the  General,  and  that  every 


496  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX. 

captain  of  each  ship  receive  an  account  once  a  week  how  his 
victuals  are  spent,  and  what  remains,  that  their  provisions 
may  be  lengthened  by  adding  more  men  to  a  mess  in  time. 

All  persons  whatsoever,  within  any  ship,  shall  come  to  the 
ordinary  services  of  the  ship  without  contradiction. 

Special  charge  to  be  given  for  avoiding  the  danger  of  fire, 
and  that  no  candle  be  carried  in  any  ship  without  a  lanthorn, 
which,  if  any  person  shall  disobey,  he  shall  be  severely 
punished  ;  and  if  any  chance  of  fire,  or  other  dangers,  which 
God  forbid,  should  happen  to  any  ship,  the  others  near  unto 
her,  shall  by  their  boats  and  all  other  their  best  means,  seek 
to  help  and  relieve  them. 

The  powder  shall  be  carefully  preserved  from  spoil  and 
waste,  without  which  there  cannot  be  undertaken  any  great 
service. 

Order  and  especial  charge  to  be  given  that  the  topmasts  be 
favoured,  and  the  heads  of  the  masts,  and  that  care  be  had 
not  to  bear  too  high  when  the  ship  goeth  by  the  wind,  and 
especially  in  a  head  sea,  for  the  spoil  of  the  masts  may  greatly 
hinder  and  endanger  the  enterprizes,  which  otherwise,  with 
God's  help,  shall  be  performed  with  safety. 

All  such  as  are  in  the  ships  under  government,  or  those 
that  have  charge  of  a  squadron,  shall,  as  near  as  in  them 
lieth,  keep  together,  and  not  for  chase  of  other  ships, 
or  any  other  cause,  go  out  of  the  squadron,  but  by  the 
commandment  of  the  Admiral  of  that  squadron,  unless  the 
General  shall  send  for  them,  and  by  message  appointeth 
them  to  any  service,  or  that  by  weather  they  shall  be 
separated,  and  then  as  they  may  they  shall  endeavour  to  repair 
to  the  place  appointed  by  such  instructions  as  shall  be  set 
down.  And  if  there  be  any  sail  perceived  of  any  of  the 
ships  of  any  squadron,  it  shall  be  lawful  for  the  next  ship 
having  the  wind  to  give  chase,  the  ship  descried  being  to  the 
windward,  and  the  like  of  any  that  shall  be  nearest  to  bear 
up  if  the  sail  be  descried  to  the  leeward ;  but  because  upon 


APPENDIX.  497 

every  chase  all  will  be  apt  to  follow,  and  so  be  led  away  upon 
every  occasion  from  the  fleet,  it  shall  not  be  lawful  for  any 
second  ship  to  follow  any  chase,  one  having  undertaken  the 
,same,  unless  the  Admiral  of  the  squadron  hang  out  two  flags, 
one  over  another ;  if  it  be  necessary  that  three  do  follow, 
then  shall  the  General  or  Admiral  of  the  squadron  hang  out 
three  flags  one  over  the  other,  which  shall  be  warrant  for 
three  of  the  next  or  fittest  to  follow,  as  aforesaid :  but  if  the 
Admiral  bear  up  and  come  upon  the  wind  himself,  then  may 
all  the  squadrons  give  chase  and  follow,  which  if  it  seem  con- 
venient to  the  Generals  of  the  army  to  hang  out  the  flag  of 
Council,  the  same  shall  be  a  warning  that  the  chase  is  mis- 
liked,  and  that  then  all  give  over  and  keep  their  course. 

Every  ship  shall,  towards  the  evening,  seek  to  come  as 
near  as  conveniently  she  may  to  speak  to  the  Admiral  of  the 
squadron,  to  know  his  pleasure,  and  what  course  he  will  keep ; 
and  that  the  Admiral  of  the  squadron  do  bear  up  or  stand 
upon  a  wind  to  speak  with  the  General,  if  conveniently  he 
may,  the  rest  of  the  squadrons  may,  notwithstanding,  keep 
their  course  and  distance ;  and  if  the  Admiral  of  the  squadron 
cannot  recover  the  head  of  this  fleet  before  night,  the  rest 
shall  then  follow  the  light  of  the  Vice-Admiral  of  the  said 
squadron. 

That  every  squadron  keep  a  good  breadth  one  from  another, 
and  that  the  squadrons  do  in  themselves  keep  a  reasonable 
breadth  one  from  another,  that  they  fall  not  foul  one  of 
another,  whereby  danger  may  grow ;  and  that  the  great 
ships  have  especial  regard  not  to  calm  the  smaller  ships ;  and 
if  any  of  those  smaller  ships  shall  negligently  bring  themselves 
in  danger  of  the  greater  ships,  the  Captain  and  Master  espe- 
cially shall  be  severely  punished ;  and  further,  that  either  the 
Admiral  or  the  Rear- Admiral  of  the  squadron  be  always  in 
the  rearward  of  his  fleet. 

When  there  is  a  flag  of  council  of  the  red  cross  out  in  the 
VOL.  II.  K  K 


498  LIVES    OF    THE   EARLS    OF    ESSEX. 

General's  ship,  half  mast  high  against  the  main  mizen,  then 
the  Captains  and  Masters  of  every  ship  shall  repair  on  board 
that  ship  where  the  flag  is  so  hanged  out ;  and  when  the  flag 
of  arms  shall  be  displayed,  then  shall  the  selected  company 
only  come  on  board. 

If  a  ship  happen  to  spring  a  mast,  to  fall  into  a  leak,  or 
such  mischance,  which  God  forbid,  a  piece  shall  be  shot  off,— 
if  it  be  in  the  night,  two  pieces, —  and  bear  two  great  lights, 
one  a  man's  height  and  a  half  above  another. 

Every  Captain  and  Master  of  the  fleet  shall  have  especial 
regard  that  no  contention  be  found  betwixt  the  mariners  and 
soldiers ;  and  in  time  of  sickness,  if  any  do  happen  among 
them,  such  good  things  as  are  to  be  had,  and  needful  for 
them,  to  be  distributed  unto  them  in  such  convenient  sort 
as  may  be. 

If  any  shall  happen  to  lose  company,  the  token  shall  be  to 
strike  and  hoist  the  main  topsail  twice ;  if  it  be  foul  weather, 
then  to  hoist  and  strike  the  main  mizen  twice,  or  as  often  as 
they  list,  and  to  wear  the  white  pendant  on  the  mizen  yard ; 
and  if  any  shall  lose  the  company  of  the  General,  he  shall 
find  him  at  such  place  as  he  shall  have  instructions  for  at 
the  sea. 

If  in  chasing  of  any  ships,  she  happen  to  be  fetched  up,  if 
she  be  in  amity  with  Her  Majesty,  she  shall  be  entreated,  and 
brought  to  the  General ;  but  if  she  be  an  enemy,  there  shall 
be  made  no  spoil  of  the  goods  in  her,  but  the  Captain  and 
Master  of  her  to  be  taken  on  board,  and  put  into  her  some 
sufficient  persons  to  bring  her  forthwith  unto  the  General, 
or  such  as  shall  be  assigned,  that  order  may  be  taken  what 
shall  be  done  with  her.  When  any  shall  be  appointed  to 
give  chase,  and  any  enemy's  ship  surprised  that  shall  have 
treasure  or  merchandise  of  value  in  her,  shall  take  great  care 
that  those  commodities  in  her  be  preserved ;  in  respect 
whereof,  and  for  your  loyal  and  faithful  service  to  be  done  in 


APPENDIX.  499 

this  journey,  Her  Majesty's  bounty,  favour,  and  pleasure  is, 
that  a  third  part  of  that  which  shall  be  taken  from  the  enemy, 
so  it  be  not  King's  treasure,  jewels,  or  a  carrick,  shall  be 
employed  to  the  commodity  and  benefit  of  the  whole  com- 
pany, over  and  above  his  ordinary  wages,  according  to  his 
desert. 

No  Captain  or  Master  shall  suffer  any  spoil  to  be  made 
aboard  any  ship  or  bark  that  shall  be  taken  of  them  or  any 
of  their  companies,  upon  pain  to  be  displaced  of  their  offices, 
or  some  great  punishment,  according  to  the  offence  given, 
because  the  rest  of  the  company  have  interest  in  everything 
that  shall  be  taken  ;  therefore  the  value  of  every  such  thing, 
be  it  of  great  or  small  importance,  must  especially  be  re- 
garded and  considered  of :  and  whatsoever  soldier  or  mariner 
obeyeth  not  accordingly,  shall  be  spoiled  of  that  which  he 
hath  gotten,  and  his  person  extremely  punished. 

Whosoever  shall  enter  on  board  of  any  ship,  he  shall  give 
account  to  those  things  which  shall  be  wanting  and  taken  out 
of  her,  for  that  no  other  company  shall  board  her,  unless  there 
shall  be  need  of  their  help.  If  we  happen  to  meet  with  any 
great  fleet,  supposed  to  be  the  army  of  the  King  of  Spain, 
you  .  shall  yourself  endeavour  to  come  as  near  to  your  Gene- 
rals, or  to  the  Admiral  of  your  squadron,  or,  in  our  absence, 
to  the  Vice- Admiral  or  Rear- Admiral  of  the  fleet,  to  know 
what  you  shall  be  directed  unto,  as  you  shall  answer  it  at  the 
peril  of  your  lives. 

The  watch  shall  be  set  every  night  at  eight  of  the  clock, 
either  by  trumpet  or  drum,  and  singing  the  Lord's  Prayer, 
some  of  the  Psalms  of  David,  or  clearing  the  glass ;  and  after 
the  watch  is  set,  no  trumpet  or  drum  shall  be  heard,  or  any 
piece  whatever  shall  be  shot  off,  without  such  great  cause  be 
offered  as  is  before  signified,  or  such  like. 

You  are  to  take  especial  care  of  your  wutch  by  night,  and 
that  the  soldiers  do  watch  well  in  harbour,  as  at  the  seas,  one 

K  K    2 


500  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX. 

third  part  of  them  every  night ;  and  that  there  be  a  captain 
of  the  watch  appointed,  who  shall  take  care  that  no  fire  or 
light  be  suffered,  but  only  such  candles  in  lanthorns  as  are 
allowed  to  the  quarter  masters,  or  otherwise  upon  necessity  ; 
and  that  in  harbour,  a  certain  number  be  appointed  to  keep 
diligent  watch  in  the  forecastle,  or  beak  head  of  the  ship,  for 
fear  of  cutting  of  cables,  which  is  a  practice  much  used  in 
hot  countries. 

If  at  any  time  the  Generals  have  occasion  to  give  chase, 
and  that  order  be  given  to  any  other  ship  to  carry  their  flags 
until  their  return  unto  the  fleet,  all  the  other  ships  shall 
follow  the  flag  in  whatsoever  ship  it  be  placed  ;  and  that 
whatsoever  ship  may  be  next,  the  same  shall  take  up  your 
General's  boats  when  we  give  chase,  or  the  boats  of  any  Ad- 
mirals of  squadrons,  or  others  whatsoever. 

No  man  upon  pain  of  death  shall  presume  to  land  in  any 
country  until  his  return  into  England,  without  order  from 
us  the  Generals,  or  such  as  we  shall  appoint  to  command, 

No  person  shall  depart  out  of  the  ship  where  he  is  placed, 
without  special  leave  of  his  Captain ;  and  no  Captain  or 
Master  shall  receive  any  such  person  without  the  knowledge 
of  us  the  Generals,  or  such  as  we  shall  appoint. 

In  fogs,  if  any  happen  when  your  ships  are  becalmed,  you 
shall  cause  some  noise  to  be  made  by  drum,  by  trumpet,  by 
shooting  of  a  musket  or  caliver  now  and  then,  or  by  some 
other  like  means,  that  by  hearing  you  to  be  near,  one  may 
take  heed  lest  he  fall  foul  of  another. 

No  person  whatsoever  shall  dare  to  strike  the  Captain, 
Lieutenant,  Master,  or  other  officer,  on  pain  of  death  ;  and 
furthermore,  whatsoever  he  shall  be  that  shall  strike  any  in- 
ferior person,  he  shall  receive  punishment  according  to  the 
offence  given,  be  it  by  death  or  otherwise. 

There  shall  be  no  report  or  talk  raised  in  the  fleet,  wherein 
any  officer  or  gentleman  in  the  same  may  be  touched  in  repu- 


APPENDIX.  501 

tation  or  matter  of  importance  spoken  without  his  author, 
who  shall  be  severely  punished,  as  an  evil  member  amongst  us. 

(F.) 
A  Device  wade  by  the  Earl  of  Essex  for  the  Entertainment  of 

the  Queen. 
THE  SQUIRE'S  SPEECH. 

I  have  brought  before  your  Majesty  two  wanderers,  the 
one,  as  it  should  seem,  some  Indian  youth,  the  other  white  of 
complexion  and  expert  in  language :  to  me  they  will  neither 
give  account  whence  they  come,  nor  whither  they  would ; 
but  of  me  at  the  first  acquaintance  they  have  curiously 
inquired  of  the  state  of  the  country,  of  the  manner  of  the 
government,  of  the  disposition  of  the  people,  and  specially  of 
many  circumstances  of  your  Majesty's  person;  which  dis- 
covery of  their  high  conceit,  aiming  directly  at  yourself,  hath 
made  me  bring  them  into  your  Highness'  presence,  that  they 
make  their  purgation  to  yourself. 

THE  ATTENDANT  OR  CONDUCTOR  TO  THE  INDIAN  PRINCE. 

Excellent  Queen,  in  the  most  retired  part  of  that  division 
which  those  of  Europe  call  the  West  Indies,  near  unto  the 
fountain  of  the  great  river  of  the  Amazons,  there  governeth 
at  this  day  a  mighty  monarch,  whose  rare  happiness  in  all 
things  else  is  only  eclipsed  in  the  calamity  of  his  son,  this 
young  Prince,  who  was  born  blind.  This  only  tax  and  impo- 
sition hath  fortune  set  upon  the  father's  felicity,  and  nature 
laid  upon  the  son's  perfections ;  for  this  want  removed,  never 
was  there,  in  that  royal  line,  a  spark  of  that  expectation,  so 
lovely  of  person,  so  active  of  body,  and  so  full  of  spirit.  But 
yet  no  one  thing  hath  so  much  affected  both  his  father  and 
his  people  towards  him,  as  an  ancient  prophecy,  that  it  should 
be  he  that  should  expel  the  Castillians,  a  nation  of  strangers, 
which  as  a  scourge  hath  wound  itself  about  the  body  of  that 

K    K     3 


502  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX. 

continent,  though  it  hath  not  pierced  near  the  heart  thereof. 
This  fatal  glory,  added  to  his  other  excellency,  hath  made  the 
king  his  father  to  visit  his  temples  with  continual  sacrifices, 
gifts,  and  observances,  to  solicit  his  son's  cure  supernaturally ; 
and  at  last,  this  present  year,  out  of  one  of  the  holiest  vaults, 
was  delivered  to  him  an  oracle  in  these  words  : 

Seated  between  the  Old  World  and  the  New, 
A  land  there  is  no  other  land  may  touch, 
Where  reigns  a  Queen  in  peace  and  honor  true  ; 
Stories  or  fables  do  describe  no  such. 
Never  did  Atlas  such  a  burthen  bear, 
As  she,  in  holding  up  the  world  opprest ; 
Supplying  with  her  virtue,  every  where, 
Weakness  of  friends,  errors  of  servants  best. 
No  nation  breeds  a  warmer  blow  for  war, 
And  yet  she  calms  them  with  her  majesty  ; 
No  age  hath  ever  wit  refined  so  far, 
And  yet  she  calms  them  by  her  policy  : 
To  her  thy  son  must  make  his  sacrifice, 
If  he  will  have  the  morning  of  his  eyes. 

This  oracle  hath  been  both  our  direction  hitherto,  and  the 
cause  of  our  wearisome  pilgrimage;  we  do  now  humbly 
beseech  your  Majesty,  that  we  may  make  experience  whether 
we  be  at  the  end  of  our  journey  or  not. 

Your  Majesty's  sacred  presence  hath  wrought  the  strangest 
renovation  that  ever  was  in  the  world.  You  have  here  before 
you  seemly  Love,  a  Prince  indeed,  but  of  greater  territories 
than  all  the  Indies ;  armed  after  the  Indian  manner  with  bow 
and  arrows,  and  when  he  is  in  his  ordinary  habit,  an  Indian 
naked,  or  attired  with  feathers,  though  now  for  comeliness 
clad.  To  procure  his  pardon  for  the  stratagem  he  hath  used, 
and  to  show  his  thankfulness  for  his  sight  which  he  hath  by 
you  received,  he  presents  your  Majesty  with  all  that  is  his ; 


APPENDIX.  503 

his  gift  and  property  to  be  ever  young ;  his  range  of  liberty 
to  fly  from  one  to  another;  his  bow  and  arrows  to  wound 
when  it  pleaseth  you ;  and  withal  humbly  desireth  that 
though  Philantia  hath  hitherto  so  prevailed  with  your  Ma- 
jesty, as  you  would  never  accept  of  him  while  he  was  an  im- 
perfect piece,  yet  now  he  is  accomplished  by  your  Majesty's 
grace  and  means,  that  you  will  vouchsafe  him  entertainment. 
For  all  the  challenge  that  ever  hath  been  made  to  love  or  his 
bond  hath  been,  if  it  be  rightly  considered,  only  to  his  want 
of  eyesight.  Lovers  are  charged  to  aspire  too  high ;  it  is  as 
the  poor  dove,  which,  when  her  eyes  are  sealed,  still  mounteth 
up  into  the  air.  They  are  charged  with  descending  too  low ;  it 
is  as  the  poor  mole,  which,  seeing  not  the  clearness  of  the  air, 
diveth  into  the  darkness  of  the  earth.  They  are  sometimes 
charged  with  presuming  too  far ;  it  is  as  the  blind  man,  who 
looketh  in  humanity  that  any  seeing  man  should  give  him 
way.  They  are  accused  sometimes  to  be  timorous ;  it  is  as 
the  blind  stalks  and  lifts  high  where  the  way  is  smooth. 
They  are  taxed  to  be  credulous ;  why,  the  blind  are  ever  led. 
They  are  said  at  other  times  to  be  incredulous;  the  blind 
must  feel  that  which  sufficeth  another  to  see.  How  can  they 
know  times  justly,  that  go  by  the  clock  and  not  by  the  sun  ? 
And  how  can  they  know  measure,  that  see  as  well  a  mote  as 
a  beam  ?  This  makes  poor  lovers  all  as  blind  horses,  ever  going- 
round  about  in  a  wheel ;  and  this  makes  them  ever  unfor- 
tunate, for  when  blind  love  leads  blind  fortune,  how  can  they 
keep  out  of  the  ditch  ?  But  now  that  Love  hath  gotten  pos- 
session of  his  sight,  there  can  be  no  error  in  policy  or  dignity 
to  receive  him.  Nay,  Philantia  herself  will  subscribe  to  his 
admission ;  then  your  Majesty  shall  first  see  your  own  invalu- 
able value,  and  thereby  discern  that  the  favours  you  vouchsafe, 
are  pure  gifts  and  no  exchanges.  And  if  any  be  so  happy  as 
to  have  his  affection  accepted,  yet  your  prerogative  is  such  as 
they  stand  bound,  and  your  Majesty  is  free.  Then  shall 

K    K     4 


504  LIVES    OF    THE    EAHLS    OF    ESSEX. 

your  Majesty  read  the  conditions  of  every  pretender,  who  it 
is  that  cometh  manned  out  by  the  plots  and  policies  of  others ; 
and  who  cometh  led  only  by  his  own  star,  who  is  sent  in  unto 
you  by  the  frowns  of  fortune,  to  have  some  commendation 
from  you  to  her  again,  and  who  both  left  a  favourable  fortune 
when  he  came  to  you,  and  resolves  never  to  establish  a  fortune, 
because  he  will  wholly  depend  upon  you ;  who  seeks  your 
favour  to  the  end  he  may  tread  upon  others,  and  who  enjoys 
all  others'  favours  to  be  trodden  on  by  you  ;  who  offereth  gold, 
incense,  and  myrrh,  and  who  but  the  meanest  of  the  folks,  or 
a  cruise  of  oil.  Your  Majesty  shall  obtain  the  window  into 
hearts  of  which  the  ancients  speak ;  thereby  you  shall  discern 
protestation  from  fulness  of  heart,  ceremonies  and  fashions 
from  a  habit  of  mind  that  can  do  no  other,  affection  from 
affection.  Your 'Majesty  shall  see  the  true  proportion  of 
your  own  favours,  so  as  you  may  deliver  them  forth  by 
measure,  that  they  neither  cause  surfeit  or  faintness,  and  take 
as  just  a  tribute  of  your  commandments  as  you  vouchsafe  an 
imparting  of  your  favours,  and  so  keep  them  as  well  in  breath 
and  exercise,  as  in  strength  and  in  heart.  And  to  conclude, 
your  Majesty  may  be  mindful  of  that  which  the  poet  saith 
was  never  granted,  A  mare  et  sapere.  And  you  honest  squire, 
that  have  conducted  us,  carry  your  master  this  message  from 
seemly  Love,  as  the  first  fruit  of  his  sight.  Let  him  consider 
whom  he  serves,  and  first  of  all  to  seek  to  dignify  himself  in 
worth  and  merit.  For  it  is  not  a  small  piece  of  wood,  though 
never  so  well  kindled,  that  will  make  a  great  fire.  Let  him 
add  to  his  merit  diligence  and  application ;  for  it  is  not  a  dead 
fire,  though  never  so  great,  but  a  fire  continually  blown, 
that  will  melt  hard  metal.  Let  him  not  build  too  much  upon 
remembrance  of  griefs  or  contentments  past ;  it  is  the  fault  of 
a  blind  man  to  have  too  good  a  memory:  let  him  choose 
expertly  his  seasons  and  opportunities ;  it  is  a  blind  man's  case 
not  to  know  night  from  day :  let  him  dissemble  unkiudness 


APPENDIX.  505 

and  discouragements ;  for  it  is  no  blind  man's  part  willingly 
not  to  see.  And  to  conclude,  since  in  his  blindness  he  has 
chanced  so  well  as  to  fix  his  affections  in  the  most  excellent 
place,  let  him  now  by  his  sight  find  out  the  most  ready  way. 
And  so  squire  for  guiding  us  the  right  way,  we  have  taught 
your  master  part  of  his. 


(GO 

The  true  manner  and  form  of  the  proceeding  to  the  funeral 
of  the  Right  Honble.  Robert,  Earl  of  Essex  and  Ewe, 
Viscount  Hereford  and  Bourchier,  Baron  of  Ferrers  of 
Chartley,  Bourchier,  and  Lovaine,  on  the  22nd  October, 
1646  :  — 

Five  regiments  of  the  Trained  Bands  lined  both  sides  of  the 
way,  from  Essex  House  to  Westminster  Abbey. 

A  regiment  of  horse. 
The  Marshal  of  the  City  and  his  men. 

Servants,  two  and  two. 

Four  regiments  of  foot,  trailing  their  pikes  ;  the  musketeers 
in  a  funeral  posture,  the  drums  covered  with  black,  the  fifes 

having  a  banner  bearing  the  Earl's  arms. 

Field  Officers  and  Captains,  two  and  two,  360  in  number ;  Sir 

William  Waller  bringing  up  the  rear,  and  trailing  a  pike. 

Drums,  fifes,  and  trumpets. 

The  Earl's  standard. 

The  Earl's  servants. 

The  Earl's  chaplains. 

Drums,  fifes,  and  trumpets. 

The  guidon  of  the  Earl. 

One  of  his  horses,  covered  with  black  cloth,  adorned   and 
garnished   with   plumes,   shafferons,   and   escocheons  of    his 

Lordship's  arms. 
Drums,  fifes,  and  trumpets. 


506  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF    ESSEX. 

The  banner  of  Lovaine. 

A  horse  adorned  as  before,  with  the  arms  of  Lovaiue. 

Officers  of  the  five  regiments  lining  the  way. 

Drums,  fifes,  and  trumpets. 

The  banner  of  Bourchier. 

A  horse  as  before,  with  the  arms  of  Bourchier. 

Fifty   Colonels  and  Field   Officers  in   mourning,   who  had 

served  under  his  immediate  command. 

Drums,  fifes,  and  trumpets. 

The  banner  of  Ferrers. 

A  horse  as  before,  with  the  arms  of  Ferrers. 

Knights. 

Baronets. 

Younger  sons  of  noblemen. 
Comptroller,  Steward,  Treasurer,  of  the  late  Earl's  household. 

Trumpets. 
The  great  banner  of  the  arms  of  the  Earl  of  Essex,  bearing 

sixteen  quarters. 

Cheval  de  deuil,  or  chief  horse  of  mourning,  covered  with 
black  velvet,  adorned  with  the  quartered  coats,  led  by  the 

Yeoman  of  the  Horse. 

The  preacher,  Master  Vynes. 

Bluemantle  Pursuivant,  with  the  helm  and  crest. 

Rougedragon,  with  the  spurs. 

Portcullis,  with  the  gauntlets. 

York  Herald,  with  the  sword. 

Norroy  K.  of  Arms,  with  the  target. 

Clarencieux,  with  the  coat  of  arms. 

The  effigies  of  his  Lordship's  person,  in  his  robes,  his  Earl's 
coronet  on  his  head,  in  soldier's  apparel,  a  General's  leading 
staff  in  his  hand,  was  drawn  in  an  open  chariot  of  black 
velvet,  with  six  horses  covered  with  black  velvet  to  the 
ground,  adorned  and  garnished  with  plumes,  shafferons,  es- 
cocheons,  and  compartments  of  his  Lordship's  arms.  Master 


APPENDIX. 


507 


Pudsey,  gentleman  of  his  L.  chamber,  sitting  at  the  feet,  eacli 
horse  led  by  a  groom. 

Supporters  of  the  Pall. 


Henry  Howard,  Esq.,  2nd  son 
of  the  late  Earl  of  Suffolk. 

Denzil  Holies,  Esq.,  2nd  son 
of  the  Earl  of  Clare. 

George  Montague,Esq.52nd  son 
of  the  Earl  of  Manchester. 


Chas.  Rich,  Esq.,  2nd  son  of 
the  Earl  of  Warwick. 

Colonel  Sydney,  2nd  son  of 
the  Earl  of  Leicester. 

Thos.  Sheffield,  Esq.,  2nd  son 
of  the  Earl  of  Mulgrave. 


The  following  commanders  and  persons  of  quality,  bearing 
pieces  of  armour,  were  appointed  to  go  in  rank  with  the  sup- 
porters ;  and  the  bearers  of  the  bannerols,  in  like  manner 
next  to  the  armour  bearers  ;  but  the  multitude  of  people,  and 
the  foulness  of  the  street,  forced  them  out  of  their  places  :  — 


Sir  Win.   Balfour,   helm   and 

plume. 
Sir  Ph.   Stapleton,    vambrace 

and  pauldron  dexter, 
Col.  Jas.  Sheffield,  the  breast. 
Col.  Davies,  the  gauntlets. 


Sir  John  Meyrick,  the  gor- 
get. 

Maj.  Gen.  Skippon,  vam- 
brace and  pauldron  si- 
nister. 

Maj.  Gen.  Browne,  the  back. 

Col.  Graves,  the  taces. 


The  Bannerols. 

Borne  by  Leicester  Devereux,  eldest 
son  of  Visct.  Hereford. 

}8ir  Anty.  St.  John,  Baronet. 
x 

Devereux  and      "I  Master  Walter  Devereux,  2nd  son  of 


Devereux. 
Ferrers. 
Bourchier. 
Lovaine. 
Devereux  and 


Marbury,  imp. 
Devereux  and 
Bourchier. 


J       Visct.  Hereford. 
1  SJr  Jno> 


508  LIVES    OF    THE    EARLS    OF   ESSEX. 

Devereux  and       7  Borne  by  Nich.  Leake,   eldest  son  of 

Walsingham,         J       Lord  Danicourt. 

Devereux  and 

Knollys. 

Devereux  and 

Hustings. 


o 


I  Sir  Thos. 

I  Sir  Wm.  Lewis,  Bart. 


}  Col.  Kobt.  Hammond. 


Grey. 

Garter  K.  of  Arms,  with  a  Gent.  Usher  on  his  left  hand, 
bareheaded. 

Chief  Mourner, 

Walter,  Viscount  Hereford, 

his   train   borne  by    Master   Garret,    assisted   by   Nicholas 

Devereux. 

Eight  assistants  to  Chief  Mourner,  viz.  :  — 
Earl  of  Northumberland.  Earl  of  Holland. 

Earl  of  Pembroke.  Lord  Lisle. 

Earl  of  Suffolk.  Sir  E.  Shirley. 

Earl  of  Warwick.  Oliver  St.  John. 

The  Horse  of  Honor,  led  by  the  Gentleman  of  the  Horse, 

with  a  groom  to  hold  him  by  the  head. 

Black  Rod,  with  a  Gent.  Usher  on  his  left  hand,  bareheaded. 
The  Earl  of  Manchester,  Speaker  of  the  House  of  Peers. 

The  House  of  Peers. 

Serjeant  of  the  House  of  Commons,  with  a  Gent.  Usher, 

bareheaded. 

The  Speaker. 

The  House  of  Commons,  three  abreast. 
John  Glynn,  Recorder  of  London. 

The  Aldermen,  two  and  two. 

Committee  of  Militia  of  London. 

Prolocutor  of  the  Assembly  of  Divines. 

The  Assembly  of  Divines. 

A  party  of  fifty  horse. 


APPENDIX.  509 

As  soon  as  the  funeral  sermon,  preached  by  Mr.  Vynes, 
was  ended,  the  officers  of  his  L.  household  had  broken  their 
white  staves,  and  the  trumpets  had  sounded,  according  to 
custom  at  such  solemn  funerals,  order  was  given  for  the 
great  bell  of  St.  Margaret's  to  toll  thrice.  This  gave  signal 
to  a  gentleman  on  the  highest  tower  of  the  Abbey,  who  was 
provided  with  a  flag  for  the  day,  and  a  great  globe  lanthorn 
for  the  night,  with  which,  it  being  then  seven  o'clock,  he 
gave  notice  to  the  Lord  Mayor's  Stone  Fort  at  Southwark,  to 
fire  one  great  piece  of  ordnance :  this  warning  piece  gave 
notice  to  Yauxhall  Fort ;  and  so  the  Redoubt,  Blockhouses, 
Tothill  Fort  and  the  rest,  all  round  the  lines  of  communica- 
tion, fired  in  turn,  ending  where  they  began,  at  the  Stone 
Fort.  After  this,  the  regiment  of  horse,  drawn  up  in  the 
Abbey  church-yard,  gave  a  volley  with  their  pistols,  which 
was  succeeded  by  a  volley  from  all  the  nine  regiments,  from 
the  Abbey  to  Essex  House.  The  firing  was  repeated  three 
times  throughout,  and  closed  the  ceremony. 


THE    END. 


LONDON  : 

SPOTTISWOODES  and  SHAW, 
New-street-Square. 


ALBEMARLE  STREET, 
November,  1877. 


MR,    MURRAY'S 

FORTHCOMING    WORKS. 


MYCENAE. 

HESEARCHES  AND  DISCOVERIES  O 
ANCIENT   MYCEN^   AND 

By   DR.    HENRY   SCHLIEMjiNN 

Author  of  "  Troy  .and  its  Remains  ; "  Citizen  of  the 

With  a  PREFACE,  by  the  Right  Hon.  Win. 

With  Maps  and  500  Illustrations.     M 


CYPRUS; 

CITIES, 


ITS     ANCIENT 


A  NARRATIVE  OF  RESEARCHES  ANJ/EXCAVATIONS 
RESIDENCE^  THAT  ISLAND. 


By   GENERAL 


.OUIS   P.    DI 

Acad.  Sciences,  Turin. 
"With  Map  jrfid  200  Illustrations.     Mec' 


Me 


THE 


AKER  8     COMMENTARY    ON 


NEW  TESTA  MEN 


CONTAINING  ST.  MATTHEW,  ST.    MARK, 


ITES  OF 


f  America. 
GLADSTONE,  M.P. 

uni  8vo. 


ND     TEMPLES. 

DURING  TEN  YEARS' 


CI  SNOLA, 


itn  8vo. 


T.—  Vol.  I. 

AND   ST.    LUKE. 


With  a  General  INTRODUCTION,  by  the  ARCHBISHOP  OF  YORK. 

Medium  8vo. 


ESSAYS,     LETTERS,    AND    ADDRESSES. 

I.  PERSONAL    AND    LITERARY. 
II.  ECCLESIASTICAL    AND    THEOLOGICAL. 
III.  EUROPEAN    AND    HISTORICAL. 
By  the   Right  Hon>   W,   E»   GLADSTONE,   M.P. 

Small  8vo. 


ME.   MUERAY'S   FOETHCOMING   WORKS. 


THE  STUDENT'S  EDITION  OF  THE 
SPEAKERS  COMMENTARY  on  the  BIBLE. 

CAREFULLY    ABRIDGED    FROM    THE    LARGER    WORK. 
Edited  by  the  Hev.   J.    M.   FULLER,  M.A., 

Vicar  of  Bexley. 
In  Monthly  Vols.     Crown  8vo. 


THE    TEMPLE    OF  JERUSALEM. 

AND    THE    OTHER    BUILDINGS    IN    THE    HARAM    AREA, 
FROM    SOLOMON    TO    SALADIN. 

By   JAMES   FERGUSSON,    D.C.L.,    F.B.S. 

"With  numerous  Illustrations.     4to. 


THE     CLASSIC     PREACHERS    OF    THE 
ENGLISH    CHURCH. 

LECTURES  DELIVERED   AT    ST.  JAMES'S  CHURCH,    LONDON, 
DURING  1877. 

DONNE  ( The  Poet  Preacher) J.  B.  LIGHTFOOT,  D. D. ,  Canon  of  St.  Paul' s. 

BAEEOW  (The  Exhaustive  Preacher)     II.  WAGE,  M.A.,  Prof,  of  Eccles.  Hist.,  King's 

Coll.,  London. 

SOUTH  ( The  Rhetorician)    W.  C.  LAKE,  M.  A. ,  Dean  of  Durham. 

BEVERIDGE  (The  Scriptural  Preacher)  "W.  R.    CLARK,  M.A.,   Prebendary  of  Wells, 

and  Vicar  of  Tauntou. 

WILSON  (The  Saintly  Preacher) F.  "W.  FARRAII,  D.D.,  Canon  of  "Westminster. 

BUTLER  (The  Ethical  Preacher) E.  M.  GOULBUIIN,  D.D.,  Dean  of  Norwich. 

With  INTRODUCTION.    By  J.  E.  KEMPE,  MA.,  Pector. 

Post  8vo. 


NOTES  ON  THE    CHURCHES  OF  KENT. 

By  the   late    SIB   STEPHEN   GLYNNE,   Bart, 

"With  Illustrations.     8vo. 

THE  CITIES  &  CEMETERIES  of  ETRURIA. 

By  GEORGE  DENNIS, 

H.B.M.   Consul-General  at  Palermo. 

A  New  Edition.    REVISED  FROM  RECENT  VISITS  TO  THE  ETRUSCAN  SITES> 
A  CHAPTER  ON  BOLOGNA. 

With  20  Maps  and  150  Illustrations.     2  vols.     Medium  8vo. 


MB.  MURRAY'S   FORTHCOMING   WORKS. 


TREATISE    ON    THE    AUGUSTINIAN 
DOCTRINE    OF    PREDESTINATION. 

By  J.  B.  MOZLEY,  D.D., 

Canon  of  Christ  Church,  Regius  Professor  of  Divinity  at  Oxford. 
New  Edition.     Crown  8vo. 

A   MANUAL  of  NAVAL  ARCHITECTURE. 

FOR    THE    USE    OF    OFFICERS    OF    THE    NAVY,    MERCANTILE 

MARINE,    SHIPOWNERS,    AND    SHIPBUILDERS. 

By  W.  H.  WHITE, 

Assistant-Constructor,  Royal  Navy.;  Instructor  in  Naval  Architecture,  Royal  Naval  College  : 

Member  of  Council  of  the  Institution  of  Naval  Architects  ;  Fellow  of  the  Royal  School 

of  Naval  Architecture. 

With  Illustrations.     8vo, 


LIVINGSTONIA. 

A  JOURNAL  OF  ADVENTURES  IN  EXPLORING  LAKE  NYASSA,  AND 
ESTABLISHING  A  MISSIONARY  AND  COMMERCIAL  SETTLEMENT  THERE. 

By  E.  D.  YOTJNG,  R.N. 
Edited  and  Revised  by  Rev.  HORACE  WALLER,  F.R.G.S. 

Editor  of  Livingstone's  "  Last  Journals." 

With  Maps.     Post  8vo. 

THE  STUDENT'S 
MANUAL  of  ENGLISH  CHURCH  HISTORY, 

FROM    THE    REFORMATION    TO    THE    ISrH    CENTURY. 

By  Rev.  a.  G.  PERRY, 

Prebendary  of  Lincoln,  and  Rector  of  Waddingtou. 
Post  8vo. 


THE   ANCIENT    EGYPTIANS. 

THEIR  MANNERS,  CUSTOMS,  PRIVATE  LIFE,  GOVERNMENT,  LAWS,  ARTS, 
MANUFACTURES,  RELIGION,  AGRICULTURE,  AND  EARLY  HISTORY. 

Derived  from  a  comparison  of  the  Paintings,  Sculptures,  and  Monuments  still  existing, 
with  the  accounts  of  Ancient  Authors. 

By  SIR  J.   GARDNER   WILKINSON,   F.R.S. 

A  Xcw  Edition.    With  Additions  by  the  late  Author. 
Edited  and  brought  down  to  the  present  state  of  knowledge, 

By   SAMUEL  BIRCH,   LL.D. 
With    many  new   Illustrations.      3  vols.     Medium  Svo, 


MR,  MUEEAY'S   FORTHCOMING   WORKS. 


MY  BOYHOOD;    CHRISTMAS   STORY 
FOR    BOYS. 

By   H.    C.   BARKLEY, 

Author  of  "Between  the  Danube  and  the  Black  Sea." 

With  Illustrations,  by  A.  C.  CORBOULD,  and  engraved  by  J.  W.  WHYMPER. 

Post  8vo. 


THE    ENGLISH    IN    SPAIN  ; 

OR,    THE    STORY    OF    THE    AVAR    OF    SUCCESSION    IN    1834—1840. 

Compiled  from  the  Letters,  Journals,  and  Reports  of  the  British  Commissioners 
Avith  Queen  Isabella's  Armies. 

By   MAJOR   FRANCIS   DUNCAN,  R.A. 

Author  of  the  "  History  of  the  Royal  Artillery." 
With  Map  and  Illustrations.     8vo. 


THE    COUNTRY    OF    THE   MOORS. 

A  JOURNEY 

FROM  TRIPOLI  IN  BARBARY  TO  THE  HOLY  CITY  OF  KA1RWAN. 
By  EDWARD   RAE, 

Author  of  "  The  Land  of  the  North  Wind." 
With  Illustrations.     Crown  8vo. 


A  NEW  LIFE  OF  ALBERT  SURER. 

WITH    A    HISTORY    OF    HIS    ART. 

By  MORITZ   THATJSING, 

Keeper  of  Archduke  Albert's  Art  Collections  at  Vienna. 

FROM  THE  GERMAN.      BY  THE  AUTHOR'S  DESIRE. 
With  Portrait  and  Illustrations.     2  vols.     8vo. 

THE    TALMUD  : 

SELECTED    EXTRACTS,    CHIEFLY    ILLUSTRATING    THE    TEACHING 
OF    THE    BIBLE. 

WITH  AN  INTRODUCTION  DESCRIBING  THE  GENERAL  CHARACTER  AND  CONTENTW 

OF  THE  TALMUD. 

By  JOSEPH   BARCLAY,  LL.D.,  Rector  of  Stapleford,  Herts. 

Illustrations.     8voi 


MB,  MUEBAY'S   FOBTHCOMING   WOBKS. 


FIELD   PATHS  AND    GREEN  LANES: 

BEING  COUNTRY  WALKS,  CHIEFLY  IN  SURREY  AND  SUSSEX. 
By  LOUIS  J.   JENNINGS. 

With  Illustrations  by  J.  W.  WHYMPER.     Post  Svo. 


STUDENT'S 
MANUAL  of  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY. 

THE  ANNALS    OF    THE   CHRISTIAN   CHURCH    FROM    ITS    FOUNDATION 
TO  THE  EVE   OF  THE    PROTESTANT   REFORMATION. 

By   PHILIP   SMITH,    B.A., 

Author  of  "  The  Student's  Old  and  New  Testament  Histories." 

With  Illustrations.     Post  Svo. 


BULGARIA    BEFORE    THE    WAR    AND 
NORTH   OF    THE  BALKANS. 

DURING    SEVEN   YEARS'   EXPERIENCE   OF   EUROPEAN   TURKEY  AND 
ITS  INHABITANTS. 

By   H.    C.    BARKLEY  (Civil  Engineer). 

Author  of  "  Between  the  Danube  and  the  Black  Sea." 
Post  Svo. 


HISTORY    OF    EGYPT    FROM    THE 
EARLIEST    PERIOD. 

DERIVED  FROM  MONUMENTS  AND   INSCRIPTIONS. 

By  DR.   BRUGSCH,   of  Gottingen. 
Translated  by  the   late  H.  DANBY  SEYMOUR,  F.R.G.S. 

With  Maps.     2  vols.     Svo. 

PURITY  IN  MUSICAL   ART. 

By  ANT.  FRED.  JUSTUS  THIBAUT,  of  Heidelberg. 

TRANSLATED  FROM  THE  GERMAN,   WITH  A  PREFATORY  MEMOIR, 

By  W.  H.  GLADSTONE,  M.P. 

Post  Svo. 

THE    PSALTER     OF    1539, 

A    LANDMARK    OF    THE    ENGLISH    LANGUAGE, 

WITH  PREFACE  AND  NOTES. 
By  Rev.  JOHN  EARLE,  M.A., 

Prebendary  of  Wells,  and  Professor  of  Anglo-Saxon  at  Oxford. 
Square  Svo. 


MB,  MURRAY'S   FORTHCOMING   WORKS. 


NOTEBOOK   OF  SIR  JOHN  NORTH  COTE, 

M.P.    FOB    ASHBURTON,    IN    THE    LONG    PARLIAMENT. 

CONTAINING  MEMORANDA  OF  PROCEEDINGS  DURING  ITS  FIRST  SESSION,  1640, 
FROM  THE  MS.  ORIGINAL  IN  THE  POSSESSION  OF  THE  EIGHT  HON.  Sin 
STAFFORD  NORTIICOTE,  BART.,  M.P. 

Edited,  with  a  Memoir,  by  A,  H,  A.  HAMILTON. 

Crown  8vo. 


MASTERS    IN   ENGLISH    THEOLOGY. 

LECTURES    DELIVERED    AT    KING'S    COLL.,    LONDON,    1877. 

HOOKER Alfred  BARRY,  D.  D. ,  Canon  of  Worcester. 

ANDREWES W.  CHURCH,  D.C.L.,  Dean  of  ST.  PAUL'S. 

CHILLING  WOR TH Professor  PLUMPTRE,  D.  D. ,  Prebendary  of  St.  Paul's. 

WH1CHGOTE  and  SMITH  ...  Professor  WESTCOTT,  D.D.,  Canon  of  Peterborough. 

JEREMY  TAYLOR F.  W.  FARRAR,  D.  D. ,  Canon  of  Westminster. 

PEARSON  Professor  CHEETHAM,  M.A.,   Chaplain  of  Dulwich 

College. 

With  an  HISTORICAL  INTRODUCTION, 

By  ALFRED  BARRY,  D.D., 

Canon  of  "Worcester,  and  Principal  of  King's  College,  London. 

Post  8vo. 


LEX    SALIC  A  : 

THE    TEN    TEXTS    WITH    THE    GLOSSES. 
[LEX    SALICA    EMENDATA], 

EDITED  (THE   INTERPRETATION  OF  THE  GLOSSES) 

By    Dr.    H.    KERN, 

Professor  of  Sanscrit,  University  of  Leyden, 

AND 

THE  TEXTS,  NEWLY  COLLATED,  WITH  GLOSSARY,  INTRODUCTION,  &c., 
By    J.    H.    HESSELS, 

Joint  Editor  of  The  New  Ducange's  "  Mediaeval  Latin-English  Dictionary." 
4to. 


THE 

INTRODUCTION    OF   BARK    CULTURE 
INTO    THE  BRITISH  DOMINIONS. 

CONTAINING 

A  NARRATIVE  OF  JOURNEYS  IN  PERU  AND  INDIA  FOR  THE  CONVEYANCE 
OF  PLANTS  AND  SEED  ;  AND  SOME  ACCOUNT  OF  THE  CHINCONA  AND 
OF  THE  PLANTATIONS  ALREADY  FORMED  IN  SIKKIM,  THE  NEILGERRIES, 
CEYLON,  JAVA,  &c. 

By   CLEMENTS   R.    MARKHAM,  C.B.,  F.R.S. 

Second  Edition,  revised  and  enlarged  with  Map  and  Illustrations.     8vo, 


ME.   MUBKAY'S    FOETHCOMING    WORKS. 


SECOND    SERIES. 


LEAVES   FROM   MY   SKETCH   BOOK. 

A  SELECTION  OF  SKETCHES,  CHIEFLY  IN  EGYPT  AND  THE  EAST. 
By  E.    W.    COOKE,   R,A. 

With  Descriptive  Text.     Small  folio. 

THE 

MORAL    PHILOSOPHY    OF  ARISTOTLE: 

TRANSLATIONS    OF    THE    NICOMACHEAN    ETHICS,    AND    OF    THE 
PARAPHRASE    OF    ANDRONICUS, 

TOGETHER  WITH  PHILOSOPHICAL  ESSAYS,  INTRODUCTIONS  AND  ANALYSES, 

Designed  for  the  use  of  Students  at  the  Universities  ; 
By  the  Rev.  WALTER  M.  HATCH,  M.A., 

Fellow  of  New  College,  Oxford,  and  Rector  of  Birclianger,  Essex. 
2  vols.      8vo. 


PIONEERING    IN    SOUTH    BRAZIL. 

THREE  YEARS  OF  FOREST  AND  PRAIRIE  LIFE  IN  THE  PROVINCE 

OF  PARANA. 

By    THOS.    P.    BIGG    WITHER. 

With  Map  and  Illustrations.     2  vols.     Post  8vo. 

A     MEDIEVAL    LATIN- ENGLISH 
DICTIONARY. 

Based  on  the  Great  Work  of  DUCANGE. 
Re-arranged  and  Edited  in  accordance  with  the  Modern  Science  of  Philology. 

By  E.  A.  DAYMAN,  B.D., 

Prebendary  of  Sarum,  formerly  Fellow  and  Tutor  of  Exeter  College,  Oxford. 

Assisted  by  J.  H.  HESSELS. 

Small  4to. 


POETICAL  WORKS  of  ALEXANDER  POPE. 

VOL.  III.,    THE    SATIRES,    &c. 
Edited  by  WHITWELL  ELWIN,  B.A. 

8vo. 


ME.  MURRAY'S    FOETHCOMING   WORKS. 


COMPANIONS  FOR  THE  DEVOUT  LIFE, 

LECTURES    DELIVERED    AT    ST.    JAMES'S    CHURCH,    1875-6. 
By  the  following. 


ARCHBISHOP  OF  DUBLIN. 

BISHOP  OF  ELY. 

BISHOP  OF  DERIIY  AND  RAPHOE. 

DEAN  OF  Sr.  PAUL'S. 

DEAN  OF  Nonwicn. 

DEAN  OF  CHESTER. 


CANON  AS'HWELL. 
CAXON  BARRY. 
CANON  FARRAR. 
REV.  W.  G.  HUMPHRY. 
REV.  T.  T.  CARTER. 

REV.    E.    H.   BlCKEKSTETH. 


DEAN  OF  CHIC-HESTER. 

With  PREFACE,  by  J.  E.  KEMPE,  M.A.,  Hector. 

New  Edition.     Complete  in  One  Volume.     Post  8vo. 


OLD    ENGLISH    PLATE: 

ECCLESIASTICAL,  DECORATIVE,  AND  DOMESTIC  ;  ITS  MAKERS  AND  MARKS. 
IN  LONDON  AND  PROVINCIAL  CITIES. 

With  Illustrations  and  Improved  Tables  of  the  Date  Letters  used  in  England,  Scotland, 

and  Ireland. 

Founded  on  Papers  and  Tables  by  OCTAVIUS  S.  MORGAN,  F.R.S.A. 
By   WILFRED   J.    CRIPPS,    M.A., 

Barrister-at-Law, 
With  Illustrations.     Medium  8vo. 


A    GLOSSARY    OF   PECULIAR 

ANGLO  -  INDIAN     COLLOQ  UIAL     WORDS 
AND    PHRASES, 

ETYMOLOGICAL,   HISTORICAL,   AND  GEOGRAPHICAL. 

By   HENRY    YULE,    C.B., 

Colonel,  R.E.  (Bengal) 

And  ARTHUR  BURNELL,  Ph.D., 

Madras  Civil  Service. 
8vo. 


A     PRACTICAL     TREATISE    ON 
SHIPBUILDING    IN   IRON  AND    STEEL. 

By  E.  J.  REED,  C.B.,  M.P., 

Vice-President  of  the  Institution  of  Naval  Architects. 

New  and  Revised  Edition.    With  Plans  and  Woodcuts.     8vo. 


MK.   MURRAY'S   FORTHCOMING   WORKS. 


THE    SPEAKERS 
COMMENTARY  on  the  NEW  TESTAMENT, 

WITH    AN    EXPLANATORY    AND    CRITICAL    COMMENTARY,    AND    A 
REVISION    OF    THE    TRANSLATION. 

By  BISHOPS  and  CLERGY   of  the  ANGLICAN  CHURCH. 
Edited  by  P.  C.   COOK,  M.A., 

Canon  of  Exeter,  Preacher  at  Lincoln's  IDE,  and  Chaplain  in  Ordinary  to  the  Queen. 

Vol.    I. 

GENERAL  INTRODUCTION — ARCHBISHOP  01?  YOUK. 

ST.  MATTHEW  and  ST.  MARK — Dean  Mansel  and  Canon  Cook. 

>S  r.  LUKE — Bishop  of  St.  David's,  and  Canon  Cook. 

Medium  8vo. 
*#*  The  OLD  TESTAMENT  is  now  completed,  in  6  vols.,  see  page  20. 


LONDON;  PAST  AND  PRESENT. 

By  the  late  PETER   CUNNINGHAM,  F.S.A. 

In  this  Avork  will  bo  found  much  antiquarian,  historical,  and  entertaining  information, 
together  with  ample  descriptions  of  all  the  streets  and  buildings  of  note  now  to  be  seen, 
as  well  as  those  no  longer  existing ;  and  every  place  endeared  to  Englishmen  by  In- 
terest iny  and  Historical  associations. 

Revised  and  Edited  by  JAMES    THOBNE,   F.S.A., 

Author  of  tho  "Handbook  to  tho  Environs  of  London." 
New  Library  Edition.     8vo. 


METALLURGY. 

THE  AKT  OF  EXTRACTING  METALS  FROM  THEIR  ORES,  AND  ADAPTING 
THEM  TO  VARIOUS  PURPOSES  OF  MANUFACTURE. 

Fifth   Division-SILVER, 

By  JOHN  PERCY,  M.D.,  F.R.S., 

Lecturer  on  Metallurgy  at  the  Government  School  of  Mines, 

With  numerous  Illustrations.     8vo. 


M  UREA  Y'S  A LPHABETICAL  HANDBOOK 
FOR  ENGLAND  AND    WALES. 

<  o.XDKXsri)    INTO    <>.\T.    V01.U.MK    I'ol!    TDK    1'SK    or   TI1A VKU.KItS. 
\Vitfi  a  M  ,..     Post  Svo, 


10  ME,  MURRAY'S    FORTHCOMING    WORKS, 


HANDBOOK  of  FAMILIAR    QUOTATIONS 

FROM    ENGLISH    AUTHORS. 

Fourth  Edition,  revised  and  eiilargccl.     Fcap.  8vo. 


MURRAY'S    HANDBOOK    FOR    SPAIN, 

Madrid,  The  Castiles,  The  Basque  Provinces,  Leon,  The  Asturias,  Galicia,  Estremadura, 
Andalusia,  Ronda,  Granada,  Murcia,  Valencia,  Catalonia.  Aragon,  Navarre,  The 
Balearic  Islands,  &c.,  &c. 

New  Edition.     Maps.     Post  8vo. 


A  MEMOIR  OF  FRANCES,  LADY  CREWE, 


By  LORD  HOUGHTON, 

Portraits.     Post  8vo. 


APPENDIX    TO    PRINCIPIA    LATIN  A, 

PART  I. 

BEING    ADDITIONAL    EXERCISES,    WITH    EXAMINATION     PAPERS. 

Drawn  up  at  the  suggestion  and  request  of  many  engaged  in  the  tuition  of  younger 
boys,  both  in  public  and  private  schools. 

By    WILLIAM    SMITH,    D.C.L.,    LL.D, 

12mo. 

Teachers  find  that  constant  revision  of  previous  work  is  the  only  sure  way  of  impress- 
ing the  inflexions  and  simpler  rules  of  Syntax  upon  the  memory  of  their  scholars. 
A  too  frequent  repetition  of  the  same  exercises  is  by  no  means  always  attended  witli 
this  advantage  ;  for  the  pupil  often  becomes  familiarised  with  the  sound  of  the  sentences 
themselves  rather  than  with  the  rules  those  sentences  are  intended  to  illustrate. — Preface. 


NEW    DICTIONARY    OF    THE 
ENGLISH    LANGUAGE. 

FOR  PRACTICAL  REFERENCE,  METHODICALLY  ARRANGED,  AND 

BASED  UPON  THE  BEST  PHILOLOGICAL  AUTHORITIES. 

Medium  8vo. 


THE    GERMAN    PRINCIPIA,    PART    II. 

A  FIRST  GERMAN  READING  BOOK,  WITH  GRAMMATICAL  QUESTIONS 
AND  NOTES,   AND  A  DICTIONARY. 

[On  the  Plan  of  DR.   WM.    SMITH'S   PRINCIPIA   LATINA.] 

New  and  Revised  Edition,     Post  8vo. 


ALBEMARLE  STREET, 
Vow  uJicr,  1877, 


MR.    MURRAY'S 

LIST  OF  WORKS  NOW  READY. 


A  DICTIONARY   OF   CHRISTIAN    BIOGRAPHY, 
LITERATURE,   SECTS,  AND  DOCTRINES. 

FROM    THE    TIME    OF   THE  APOSTLES    TO    THE 
AGE    OF    CHARLEMAGNE. 

BY  VARIOUS  WRITERS, 
Edited   by  WM,   SMITH,    D.C.L,,   and   REV.    PROFESSOR    WAOE,    M,A. 

Vol.  I.     Medium  8vo.     31*.  6d. 

This  Work,  together  with  the  "Dictionaries  of  the  Bible"  and  of  "Christian 
Antiquities,"  will  form  a  complete  Cyclopaedia  of  Biblical  and  Church  History  from  the 
Creation  to  the  Ago  of  Charlemagne. 


LIFE   OF  THE   SCOTCH   NATURALIST, 
THOMAS  EDWARD. 

By    SAMUEL    SMILES, 

Author  of  "Lives  of  the  Engineers,"  "Self-Help,"  "Thrift,"  &c. 

With  Portrait  and  Illustrations  by  GEORGE  REID,  R.S.A. 

Fifth  Edition.     Crown  8vo.     10s.  3d. 


THE   APOSTOLIC    DOCTRINE   OF  THE 
REAL   PRESENCE. 

By   the   EARL   of  REDESDALE. 

Third  Edition,     Price  One  Penny, 


12          MB.   MURRAY'S   LIST   OF    WORKS   NOW  READY. 


THE   CHAPEL   IN   THE   TOWER; 

NOTICES  OF  HISTORIC  PERSONS  BURIED  IN  THE  CHAPEL  OF 
ST.  PETER  IN  THE  TOWER  OF  LONDON. 

"WITH  AN  ACCOUNT  OF  THE  DISCOVERY  OF  TUB  SUPPOSED  REMAINS  OF  QUEEN 

ANNE  BOLEYN. 

By    DOYNE   C.    BELL,    F.S.A, 

CONTENTS. 

HlSTOKY  OF  THE  CHAPEL.  MONUMENTS. 

RESTORATIONS.  BURIAL  REGISTER. 

With  24  Illustrations.     8vo.     Us. 


THE   CRADLE   OF  THE   BLUE   NILE, 

A  VISIT  TO  THE  COURT  OF  KING-  JOHN  OF  ETHIOPIA. 

INCLUDING  SOME  NEW  INFORMATION  ON  THE  EAST  AFRICAN  SLAVE  TRADE. 

By  E,   A,   DE   COSSON,    F.R.G.S. 

With  Map  and  Illustrations,     2  Vols,     Post  8ro.    21*. 


THE    DIFFERENT   FORMS  OF  FLOWERS   ON 
PLANTS  OF  THE   SAME   SPECIES. 

By   CHARLES    DARWIN,    M.A.,  F.R.S. 
With  Woodcuts.     Crown  8vo.     10s.  6  d.    (This  Day.) 


ANNALS  OF  WINCHCOMBE  AND  SUDELEY. 

By    EMMA     DENT. 

With  120  Portraits,  Plates,  and  Woodcuts.     4to.     42* 

"Few  residences  can  boast  a  greater  antiquity,  or  have  witnessed  more  striking  changes 
than  SUDELEY  CASTLE.  A  mansuni,  or  manor-house,  before  the  Conquest,  a  baronial  cnstle 
in  the  time  of  Stephen,  then  alternately  going  to  decay,  or  rising  into  additional  magnificence, 
with  stately  towers  to  overlook  the  vale— again  suffering  ftvm  neglect,  ard  once  more  right 
royally  restored  and  beautified  t<>  ivrcivr  the  widowed  (Jueen  :is  Seymour's  Uride,  with  all  her 
lordly  retinue;" — Prftffce.  ' ' 


.       MR.   MURRAY'S   LIST   Off    WORKS    NOW   READY.  13 

SCEPTICISM   IN   GEOLOGY, 

AND    THE    REASONS    FOR    IT. 
AN  ASSEMBLAGE  or  FACTS  FROM  NATURE  OPPOSED  TO  THE  THEORY  OF  "CAUSE*  vw 

IN   ACTION,"  AND   REFUTING  IT, 

By    VERIFIER, 

With  Woodcuts.     Crown  8vo.     0*. 


AN  ANALYSIS   OF  AUSTIN'S    LECTURES  ON 
JURISPRUDENCE,   FOR  STUDENTS. 

By   GORDON    CAMPBELL,  M.A.,  of  the  Inner  Temple. 

With  au  Index.     Post  8vo.     6s, 

MEMOIR  OF   LORD  ABINGER, 

CHIEF  BARON  OF  H.M.  COURT  OF  EXCHEQUER. 

INCLUDING  A  FEAGMENT  OF  HIS  AUTOBIOGRAPHY,  AND  SELECTIONS 
FROM  HIS  CORRESPONDENCE  AND  SPEECHES. 

By  THE   HON.  P.  CAMPBELL  SCARLETT,  C.B. 

With  Portrait.     8vo.     15«. 


FIVE  YEARS  BETWEEN  THE  DANUBE  AND 
THE  BLACK  SEA. 

By    H.    C.    BARKLEY,  Civil  Engineer. 
Second  Edition.     With  Map  of  the  Wall  of  Trajan.     Post  8vo.     10.9.  tol. 


THE   LIFE  AND  TIMES  OF  TITIAN. 

WITH  SOME  ACCOUNT  OF  HIS  FAMILY,  CHIEFLY  FROM  NEW 
AND  UNPUBLISHED  RECORDS. 

By  J.  A.  CROWE,  and  G.  B.  CAVALCASELLE, 

Authors  of  the  "History  of  Painting  in  North  Italy." 

With  Portrait  and  Illustrations.    2  vols.     8vo.     42s. 


14  MS.   MURRAY'S    LIST   OF    WOKKS   NOW  READY. 


THE     BAMPTOW    LECTURES,    1876. 


THE  WITNESS  OF  THE   PSALMS  TO  CHRIST 
AND  CHRISTIANITY. 

By   WILLIAM    ALEXANDER,    D.D.,    D.Q.L., 

LORD  BLSHOP  OF  DERRY  AND  RAPBOE. 

8vo.     10,<?.  Gd. 


THE  WORKS  OF   RAPHAEL, 

As  represented  in  the  Raphael  Collection  in  the  Royal  Library  at  Windsor  Castle,  formed 
by  H.R.H.  THE  PRINCE  CONSORT,  1853-61,  and  completed  by  H.M.  QUEEN  VICTORIA. 

4to.    425. 
%*  (100  copies  only  published.) 

ROMANISM    AMONGST    THE    CLERGY. 


QUIS    CUSTODIET    IPSOS    CUSTODES? 

OR,  'TIS    TWELVE    YEARS    SINCE. 

The  substance  of  a  Debate  in  the  House  of  Lords,  16th  June,  1865. 

With  an  Introduction  by  LORD   EBUR  Y. 

8vo.     6d. 

LIFE  OF  MICHAEL  ANGELO. 

SCULPTOR,  PAINTER,  AND  ARCHITECT; 

INCLUDING  INEDITED  DOCUMENTS  FROM  THE  BUONAROTTI  ARCHIVES,  ILLUSTRATIVE 
OF  HIS  LIFE  AND  WORKS,  NOW  FOR  THE  FIRST  TIME  PUBLISHED. 

By   CHARLES   HEATH   WILSON. 

With  Portrait  and  Illustrations.     Royal  8vo.     265. 


AN   ILLUSTRATED  HANDBOOK  TO  THE 
PRINCE    CONSORT'S   NATIONAL    MEMORIAL, 

Many  Woodcuts.     Fcp.  8vo.     2s.  Qd. 


MB.  MUBBAY'S  LIST   OF    WORKS   NOW  BEADY.  15 


HANDBOOK  TO  THE  ENVIRONS  OF  LONDON. 

DERIVED    FROM    PERSONAL   VISITS    TO    EVERY    TOWN    AND    VILLAGE 
WITHIN  A  CIRCLE  OF  TWENTY  MILES  ROUND  THE  METROPOLIS. 

ALPHABETICALLY  ARRANGED,    WITH  AN   INDEX  OF  NAMES. 

By  JAMES   THORNE,    F.S.A. 

2  vols.     Crown  Svo.     21*. 


SHORT   HISTORY  OF   NATURAL   SCIENCE; 

AND    OF    THE    PROGRESS    OF    DISCOVERY    FROM    THE    TIME    OF    THE 
"  GREEKS  TO  THE  PRESENT  DAY,   FOR  SCHOOLS  AND  STUDENTS.     , 

By    ARABELLA    B.    BUCKLEY.- 

With  Illustrations.    Post  Svo.     9s. 


DICTIONARY  OF  CHRISTIAN   ANTIQUITIES. 

COMPRISING    THE    HISTORY,    INSTITUTIONS,    AND    ANTIQUITIES 
OF    THE    CHRISTIAN    CHURCH, 

FROM   THE   TIME   OF   THE   APOSTLES   TO   THE  AGE   OF   CHARLEMAGNE. 

BY  VARIOUS  WRITERS. 
Edited  by  WM.  SMITH,  D.C.L.,  and  REV.  PROF.  CHEETHAM,  M.A. 

With  Illustrations.     Vol.  I.      Medium  Svo.     31s.  6d. 

V  This  work  is  uniform  with  the  "DICTIONARY  OF  CHRISTIAN  BIOGRAI-IIY,"  and 
forms  a  continuation  of  the  ''DICTIONARY  OF  THE  BIBLE." 


THE   FRENCH   RETREAT   FROM   MOSCOW. 

AND    OTHER  HISTORICAL  ESSAYS. 
By  the   late   EARL    STANHOPE. 

Post  Svo.     7s.  6rf. 


PHYSICAL  GEOGRAPHY. 

By   MARY   SOMERVILLE. 

Seventh  Edition,  Revised.     With  Portrait.     Post  Svo.     9s. 


1C  MR.   MURRAY'S   LIST   OF    WORK8   NO IV   READY. 

CONNEXION   OF  THE   PHYSICAL   SCIENCES, 

By   MARY   SOMERVILLE. 

Tenth  Edition,  Revised  by  ARABELLA   B.   BUCKLEY, 
Author  of  "A  Short  History  of  Natural  Science." 

With  Illustrations.     Post  8vo.    9s. 


METALLURGY ; 

THE   ART    OF    EXTRACTING   METALS   FROM    THEIR    ORE. 


By  JOHN    PERCY,  M.D.,  F.R.S., 

the  Government  School  of  Mines,  Honorary  M 
Civil  Engineers,  &c. 

FIRST  DIVISION.— FUEL  including 


Lecturer  on  Metallurgy  at  the  Government  School  of  Mines,  Honorary  Member  of  the  Institution 

Civil  Engineers,  &c. 


REFRACTORY  METALS, 
FIRE  CLAYS, 
CRUCIBLES, 


FIRE  BRICKS, 

WOOD, 

PEAT, 


COAL, 
CHARCOAL, 
COKE,  &c. 


New  and  Revised  Edition.     "With  Illustrations.     8vo.     30s. 


AN  ATLAS  OF  ANCIENT  GEOGRAPHY. 

BIBLICAL  AND   CLASSICAL. 

INTENDED  TO  ILLUSTRATE  SMITH'S  CLASSICAL  AND  BIBLICAL  DICTIONARIES, 
AND  THE  "SPEAKER'S  COMMENTARY  ON  THE  BIBLE." 

Compiled  under  the  superintendence  of 
WM.   SMITH,   D.C.L,   and  GEORGE   GROVE,   F.R.G.S. 

With  Descriptive  Text,  giving  the  Sources  and  Authorities,  Indices,  &c. 
With  43  Maps.     Folio,  half-bound.     £6  65. 


SCHOOL  MANUAL  OF  MODERN   GEOGRAPHY. 

PHYSICAL    AND     POLITICAL. 
By  JOHN   RICHARDSON,  M.A., 

Diocesan  Inspector  of  Schools. 
Post  8vo.     65, 


MR.  MVRRAVS    LIST   OF    WORKS   NOW  READY.  17 

THE  JESUITS. 

THEIR   CONSTITUTION  AND  TEACHING:    AN    HISTORICAL  SKETCH. 
By   W.    C.    CARTWRIGHT,    M.P. 

8vo.     95. 


LEAVES  FROM  MY  SKETCH  BOOK. 

A  SELECTION  FROM  SKETCHES  MADE  DURING  MANY  TOURS. 
By    E.    W.    COOKE,    R.A. 

"With  Descriptive  Letterpress.     25  Plates.     Small  folio.     31s.  6d. 

SECRET  HISTORY  OF  THE  VATICAN  COUNCIL. 

DURING   THE  EIGHT  MONTHS   OF   ITS  SITTINGS  AT  ROME. 
By  POMPONIO   LETO, 

Translated  from  the  Italian,  with  the  Original  Documents. 
8vo.     12*. 


HANDBOOK  TO  THE  CATHEDRAL  OF 
ST.  ALBANS. 

By   RICHARD   J.    KING,  B.A.,  Exeter  College,  Oxford. 

Many  Illustrations.     Crown  8vo.     65. 


LIFE   OF  DR.  ARNOLD  OF  RUGBY. 

WITH   SELECTIONS    FROM    HIS    CORRESPONDENCE* 
By    A.    P.    STANLEY,    D.  D.,    Dean    of   Westminster* 

Tenth  Edition.     Portrait.     2  vols.     Crown  8vOi    125. 


18  ME.  MUMRAY'S   LItiT   OF    WORKS  NOW  READY. 


A  PRACTICAL  GERMAN  GRAMMAR. 

By  Dr.  LEONHARD  SCHMITZ, 

Classical  Examiner  in  the  University  of  London. 
Post  8vo.     3s.  Qd. 


VARIOUS  CONTRIVANCES  BY  WHICH  ORCHIDS 
ARE  FERTILISED  BY  INSECTS. 

By  CHARLES   DARWIN,    F.R.S. 

Second  Eli/ion,  revised.     With  Woodcuts.     Crown  8vo.     9s. 


THE   STUDENT'S  FRENCH  GRAMMAR, 

A    PRACTICAL    AND    HISTORICAL    GRAMMAR    OF    THE 
FRENCH    LANGUAGE. 

By     CHARLES     HERON-WALL, 

Late  Assistant-Master  of  Brighton  Colbge. 

AVith  an  Introduction  by  M.   LITTRE, 

Member  of  the  French  Academy. 

Post  8vo.     7s.  Qd.     (Nearly  Heady.} 


A  SMALLER  GRAMMAR  OF  THE  FRENCH 
LANGUAGE. 

FOR  THE  MIDDLE  AND  LOWER  FORMS. 

ABRIDGED  FROM  THE  STUDENT'S  FRENCH  GRAMMAR. 

12mo,     35.  6d.     (Nearly  Ready.) 


PRINCIPLES  OF  GREEK  ETYMOLOGY, 

By    PROFESSOR    CURTlUS. 

Translated  by  A.  S.  W1LKINS,  M.A.,  Professor  of  Latin  aud  Comparative  Philology, 
and  E.  B.  ENGLAND,  M.A.,  Assistant  Lecturer  in  Classics*  Owens  College, 

Manchester. 

2  vols.     8vo.     30*. 


ME.  MURRAY'S  LIST   OF    WORKS   NOW  READY.  19 

THE   TRAVELS   OF   MARCO   POLO, 

DESCRIBING   THE    KINGDOMS    AND    MARVELS    OF   THE    EAST. 

A  NEW  ENGLISH  VERSION. 
By  COL.   HENRY  YULE,  C.B., 

Late  Royal  Engineers  (Bengal). 
Second  Edition,  Revised  and  Enlarged. 
With  19  Maps  and  130  Illustrations.     2  Vols.     Medium  8vo.     63s. 


ENGLAND  AND  RUSSIA  IN  THE   EAST. 

A  SERIES  OF   TAPERS   ON  THE 

POLITICAL  AND  GEOGRAPHICAL  CONDITION  OF  CENTRAL  ASIA. 
By  MAJOR-GEN.  SIR   HENRY   RAWLINSON,  K.C.B.,  F.R.S., 

Member  of  the  Council  of  India. 
Second  Edition.     With  Map.     8vo.    12*. 


LECTURES  ON   THE   HISTORY  OF  THE 
JEWISH   CHURCH. 

By  A.  P.  STANLEY,  D.D.,  Dean  of  Westminster. 

1st  and    2nd    SERIES.  —  ABRAHAM    TO    THE    CAPTIVITY.     Maps. 
2  Vols.     8vo.     246-. 


$rd  SERIES.—  ftift  CAPTIVITY  TO  THE  CHRISTIAN  ERA.     Maps. 

8vo.     14* 

HISTORY  OF   HERODOTUS; 

A  NEW    ENGLISH    VERSION. 

Edited,  with  copious  Notes  and  Essays,  from  the  most  recent  sources  of  information, 
Historical  and  Ethnographical,  which  have  been  obtained  in  the  progress  of  Cuneiform 
and  Hieroglyphical  Discovery. 

By    GEORGE    RAWLINSON,    M.A., 

Canon  of  Canterbury,  :md  Camden  Professor  of  Ancient  History  ut  Oxford. 

Assisted  by  SIR  HENRY  RAWLINSON  and  SIR  J.  GARDNER  WILKINSO.V. 
Third  Edition,  Revised.     With  Maps  and  350  "Woodcuts.     4  vols.    8vo.     48s. 


!0  MB.  MVRRATS  LIST   OF    WORKS  ttOW  HEADY. 

THE   ROYAL  SUPREMACY, 

AS  IT  IS  DEFINED  BY  REASON,  HISTORY,  AND  THE 
CONSTITUTION. 

BEING  THE  SUBSTANCE  OF  A  LETTER  TO  BISHOP  BLOMFIELO  IN  1850. 
By  the  Bight  Hon.  W.  E.  GLADSTONE,  M.P. 

New  Edition,  with.  Preface.     8vo.     Is. 


TROY  AND   ITS  REMAINS. 

/  \ 

A    NARRATIVE    OF    DISCOVERIES    AND    RESEARCHES    MADE    ON 
THE    SITE    OF    ILIUM,    AND    IN    THE    TROJAfT    PLAIN. 

By  DR.    HENRY  SCHLIEMANN,  Citizen  of/the  U.S. 

With  500  Illustrations.     Mediuii  8vo.   Jils. 

BOSWELL'S  LIFE   OF  VJOHNSON. 

Edited  by  the  late  Right  Hon.  JOHI/MLSON   CROKER. 

WITH  NOTES  BY  LORD  STOWELL,  SIR  WALTER  Scoir,  SIR  JAMES  MACKINTOSH, 
DISRAELI,  MARKLAND{  LOCKH^RT,  &c. 

Seventh  Edition.     With  Portraits. /One  Volural.     Medium  8vo.     12s. 


THE   SPEAKER'S/COMMENTARY   ON   THE 
OLD  TESTAMENT. 

EXPLANATORY    AND    CRITICAL,    WITH    ^    KEVISION    OF    TMK 
TRANSLATION. 

By   BISHOPS  and   CLERGY  of  the  ANGLICAN   CHURCH, 
Edited  by  F.  C.  COOK,  M.A., 

Canon  of  Exetor,  Preacher  at  Lincoln's  Inn,  and  Chaplain  in  Ordinary  to  the  Queen. 

VOL.     L— GENESIS,  EXODUS,  LEVITICUS,  NUMBERS,  DEUTERONOMY.     30s. 

VOLS.  II.  and  III.—  JOSHUA,   JUDGES,  RUTH,    SAMUEL,  KINGS,    CHRONICLES,   EZRA, 

NEHEMIAH,  ESTHER.     36s. 

VOL.  IV.— JOB,  PSALMS,  PROVERBS,  ECCLESIASTES,  SONG  or  SOLOMON.     24s. 
VOL.   V.— ISAIAH,  JEREMIAH,  LAMENTATIONS.     205. 
VOL.  VI. — EZEKIEL,  DANIEL,  THE  MINOR  PROPHETS.     25s. 

Complete  in  6  Vols.     Medium  8vo.     £6  ir>j. 


BURY,    AGNirto,    <fc   Ct).,    ritlNTfcKS,    \VHIlKiKlAK7, 


SEP1 

we. 


DA 
358 
E7D4 
v.2 


Devereux,  Walter  Bourchier 

Lives  and  letters  of 
the  Devereux 


PLEASE  DO  NOT  REMOVE 
CARDS  OR  SLIPS  FROM  THIS  POCKET 


UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO  LIBRARY